Skip to main content

Full text of "Discourses on various points of Christian doctrine and practice"

See other formats


UNIVERSITY 
OF  PITTSBURGH 


Da:-,    Rm 
BVi+253 
B8o 
C.6 


LIBRARIES 


C^cCT 


A  • 


^     %r. 


'r*N 


>/ 


Digitized  by  tine  Internet  Arcinive 

in  2009  witii  funding  from 

University  of  Pittsburgh  Library  System 


littp://www.archive.org/details/discoursesonvariOObruc 


DISCOURSES 


ON 


VARIOUS  POINTS 


OF 


CHRISTIAN  DOCTRINE 


AKD 


PRACTZCS. 


By  ROBERT  BRUCE,  D.  D. 

Principal  of  the  Western  University  of  Pennsylvania. 


PITTSBURGH. 
PRINTED  BY  D.  ATTD  M.  MACLEAN. 

m 
1829. 


WESTERN  DISTRICT  OF  PENNSYLVANIA,  to  tcii: 

Be  it  remembered,  That  on  the  twelfth  day  of  May,  in  the  fifty-third 
year  of  the  Independence  of  the  United  States  of  America,  A.  D.  1829^, 
ROBERT  BRUCE,  D.  D.,  of  the  said  District,  hath  deposited  in  this 
Office  the  Title  of  a  Book,  the  right  whereof  he  claims  as  Author  and 
Proprietor,  in  the  words  following,  to  wit: 

'^  Discourses  on  various  points  of  Christian  Doctrine  and 
'^  Practice.     By  Robert  Bruce,  D.  D.,  Principal  of  the  Western 

'''■  University  of  Pennsylvania." 

In  conformity  to  the  Act  of  the  Congress  of  the  United  States,  entitled, 
"  An  Act  for  the  encouragement  of  learning,  by  securing  the  copies  of 
Maps,  Charts,  and  Books,  to  the  Authors  and  Proprietors  of  such  copies, 
during  the  times  therein  mentioned." — And  also  to  the  Act  entitled,  "  An 
Act  supplementary  to  an  Act  entitled,  '  An  Act  for  the  encouragement  of 
learning,  by  securing  the  copies  of  Maps,  Charts,  and  Books,  to  the  Authors 
and  Proprietors  of  such  copies,  during  the  times  therein  mentioned,'  and 
extending  the  benefits  thereof  to  the  arts  of  designing,  engraving,  and 
etching  historical  and  other  prints."  E.  J.  ROBERTS, 

Clk,  West,  Dist.  of  Penmyhania, 


INTRODUCTION. 


The  object  which  the  Author  had  in  view  in  publishing  these  dis- 
courses, was  to  present,  under  as  condensed  a  form  as  possible,  several 
articles  of  divine  truth,  and  the  principal  arguments  by  which  they  are 
supported.  The  present  method  of  prosecuting  an  inquiry  after  truth 
being  essentially  ditFerent  from  that  which  was  pursued  in  any  age  pre- 
viously, it  was  supposed  that  the  results  in  which  our  forefathers  rested 
would  nnt  hfl  altered  by  the  most  particular  appeals  which  couJd  be  made 
to  the  principles  of  human  nature,  and  to  the  voice  of  scripture  as  address- 
ing itself  to  the  common  sense  of  mankind.  Hence  the  reader  will  not 
find  many  minute  criticisms  on  particular  passages  of  scripture  in  these 
discourses;  but  rather  an  attempt  to  catch  the  impression  which  an  intel- 
ligent reader  would,  in  resting  upon  the  authority  of  the  word  of  God> 
necessarily  receive  on  the  paiticular  subject  in  question.  This  principle 
it  will  be  necessary  to  keep  in  mind,  to  understand  the  method  of  rea- 
soning which  on  the  most  of  the  doctrinal  subjects  has  been  adopted. 

In  the  discourses  on  Heb.  13:12,  the  view  of  salvation  by  Christ,  and 
particularly  that  of  faith,  is  the  same  with  that  which,  about  two  hundred 
years  ago,  divines  generally  expressed  after  the  following  manner.  '•'  The 
grace  of  God  is  manifested  in  the  second  covenant,  in  that  he  freely  pro 
videth  and  offereth  to  sinners  a  Mediator,  and  life  and  salvation  by  him: 
and,  requiring  faith  as  the  condition  to  interest  them  in  him,  promiseth  and 
giveth  his  holy  Spirit  to  all  his  elect,  to  work  in  them  that  faith  with  all 
other  graces." — In  these  discourses,  the  definite  nature  of  Christ's  satisfac- 
tion is  attempted  to  be  placed  on  the  pure  relations  of  justice;  and  though 
God  could  not  appoint  a  Mediator  for  man  till  man  needed  him,  and  the 
grace  of  God  might  be  sovereignly  manifested  in  deUveringto  death  the  jusi 
for  the  unjust;  yet  it  is  attempted  to  demonstrate,  that  faith  is  a  moral 
duty,  presupposing  the  original  moral  law  concreated  with  man,  and  arising 
out  of  this  moral  law  absolutely  and  necessarily  whenever  God  set  up  his 
Son  in  the  offer  of  the  gospel  as  our  Mediator.  Faith  is  considered  undeB 
two  aspects,  as  a  duty  appointed,  and  as  a  grace  received;  and  while  the 
duty  by  the  authority  of  the  moral  law  is  indispensably  required,  the  grace 


ly  INTRODUCTION. 

which  comes  from  the  spirit  of  Christ  enables  to  perform  that  doty;  and 
ihus  our  faith,  as  all  the  celebrated  reformers  stated,  precedes  the  actaal 
pardon  of  our  sins.  "  Believe  on  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ  and  thou  shalt  be 
saved." 

In  the  discourse  on  John  5:18,  mysteiious  as  is  the  doctrine  of  regene- 
ration, yet  an  attempt  is  made  to  penetrate  as  deeply  as  possible  into  the 
subject,  oa  this  general  principle,  that  when  scripture  deviates  from  the 
common  language  of  mankind,  it  is  intended  to  present  to  their  common 
sense  semething  that  has  a  peculiarity  in  it.  In  the  most  of  divines  which 
the  author  of  these  discourses  has  had  an  opportunity  of  consulting,  beau- 
tiful metaphors  and  expressions  are  often  used  respecting  regeneration; 
but  while  they  are  professing  logically  to  discuss  the  subject,  he  could  not 
ascertain  that  they  communicated  any  very  determinate  views  in  relation 
to  it. — I  have  attempted  to  show,  that  as  God  breathed  into  man  the 
breath  of  life,  so  there  is  a  supernatural  principle  of  life  and  action  breathed 
into  the  soul  in  the  day  of  its  creation  anew.  ^^ 

It  struck  me,  tnat  oy  leaving  uui  oumv.  '^r.»,^poii(.afion8  to  the  doctrinal 
discourses,  the  arguments  would  appear  more  a  naked  whole  to  operate  on 
the  understanding;  and  especially  that  this  would  be  proper  with  those 
ftrgumeatative  discourses  which  succeed  one  another  on  the  same  subject. 
Several  of  these  diseoWTBes  are  therefore  presented  without  any  particular 
application.  It  seemed  not  to  be  a  practice  recommended  by  the  habits  of 
mankind,  to  make  every  thing  of  one  form;  and  therefore,  though  some 
may  think  that  the  want  of  sat  application  in  some  of  these  discourses  is  a 
great  deficiency,  yet  with  many  judicious  people  it  is  hoped  that  this  will 
not  be  the  case. 

The  Author  had  another  reason:  he  was  desirous  to  give  to  his  sub- 
scribers, and  to  the  public,  a  more  extensive  range  of  subjects  than,  in  the 
volume  proposed,  could  be  done,  unless  the  plan  pursued  had  been  adopt- 
ed. Consequently  there  is  to  be  found,  in  addition  to  those  mentioned 
in  the  prospectus,  in  this  volume,  h  discourse  on  the  Signs  of  the  Times, 
on  the  Holy  Sabbath,  on  the  Creation  of  Light,  on  the  Training  up  of  Child- 
ren, and  on  the  Conversion  of  the  Ethiopian  Eunuch.  These  discourses, 
it  is  hoped,  will,  by  the  generality  of  readers,  be  considered  a  great  addition 
of  important  subjects— exaented,  Indeed,  aa  the  rest  are,  with  many  imper- 
fections. 

Part  of  this  volume  consists  of  discourses  which  were  composed  when 
the  author  was  a  student  In  divinity,  and  when  he  had  much  time  to  devot« 
to  the  study  of  the  most  eeleWated  authors.  That  on  the  evidences  of 
the  resurrection  of  Christ,  those  on  Heb.  13:12,  and  that  on  Ist  John  5:18, 
were  composed  then  nearly  as  now  presented.  It  was  shortly  after  he  enter- 
ed on  the  ministry  tJhat  he  eowfosed  the  last  in  the  volume,  and  that  on  the 


INTRODrCTION.  ▼ 

Training  up  of  Children.  That  on  the  Signs  of  the  Times  was  delivered 
before  the  Associate  Synod  a  good  many  years  ago;  and  that  on  Brotherly 
Love  about  1818,  when  there  were  some  serious  disturbances  in  the  Asso- 
ciate Presbyterian  Congregation  of  Pittsburgh.  That  on  the  Divinity  of 
Christ  was  principally  composed  to  complete  the  contemplated  arrange- 
ment of  this  volume.  Those  on  the  Sabbath  and  on  Light  are  newly 
composed. — In  respect  to  t-his  last,  (on  Light,)  I  am  sensible  many  will 
not  be  much  pleased  with  it;  but  others,  it  is  hoped,  will  be  of  a  different 
opinion;  for  the  author  thought  that  those  immense  discoveries  which  are 
made  in  modern  science  could  not  be  supposed  absolutely  all  incapable  of 
being  applied  to  the  religious  character  of  man;  and  he  has  attempted  to 
make  a  slender  experiment  on  some  of  the  properties  of  light. 

If  there  be  any  thing  erroneous  in  these  discourses,  the  Author  most 
sincerely  wishes  that  ^^od  would  prevent  any  injurious  consequences  from 
following;^nd  what  is  ruth  and  just  piinciples  of  conduct ,  he  hopes  God 
will  bless,  tosome  at  lei  st,  to  show  that,  when  there  are  so  many  evidences, 
as  in  this  volume,  of  the  ueasure  being  put  in  an  earthen  vessel,  the  power 
whioh  folighteuB  ».^j  „,VPK  men  is  from  God  himself. 


CONTENTS. 

DISCOURSE.  PAGE. 

I.  The  Duties  of  the  Preacher  and  Hearer  of  the 

Gospel;  Acts  10:29.            ....  9 

II.  Chris fs  Resurrection;  3Iath.2Q:  6.        -         -  45 

in.  Chrisfs  Divinity;  Heh.  1:6.          ...  73 

IV.  Chrisfs  Suffering  without  the  gate;  Heb.  13: 12.  95 

V.   The    People    Sanctified    hy    Chrisfs    Blood; 

Heb.  13:12. 115 

yi.  Sajictification  from  Guilt;  Heb.  13:12.           -  131 

y II.  Sanctification  to  Life;  Heb.  13:12.         -         -  153 

VIII.  Hewhois  BornofGod  sinnethnot;  1  John  5:  IS,  183 

IX.  The  Signs  of  the  Times;  3Iath.  16:3.     -         -  206 

X.   The  Sabbath;  Exodus  20:  8.            ...  234 

XI.  Brotherly  Love;  1  John  4:11.        -         -         -  257 
Xli.  The  Duty  of  Parents  to  their  Children;  Prov.  22: 6.  277 

XIII.  Light;  Gen.  1:3. 290 

XIV.  The  Conversion  of  the  Ethiopian  Eunuch;  Acts  8: 39.  307 
XV.  God''s  Blessing  to  his  People;  Rev.  22:21.    -  328 


DISCOURSE  !• 


ON  THE  DUTIES  OF  THE  PREACHER  AND  HEARER  OF 
THE  GOSPEL. 


Acts  10:29.     I  ask,  therefore,  for  what  intent  ye  have  sent 
for  me?^ 

When,  my  brethren,  an  important  affair  occasions  the  meet- 
ing of  parties,  an  explanation  of  the  sense  in  which  the  one 
party  understands  the  other,  is  of  great  utility  to  both.  On 
the  rise  of  a  confederacy,  from  the  reciprocal  exigencies  of  those 
communities  whose  respective  interests  cannot  be  consulted 
but  by  measures  which  promote  that  of  the  whole,  an  explica- 
tion of  the  articles  of  agreement  and  conjunct  interest  takes 
place.  All  are  sensible  that  they  cannot,  unless  they  under- 
stand the  views  from  which  they  are  united,  act  so  as  to  obtem- 
perate  the  laws  of  their  mutual  obligation,  and  to  secure  the 
objects  of  their  general  interest.  How,  says  the  sacred  pen- 
man, can  two  walk  together  except  they  be  agreed?  Every 
nation,  and  every  society,  in  every  agreement  of  lasting  im- 
portance, most  solemnly  ratify  their  stipulations,  and  preserve 
records  which  contain  the  rules  of  their  interchangeable  duties. 

This  right  of  understanding,  in  affairs  of  mutual  concern, 
one  another's  mind,  obtains  no  less  in  spiritual  than  in  secular 
transactions.  God,  the  great  administrator  of  the  covenant  of 
grace,  graciously  displays,  on  his  part,  the  order  of  all  liis 

2 


10  DUTIES  OP  THE  PREACHER  AND 

councils  and  procedure,  for  our  salvation ;  and  the  duties  and 
exercises  which,  on  ours,  must  be  supported,  are  equally  clearly 
revealed.  In  the  manifestation  of  this  grand  transaction,  the 
whole  mind  of  God,  in  commands  and  threatenings,  in  doctrines 
and  gracious  promises,  as  they  compose  the  dispensation  of 
his  will  to  us,  is  prominently  presented ;  and  every  part  of  the 
corresponding  exercises,  faith,  love,  and  obedience,  by  which 
we  should  receive  and  improve  these  truths  of  God  for  our 
salvation,  is  no  less  pointedly  inculcaled.  Greatly  does  reve- 
lation illustrate  the  grand  and  endearing  truth  which  these 
words  sum  up,  "  I  will  be  to  you  a  God,  and  ye  shall  be  to  me 
a  })eople.'" 

VVliat  obtains  in  the  affairs  of  the  Vv^orld,  and  between  the 
gracious  and  almighty  God,  in  his  dispensation  of  mercy,  and 
the  saints  who  are  to  improve  it,  the  language  throughout  this 
passage  of  holy  writ,  whence  we  have  extracted  die  subject  of 
OUT  discourse,  instructs  us,  should  obtain  between  the  appoint- 
(^d  ministers  of  the  gospel,  and  those  v.rho  send  for  them. 

Cornelius,  a  centurion  of  the  Italian  band,  a  devout  man, 
and  one  that  feared  God  with  all  his  house,  had  a  messenger 
sent  from  God,  expressly  to  announce  to  him  the  joyful  news 
that  his  prayers  and  alms  had  come  up  for  a  memorial  before 
God,  and  that  he  should  now  send  to  Joppa  to  call  Simon  the 
apostle.  This  apostle,  at  the  same  time,  had  a  vision,  the 
mterpretation  of  which  revealed  to  him,  that,  in  the  progress  of 
the  kingdom  of  Christ,  the  Gentiles  had  actually  come  to  be 
fellow-heirs  of  the  grace  of  God  with  the  Jews;  and  that  he 
should  go  down  with  those  men  whom  Cornelius  sent  to  inquire 
for  him,  though  Cornelius  was  a  Gentile.  Following  the  dic- 
tates of  the  spirit  of  God,  Peter  the  zealous  apostle  of  our  Lord 
Jesus,  goes  down  witlr  the  men  who  were  sent  for  him,  doubt- 
jng  nothing; — and  his  language  to  this  first  fruit  of  the  Gentiles 
is : — Therefore  came  I  unto  thee,  without  gainsaying,  as  soon 
as  I  was  sent  for:  I  ask,  therefore,  for  what  intent  ye  have 
$ent  for  me? 


HEARER  OF  THE  GOSPEL,  1  1 

The  accommodation  of  these  words  to  our  present  situation 
is  natural  and  inviting:  and  the  proposition  which  the  accom- 
modation recommends  to  our  illustration,  is,  That  it  is  the 
privilege  of  a  minister  to  know,  from  itself,  for  what  particu- 
lar purposes  he  has  been  called  to  the  inspection  of  a  particular 
part  of  God's  church. 

No  doubt,  my  brethren,  the  reasons  of  this  doctrine  are  pre- 
sumed by  you;  and  its  illustration  may,  in  a  great  measure, 
have  been  anticipated,  both  by  you,  in  your  solicitations  as  a 
branch  of  God's  church  for  my  labors,  and  by  myself,  in  pre- 
ferring the  sound  of  his  voice  as  uttered  by  you,  to  many  other 
instances  in  which  it  was  heard  with  an  equally  urgent  tone, 
and  nearly  expressive  claim. 

With  respect  to  the  reasons,  let  us  only  apply  the  introducto- 
ry idea  to  our  present  case,  and  ask.  What  would  be  the  disad- 
vantages that  would  necessarily  follow  from  a  misunderstanding 
of  that  connexion  which  is  now  formed — whose  influences  will 
not  be  bounded  by  time,  but  which  will  reach  throughout 
eternity?  Were  you,  for  instance,  or  any  part  or  you,  to  sup- 
pose that  I  am  to  circumscribe  the  subjects  about  to  be  chosen 
for  your  instruction,  to  the  purity  of  moral  duties  only;  that 
the  amiableness  of  moral  virtue,  and  the  motives  which  encou- 
rage it,  were  to  form  even  the  piincipal  part  of  my  instructions, 
you  would  entertain  a  very  erroneous  notion  of  my  intentions 
as  a  minister  of  the  gospel.  Were  any  of  you  to  presume  that 
1  would  certainly  rise  above  the  useful  and  rational  principles 
of  morality,  and  the  enforcement  of  the  practice  founded  in 
them ;  but  that  I  would  not  go  beyond  the  statement  of  that 
doctrine  which  affixes  eternal  life  to  the  merits  of  our  own 
obedience,  supported  and  encouraged  by  the  promises  of  divine 
assistance  and  acceptance,  still  you  would  have  a  misjudged 
and  an  imperfect  view  of  my  intention.  On  the  other  hand,  did 
I  think  that  you  intended  that  I  should  not  be  careful  for  the 
preservation  of  all  the  government  and  discipline  of  the  church; 
that  I  should  reprove  vice  by  the  delivery  of  truth  from  the 


12  DUTIES  OF  THE  PREACHER  AND 

place  only  where  I  now  stand,  and  not  by  that  authority  which 
ecclesiastical  judicatories  exercise;  would  not  I  have  a  very 
different  view  of  your  mind  from  what  is  the  true  state  of  your 
expectations  ? 

What  1  intend,  then,  in  the  further  illustration  of  this  subject 
is,  first.  To  enumerate  and  define  to  you  the  ends  for  which  I 
understand  you  to  have  sent  for  me;  secondly,  To  give  you 
some  directions  upon  the  view  which  I  have  of  your  invitation, 
in  regard  to  the  exercises  which,  on  your  part,  originate  from 
the  connexion  which  is  now  formed ;  and,  thirdly.  To  apply 
these  respective  views. 

I  do  not  presume  any  of  you  so  ignorant  of  the  end  of  a  gospel- 
ministry,  as  to  suppose  that  any  one,  in  this  assembly,  or  any 
whose  voice  may  have  co-operated  with  it,  could  have  wished 
that  solemn  connexion,  which  has  now  taken  place,  to  be  form- 
ed, from  other  motives  than  what  lead  to  a  design  of  promoting 
tlie  welfare  of  the  church  of  Christ,  and  also  the  interests  of 
religion  in  your  own  hearts.  There  may  be  some  within  the 
iiurizGu  of  tha  visible  church  whose  mir^ds  are  so  wofuUy  be- 
clouded, that  they  will  desire  the  privileges  of  God's  ordinances, 
merely  that  they  may  have  the  opportunity  of  maintaining  the 
appearance  of  a  religious  character  among  men:  that  on  the 
Sabbah  day  they  may  spend  an  hour  in  that  place  and  society, 
that  will  throw  a  veil  of  sanctity  over  their  persons,  and  give 
their  names,  when  they  stand  candidates  for  the  business  or 
offices  of  mankind,  a  savor  of  sweetness  in  the  christian  com- 
munity. And  there  may  be  some  who  will  desire  these  ordi- 
nances administered  by  a  particular  individual,  from  motives 
which  are  not  more  estimable.  But,  my  brethren,  I  am  per- 
suaded better  things  of  you.  I  will  not  entertain  the  belief  that 
a  part  of  God's  church  would  have  chosen  me  a  minister  of  the 
gospel,  from  such  unworthy  views :  and  I  hope  that  if  any  has 
done  so,  the  necessity  of  enlarging  upon  the  unadvised  proce- 
dure at  present,  will  be  superseded,  by  the  the  divine  blessing 
on  future  administrations,  which  shall  be,  if  Jehovah  assist,  as 


seareH  op  the  gospel.  13 

far  as  possible  from  countenancing  such  mean  views  of  religion 
and  of  the  ordinances  of  the  gospel.  Passing  over  the  consi- 
derations, then,  which,  though  too  prevalent  and  influential  in 
these  hypocritical  and  infidel  times,  we  are  unwilling  even  for 
a  moment  to  believe,  to  form  the  least  part,  or  to  modify  in  the 
smallest  degree,  the  least  feature  of  the  intentions  which  you 
have  had  in  calling  me  to  break  the  bread  of  life  amongst 
you ;  we  shall  specify  a  few  of  the  outlines  of  thought,  which 
some  may  be  apt  to  misunderstand,  but  which,  however,  in  our 
views,  distinguish  and  mark  the  very  intent  of  the  invitation 
which  you  have  sent  me. 

I  remark,  then,  first,  that  I  believe  1  am  sent  for  to  reprove 
and  discountenance  error.  The  preservation  of  truth  in  the 
church  is  a  duty  of  primary  obligation,  whether  we  consider  its 
relation  to  the  present's  welfare,  or  its  inestimable  utility  to  the 
generations  that  are  to  succeed.  Error  springs  from  the  limited 
views  of  mankind,  has  no  foundation  in  the  general  order  of  the 
universe,  and  will  never  in  itself,  by  the  God  of  perfection  and 
truth,  be  made  subservient  to  an  useful  purpose.  Truth  in  the 
moral,  is  correspondent  to  order  in  the  natural  arrangement  of 
things :  and  as  the  perfection,  and  indeed  character  of  the  ma- 
terial universe,  arise  from  the  harmony  of  its  exquisite  relations, 
so  in  the  moral  world,  truth  hath  all  its  foundation  in  the  quali- 
ties and  relations  of  moral  and  intellectual  beings :  and  error 
must,in  the  latter  case, be  analagous  to  it,  and  equally  pernicious 
with  disorder  in  the  former.  As  soon  may  we  think  to  behold 
tlie  darkness  of  night  serve  the  purposes  of  day;  as  soon  may 
we  think  to  behold  our  world  leaving  its  orbit,  and  forgetting 
its  duty  of  summer  and  winter,  of  seed-time  and  harvest,  and 
thus  contributing  more  than  ever  to  the  felicity  and  comfort  of 
the  millions  of  its  inhabitants;  as  soon  may  we  think  to  see  all 
the  stars  of  night  blotted  out  to  give  us,  by  the  void  abyss  of 
ether,  an  amazing  idea  of  the  wisdom  and  glory  of  their  Crea- 
tor, as  we  can  expect,  that  error  will  promote  an  useful  design, 
<»•  fm\  to  mar  the  harmony  and  order  of  truth. 

2* 


14  Dt/TIES  OF  THE  PREACHER  AND 

If  error,  however,  be  of  this  baneful  tendency,  with  what 
exertions  should  it  be  opposed  and  discountenanced,  by  the 
ministers  of  the  gospel,  whose  office  is  appointed  the  shield 
of  immortal  souls,  and  the  watchful  defence  against  every  ar- 
row of  destruction  ?  Even  the  smallest  growth  of  error  should 
be  exposed  and  broken  down,  with  that  zeal,  with  which  the 
careful  householder  would  endeavor  to  extinguish  the  small 
unfavorable  spark  of  fire,  which  threatens  to  break  out  imme- 
diately into  a  devouring  flame.  For,  says  our  Saviour,  speaking 
of  this  subject,  a  little  leaven  leaveneth  the  whole  lump.  Some 
are  of  opinion  that  a  teacher  of  truth  may  permit,  without  injury 
to  the  cause  of  religion,  veniable  mistakes,  as  they  term  them, 
to  be  professed  and  maintained  at  pleasure;  but  our  concep- 
tions are,  that  whilst  the  servant  of  the  Lord,  as  Paul  exhorts 
his  son  Timothy,  is  not  to  strive,  but  to  be  gentle  to  all  men,  in 
meekness  instructing  those  that  oppose  themselves,  he  is  not  to 
fail,  in  this  meek  spirit,  to  expostulate  with  every  one  who,  un- 
der his  care,  has  embraced  and  propagates  the  most  plausible, 
and  apparently  least  hurtful  error.  This  minister  of  the  gospel 
may  be  mistaken  in  many  instances  himself,  and  may  be  hesi- 
tating in  many  more ;  but  whilst  he  attends  to  his  duty  in  seek- 
inff  that  the  Lord  would  make  darkness  light  before  him,  and 
crooked  things  straight,  he  must  not  neglect  to  hold  fast  what 
he  hath  already.  On  the  supposition  that  erroneous  tenets 
were  not,  in  meekness  indeed,  and  in  a  consistency  with  the 
character  of  the  messenger  of  peace,  to  be  opposed  and  sup- 
l^ressed,  what,  considering  the  noxious  tendencies  of  error  and 
its  opposition  to  the  order  of  truth,  would  be  the  consequences 
to  which  it  might  ultimately  lead?  This  destructive  pestilence, 
cipjjearing  in  its  inimical  operations  to  the  majesty  of  truth,like  an 
imperceptible  deadly  seed  of  a  malignant  fever,  might  first  work, 
according  to  that  unhappy  quality  of  it,  which  our  Saviour  hath 
exemplified  by  the  little  leaven  which  leaveneth  the  whole  lump, 
till  it  would  destroy  the  whole  soul  in  which  it  originated ; 
then  spread  in  the  atmosphere  of  conversation  and  discc  irse 


HEARER  OP  THE  GOSPEL.  15 

among  his  associates;  then  widen  with  their  connexions  and 
relations  to  other  men,  till  the  error  darkened  an  extensive 
region,  and  the  following  generation  of  mankind  had  the  poison 
of  death  put  mto  their  cup,  from  their  fathers,  instead  of  the 
waters  of  life.  What  father  would  thus  give  the  stone  that 
hath  no  nourishment  to  his  children,  asking  the  bread  of  life? 
What  guardian  of  the  interests  of  a  people  would  thus  bequeath 
to  them  a  scorpion,  as  tiiey,  in  extensive  nations  and  commu 
nities,  prayed  for  their  rightful  provisions. — On  the  administra- 
tors of  truth  there  are,  from  the  honor  of  the  majesty  of  recti- 
tude itself,  from  the  relation  which  their  office  bears  to  the 
welfare  of  the  souls  of  those  to  whom  their  instructions  are 
tendered,  from  the  necessity  of  transmittmg  to  future  genera- 
tions the  truths  which  Providence  has  entrusted  to  their  pro- 
tection, and  from  the  consideration  of  the  increasiug  contami- 
nations of  error,  obligations  to  watch  against  every  appearance 
of  it,  and  to  endeavor  to  eradicate  every  scion  of  it,  threaten- 
ing to  strike  its  roots  deeper  and  to  gather  strength  in  the  erring 
human  mind.  I  know,  times  are  foretold  to  arrive,  when  men 
will  not  endure  sound  doctrine,  but  after  their  own  lust  shall 
heap  up  to  themselves  teachers  having  itching  ears ;  and  they 
shall  turn  away  their  ears  from  the  truth,  and  shall  be  turned 
unto  fables ;  but  as  the  same  inspired  writer  adds,  we  must 
watch  in  all  things ;  endure  afflictions,  do  the  work  of  an  evan- 
gelist, make  full  proof  of  our  ministry. 

1  observe,  secondly,  That  I  believe  I  am  sent  for  to  declare 
to  you  the  doctrine  of  salvation  with  plainness  and  precision. 
We  find,  in  the  perusal  of  some  authors,  an  indecision  of  opin- 
ion even  on  the  most  momentous  and  prominent  topics  in  the 
system  of  religion.  A  timidity  of  giving  offence  to  particular 
persons,  or  a  carelessness  about  precision  in  the  doctrinal  de- 
partment of  godliness,  has  led  some  men  to  blend  into  one 
promiscuous  confusion  the  most  distinct  Tiews  in  theology. 
That  doctrine  which  appends  eternal  life  to  the  terms  of  our 
faith,  and  the  merits  of  our  sincere  endeavors,  has  been  so  pal- 


16  DUTIES  or  THE  PREACHER  AND 

liated  with  excuses,  and  mended  by  favorable  constructions, 
that,  using  similar  accommodating  explanations  with  the  doc- 
trine of  salvation  by  free  grace,  they  have  concluded,  that  the 
one  is  very  nearly  allied  to  the  other,  and  may,  according  to  the 
choice  of  different  persons,  be  received  for  it.  But  this  is  that 
indistinct  sound  which  the  apostle  supposes  may  be  given,  and 
respecting  which  he  asks.  Who  can  by  it  prepare  himself  for 
the  battle?  And  even  things  without  life,  says  he,  giving 
sound,  whether  pipe,  or  harp,  except  they  give  a  disiinction  in 
the  sound,  how  shall  it  be  known  what  is  piped  or  harped?  for 
if  the  trampet  give  an  uncertain  sound  who  shall  prepare  him- 
self to  the  battle?    1  Cor.  16:7,  8. 

We  have  already  remarked  that  truth  springs  from  the  foun- 
tain of  unalterable  rectitude;  and  it  may  now  be  added,  that 
though  its  light  issues  in  innumerable  rays,  these  are  all  in 
&t.raight  lines,  and  they  will  not,  in  a  single  instance,  form  an 
accommodating  winding  throughout  the  whole  region  which 
they  illuminate.  Sooner  may  we  think  to  see  pure  oil  mix 
^5^ith  water  and  incorporate  with  its  substance,  than  we  can 
expect  to  perceive  truth  descending  to  mix  for  useful  purposes 
with  error.  That  ingenuity  which  shines  so  brilliantly  in  the 
explanatory  and  adjusting  compositions  of  those  refining  geni- 
uses, who  trim  along  between  the  borders  of  evangelical  and 
legal  doctrine,  so  artfully,  and  so  pleasingly  to  many,  may  be 
displayed  a  thousand  times  more  brightly ;  but  still  all  the 
exertions  which  could  be  made,  and  all  the  coloring  whicli 
ambiguous  language  could  impose  to  beguile,  would  not,  in 
the  least,  really  elevate  the  baseness  of  the  one  to  the  first- 
born excellence  of  the  other.  Truth  is  like  ancient  Jerusalem, 
established  on  a  rock;  and  all  those  who  would  worship  ac- 
ceptably under  its  sanctuary,  and  by  its  light,  must,  from  every 
quarter,  go  up  to  the  temple  where  this  shekinah,  this  divine 
brightness  itself  shines.  To  the  law  and  to  the  testimony ;  if 
ye  speak  not  according  to  it,  it  is  because  there  is  no  light 
m  you. 


HEARER  OF  THE  GOSPEL.  H 

If  truth  voluntarily  recognizes  no  accommodating  sympa- 
thies, the  necessity  of  adhering  to  it  without  deviation  is  more, 
apparent  still,  from  the  consideration  that  it  is  often  involunta- 
rily pressed  into  relations  and  services  where  it  loses  its  charac- 
ter and  usefulness.  You  know  two  armies  may  contain  many 
equally  choice  spirits,  dressed  in  the  same  uniform,  and  accou- 
tred with  the  same  weapons;  but  that  one  alone  is  reckoned 
under  complete  array,  that  has  its  banners  displayed,  and  whose 
attitude  looks  to  the  great  object  of  all  their  movements  and 
operations.  In  that  view  of  doctrine,  then,  which  would  make 
two  varying  systems  nearly  meet  and  embrace  one  another, 
there  may  be  a  great  many  important  truths  detailed  by  the 
author  of  such  a  scheme,  and,  independently  of  their  present 
relations,  they  may  be  pearls  of  inestimable  value;  but  as  they 
stand  obedient  and  subservient  ministers  to  his  system  of  dis- 
order and  vanity,  to  which  his  prejudice  or  ignorance  is  bend- 
ing all  the  materials  which  his  power  can  arrange,  these  bright 
and  lively  appearances  lose  their  true  character,  and  receive 
justly  no  other  designation  than  what  his  tyranny  and  control 
over  them  impose. — Yes,  not  only  is  plainness  and  precision 
in  the  preaching  of  the  gospel  indispensable  from  the  inflexi- 
bility of  truth ;  but  this  is  equally  necessary,  because,  where 
many  truths  are  posted,  and  while  they  abstractedly  maintain 
their  true  character,  the  assemblage  and  attitude  of  them  pre- 
sent  them  as  disorder  and  error.  Were,  therefore,  the  practice 
of  the  ministry  of  the  word,  which  is  now  enlisted  into  your 
most  solemn  service  and  sworn  by  the  oath  of  its  ordination  to 
faithfulness  amongst  you,  to  neglect  to  lead  you  to  the  truth 
where  she  stands  and  ought  to  be  viewed  alone  in  her  separate 
existence;  were  I  not  to  tear  from  their  unnatural  stations  the 
truths  that  have  been  artfully  blended  into  systems  of  error, 
and  exposing  their  coverings,  show  you  the  precious  jewels  in 
their  native  worth  and  brightness;  and  moreover  endeavor  to 
arrange  them  according  to  their  respective  places  in  the  great 
casket  of  heavenly  doctrine,  would  not  you  declare  ihdi  1  am 


18  DUTTES  OF  THE  PREACHER  AND 

breaking  engagements  with  you,  and  that  I  could  not  escape 
the  vengeance  of  the  Lord?  You  know  it  is  written,  He  that 
hath  a  dream  let  him  tell  a  dream ;  and  he  that  hath  my  word 
let  him  speak  my  word  faithfrlly :  for  what  is  the  chaff  to  the 
wheat,  saith  the  Lord  ?  It  is  truth,  truth  elevated  above  collu- 
sion; truth  torn  from  the  bosoms  of  artifice  and  false  opinions; 
and  presented,  as  far  as  can  be,  in  all  the  grace  and  majesty  of 
her  various  members,  that  the  minister  of  the  gospel  should 
endeavor  to  preach,  how  disagreeable  soever  some  of  its  parts 
to  prejudiced  and '  misinformed  minds  may  be.  You  justly 
expect,  that  by  patience  and  study,  by  prayer  and  meditation, 
I  am  to  endeavor  to  buy  the  possession  of  the  truth;  and  then 
never  carelessly  to  barter  it  f  jr  falsehood,  or  sell  it  for  the  spe- 
cious appearances  of  error. 

I  observe,  thirdly.  That  1  believe  I  am  sent  for  to  declare 
the  whole  truth  unto  you.  Shun  not,  saith  the  apostle,  to 
declare  the  whole  counsel  of  God.  Some  men  have  hesitated 
about  the  propriety  of  preaching  iijany  truths  that  are  clearly 
revealed,  and  acknowledged  to  b^  expressly  taught  in  the 
volume  of  inspiration.  They  doubt  the  safety  of  declaring  to 
men,  what  God  himself  hath  declared,  and  what  he  hath  made 
it  their  duty  to  know  and  believe. 

Remembering,  however,  that  abstruse  and  mysterious  sub- 
jects must  be  treated  with  caution,  and  mysteries  themselves 
handled  with  that  touch  of  reverence,  which  will  pay  a  respect 
to  the  secrets  which  they  infold,  without  the  impiety  of  daring 
to  disclose  them,  we  hold,  that  it  is  the  duty  of  a  gospel  minis- 
try to  bring  every  subject,  which  is  contained  within  the  com- 
prehension of  revelation,  into  that  series  of  instructions  which 
may  edify  the  church  of  Christ.  Is  there  any  doctrine  taught 
in  inspiration  which  will  not  be  for  the  benefit  of  those  who 
are  acquainted  with  it;  either  in  giving  them  a  knowledge  of 
the  glorious  character  of  Jehovah,  or  in  directing  their  homage, 
or  their  practice  in  the  world,  or  in  enabling  them  to  refute  the 
cavila  and  sophistry  of  those  v/ho  may  attack  the  principles 


HEARER  OF  THE  GOSPEi.  19 

of  their  belief?  A  clear,  candid,  and  scriptural  statement  of 
the  most  abstruse  points  of  religion,  has,  from  the  considera- 
tion that  they  are,  like  the  inexplicable  parts  of  nature,  what 
contain  most  of  the  divinity  within  them,  a  tendency  to  give 
OS  the  most  august  view  of  God's  revealed  character ;  and  if 
they  are  truths,  this  is  the  only  way  by  which  the  minds  of 
those  who  profess  their  belief  of  them,  can,  in  these  instances 
which  will  be  most  readily  attacked,  be  qualified  to  give  a 
reason  of  the  hope  that  is  in  them. 

If,  for  instance,  the  propriety  of  stating  cautiously  the  doc- 
trine of  the  divine  purposes, — particularly  as  they  respect  the 
actions  and  fixed  condition  of  God's  rational  and  dependent 
creatures, — were  bitterly  denied,  what  degradation  to  the  di- 
vine prescience,  which  can  foresee  events  as  absolutely  certain 
only,*v/ould  ensue,  and  what  a  baseless  fabric  is  the  whole 
building  of  evangelical  tmth  thus  left  in  the  mind  of  every 
hearer  of  the  gospel?  The  dcctriiits  of  revelation  are,  indeed, 
in  s^aay  instances,  deep  waters  in  which  the  sacred  student 
will  have  to  wade  Tvith  great  hazard  cf  endangering  the  sta- 
bility and  steadfastness  of  his  step;  yea,  in  many  instances, 
he  must  halt  in  his  preparations,  and  with  a  hand  lifted  up  to 
heaven,  put  forward  his  foot  with  the  deep  caution  of  review 
after  review  amidst  the  sea  of  his  subject,  which  is  like  to 
overwhelm  his  thoughts ;  but  still  he  must  not  cease  to  go 
backward  and  for^vard  to  find  out  the  mind  of  the  Lord,  and 
what  of  divine  knowledge  is  discovered  to  himself,  is  not 
given  unto  him  only,  but  to  them  who  hear  the  word  at  his 
movitb.  The  treasaie  cf  truth,  you  know,  it  is  said,  is  put 
into  un  earthen  vessel,  that  tlie  power  thereof  may  appear  not 
to  be  of  man,  but  cf  God ;  and  its  ministry,  as  Paul  adds,  must 
say,  we  preach  not  ourselves,  but  Christ  Jesus  the  Lord,  and 
ourselves  your  servants  for  Jesus'  sake.  There  may  be  some 
precepts,  the  difficulty  to  show  to  the  satisfaction  of  some 
minds  tlie  reasonableness  of  which,  would  be  no  less  a  dis- 


20  DUTIES  OP  THE  PREACHER  AND 

suasive  from  touching  upon  the  subject,  than  the  groundless 
offence  which,  by  the  thoughtless,  may  be  taken  at  the  attempt 
to  elucidate  the  subject  of  their  dislike ;  there  maybe  some 
threatenings,  the  harshness  of  whose  denunciation  creates  the 
cold  sweat  of  appalement ;  there  may  be  some  truths  of  the 
gospel  at  which  the  impious  will  spurn,  and  to  which  their 
opponents  will  start  a  thousand  plausible  and  puzzling  objec- 
tions ;  there  may  be  some  promises,  which  the  believer  may  be 
anxious  to  hear  presented  in  their  proper  connexions,  and  the 
hand  of  the  speaker  unable  to  present  them,  without  the  utmost 
pains  and  solicitous  preparation,  in  such  relations;  there  may 
be  some  delicate  characters  to  draw,  where  a  blot  even  from 
an  unskilful  pencil,  would  wound  a  saint  of  the  living  God; 
and  there  may  be  some  nice  distinctions  to  form,  where  an 
error  on  the  one  side,  or  the  other,  would  be  either  bartering 
the  precious  truths  of  Jehovah  for  the  errors  and  vices  of  men, 
or  giving  the  latter  a  preference  to  the  former: — But  still,  it 
must  be  remembered,  that  the  law  and  gospel  of  Christ  must 
be  preached ;  that  the  character  of  the  saint,  and  of  the  sinner, 
must  be  drawn,  and  that  not  a  flattering  error,  though  it  should 
adhere  to  it ,  like  alloy  to  the  precious  metals,  but  which  must 
be  separated  from  truth.     For  all  scripture  is  given  by  inspira- 
tion of  God,  and  is  profitable  for  doctrine,  for  reproof,  for  cor- 
rection, for  instruction  in  righteousness,  that  the  man  of  God 
may  be  perfect,  thoroughly  furnished  to  all  good  works.     1 
Tim.  3:16,17. 

Behold,  my  brethren,  from  the  observations  already  made, 
what  important  duties  draw  daily  upon  the  stock  of  time,  in- 
dustry, and  faithfulness  of  him,  whom  you  have  called  to  the 
inspection  over  you : — and  permit  it  now  to  be  added,  as 
tt  consideration  enhancing  the  duties  of  his  station,  that 
the  suppression  of  error,  the  definite  deckration  of  the 
truth,  and  the  entire  presentment  of  it,  must  always  be  gone 
through,  with  that  genius  and  spirit,  which,  whilst  it  ia 


HEARER  OF  THE  GOSPEL.  21 

hoped  that  your  minds  will  be  daily  advancing  in  the  know- 
led  f^e  of  the  truth  as.  it  is  in  Jesus,  will  yet  create  nothing  of 
that  uncharitable  bigotry  and  aptitude  to  separation  and 
schism,  which  operate  so  prevalently  in  our  day,  and  into  an 
excuse  for  which  an  unguarded  practice  on  the  foregoing 
principles  might  be  so  apt  to  inflame  the  unwary.  I  have 
enumerated  and  endeavored  to  illustrate  the  upright  mles 
which  ought  to  guide  a  teacher  of  immortal  souls,  and  a  stew- 
ard of  the  mysteries  of  God ;  but  this  has  been  done  as  I  view- 
ed myself  merely  as  an  ambassador,  with  the  messages  of 
Jesus  in  my  ministrations  as  the  blessings  of  the  gospel  to  be 
bestowed  upon  your  immortal  spirits.  And  the  law  of  that 
charity  which,  in  this  militant  and  imperfect  state  of  Zion,  must 
move  under  some  degree  of  both  "  mixture  and  error,"  with 
respect  to  christian  fellowship,  "  even  in  the  purest  churches," 
founds  a  distinct  and  arduous  branch  of  duty,  which,  I  own, 
it  will  be  indispensable  in  me  always  to  maintain.  Though  I 
speak  with  the  tongues  of  men  and  of  angels  and  have  not 
charity,  I  am  become  as  sounding  brass,  or  a  tinkling  symbal. 

But  1  observe,  fourthly.  That  I  believe  I  am  sent  for  to  dis- 
courage and  reprove  sin.  The  dispensation  of  the  gospel  ad- 
dresses men  on  the  supposition  that  they  are  sinners ;  and  the 
manifestation  of  the  whole  mercy  of  God,  in  the  appointment 
of  his  eternal  and  only  begotten  Son  to  be  our  mediator,  and 
in  the  erection  of  a  church  upon  earth,  is,  that  sin  might  be 
effectually  reproved  and  destroyed,  and  the  sinner,  stripped  of 
his  character,  eternally  saved.  "  For  this  purpose,"  says  the 
apostle  John,  "  was  the  Son  of  God  manifested,  that  he  might 
destroy  the  works  of  the  devil."  Gladly  will  a  great  many 
hear  the  sweet  sound  of  the  gospel,  which  promises  to  them 
life,  and  the  forgiveness  of  all  their  trespasses,  and  will  hear, 
too,  with  admiration  and  delight  its  doctrines  explained  to 
thera,  who,  however,  feel  deeply  offended  when  their  sins  arc 
smartly  reproved,  and  when  it  is  threatened  tliat,  unless  tl>ey 
make  a  sacrifice  of  their  unworihy  attachment  to  this  or  th« 


22  DUTIES  OF  THE  PREACHES  AND 

other  prevalent  lust  or  passion,  they  never  shall  experience  the 
blessings  which  the  gospel  bestows.  There  are,  says  our  Sa- 
viour, in  the  parable  of  the  sower,  some  who  receive  the  word 
with  joy;  but  by  and  by  when  persecution  or  tribulation  be- 
cause of  the  word  ariseth,  they  are  offended.  But  the  station, 
you  see,  of  the  gospel  minister,  is  not  occupied  correspon- 
dently  to  the  original  design  itself  of  the  gospel,  nor,  let  me  add, 
to  the  example  of  all  the  sacred  penmen ;  nor  to  the  very  lan- 
guage which  defines  and  points  to  the  end  of  his  office,  unless 
he  expose  and  reprove  sin  in  every  distinction  of  character,  and 
under  all  the  unamiable  aspects  it  may  assume.  Already 
having  pointed  out  the  primary  intention  of  that  dispensation 
of  grace  under  which  we  happily  live,  I  direct  your  attention 
to  the  voice  of  the  prophets.  They  proclaim  the  sins  of  the 
children  of  Israel  under  every  variety  of  language,  and  by  every 
similitude  whose  pointed  reproof  may  expose  the  guilty.  The 
iniquity  of  the  heart,  the  transgression  of  the  thoughts,  and 
the  sins  of  the  practice,  are  all  laid  open,  by  the  expressive 
language  of  prophets  crying  aloud  and  sparing  not;  showing 
the  Lord's  people  their  transgressions,  and  the  house  of  Jacob 
their  sin.  This  people's  heart,  exclaims  Isaiah,  is  waxed  gross, 
and  their  ears  are  dull  of  hearing,  and  their  eyes  they  have 
closed:  and  putting  his  finger  to  each  of  the  gray  hairs  of  his 
reprobation,  Hosea  thus  awakens  us:  The  Lord  hath  a  contro- 
versy with  the  inhabitants  of  the  land,  because  there  is  no 
truth,  nor  mercy,  nor  knowledge  of  God  in  the  land;  by  swear- 
ing, and  lying,  and  killing,  and  stealing,  and  committing  adul- 
tery, they  brealv  out,  and  blood  toucheth  blood.  Indeed  the 
whole  penmen  of  revelation  exemplify  in  themselves  and  enjoin 
upon  others,  the  tone  and  attitude  of  that  exhortation  which 
we  liavc  from  the  apostle  of  the  Gentiles  expressly  on  the  sub- 
ject :  I  charge  you,  therefore,  says  Paul  to  his  beloved  son 
Timothy,  before  God  and  tlie  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  who  shall 
judge  the  quick,  and  tl-o  dead,  at  his  appearing  and  kingdom, 
preacii  the  word,  be  instant  in  season  and  out  of  season,  re- 


HEARER  OP  THE  GOSPEL,  23 

prove,  rebuke,  exhort,  with  all  long  suffering  and  doctrine. 
What  advantage  could  the  proclaiming  of  the  good  news  of  the 
gospel,  which  will  instil  their  blessings  into  the  heart  of  the 
penitent  only,  serve,  if  we  do  not  prepare  the  way,  by  striking 
conviction  into  the  conscience,  and  by  opening  a  door  of  ad- 
mission into  the  shut  heart,  for  these  momentous  concerns? 
That  minister  who  will  permit  a  single  violation  of  the  divine 
law  to  entwine  itself  around  the  heart  of  a  single  member  of 
the  church  under  his  care,  without  reproving  it,  and  stretching 
forth  his  hand  to  tear  it  off,  whether  the  person  be  high  or  low, 
rich  or  poor,  friend  or  foe,  is  not  consulting  this  man's  true 
interest — is  not  offering  him  the  great  blessing  of  salvation, 
along  with  the  inculcation  of  that  holiness,  without  which  no 
man  can  see  the  Lord.  As  soon  may  we  think  to  see  a  beau- 
tiful and  stable  building  erected  on  the  tottering  and  rcgged 
ruins  of  an  ancient  foundation,  as  we  can  reasonably  hope,  that 
the  most  emphatical  display  of  the  doctrines  of  the  gospel, 
will  be  of  avail  to  the  person  whose  sins  call  for  reproof  and 
chastisement,  but  which  do  not  receive  them. 

Brethien,  you  have  chosen  the  ministry  of  holiness,  that 
through  its  instrumentality,  you  may,  at  last,  be  presented 
without  spot,  or  blemish,  or  any  such  thing,  before  God.  It 
must  not,  therefore,  be  taken  amiss,  when  I  state,  that  this  min- 
ister of  Jesus,  if  he  wishes  to  discharge  his  duty,  and  to  escape 
the  divine  vengeance,  requiring,  in  awful  punishment,  the  blood 
of  the  lost  members  of  his  congregation  at  his  hand,  musi, 
without  respect  pf  pereons,  or  without  a  more  tender  regard  to 
feeling  than  an  adherence  to  truth,  reprove,  with  the  meekness, 
steadfastness,  and  edge  of  scripture  example,  the  impiety  of 
the  ungodly,  the  crimes  of  the  vicious,  the  delinquencies  of 
the  backsliding,  the  rash  steps  of  the  unwary, — the  follies  of 
the  young,  yea,  even  the  failures  of  old  age.  Oh  thou  son  of 
man,  I  have  set  thee  a  watchman  unto  the  house  of  Israel: 
therefore,  thou  shalt  hear  the  word  at  my  mouth  and  warn  them 
from  me.     When  1  saj  ui>to  tjie  wicked^  O  wickefl  man,  thoji 


24  DUTIES  OF  THE  PKEACHER  AND 

shalt  surely  die:  if  thou  dost  not  speak  to  warn  the  wicked 
from  his  way,  that  wicked  man  shall  die  in  his  iniquity,  but 
his  blood  will  1  require  at  thine  hand :  Nevertheless  if  thou 
warn  the  wicked  of  his  way  to  turn  from  it,  if  he  do  not  turn 
from  his  way,  he  shall  die  in  his  iniquity,  but  thou  hast  deli- 
vered thy  soul. 

I  observe,  fifthly,  That  I  believe  I  am  sent  for  to  encourage 
and  promote  holiness  amongst  you.  Subserviently  to  this  all 
the  preceding  observations  have  been  made.  The  refutation 
(terror  clears  the  foundation  on  which  the  building  of  holiness 
may  be  erected ;  the  precise  and  definite  view  of  the  truth  se- 
lects the  proper  materials;  the  full  exhibition  of  it  collects 
them  all  together;  and  the  suppression  of  iniquity  corrects 
every  negligent  and  irregular  hand  that  is  engaged  in  laying 
them. 

This  duty  of  rearing  you  a  holy  nation,  a  peculiar  people, 
requires  a  review  of  the  truth  which  has  been  doctrinally  pre- 
sented, and  a  gathering  of  the  lines  of  it  into  a  focus  that 
will  form  a  vivid  and  living  image  of  him  from  whom  they 
originally  shine.  We  will  not  disguise  the  duty,  because 
of  the  difficulty  which  may  be  experienced  in  its  accomplish- 
ment, of  arranging  revelation  into  the  precepts  of  its  law,  the 
light  of  its  doctrines,  the  grace  of  its  promises,  and  the  exem- 
plars of  its  characters,  so  as  to  bring  it  on  to  your  awakened 
attention  a  great  practical  system,  which  you  are  to  put  on  as 
the  garment  of  your  salvation.  I  believe  it  my  duty  to  announce 
the  law  in  all  its  direction,  its  rewards,  and  its  terrors,  that  it 
may  erect  its  throne  in  the  judgment,  and  sway  its  sceptre 
over  the  conscience; — I  believe  it  my  duty  to  arrange  the  doc- 
trines of  scripture  and  present  them  in  all  their  excellence,  that 
your  faith  may  feel  its  foundation,  and  your  love  may  be  kin- 
dled at  the  torch  of  divine  mercy; — I  believe  it  my  duty  to  pro- 
claim the  promises  in  all  their  freedom  and  suitableness,  that 
whilst  you  live  in  faith  and  love,  it  may  not  be  to  yourselves, 
but  to  him  who  loved  you  and  gave  himself  for  you ; — and  I 


HEATiER  OP  THE  GOSPEI,  2S 

believe  it  ray  duty  to  place  you  along  side  of  the  saints  of  reve- 
lation, that  you  may  be  excited  to  perseverence  and  com- 
forted by  their  example.  Oh!  that  I  could  collect  these  rays 
of  divine  truth;  and  that  then  the  spirit  of  God,  bearing  them 
from  the  forms  of  ministration,  would  pencil  them  on  your 
understanding,  till  you  be  transformed  in  the  renewing  of  your 
minds ;  that  he  would  direct  this  image  of  the  eternal  to  look 
in  faith,  like  the  form  of  the  sun  from  the  placid  stream,  al- 
ways to  himself  the  primary  source;  that  he  would  enliven 
them  into  that  flame  of  love  that  might  resemble  that  operating 
though  imperceptible  transcript  throughout  our  globe,  of  the 
fountain  of  heat  as  well  as  of  light;  and  that  he  would  reflect 
and  diffuse  this  illuminating  and  warming  principle  through 
all  the  fields  of  obedience,  that  being  thus  oTthe  new  creation 
of  God,  you  may  shine,  when  they  themselves  are  blotted  out, 
like  the  stars  in  the  firmament,  for  ever  and  ever. 

Leading  him  to  bend  all  his  exertions  to  this  great  and  dif- 
ficult object  of  his  office,  the  minister  of  the  gospel  has,  indeed, 
many  powerful  inducements.  The  momentous  concenis  which 
the  office  itself  displays;  the  everlasting  love  of  God,  the  atone- 
ment of  his  only  begotten  Son,  the  operations  of  the  Holy 
Spirit,  and  God's  authority  binding  all  these  to  the  duty  of 
our  ministry,  are  instigations  which  must  be  felt.  The  worth, 
too,  of  those  immortal  souls  to  which  our  ministrations  are 
directed;  their  character  as  the  noblest  piece  of  divine  forma- 
tion on  earth;  the  truth  that  as  rational  and  reflecting  agents 
they  are  capable  of  enduring  pain  or  of  enjoying  happiness, 
throughout  all  eternity ;  the  fact  that  all  the  dispensations  of 
God's  providence  take  place  that  circumstances  may  be  ar- 
ranged that  these  immortal  spirits  might  be  purified  and  sn  ved ; 
the  erection  of  the  grand  fabric  of  the  church,  purely  that  they 
might  be  accommodated,  as  spiritiial  heirs  of  heaven ;  and  the 
institution  of  a  gospel  ministry  in  this  great  house,  merely 
that  all  the  prophets  and  apostles,  and  pastors  of  everv  rge. 
might   own  themselves  their  servants  for  Jesus'  sake — tliese 

3* 


26  DUTIES  OF  THB  PREACHEH  AXD 

all  preach  the  necessity  of  encouraging  and  promoting  holiness 
amongst  you.  And  the  reward  which,  whilst  we  look  not  at 
the  things  which  are  seen,  but  at  the  things  which  are  not  seen, 
is  set  before  us — the  declarations  of  our  Saviour  whilst  not 
exclusively,  yet  prominently  addressed  to  the  ministers  of  the 
word:  Blessed  are  ye  when  men  revile  you,  and  perse- 
cute you,  and  speak  all  manner  of  evil  against  you  falsely  for 
my  sake;  rejoice  and  be  exceeding  glad,  for  great  is  your 
reward  in  heaven; — they  shall  shine  as  the  stars  in  the  firma- 
ment for  ever  and  ever; — -these  also  clap  their  hands  before  us, 
and  cry,  go  on  and  prosper. 

But  whilst  all  these  things  are  felt,  esteemed,  and  surveyed, 
yet,  as  I  view  my  station,  and  again  further  view  it,  I  acknow- 
ledge my  fears  increase  in  relation  to  the  great  end  of  it  that 
is  now  under  consideration.  My  brethren,  must  there  be  any 
thino-  more  done  by  the  minister  of  Christ  to  promote  and  en- 
courage holiness  than  a  suppression  of  error,  a  candid  and  full 
statement  of  truth, — a  reproof  of  transgression,  and  a  concen- 
tration of  all  these  principles  into  a  line  of  promising  operation 
towards  holiness?  We  own  that  the  difficult  task  of  a  fair, 
clear,  and  full  statement  of  all  instructing  and  improving  know- 
ledge might  be  performed;  and  yet  were  the  speaker  to  forget 
to  set  the  first  example  of  holiness  enjoined  by  his  instructions, 
far,  far  would  this  man  be  from  promoting  the  hallowed  end 
of  his  office.  Do  men  gather  grapes  of  thorns,  or  figs  of  this- 
tles? To  purity  of  doctrine,  and  the  edging  of  it  to  discern 
the  thoughts  and  the  intents  of  your  hearts,  I  must  afford  that 
{^ttern  which  is  enjoined  in  that  peculiar  precept,  not  to  walk 
disorderly,  but  for  an  example  to  the  flock. — And  whilst  I 
rejoice  to  own  that  I  am  called  to  this  honorable  and  highly 
accountable  station,  and  hope  through  that  grace  which  is 
sufficient  for  me,  to  be  enabled  in  some  becoming  measure, 
not  to  disappoint  the  invitation  which  this  part  of  God's  flock 
has  sent  me,  I  must  intimate  that  you  must  not  be  discouraged 
from  pressing  forward  to  perfection,  though  you  may  not  per- 


hA-RER  of  the  GOSPEl,  27 

ceive,  in  this  militant  state,  in  him  who  should  always  lead 
you,  that  spotless  perfection  which  will  be  bestowed  upon 
none  of  us,  till  a  higher  state  of  existence  bestow  it.  Far  be 
it  from  a  minister  of  holiness  to  seek  to  palliate  his  faults 
which  are  so  influential,  before  they  take  place;  but  the  inti- 
mation may  be  of  importance,  when  I  reflect  on  the  mournful 
fall  of  a  David,  of  a  Noah  a  preacher  of  righteousness,  of  a  Job 
a  perfect  and  an  upright  man,  and  of  a  Peter  the  most  zealous 
apostle  of  our  Lord,  and  consider  mine  own  weakness  for  the 
singular  and  distinguished  station  to  which  I  am  now  appoint- 
ed. Oh!  that  these  promises  were  fulfilled  in  the  experience 
of  him  who  is  to  direct  you,  "  I  will  make  darkness  light  before 
thee,  and  crooked  things  straight;  these  things  will  1  do  unto 
thee,  and  not  forsake  thee.  Fear  not,  for  I  have  called  thee  by 
my  name,  thou  art  mine;  when  thou  passest  through  the  waters 
I  will  be  with  thee;  when  thou  walkest  through  the  fire  thou 
shall  not  be  burned ;  neither  shall  the  flame  kindle  upon  thee." 
— I  hope  that  I  will  be  enabled,  by  an  exhibition  of  the  true 
rules  and  motives  of  it,  and  discrimination  from  every  counter- 
feit that  would  imitate  it,  to  present  holiness,  in  its  laws  and 
principles,  before  you,  both  by  an  attention  to  them  in  the 
exercises  of  the  pulpit,  and  in  the  offices  of  ecclesiastical  juris-, 
diction : — and  my  warmest  prayer  is,  that,  the  seed  which  is 
sown  may  take  deep  root,  both  in  your  hearts  and  in  mine 
own,  that  the  connexion  which  is  now  formed  in  the  Lord, 
may  not  be  in  vain,  but  that  we  may  grow  up  as  trees  of  righ- 
teousness, the  planting  of  the  Lord,  that  he  may  be  glorified. 

The  Becond  head  of  our  method  was,  To  give  you  some  di- 
rections upon  the  view  which  I  have  of  your  invitation,  in 
regard  to  the  exercises,  which,  on  your  part,  originate  from  the 
connexion  which  is  now  formed.  When  Cornelius  had  heard 
Peter's  question,  arid  told  him  the  reason  why  he  had  sent  for 
him,  he  adds,  verse  thirty-third,  "  Now,  therefore,  we  are  all 
here  present  before  God,  to  hear  all  things  that  are  command- 


28  DUTIES  OP  THE  PREACHER  AND 

ed  thee  of  God."  There  are  no  duties  to  be  performed,  nor 
privileges  to  be  enjoyed,  on  the  one  hand,  but  which  occasion 
obligations  and  correspondent  exercises  on  the  other. 

On  this  part  of  our  subject,  I  observe,  first.  That  you  are  to 
be  careful  to  put  a  proper  estimate  upon  a  gospel  ministry. 
Let  a  man,  says  the  apostle  Paul,  so  account  of  us,  as  of  the 
ministers  of  Christ,  and  stewards  of  the  mysteries  of  God. 
Not  a  few  have  formed  very  degrading  notions  of  the  office 
which  clothes  the  minister  of  the  gospel,  and  which  leads  him, 
correspond  en  tly  to  the  expectations  of  the  more  reflecting 
and  serious,  through  a  variety  of  duties,  and  to  a  station  the 
most  important.  He  is  frequently  viewed,  even  in  the  most 
solemn  exercises  of  his  office,  reduced  to  the  low  rank  of  those 
that  relate  their  own  opinion  only,  and  tell  the  truths  which 
they  utter  without  the  investiture  of  an  authority  that  may 
enforce  the  belief  and  practice  of  them.  The  men  who  wear 
this  character,  may,  in  many  instances,  be  little  deserving  in- 
deed either  of  respect  or  obedience  from  others ;  yea,  they  may 
"be  really  the  gilded  offscourings  of  all  things,  daily  assuming 
-more  of  their  detested  hue,  reprobate  silver,  which ,  in  passing 
through  the  furnace  of  public  experience,  is  to  be  rejected  and 
forever  cast  away;  but  the  office  itself,  and  as  becomingly 
BWpported,  is  what  presents  him  who  bears  it  in  the  room  of 
•Christ  before  you,  and  brings  in  his  own  person  the  Saviour 
'<!)f  the  world,  and  administrator  of  life  and  death,  to  teach  and 
instruct  you.  "Now,  then,  we  are  ambassadors  for  Christ," 
gays  Paul,  "as  though  Christ  did  beseech  you  by  us;  we  pray 
you,  in  Christ's  stead,  be  ye  reconciled  to  God."  A  minister 
at  a  foreign  court  presents  in  representation,  the  majesty  of  the 
s&vereign  who  has  deputed  him ;  and  acts  as  if  the  whole 
sovereignty  of  that  country  from  which  he  came  were  present, 
pleading  and  adjusting  its  own  concerns;  and  the  ambassadors 
of  Christ,  the  great  king  and  head  of  his  church,  walk,  in  all 
the  duties  of  their  office,  an  example  of  an  equally  strict  and 
aacred  representation.     As  an  official  messenger  cannot  be 


HEARER  OP  THE  GOSPEt.  '29 

despised  without  contemning  the  sovereignty  of  that  power 
which  delegated  him,  nor  can  Iiave  his  claims  acknowledged, 
without  doing  justice  to  the  desires  and  wishes  of  the  country 
which  all  speak  in  him ;  so  the  messenger  of  Jesus,  while  he 
presents  in  due  form,  and  with  suitable  views  of  his  station, 
the  intentions  and  will  of  his  great  sovereign,  cannot  be  eitlier 
rejected  or  accepted  without  in  reference  to  him  a  choice  of 
this  alternative.  He,  saith  our  Saviour,  that  heareth  you  hear- 
eth  me,  and  he  that  despiseth  you  despiseth  me,  and  he  that 
despiseth  me,  despiseth  him  that  sent  me. 

I  make  these  observations  with  the  intention  of  preparing 
you  by  the  duty  of  just  esteem,  for  the  execution  of  those 
other  duties  which,  on  your  part,  could  not,  in  relation  unto 
the  new  connexion  in  which  this  day  finds  us,  be  performed, 
without  such  a  view  of  the  character  of  the  ministers  of  the 
sanctuary  as  I  have  presently  set  before  you.  Destitute  of  this 
correct  conception  of  the  ministerial  office,  you  might  always 
advance  to  the  ordinances  of  grace  and  withdraw  from  them, 
without  ever  perceiving  that  point  of  authority  that  sanctifies 
and  solemnizes  them;  and  so  might  treat  the  whole  ritual  of 
the  temple  of  the  most  High,  with  that  indifference  of  m.ind 
and  ease  of  conscience,  with  which  you  hear  and  dismiss  the 
opinions  of  men,  whom  accident  may  make  your  companions, 
and  who  in  no  sense  have  ties  of  authority  over  you.  But  were 
the  Saviour  of  mankind,  the  administrator  of  all  things,  and 
the  jud^e  of  the  world,  to  descend  from  his  glorious  throne  in 
heaven,  to  command  your  obedience  to  that  gospel  which  you 
have  received  for  his,  to  lay  down  your  duty  before  you,  to^ 
press  you  forward  through  its  various  departments,  would  not 
you  believe  that  in  his  commands  and  threatenings,  his  pro- 
mises and  exhortations,  it  behooved  you  to  hear  his  voice,  and 
to  remember  the  divine  instructions  which  it  distils  into  yoiir 
ears?  It  is  not  the  arrogance  of  the  preacher,  it  is  not  igno- 
rance of  the  charter  by  which  he  holds  his  commission,  that 
makes  him  assert,  that  Jesus  has  devolved  this  authority,  as 


so  DUTIES  OP  THE  PREACHER  AND 

his  will  is  exhibited  in  a  ministry  of  reconciliation,  upon  the 
office  which  this  preacher  supports.  And  I  will  give  unto 
thee,  saith  Jesus  himself,  the  keys  of  the  kingdom  of  heaven; 
and  whatsoever  thou  shalt  bind  on  earth  shall  be  bound  in 
heaven,  and  whatsoever  thou  shalt  loose  on  earth  shall  be 
loosed  in  heaven. — Not  that  the  ministers  of  truth  have  a 
discretionary  power  to  decide  thus  upon  the  states  of  men; 
or  that  they  can  absolutely  make  the  application  of  their 
sentence  to  distinguish  eternally  the  conditions  of  immortal 
souls;  for  in  this  sense,  none  can  forgive  sins  but  he  who 
can  try  the  heart  and  reins.  But  in  their  administrations  of 
the  law  and  doctrines  of  the  unerring  word  of  revelation, 
they  can  pronounce  that  sentence  on  the  sinner,  whose  crimes 
clearly  manifest  his  impenitence,  which,  if  the  grace  of  God 
alter  not  his  state,  will  be  an  echo  to  his  tremendous  award 
at  last,  and  a  formal  presage  of  it — and  they  can  bestow  that 
titled  encouragement  upon  the  saint,  whose  light  shines  before 
his  conscience  and  before  men,  that,  on  their  ministerial  right 
to  do  so,  will  be  an  earnest  of  his  blessed  sentence  hereafter. 

We  know  that  these  words  of  our  Saviour,  "  1  will  give  un- 
to thee  the  keys  of  the  kingdom  of  heaven,  and  whatsoever 
thou  shalt  bind  on  earth  shall  be  bound  in  heaven,  and  whatso- 
ever thou  shalt  loose  on  earth  shall  be  loosed  in  heaven,"  have 
prominently  a  respect  unto  the  ambassadors  of  Christ,  as  they 
are  a  divinely  selected  and  qualified  jury  to  sit  in  courts  of 
ecclesiastical  order.  Sanctified  by  the  spirit  of  judgment,  and 
crowned  with  the  authority  of  the  majesty  of  their  great  head, 
the  ministers  of  the  gospel  do  afford  us  here  a  most  striking 
view  of  their  own  highly  responsible,  and  yet  authoritative 
representation;  and  show  us  that  along  the  lines  of  their  rela- 
tions their  upright  deeds  ascend  to  heaven  and  are  there  rati- 
fied and  recorded.  But  these  ministers  of  Christ,  separated  in 
their  individual  capacity  among  the  societies  of  the  faithful, 
also  proceed  in  the  robes  of  their  office  proclaiming  the  mes- 
sage of  their  great  King, — he  that  believeth  shall  be  saved,  and 


HEARER  OF  THE  GOSPEL.  31 

he  that  believeth  not  shall  be  damned.  Were  a  blasphemer, 
long  noted  for  his  impiety,-  blackening,  too,  daily,  in  all  the 
foul  offspring  of  such  a  parent,  to  enter  into  one  of  these  as- 
semblies; were  he  to  court  attention  by  the  smile  of  contempt, 
the  grin  of  ridicule,  the  attitudes  of  mockery,  and  all  the  name- 
less movements  that  are  most  congenial  to  his  heart ;— were  this 
unhappy  creature  ever  to  appear  in  our  assembly,  is  there  not 
a  power  to  single  him  out,  to  carry  to  him  the  messages  of  heav- 
en,  and  on  the  last  demonstrations  of  his  obviously  hardened 
impenitence  to  pronounce  "  When  we  are  gathered  together,'' 
anathema  maranatha? 

But  I  observe,  secondly,  That  you  are  to  be  careful  to  meet 
the  minister  of  the  gospel  with  such  suitable  preparation  as  you 
may  have  ground  to  expect  that  his  labors  shall  be  profitable 
to  you .  It  is  an  incorrect  view  of  the  means  by  which  the 
spiritual  interests  of  his  flock  are  to  be  promoted,  to  hold  that 
all  the  administrations  of  the  regularly  called  and  qualified 
servant  of  Ihe  Lord,  will  be  successful,  or  even  of  promising 
influence,  without  an  attention  on  your  part  to  personal  reli- 
gion. The  ministry  of  the  word  does  not  work  like  the  chisel 
upon  the  stone,  or  like  the  hammer  upon  the  anvil,  where  ex- 
ternal operations  only,  produce  all  the  desired  effects ;  but  it 
resembles  more  the  labors  of  the  husbandman  who  commits 
the  seed  to  the  earth  which  has  many  co-  operating  and  active 
principles,  that  benignly  receive  and  nourish,  night  and  day, 
what  has  been  entrusted  to  its  improvement.  Go  view  the 
seed  which  has  wandered  from  the  hand  of  the  sower,  upon 
stony  places  or  the  surface  of  the  naked  rock,  where  the  pow- 
ers of  vegetation  do  not  operate ;  and  beholding  how  soon  it 
withers  and  dies,  learn  hence  the  inefficacy  of  the  ministry 
of  tlie  word  without  principles  of  operation  in  )'our  minds  in- 
viting to  a  hopeful  reception  of  it.  There  may  be  cast  to  the 
station  of  the  ambassador  of  Jesus,  an  eye  that  at  once  recog" 
nizes  all  the  marks  of  its  spiritual  authority ;  and  there  may 


32  DTJT1E3  or  THE  PREACHER  AND 

be  lent  an  ear  which  equally  readily  attends  to  the  truths 
which  it  proclaims;  but  unless  there  are  the  effects  of  a  frame 
warmed  and  enlivened  by  the  exercises  of  private  preparation, 
It  is  not  to  be  expected  that  these  views  and  perceptions  will 
identify  themselves  with  our  nature,  and  swell  the  dimensions 
of  our  spiritual  stature.  On  the  other  hand,  that  ultimate  pow- 
er and  supreme  authority,  which  hath  suited  the  means  to  the 
end,  demolishes  these  perceptions,  and  lets  them  break  away, 
baseless  visions,  without  a  wreck  behind,— That  seeing  they 
may  see,  says  God,  and  not  perceive,  and  hearing  they  may 
hear  and  not  understand.  Mark  4: 12.  It  is  highly  consis- 
tent with  the  free  offer  of  the  gospel,  and  its  invitations  to 
.x>me  and  buy  the  wine  and  milk  of  salvation  without  money 
and  without  price,  thus  to  describe  the  christian's  path 
<^  duty  to  you:  for  I  am  not  speaking  of  the  merciful 
oHer  of  the  gospel  to  sinners;  but  of  the  prayers  and 
alms  of  them  whose  devotion  and  charity  come. up  for  a  me- 
jiional  before  God.  My  object  is  to  direct  you  through  the 
secret  chambers  of  preparation,  where  the  christian  ought  to 
dress  himself  every  day  before  he  appear  in  the  temple  of  the 
great  God. 

It  is  suspected  that  the  momentous  duties  on  which  we  have 
our  eye,  are,  in  general,  by  far  too  little  thought  of  by  many, 
when  desiring  that  one  may  be  appointed  to  break  the  bread 
of  life  amongst  them.  On  you  of  this  congregation  is  now 
particularly  binding  that  exercise  which,  we  are  permitted  to 
flatter  ourselves,  has  been  no  less  salutary  in  its  performance 
in  time  past,  than  the  prospect  of  it  is,  we  hope,  pleasing  to 
you  now — of  enriching  your  understandings  with  a  know- 
ledge from  themselves  of  the  scriptures.  Of  the  duties  in 
which  you  will  be  conjointly  engaged  with  your  pastor,  nono 
is  of  simpler  complexion,  than  what  partakes  of  the  solemn 
nature  and  relations  of  divine  worship.  In  our  supplications 
and  praise,  your  wishes  and  desires,  your  extacies  and  adora- 


HEARER  OP  THE  GOSPEL.  33 

rations,  are  mine,  and  mine  yours ;  and  our  prayer  and  anthem 
ascend  to  the  throne  of  him  who  commands  us  to  ask  for  things 
agreeable  to  his  will,  and  to  sing  with  grace  and  melody  in  the 
heart.  And  in  the  preaching  of  the  gospel,  whilst  1,  as  the 
ambassador  of  Christ,  enforce  and  carry  home  to  your  con- 
sciences the  law,  spread  out  and  place  before  your  eye  the 
truths  of  the  gospel  itself,  and  cluster  them  and  pour  on 
your  heads  the  anointing  of  the  promises;  you  attend  to 
these  as  the  law,  and  gospel,  and  promises  of  Christ;  and  this 
not  so  much  with  the  design  of  receiving  instruction,  as  of  re- 
viewing what  truths  are  already  known,  of  surveying  their 
mighty  importance,  and  of  being  thus  warmed  and  enlivened 
by  the  spirit  of  truth.  Preaching  is  chiefly  a  watering  of  God's 
vineyard,  where  the  plants  are  already  rooted  and  need  only 
the  influences  of  heaven,  the  dtws  and  rain,  to  nourish  and 
bring  them  forward,  to  perfection.  Behold,  then,  the  God  of 
perfection  accepting  of  our  prayers  and  praises  only  when 
they  are  directed  by  the  light  of  his  word,  and  remember  that, 
the  instructive  part  of  our  exercises,  the  preaching  of  the  gos- 
pel, has  more  of  the  intention  of  cultivating  holy  dispositions 
and  of  solemnizing  our  minds  as  worshippers  in  the  temple  of 
-God,  than  of  the  communication  of  instruction  to  the  under- 
standing, and  the  duty  of  private  preparation  by  deep  research- 
es into  the  word  of  revelation,  must  be  acknowledged.  Search 
the  scriptures,  for  in  them  ye  think  ye  have  etenial  life,  and 
they  are  they,  says  Christ,  that  testify  of  me.  This  habit  ad- 
vantageously cultivated  will  enable  you  to  correct  in  your  wor- 
ship an  incorrect  sentence  which  at  times  may  drop  unwarily 
from  the  mouth  of  him  who  leads  your  devotions ;  for  none  of 
US  are  elev2.ted  above  imperfections :  or  it  may  enable  you  to 
perceive  what  is  the  scriptural  idea  which  his  words  would  con- 
vey, were  they  arranged  precisely  in  that  construction,  which, 
in  some  instances,  he  may  rather  aim  at,  than  accurately  form. 
The  Bereans  are  placed  on  a  high  eminence  in  re?elatio», 
because,  though  immediately  instructed  by  an  inspired 
4 


34  DUTIES  OF  THE  PREACHER  AND 

apostle,  they  yet  searched  the  scriptures  whether  these  things 
were  so. 

But,  my  brethren,  that  the  ordinance  of  a  gospel  ministry 
now  enjoyed  by  you  may  have  its  full  effect,  I  must  direct  you 
to  an  improvement  of  your  knowledge  by  bowing  the  knee  in 
prayer,  both  for  yourselves  and  your  minister,  when  engaged 
in  the  public  ordinances  of  the  gospel,  God  alone  can  rear 
the  building  of  Zion  either  in  the  church  at  large,  or  in  the 
hearts  of  her  members;  and  our  entreaties  at  the  throne  of 
his  grace  should  be,  "  where  two  or  three  are  met  together  in 
thy  name,  be  thou  in  the  midst  of  them  to  do  them  good."  Is 
there  not  a  great  obligation  springing  from  their  authority,  and 
a  great  encouragement  arising  from  the  vast  condescension 
which  they  display,  as,  adverting  to  the  comiexion  instituted 
by  God  between  means  and  ends,  we  read  these  commanding 
and  authoritative  words  of  his  own — "  put  me  in  remembrance  ?" 
Were  the  minister  of  the  gospel  on  the  one  hand  to  be  left  by 
God  shorn  of  the  blessings  and  assistances  which,  through  the 
importunities  of  prayer  alone,  we  have  ground  to  expect,  how 
could  he  appear  copiously  furnished  with  the  word  of  truth — 
prepared  to  give  each  his  portion  in  due  season,  and  this  with 
that  perspicuity  and  promptitude  of  language  which  resemble 
the  pen  of  the  ready  wTiter :  and  Ijow  could  you  yourselves 
favor  the  preaching  of  the  gospel  witli  that  attentive  ear  which 
it  so  loudly  demands,  or  open  for  its  reception  that  understand- 
mg  heart,  which  it  will  so  amply  fill  ?  But  recall,  my  brethren,  to 
mind,  the  importance  of  the  ministry  of  the  gospel,  and  also  your 
relation  to  it;  that  by  this  supposition  of  its  being  wrong  per> 
formed,  and  ill  received,  I  may  awaken  your  consciences  to  a 
lively  sense  of  tJie  indispensable  need  of  ahvays  bearing  both 
your  own  case,  and  also  mine,  to  the  throne  of  him,  who  saith, 
Aslt  and  ye  shall  receive,  seek  and  ye  shall  find,  knock  and  it 
shall  be  opened  unto  you.  Can  it  be  forgot  that  the  preach- 
ing of  the  gospel  challenges  your  attention  to  consider  the 
chgice  of  eternal  life  or  death,  by  turning  the  immediate  view 


HEARER  OP  THE  GOSPEL.  35 

of  your  minds  to  the  perception  of  (hat  truth  which,  on  all  oc> 
casions,  but  particularly  as  dispensed  from  the  authority  which 
clothes  the  ministers  of  the  gospel,  provides  a  refuge  for  the 
righteous,  and  erects  an  instrument  of  destruction  over  the 
heads  of  the  wicked  ?  See,  that  1  have  set  before  you  life  and 
good,  and  death  and  evil:  in  that  I  command  thee  this  day  to 
love  the  Lord  thy  God,  to  walk  in  his  ways,  and  to  keep  his 
commandments,  and  his  statutes,  and  his  judgments,  that  thou 
mayest  live  and  multiply;  and  the  Lord  thy  God  shall  bless 
thee  la  the  land  whither  thou  goest  to  possess  it.  But  if  thine 
heaut  turn  away,  so  that  thou  wilt  not  hear,  but  shalt  be  drawn 
away  and  worship  other  gods  and  serve  them;  I  denounce  un- 
to you  this  day  that  ye  shall  surely  perish.  This  considera- 
tion that  the  preaching  of  the  gospel  will  be  either  the  savor 
of  life  unto  life,  or  of  death  urjto  death,  taken  in  connexion 
with  the  fact  that  the  preparation  of  the  heart  is  from  God 
alone,  conveys  to  your  hearing  with  the  highest  emphasis,  in 
regard  unto  your  pastor,  the  former,  and  in  regard  to  both  him 
and  yourselves,  the  latter  of  these  inspired  exhortations.-^ 
Brethren,  pray  for  us,  that  tlie  word  of  God  may  have  free 
course  and  be  glorified,— Take  the  helmet  of  salvation,  and  the 
sword  of  the  spirit  which  is  the  word  of  God;  praying  always 
with  all  prayer  and  supplication  in  the  spirit,  and  watching 
thereunto  with  all  perseverance  and  supplication  for  all  saints; 
and  for  me,  that  utterance  may  be  given  unto  me,  that  1  may 
open  my  mouth  boldly  to  make  known  the  mystery  of  the  gos- 
pel.    Eph.  6:17,18,19. 

But  I  observe,  thirdly.  That  you  are  to  be  solemn  and  at- 
tentive in  the  performance  of  those  duties  which  are  dis- 
charged when  your  minister  and  you  meet,  to  present  your^ 
selves  in  religious  services  before  God.  This  observation,  one 
should  think,  needs  no  more  to  prove  and  enforce  it,  than  a  right 
understanding  of  the  condition  to  which  oui  public  religious 
ordinances  exalt  us.  What  must  be  the  impiety  of  that  man's 
conduct  who  either  behaves  disorderly  in  the  courts  of  God*^ 


S5  DUTIES  OP  THE  PREACHEB  AND 

worship;  or  who  incurs  the  guilt  of  drawing  near  to  him  with 
the  mouth  and  of  honoring  him  with  the  lip,  whilst  the  heart 
is  removed  far  from  him  ?  A  dependent  will  not  approach  his 
earthly  superior  without  an  attitude  of  respect;  the  supersti- 
tious will  not  survey  the  images  of  his  veneration  without  the 
emotions  of  religious  awe;  the  heathen  nations  cannot  enter 
the  temples  of  their  idols  without  their  consciences  being 
aroused  into  an  anticipation  of  that  dread  immortality,  which 
their  feelings,  more  than  their  judgments,  predict  shall  take 
place;  and  the  angels  in  heaven  bow  down  veiling  their  faces 
with  their  wings  as  they  beholdjthe  throne  of  the  Eternal,  and 
certainly  God  must  be  greatly  feared,  and  had  in  reverence  by 
all  his' saints.  The  compliment  of  visiting  the  house  of  God 
with  the  design  only  of  countenancing  the  exercises  which  his 
genuine  people  support,  by  a  mere  appearance,  and  tlie  stupid 
and  wearisome  continuance  of  the  body  in  the  consecrated  as- 
semblies of  the  faithful,  without  the  spirit  which  animates  and 
elevates  them  by  the  most  joyous  energies  of  life,  is  equally  to 
be  reprobated  and  abhorred.  I  hear  the  voice  of  the  prophet 
guardmg  our  assemblings,  like  the  angel's  flammg  sword,  the 
tree  of  life,  in  the  appalling  language  of  assertion  and  interroga- 
tion :  "  The  sinners  in  Zion  are  afraid,  fearfulness  hath  sur- 
prised the  hypocrite,  who  among  us  can  dwell  with  devouring 
fire,  who  among  us  can  dwell  with  everlasting  burning  ?" 

Perhaps,  indeed,  some  will  plead  as  an  excuse  for  their  in- 
attention, the  lifeless  and  unanimated  manner,  as  well  as  the 
flimsy  and  light  matter,  which,'  at  times,  the  minister  of  the 
gospel  may  manifest  before  you.  It  would  savor  of  vanity, 
and  mark  with  utter  ignorance  of  the  experience  of  God's 
servants,  were  we,  christians,  to  challenge  your  attention  al- 
^7ays,  on  account  of  the  excellence  of  our  performances.  We 
own  that  the  servant  of  the  Lord  often  finds  his  work  drag 
heavily  with  him  in  his  preparations ;  and  not  rarely  too,  when  he  I 
thinks  that  he  has  reared  the  fabric  of  his  discourse  in  perfec- 
tion, will  a  stone  slip  in  the  foundation,  and  overthrow  his 


HEARER  OP  THE  GOSPEts  37 

hopes.  The  priests,  the  Lord's  ministers  mourn,  saith  the 
prophet,  for  their  field  is  wasted,  their  land  mourneth.  Joel, 
1:3.  The  Lord  has  to  teach  his  servants  their  dependance 
upon  him;  and  often  from  them  in  their  ministrations,  as  well 
as  from  the  christian  in  his  experiences,  he  hidethhis  face  and 
they  are  troubled.  Oh!  exclaimed  the  inspired  Job.  that  it 
were  with  me  as  in  months  past,  in  the  days  when  God  pre- 
served me,  when  his  candle  shone  upon  my  head,  and 
when  by  his  light  I  walked  through  darkness. — The  dew 
does  not  distil  witirequal  copiousness  every  night  in  the  sea- 
son  of  dew,  the  rivers  do  not  always  flow  with  the  same 
abundant  stream,  the  fountains  do  not  always  pour  forth  an 
equal  birth  of  waters,  the  fields  do  not  bring  every  season  the 
sama  plentiful  harvest,  the  sea  waxes  and  subsides  again,  the 
moon  becomes  sickly  and  black,  the  sun  himself  puts  on  his 
robes  of  mourning,  the  temple  of  Jehovah  has  been  in  ruins, 
and  the  Lamb  himself  that  is  in  the  midst  of  the  throne  in 
heaven,  was  covered  by  the  cold  hand  of  an  accursed  death, 
and  the  ministers  of  righteousness,  in  this  changeable  world, 
must  experience,  in  some  degree  or  other,  this  vicissitude  of 
dispensation,  to  which  all  nature  and  the  church  herself  are 
•subjected.  But  is  not  the  scarcity  of  articles  the  very  con- 
sideration which  on  that  occasion  enhances  their  importance  ? 
Consider  how  attentive  the  hungry  are  to  collect  and  preserve 
in  tlie  years  of  famine  the  equally  coarse  and  scanty  provision ; 
consider  how  the  thirsty  soul  will  exult  to  quaff  the  grass- 
grown  stream  from  the  expiring  fountain ;  consider  how  refresh- 
ing is  a  breath  of  wind  in  a  sultry  day;  and  consider  how  joy- 
ful is  the  sickly  beam  even  of  the  rising  moon  to  the  mid- 
night and  bewildered  traveller,  and^  we  hope,  we  have  convin- 
ced you,  that  it  is  incons'istent  with  your  duty,  to  despise  the 
day,  in  God's  providence,  of  mourning  to  us,  and  of  small 
things  (o  you.  Moreover,  on  this  subject,  I  would  tell  you 
that  often  the  'day  of  our  calamity  is  the  time  of  God''s  op- 
portunity, for  accomplishmg  the  most  unexpected  and  interest- 


38  DUTIBS  6t  !*««  PfifiA-CftfiH  AXO 

ingends  by  the  small  voice  of  the  gospel.  Jesus  himself,  who 
spake  as  never  man  spake,  was  yet  less  successful  than  any  of 
his  disciples.  God  is  frequently  not  in  the  earthquake  of  the 
moving  orator's  voice,  nor  in  the  whirlwind  of  his  discourse, 
by  which  he  strikes  and  carries  the  passions  in  a  thousand 
directions;  but  he  appears,  where  he  is  least  expected,  in  a 
still  small  unanimated  voice.  The  treasure  is  often  put  into  a 
weak  and  despised  vessel,  that  its  virtue  and  power  may  ap- 
pear to  be  of  God  shining  upon  his  ordinances,  and  not  on 
man,  the  mere  administrator  of  them.  1  tho  i^hi^  says  Naa- 
man,  he  will  surely  come  out  to  me,  and  stand  and  call  on  the 
name  of  his  God,  and  strike  his  hand  over  the  place,  and  re- 
cover the  leper;  but,  says  the  prophet,  by  his  met-enger  only, 
go  and  wash  in  Jordan  seven  times,  and  thy  flesh  shall  come 
again  to  thee,  and  thou  shalt  be  clean. 

But  I  observe,  lastly,  That  you  are  to  meditate  on  the  ex- 
ercises in  which  we  have  been  employed  when  you  retire  from 
them,  and  to  implore  the  divine  blessing  upon  them.  Wearied 
of  the  burden  which  has  hung  heavy  upon  them  during  their 
journey  through  the  public  services  of  Zion,  careless  professors 
of  religion  go,  like  the  ox  loosed  from  his  yoke,  to  feed  on 
the  pleasing  pastures  of  amusement  and  recreation;  of  idle 
speculations  of  honor  and  wealth ;  and  of  aggrandizing  pur- 
suits of  time;  and  they  never  review  a  th  'ight  that  has  been 
set  before  them,  nor  an  expression  of  adoration  in  which  they 
have  joined,  nor  ask  the  divine  blessing  upon  them.  He  also 
that  received  seed  among  thorns  is  he  that  heareth  the  word, 
•md  the  care  of  this  world  and  the  deceitfulness  of  riches 
choke  the  word,  and  he  becometh  unfruitful.  Look,  however, 
to  the  tender  babe  who  is  abandoned  in  the  desert  to  all  th^ 
rigors  of  winter,  to  the  dangers  which  then  and  there  walk 
unmolested  around  him,  death  clothed  in  a  thousand  forme; 
and  expect  to  see  the  helpless  infant  reared  unto  the  abilities 
of  manhood  amidst  all  these  dangers,  as  soon  as  you  can  ex- 
pect to  entertain  a  hope,  that  the  tender  seed  of  the  word  will 


HEARER  OP  THE  GOSPEL.  39 

live  many  moments,  without  even  a  dew  of  meditation,  or  of 
the  divine  blessing,  amidst  such  worldly  pursuits,  pleasures, 
and  plans,  to  destroy  it.     If  you  are  to  improve  the  adminis- 
tration of  ordinances   with  which  you  are  now  favored   you 
must  not,  immediately  on  your  withdrawing  from  public  wor- 
ship and  duties,  bind  up  the  talent  that  has  been  entrusted  to 
you,  and  deposit  it  in  the  earth  of  forgetfulness;  but  you  must 
lend  it  out  to  the  improving  hands  of  meditation  and  prayer. 
Men  are  s-  little  acquainted  with  the  great  art  of  meditation  to 
increase  th:ir  stock  of  spiritual  possessions,  that  it  is  difficult 
to  lead  them  through  its  operations  and  to  point  out  the  many 
advantages  to  which  it  is  subservient.     Meditation  on  know- 
lege  which  has  once  entered  the  mind,  diffiises  its  influences 
through  the  affections,  and  roots  it  so  in  the  memory,  that  all 
the  changes  and  gusts  of  time  never  can  thoroughly  overturn  it. 
This  takes  the  food  which  has  been  immediately  administered, 
digests  it,  like  the  bile  the  nourishment  of  our  animal  frame; 
sends  ft  in  the   circulations  of  its  own  reflections,   like  the 
chyle  converted  into  blood  into  all  the  parts  and  cavities  of  the 
soul;  and  thus  filling  the  whole  intellectual  system  of  man 
with  enlivened   views,  extends    and   increases    his    stature. 
We  all,  says  the  apostle  Paul,  with  open  face  beholding  as  in  a 
glass  the  glory  of  the  Lord,  are  changed  into  the  same  image, 
from  glory  to  [ -ory,  as  by  the  spirit  of  the  Lord. — And  ought 
any  christian  to  forget  that  the  grace  of  God  which  gratifies  all 
that  expectation  that  in  prayer  animates  us,  and  that  carries  all  our 
affections  to  seize  upon  the  throne  of  the  eternal,  is  the  sole  prin- 
ciple of  our  spiritual  life.     Paul  may  plant  and  Apollos  water, 
says  the  apostle  of  the  Gentiles,  but  God  alone  can  give  the 
increase.    They  are  the  benign  influences  of  the  holy  spirit 
descending  like   rain  upon   the  mown  grass,  and  like   the 
showers  that  water  the  earth,  that  quicken  and  invigorate  the 
exercises  of  the  people  of  God.     Except  the  Lord  do  build  the 
house  they  labor  in  vain  that  build  it;  except  the  Lord  do 
keep  the  city  the  watchmen  watch  in  vain.     As  soon  may  the 


40  DUTIES  OF  THE  PREACHER  AND 

christian  acquiesce  in  the  atheistical  assertion  that  this  universe 
moves  through  all  its  changes  and  events  independently  of  the 
will  of  its  creator;  as  soon  may  he  expect  to  see  all  the  ver- 
dure and  enamel  of  the  spring  arise,  and  display  their  vigor 
and  beauty  without  light  or  congenial  heat,  as  he  dares  plume 
himself  upon  the  growth  and  comeliness  of  his  virtue  and  holi- 
ness, without  the  operative  and  all  powerful  influences  of  Go 
blessing.  Heirs  of  the  grace  of  life,  1  do  not  miscalculate  the 
value  of  your  privileges,  any  more  than  I  overrate  the  duty  by 
which  you  are  to  open  the  bosom  of  desire  to  receive  their  in- 
valuable communications,  when  1  thus  point  out  to  you,  as  the 
herald  of  divine  mercy,  the  mouth  that  is  to  be  opened  at  the 
throne  of  Jehovah,  and  the  fulness  that  is  to  enter  by  it.  For 
God  says,  as  the  rain  cometh  down,  and  snow  from  heaven, 
and  returneth  not  thither,  but  watereth  the  earth,  and  maketh 
it  biing  forth  and  bud,  that  it  may  give  seed  to  the  sower  and 
bread  to  the  eater,  so  shall  my  word  be  that  goeth  out  of  my 
mouth,  it  shall  not  return  unto  m.e  void,  but  it  shall  accom- 
plish that  which  I  please,  and  it  shall  prosper  in  the  thing 
whereto  1  sent  it.  Isaiah,  55.  1  will  be  as  the  dew  to 
Israel,  he  shall  grow  as  the  lily,  and  cast  forth  his  roots  as 
Lebanon;  they  that  dwell  under  his  shadow  shall  return,  they 
shall  revive  as  the  corn,  and  grow  as  the  vine,  the  scent  thereof 
shall  be  as  the  wine  of  Lebanon.     Hos.   14:5 — 7, 

My  brethren,  I  add  one  remark  applicable  to  all  the  obser- 
vations I  have  made :  that  whilst  this  preparation  is  always  to 
precede,  this  attention  always  to  accompany,  and  this  medita- 
tion and  prayer  always  to  follow  the  common  administration  of 
the  ordinances  of  grace ;  they  are  to  rise  with  every  striking 
emergency,  such  as  the  dispensation  of  the  sacraments,  and 
not  to  be  forgot  in  any  of  the  duties  of  discipline,  examina- 
ation,  or  visitation.  These  latter  will  bring  you  before  the 
minister  of  God's  sanctuary,  either,  to  be  immediately  in  the 
name  of  Christ,  approved  or  condemned,  or  to  have  your  pro- 
gress 'm  knowledge  and  practice  estimated,  that  it  may  be 


HfiAREH  OF  THE  GOSPEL.  41 

transmitted  through  the  instrumentality  of  your  minister,  to 
occupy  its  place  in  the  records  of  Zion,  and  to  stand  there  a 
perpetual  remembrance  of  your  character  in  your  generation. 
And  in  proportion  to  the  solemnity  of  bringing  Christ  under 
the  visible  symbols  of  his  death  and  sacrifice,  of  laying  him  be- 
fore you  as  wounded  and  bruised  for  your  transgression,  and 
as  eixpiring  under  the  hands  of  an  accursed  death  to  wash  and 
cleanse  you  from  the  stain  that  omnipotence  could  not  other- 
wise efface,  you  are  to  reflect  and  pray,  to  call  upon  all  that  is 
within  you  to  be  stirred  up  in  attention ;  and  then  to  reflect 
and  pray  again, — that  you  may  thus  worthily  partake  of  the 
body  and  blood  of  the  Lord. 

Whose  eyes,  my  brethren, are  now  upon  us? — The  observa- 
tion of  tlie  wicked  will  spitefully  desciy  every  failure,  either  on 
your  part  or  mine,  and  like  an  object  at  a  distance  in  a  foggy 
day,  this  will  be  magnified  by  the  malign  power  of  their  ima- 
gination. The  tender  mercies  of  the  wicked  are  cruel.  These 
will  think  that  our  imperfections  and  misimprovements  afford 
them  a  triumph  not  only  over  ourselves,  but  even  over  that  re- 
ligion which  we  profess. — The  eyes  of  the  saints  are  likewise, 
though  with  a  more  friendly  aspect,  turned  towards  us.  Would 
you  wish  to  hear  of  their  bowels  of  mercy  towards  us,  to  hear 
them  saying,  like  the  apostle  of  the  gentilei,  ye  are  our  joy  and 
crown  of  rejoicing;  would  you  wish  to  enlist  all  their  prayers 
and  sympathies  into  your  services — you  must  improve  their 
privileges  which  will  make  you  their  brethren  in  Christ.  Where- 
fore I  also,  says  Paul,  after  I  heard  of  your  faith  in  the  Lord 
Jesus,  and  love  unto  all  the  saints,  cease  not  to  give  thanks  for 
you,  making  mention  of  you  in  my  prayers;  that  the  God  of 
our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  the  father  of  glory,  may  give  unto  you 
the  spirit  of  wisdom  and  revelation  in  the  knowledge  of  him. 
— Invisible  angels  watch  over  us,  and  mark  the  regularity 
or  irregularity,  the  ardor  or  indiflference,  of  our  religious  course. 
He  maketh,  it  is  said,  his  angels  spirits  and  his  ministers  a 
flame  of  fire.     And  God  who  sitteth  upon  the  circle  of.tha 


42  DUTIES  OF  THE  PREACHER  AND 

heavens  and  beholdeth  the  nations  as  grasshoppers;  who 
weigheth  the  mountains  in  scales  and  the  hills  in  a  balance ; 
who  can  toss  us  before  the  wind  of  his  displeasure  like  the 
small  dust  in  the  balance,  is  an  awful  spectator  of  our  character 
and  conduct.  A  negligent  preparation  on  your  part  or  mine, 
a  lame  and  sickly  performance  of  duty  by  either  of  us,  and  a 
carelessness  about  what  will  be  the  consequences  which  may 
follow,  may  escape  the  inimical  inspection  of  the  wicked,  the 
pitying  observation  of  the  righteouf^  the  keen  look,  it  may  be, 
of  angels;  but  throughout  the  whole  exercises,  in  which,  in 
years  of  conjunct  privileges  and  duty,  you  and  I  may  be  em- 
ployed, in  every  word  that  is  spoken  by  me,  and  in  every  word 
that  is  heard  by  you,  God's  eye  surveys  them,  and  his  hand 
marks  the  qualities  of  c>jr  exercises.  The  eyes  of  the  Lord 
are  in  every  place  behold  i'ig  the  evil  and  the  good  . 

Were  your  pastor  left  so  destitute  of  that  grace  in  which  he 
trusts  for  all  his  help,  as  to  fcii  obviously  in  ail  the  important 
duties  of  the  station  to  which  he  is  exalted,  what  ridicule 
would  exulting  enemies  throw  upon  us,  what  embittering  mix- 
ture of  frowns  and  condolence  would  saints  pour  out;  what  a 
look  of  indignation  -nd  compassion  would  those  seraphim  that 
always  behold  the  face  of  our  f^ither  who  is  in  heaven,  dare  to 
bestow,  and  what  a  reproof  and  severe  chastisement  from  the 
Lord  of  all  must  I  expect!  Were  this  supposed  sin  of  mine  to 
be  the  sin  of  impenitence,  what,  though  I  might  escape  in  a 
great  measure  by  unworthily  purchasing  the  veil  of  hypocrisy, 
all  the  censure  and  reproof  of  men,  and  displeasure  of  pure  in- 
visible intelligences,  would  yet  be  my  state,  though  exempt 
from  temporal  chastisements  in  the  divine  providence,  at  last 
on  the  gi-eat  and  terrible  day  of  accounts?  To  an  immortal 
being  placed  in  a  station  which  honors  him  with  the  duty  of 
bringing  hundreds  of  his  immortal  bretinen  to  eternal  felicity, 
but  who  has  betrayed  his  trust,  and  hath  neitfter  come  himself,  nor 
done  his  utmost  to  show  thfera  the  way,  the  judge  of  the  universe 
will  say,  I  demand  the  blood  of  the  souls,  whom  you  have  left  to 


HEAKEB  OF  THE  GOSPEL.  43 

perish,  at  your  hand, — In  proportion  unto  the  value  of  his  immor- 
tal soul;  in  proportion  unto  its  honor  before  an  assembled  uni- 
verse at  the  great  day  of  accounts;  in  proportion  unto  the 
eternal  thrillings  of  joy  in  the  general  assembly  and  church 
of  the  first  born  in  heaven,  I  am  constrained,  oh !  my  breth- 
ren, to  entreat  your  supplications  at  a  throne  of  mercy  in  my 
behalf. — Hov/  happy  when  carried  along  through  an  arduous 
course  in  the  bosom,  of  the  prayers  of  the  righteous  which 
avail  much!  A  conscience  void  of  offence  towards  God  and 
man,  disregards  all  the  persecution  of  the  world,  procures  th^ 
approbation  and  love  of  men  and  angels,  and  the  everlasting 
friendship  of  God  himself.  For  they  that  bring  many  to 
righteousness  shall  shine  as  the  stars  in  the  firmament  for 
ever  and  ever. 

But  heirs  of  God  and  joint  heirs  of  Jesus  Christ,  is  not  the 
preaching  of  the  gospel  as  trying  a  criterion  in  your  ears,  as  it 
is  in  the  mouili  of  him  who  is  an  ambassador  to  you  in 
Christ's  stead  ? — whether  there  be  a  respect,  to  the  influence 
of  your  lives  and  behavior  amongst  men,  to  the  eternal  welfare 
of  your  immortal  spirits  among  the  spirits  of  the  universe,  or 
to  your  answering,  on  the  last  day  of  this  created  state  of 
things,  to  the  judge  of  the  quick  and  of  the  dead?  None  of 
us  liveth  to  himself,  and  no  man  dietli  to  himself, — every  one 
of  you  must  have  an  influence  to  assist  or  to  deter  travellers  on 
the  same  road  to  immortality ;  every  man's  soul  that  is  saved 
will  be  saved  yet  so  as  by  fire;  and  that  inlfferitance  which  is 
incorruptible  and  undcf^led  and  that  fadeth  not  away,  is  equal- 
ly invaluable  to  both  you  and  me. 

Our  prayers,  ray  bretliren,  to  the  one  God  in  the  moments 
of  preparation  should  continually  be,  "  clollje  thy  priests  with 
strength,  and  let  thy  saints  shout  aloud  for  joy:" — Our  pray- 
ers to  the  one  God  in  the  solemnity  of  public  adoration  and 
worship  should  continually  be,  "  stay  our  minds  upon  thy= 
self:" — Our  prayers  to  the  one  God  on  leaving  the  courts  of 


44  DUTIES  OP  THE  PRBACHEH,  &C. 

his  Zion,  should  continually  be,  "  pour  out  thy  spirit  upon  thy 
seed  and  thy  blessing  upon  thine  offspring." — Oh  I  God,  in- 
crease us  and  we  shall  not  be  small,  multiply  us  and  we  shall 
not  be  few. — Feedthy  flock  like  a  shepherd,  gather  thy  lambs 
in  thine  arms,  and  carry  them  in  thy  bosom,  and  gently  lead 
those  that  are  with  young. — Be  as  a  wall  of  fire  around  us  and 
a  glory  in  the  midst  of  us. — Where  we  go,  do  thou  go,  and 
where  we  lodge,  do  thou  lodge. — Oh!  Eternal  Judge,  may 
these  people  be  my  joy  and  crown  of  rejoicing,  in  the  day 
when  thou  makest  up  thy  jewels,  and  may  I  be  as  a  signet  en- 
graven upon  their  affections,  whilst  1  minister  in  thy  temple 
amongst  them,  and  till,  we  shall  all  appear  in  the  New  Jerusa- 
lem where  all  affections  centre  upon  thyself. — Father — Son 
Spirit — bless — save — sanctify. — Amen. 


DISCOURSE  II. 


ON  CHRIST'S  RESURRECTION. 


Matth.  25:6.     He  is  not  here,  for  he  is  risen. 

The  scriptures,  my  brethren,  inform  us  that  early  on  the 
morning  of  the  first  day  of  the  week,  Christ,  by  his  own  power 
and  that  of  his  Father,  arose  from  lying  on  the  sepulchre,  and 
leaving  his  grave-clothes  behind  him  ascended  from  the  tomb, — 
the  stone  which  closed  its  mouth  being  rolled  away  by  the 
ministry  of  an  angel  sent  from  heaven.  The  reason  that  this 
angel  was  sent  on  such  a  mission,  was  not  that  Christ  was 
unable  to  accomplish  the  object  of  it  himself.  Though  he  v/ay 
newly  risen  from  the  cold  and  stiffened  stretch  of  death;  yet 
his  members  were  not  discomposed  for  any  undertaking,  nor 
was  his  power  in  the  least  diminished  for  any  exertion.  Vea, 
let  me  intimate,  that  he  who  said,  I  have  power  to  lay  down  my 
life,  and  I  have  power  to  take  it  again,  in  the  act  of  fulfillmg 
these  words,  must  have  called  into  action  immediate  principles 
of  power  that  could  effectuate  any  thing  which  the  combined 
influence  of  wisdom  and  omnipotence  could  achieve.  The 
angel  was  sent  as  the  messenger  of  God  the  Father  to  wel- 
come Christ  from  the  dead ;  to  begin  the  glory  with  which,  on 
his  finishing  the  work  of  redemption,  it  was  promised,  he  shonld 
be  invested;  and  to  announce  by  his  visible  appearance  from  iho 
lieavenly  throne,  that  the  work  of  man's  salvation  was  thcui 
accepted  as  fully  accomplished. 


46  Christ's  restterectioit. 

In  describing  the  manner  of  the  resurrection  of  Christ,  I 
must  lead  you  to  a  circumstance  meriting  a  particular  atten- 
tion, though  rather  a  connected  than  an  included  circumstance. 
Whilst  all  I  have  now  mentioned  was  carrying  on  at  the  tomb 
thus  early  in  the  morning,  the  disciples  of  Jesus,  these  our 
witnesses,  had  no  knowledge  of  it;  they  had  not  yet  arisen  to 
visit  the  supposed  dark  and  dreary  abode  of  their  former  Lord 
and  benefactor.  None  saw  the  splendid  sight  of  the  descend- 
ing angel  whose  countenance  shone  like  lightning,  and  whose 
raiment  was  white  as  snow;  none  saw  the  stone  that  shut  up 
the  tomb  of  the  crucified  Saviour,  but  still  remaining  Lord  of 
the  universe,,  spoiled  of  its  seals,  and  heaved  from  its  position ; 
none  saw  the  hope  of  Israel  ascending  from  the  bowels  of  the 
earth  as  the  first  fruits  of  that  resurrection  of  which  all  are  to 
partake,  but  the  profligate  Roman  soldiers,  who  utterly  unac- 
customed to  such  miraculous  and  marvellous  appearances,  lost 
their  powers  of  observation  in  a  swoon  of  amazement.  The 
angel  of  the  Lord  descended  from  heaven  and  came  and  rolled 
back  the  stone  and  sat  upon  it;  his  countenance  was  like 
lightning,  and  his  raiment  was  white  as  snow,  and  for  fear 
of  him  the  keepers  did  shake.,  and  became  as  dead  meUo. 

But  though  the  resurrection  of  Christ  was  thus  secret,  and 
by  the  wise  providence  of  heaven  secluded  from  the  view  and 
observation  of  the  very  men  who  were  to  be  the  witnesses  of 
it  to  all  ages,  yet  this  fact  does  not  in  the  least  impugn  the 
moral  certainty  of  his  resurrection.  Yea,  this  very  circum- 
stance, no  doubt,  was  wisely  contrived,  that  it  might  contribute 
to  disentangle  our  inquiries,  and  to  finish  off  our  belief.  Had 
the  disciples  been  at  the  tomb,  some  hesitation  might  have 
remained  in  the  mind  unable  to  repose  in  the  full  freedom  of 
absent.  The  prerogatives  of  reason  would  ask:  if  Christ  rose 
by  his  own  power,  if  he  is  that  mighty  one  which  his  historians 
affirm  him  to  be;  if  his  resurrection  is  to  be  the  great  polar  star 
to  guide  through  all  ages  the  voyage  of  so  many  followers 
into  the  regions  of  certainty  respecting  his  character,"  what 


Christ's  resurrection.  47 

need  was  there  to  confirm  jealousies  that  were  already  aroused, 
by  assembling  around  it,  and  looking  wishfully  towards  his 
tomb?  Why  were  the  disciples  there  at  so  early,  and  so  suspi- 
cious an  hour?  Did  they  await  to  salute  Christ  from  the 
grave?  They  believed  not  that  he  was  to  rise.  They  must 
have  had  a  plot:  it  seems  that  they  were  characters  deter- 
mined to  deceive. 

Permit  me,  my  brethren,  to  make  one  other  remark  as  I  ad- 
vance in  clearing  the  foundation  on  which  I  would  lay  tlie 
positive  evidences  which  construct  the  fabric  of  undoubted 
certainty  in  the  resurrection  of  your  Redeemer.  The  resurrec- 
tion of  man  from  the  dead,  whilst  the  experience  of  every 
generation  hears  the  voice  of  the  grave,  saying,  it  is  not  enough, 
is  yet  in  itself  an  event  possible;  and  the  peculiar  reasons  which 
his  historians  assign,  sufficiently  proclaim  the  wisdom  of  early 
interposing,  and  making  Jesus  the  first  fruits  of  the  resurrec- 
tion from  the  dead.  Are  not  the  admirable  order  of  the 
universe,  the  relative  organization  of  every  part,  and  mechanism 
of  all  animal  ed  natures,  an  indubitable  evidence  that  an  infinitely 
intelligent  and  omnipotent  being  is  the  author  of  our  existence? 
And  cannot  this  supreme  Creator  restore  that  connexion  which 
binds  into  the  unify  of  a  person  the  soul  and  body  of  man, 
though  it  has  been  once  dissolved?— And  will  he  not  do  this, 
when  his  word  is  pledged  for  it;  when  the  work  of  redemption 
calls  for  its  reward ;  when  a  spiritual  society  is  to  be  reared 
under  the  government  of  its  own  head;  when  the  hopes  of  so 
many  are  to  be  enlivened  by  the  certainty  that  their  mansions 
in  heaven  are  already  taken  possession  of  in  their  name ;  and 
when  the  fact  itself  of  the  resurrection  is  to  difl^use  such  a  light 
of  evidence  over  all  the  system  of  truth  to  which  he  is  to  call 
the  faith  of  mankind  ? 

Being  thus  assured  that  the  matter  of  their  testimony  is  a 
thing  possible,  and  that  it  might,  by  the  cause  to  which  it  is 
ascribed,  the  mighty  power  of  God,  which  is  said  to  have 
wrought  in  Christ  mightily,  when  he  raised  him  from  the  dead, 


48  chkist's  resurrection, 

be  effected, — I  must  now,  my  brethren,  challenge  your  atten- 
tion to  the  positive  evidences  of  the  great  doctrine  we  are 
establishing, — The  credibility  of  the  witnesses  of  the  resurrec- 
tion of  Christ.  And  on  thib  part  of  our  investigation,  there 
are  four  things  to  which  1  must  call  your  attention.  The  first 
is,  That  we  be  well  assured  that  the  witnesses  of  Christ's 
resurrection  were  men  of  discernment  and  penetration  enough 
to  ascertain  this  great  fact:  Secondly,  That  we  be  well  as- 
sured that  they  have  clearly  declared  that  they  had  these  op- 
portunities of  information,  and  did  improve  them,  which  we 
presume  requisite:  Thirdly,  That  there  area  sufficient  number 
of  witnesses  to  vouch  for  this  great  fact;  and  that  these  are  all 
consistent  in  their  testimony :  Lastly,  That  the  witnesses  of 
this  crreat  fact  were  men  of  moral  honesty  and  had  no  mten- 

o 

tions  to  deceive. 

Our  first  object  is  to  show,  That  we  have  satisfactory  proofs, 
tliat  the  witnesses  of  Christ's  resurrection  were  men  of  discern- 
ment and  penetration  enough  to  ascertain  this  great  fact. 
Many  are  the  affairs  about  the  nature  and  production  of  which, 
few  men  are  competent  judges.  Their  nature  is  too  refined  or 
intricate,  or  their  production  proceeds  from  too  many  co-opera- 
ting causes,  or  these  act  too  secretly  before  their  dull  curiosity, 
for  the  powers  of  ordinary  men's  observation  to  justify  us  in  a 
reliance  upon  their  testimony.  Of  this  nature  are  all  vegetable 
and  animal  bodies,  in  the  principles  on  which  their  parts 
cohere,  and  in  the  mechanism  by  which  their  vegetation  and 
life  are  nourished  and  supported.  Many  moral  and  metaphy- 
sical truths  also,  lie  far  beyond  the  utmost  possible  view  which 
can  be  taken  by  the  eye  of  an  ordinary  man.  But  what  1  must 
remark  to  you,  in  estimating  the  qualifications  of  the  witnesses 
of  the  resurrection  of  Christ,  is,  that  the  subject  of  their  ob- 
servation, the  point  on  which  the  reputation  of  these  unlettered 
men  is  to  rest,  is  none  of  these  abstruse  and  difficult  matters 
of  knowledge.  The  resurrection  of  Christ  was  an  obvious 
matter  of  fact;  and  the  most  illiterate  and  rude  of  understand- 


Christy's  resitrrectioi!?.  49 

ing,  tax  gatherers  and  fishermen,  were  equally  capable  of 
judging  of  its  certainty,  with  the  most  learned  and  most  pene- 
trating of  mankind.  To  be  assured  of  any  obvious  matter  of 
fact  that  falls  under  our  observation,  requires  only  that  our 
senses  be  not  disordered,  and  that  we  use  them  to  ascertain  it. 
In  this  way,  indeed,  we  may  not  comprehend  all  the  concomi- 
tant circumstances  so  well,  and  their  relations  as  causes  or 
consequences  of  the  event;  yet,  where  such  an  event  takes 
place,  so  obvious  to  our  senses,  we  can  no  more  doubt  of  the 
fact  itself,  than  we  can  doubt  of  our  own  existence. 

1  am  not,  ray  brethren,  fabricating  an  excuse  for  the  acknow- 
ledged simplicity,  and  unlettered  character  of  the  witnesses 
of  the  resurrection  of  Christ.  These  men,  who,  though  never 
classed  in  the  schools  of  philosophy,  nor  taught  the  arts  of 
artificial  disputation,  are  yet  proclaimed^  by  their  writings,  to 
be  both  great  and  good,  to  be  men  of  sound  understandings, 
and  of  hearts  deeply  interested  in  the  welfare  of  mankind,  had, 
I  aver,  a  plain  and  obvious  matter  of  fact  to  ascertain  and 
propagate.  An  object  of  sight,  an  object  of  touch,  an  asso- 
ciate in  conversation,  describe  the  palpable  and  prominent 
criteria  about  which  the  apostles  of  our  holy  religion  are  con- 
cerned. They  were  not  at  the  sepulchre  at  its  eventful  period ; 
and  if  they  knew  certainly  of  his  resurrection  at  all,  it  could 
be  only  by  seeing  him,  by  conversing  with  him,  and  by  touch- 
mg  Christ  after  his  resurrection.  Besides  these,  there  is  no 
other  possible  way  which  can  be  satisfactory  to  human  nature, 
and  this  even  after  immediate  revelations  and  miracles  shall 
have  ceased:  and  could  there  be  a  case  in  which  it  would  be 
more  impossible  for  men  to  be  mistaken?  Could  they,  if  they 
used  [heir  senses  and  that  common  judgment  v/hich  belongs 
to  all  men,  not  ascertain,  beyond  the  possibility  of  a  doubt, 
the  identity  of  his  person, — from  those  views  their  astonished 
and  eager  eyes  would  take  of  him;  from  that  embracing  and 
handling  which  an  object,  that  awakened  to  the  last  degree  the 
hands  of  curiosity,  would  excite;  and  from  that  conversation 

5* 


50  Christ's  resurrection. 

which  winds  through  all  the  circles  of  former  interest  and  partici^' 
lar  friendships,  and  places  before  them,  that  delicate  field,  where 
art  must  soon  be  ineffectual  in  endeavoring  to  impose  upon 
genuine  and  unsophisticated  principles  of  common  sense? 
Was  there  no  peculiarly  discriminating  mark  in  his  counte- 
nance, his  gait,  his  manner  of  address,  his  voice,  or  in  a  word, 
in  the  whole  of  those  personal  distinctions,  which  bring  at 
once  acquaintances,  even  after  years  of  separation  and  feeble 
reminiscence,  most  certainly  to  the  knowledge  of  their  friends , 
to  present  before  the  disciples  of  Jesus,  the  real  person  of  that 
master  whose  image  is  yet  playing  so  vividly  on  every  power 
of  their  mind?  Are  there  no  particular  incidents,  no  private 
transactions,  no  pledged  promises,  in  that  great  and  compli- 
cated design,  which,  before  his  death,  both  he  and  they  were 
prosecuting,  for  their  conversation  to  call  up  and  review,  that 
from  the  vivid  intellect  of  the  leader  and  author  of  all  their 
movements,  touching,  with  perfect  remembrance,  all  the  lines 
of  his  own  delicate  fabric,  his  disciples  might  most  certainly 
learn  the  identity  of  his  person? — There  were  to  be  reviewed, 
not  only  the  observations  made  before  one  another  when  the 
disciples  were  first  called  to  enrol  their  names  in  his  service  j 
on  his  discourses  and  parables  delivered  generally  to  the  mul- 
titudes, and  particularly  explained  to  themselves  in  the  intima- 
cies of  friendship;  but  there  was,  as  yet,  the  secret  and  most 
memorable  transaction  of  Christ's  transfiguration;  and  above 
all,  the  complicated,  affecting,  and  distressing  scene,  through 
which  they  had  all  passed,  that  night  in  which  Christ  was  ap- 
^>rehended  by  his  enemies; — and  could  any  other  have  started 
t )  the  high  and  distinguished  station,  which  the  leader  in  all 
\  lese  transactions,  is  now  supposed  to  occupy,  and  not  be  detect- 
ed and  abandoned  in  a  few  moments  ?  Yes ,  christians,  the  par- 
ti v^ular  features  and  appearance  of  his  person,  and  the  subjects 
of  their  necessary  conversation  with  Christ,  must  have  preclu- 
ded all  possibility  of  an  impostor  recommending  himself  to 
the  acceptance  of  the  disciples  of  Jesus,  after  his  resurrection 


Christ's  REstrRRECTioN.  51 

is  said  to  have  taken  place.  It  was  never  instanced  in  another 
case,  nor  is  it  possible  to  be  believed  in  his,  that  one  should 
be  so  like  Christ  in  every  personal  peculiarity  and  distinction, 
and  that  this  one  should,  in  the  complicated,  affecting,  and  un- 
finished scheme  which  had  been  carrying  on ,  start  up  before 
the  sight  of  the  disappointed  disciples,  should  procure  their 
assent  to  the  belief  of  a  miracle  in  the  resurrection  from  the 
dead;  and  should  so  conduct  himself  afterwards,  that,  although 
he  knew  nothing  of  their  plans  or  conversations  before,  he 
should,  in  no  instance,  deviate  into  mismanagement  or  demur 
in  ignorance  to  create  a  suspicion ;  but  should,  with  as  much 
knowledge  and  discernment  of  all  their  connected  interests, 
as  their  real  master  and  leader  himself  could  do,  conduce  to 
the  establishment  of  their  belief. 

But  is  it  suspected  that  they  were  imposed  upon  by  the  arts  of 
an  apparition.  Many  of  the  ancients  believed  they  saw  visions, 
and  heard  them  speak  to  them.  Brutus,  the  Roman  general, 
believed  himself  warned  in  this  manner  of  his  fatal  end.  Phi- 
losophy ought  to  admit  of  supernatural  appearances,  if  she 
admit  of  the  possibility  of  the  communication  of  a  supernatu- 
ral revelation,  and  particularly,  if  the  object  of  this  revelation 
be  to  lay  open  the  invisible  world,  by  bringing  life  and  im- 
mortality to  light.  She  cannot,  indeed,  admit  of  them  if  she 
restrict,  with  some  modern  philosophers,  the  Creator  of  nature, 
in  all  his  intercourse  with  his  intelligent  creatures,  to  the  ex- 
pression of  his  mind  by  the  signatures  of  his  wisdom  as  they 
are  enstamped  upon  the  phenomena  of  the  visible  universe. 
The  people  that  argue  against  a  stream  of  testimony  in  favor 
of  extraordinary  facts,  because  of  the  perceptible  uniformity 
in  their  own  age  of  nature,  forget  that  if  a  supernatural  revela- 
tion be  possible,  it  must  at  some  time  or  other  take  place;  that 
when  its  visions  are  descending,  and  taking  root  in  our  world, 
extraordinary  phenomena  must  in  some  way  or  other  attend 
them;  and  that,  therefore,  to  apply  to  this  particular  period, 
and  to  the  place  of  the  earth  where  the  inspired  men  reside,  the 


CHRIST'S   RESURRECTION. 

laws  of  providence  upon  other  occasions,  is  quite  unphilosophi- 
cal.  If  a  revelation  be  to  be  made  by  God  to  man,  it  must  be 
at  some  period  of  his  history,  and  may  occupy  a  greater  or  a 
less  duration  according  as  infinite  wisdom  pleases ;  but  it  must 
be  effected  either  by  God's  miraculous  appearance,  or  voice,  or 
impression,  or  by  some  supernatural  messenger :  a  revelation 
without  a  miracle  or  a  deviation  from  the  laws  of  nature,  is  a 
contradiction  in  terms. 

But  that  the  re-appearance  of  our  Saviour  after  his  death, 
though  in  case  of  a  revelation  supernatural  appearances  must 
be  supposed  possible,  was  not  an  apparition,  is  clear,  from  these 
simple  considerations — Because  malign  agency  must  be  sup- 
posed inconsistent  with  the  whole  moral  strain  of  the  gospel, 
whilst  benevolent  power  could  never  urge  and  press  so  upon 
the  senses,  the  genius  of  imposture.  Because,  the  tomb  of 
Christ  was,  on  the  morning  of  the  alleged  resurrection,  indu- 
bitably found  empty,  and  the  body  of  Jesus  was  never  discover- 
ed by  the  Jewish  rulers,  nor,  as  it  is  asserted,  by  the  disciples 
themselves,  unless  in  the  resuscitated  person  of  him  who  bore 
all  the  personal  features  of  their  former  master,  and  who  knew 
all  his  concerns.  And  because,  Christ  was  crucified,  and  had 
flesh  and  bones  to  be  examined  by  the  hands  and  senses  of  his  dis- 
ciples ;  and  if  they  felt  that  he  had  the  tangible  properties  of  a  real 
body,  and  that  too  on  which  were  the  expressive  marks  of  his 
crucifixion,  the  very  prints  of  the  nails,  and  the  wound  made 
by  the  soldier's  spear;  they  could  not  be  mistaken,  either  re- 
specting the  reality,  or  the  identity  of  his  person.  An  individu- 
al might  be  supposed  deceived  by  the  schemes  of  his  own  fancy ; 
but  that  such  a  number  should  all  bring  forth  such  an  unexpect- 
ed vision  of  joy  at  the  same  time;  should  see  it  always  in  the 
same  manner  in  which  every  other  one  saw  it;  should  ail  hear 
the  same  words  pronounced  by  it,  is  to  suppose  such  a  sister- 
hood of  imaginations  as  bewildered  nature  never  could  create. 
No,  if  the  disciples  be  honest  men,  there  is  before  them  no 
apparition  arising  from  the  womb  of  surrounding  elements,  or 


Christ's  resureection.  63 

the  disorder  of  human  imagination,  but  their  Saviour,  the  man 
Christ  Jesus,  risen  from  the  dead. 

Secondly,  Have  the  disciples  of  Christ  clearly  declared  that 
they  had  the  opportunities  of  information,  and  did  improve 
them,  which  we  have  shown  necessary?  And  here  do  they  not 
declare  that  on  the  morning  of  the  resurrection,  the  sepulchre 
was  visited  by  several  of  themselves  and  others,  and  unexpect- 
edly found  empty ;  that  it  was  searched  and  the  grave-clothes 
only  found;  and  that  it  contained  a  deputation  recognized  as 
suitable  to  the  magnitude  of  the  occasion,  an  angel  at  the 
head ,  and  another  at  the  feet,  of  the  position  which  Jesus  had 
occupied;  and  who  uttered  the  words  of  our  text,  He  is  not 
here,  for  he  is  risen?  Do  they  not  aissert  that  Jesus  himself 
appeared  to  two  of  them  as  they  journeyed  towards  Emaus ; 
and  entering  into  conversation  with  them  revealed  himself  to 
them,  till  they  would  constrain  him  to  abide  with  them,  and  that 
on  this  occasion  he  told  them  all  things  which  he  spake  to  them 
whilst  he  was  with  them,  from  the  law,  the  psalms,  and  the 
prophets,  concerning  himself? — a  conversation  interlacing - 
with  former  situations  and  occurrences,  which,  at  this  early 
stage  of  the  report  of  a  resurrection,  bestowed  the  most  dis- 
criminating opportunity  of  awakening,  by  certain  criteria, 
jealousies,  or  of  confirming  belief. — Do  they  not  further  aver 
that  he  appeared  to  the  eleven,  as  they  were  in  the  best  con- 
dition for  recognizing  who  he  was — as  they  sat  at  meat,  all 
composed,  and  in  readiness,  to  make  just  observations?  Do 
they  not  assert  that  to  a  part  of  them  he  showed  himself  af- 
terwards ;  and  who  durst  not  now  ask  who  he  was — knowing, 
by  their  familiarity  with  him,  that  he  was  their  Lord?  Yea,  do 
they  not  proclaim  that  they  all  accompanied  him  as  far  as 
Bethany,  whfere,  receiving  bis  best  blessing,  they  witnessed 
^lat  naturally  to  be  expected  consequence  of  a  resurrection,  his 
ascension  into  heaven,  by  parting  from  them,  and  a  cloud  re- 
ceiving him  out  of  their  sight? — Do  they  not  tell  us  that  he 
remained  forty  days  on  eartli  after  his  resurrection,  speaking 


54  Christ's  resurrection. 

too  of  those  things  that  pertained  to  that  kingdom  of  God 
which  he  had  instituted? — And  by  consequence  affording 
many  stages  of  particular  interrogation  and  of  recurrence  to 
former  times — points,  as  aheady  intimated,  of  observation  that 
could  not  by  men  of  common  understanding  be  mistaken. 
I  see,  on  one  occasion,  for  instance,  Peter  standing  surround- 
ed by  his  companions,  and  I  hear  Jesus  exciting  the  curiosity, 
and  trying  the  faith  and  fortitude  of  Peter,  by  alluding  to  a 
circumstance  of  affecting  and  intricate  remembrance,  and  re- 
peating it  again  and  again,  as  he  stands  an  object  of  the  highest 
veneration  before  the  company, — Simon  son  of  Jonas,  lovest 
thou  me? 

Yes,  christians,  the  witnesses  of  the  resurrection  particular- 
ly assert,  that  Christ  himself  challenged  their  attention  in  the 
highest  exercise  of  its  powers  in  conversation,  and  also  to  an 
examination  of  those  unerring  marks,  by  which  they  could  not 
fail  to  ascertain  both  the  reality  and  identity  of  his  person. 
He  saluted  them,  i^t  is  said,  saying  peace  be  unto  you,  and  in 
this  calm  and  fiiendly  disposition,  he  stood  before  them,  and 
showed  them,  they  say,  his  hands  and  his  side.  Yea,  they  add, 
tliat  the  incredulity  of  Thomas  was  overcome,  before  the  eyes 
of  them  all,  by  his  compliance  with  this  affecting  exhortation, — 
Thomas  reach  hither  thy  finger,  and  behold  my  hands;  and 
reach  hither  thy  hand,  and  thrust  it  into  my  side,  and  be  not 
faithless  but  believing.  In  a  word  the  disciples  have  cleai'ly 
declared  that  they  both  had  it  and  improved  every  opportu- 
nity of  satisfying  themselves  respecting  the  fact  of  the  resur- 
rection of  their  own  great  teacher  and  master,  who  was  so 
recently  crucified; — and  who,  besides  the  usual  wounds  of 
crucifixion,  presented  a  deep  wound  in  his  side,  which  had 
been  pierced  to  ascertain  whether  a  member  and  feature  of  the 
deceased  would  writhe  from  remains  of  life  in  the  centre  of  the 
human  frame. 

Our  third  inquiry  was,  Is  there  a  sufficient  number  of  wit- 
to  vouch  for  this  great  fact,  and  are  these  consistent  in 


Christ's  REstTRREcnoN.  65 

their  testimony?  In  an  affair  of  ordinary  and  frequent  oc- 
currence, the  testimony  of  one  man  of  credit  and  character, 
about  any  mat  er  of  fact,  is  sufficient  to  procure  our  assent; 
but  where  the  case  is  such  as  falls  seldom  under  observaticm 
corroborative  evidence  becomes  necessary.  If  it  be  a  matter  of 
extraordinary  occurrence,  and  above  the  course  of  the  common 
operations  of  nature,  we  cannot  rely  on  less  than  the  concurrent 
testimony  of  severals.  To  rest,  in  such  an  extraordinary  and 
plainly  miraculous  instance  as  that  of  the  resurrection  of  Jesus, 
on  the  testimony  of  one  man,  however  well  his  character  in 
every  respect  for  a  witness  might  be  established,  would  evi- 
dently, in  the  view  of  all  considerate  men,  be  to  incur  the 
imputation  of  credulity.  In  estimating  its  evidence,  then,  it 
is  indispensably  necessary  for  our  own  satisfaction,  that  we 
know  that  there  is  a  sufficient  number  of  vouchers  to  attest 
this  momentous  fact. — But  respecting  this  we  cannot  hesitate. 
We  have  the  concurrent  testimony  of  the  eleven  disciples, 
with  many  others.  These  all  saw  him  after  his  resurrection, 
they  all  conversed  with  him,  and  they  all  examined,  or  saw 
examined,  the  wounds  of  his  crucifixion. — It  is  in  vain  to  say 
in  attenuation  of  this  evidence,  that  all  these  have  not  left  us 
a  record  of  it.  The  resurrection  is  attested  by  all  those  who 
have  written,  both  in  their  histories  and  epistolary  writings, 
either  in  express  language  or  in  presupposed  and  granted 
principles  and  allusions ;  and  the  other  witnesses  are  often  men- 
tioned and  their  names  particularised ;  and  would  the  writers 
of  the  New  Testament  have  done  this,  had  they  not  stated 
about  them  an  irrefragable  truth  ?  Would  not  enemies  have 
told  them  that  they  were  fools  and  worse  than  madmen,  to  par- 
ticularise -fikssoci^tes  whom  they  knew  either  not  to  have  exist- 
ence at  all,  or  to  be  the  very  opposite  of  those  witnesses  they 
were  affirming  them  to  be?  Does  not  this  particularly  appear 
to  be  the  ease,  when  we  reflect  that  their  names  are  all  men- 
tioned, as  for  a  long  time  previous  to  his  death  attendants  of 
Christ;  attendants  too,  who  are  all  reassembled  after  hig  re- 


66 

surrection  and  asserted  to  be  present  at  his  appearances ;  at- 
tendants who  remain  associated  together  till  they  have  con- 
verted thousands  that  are  to  read  and  examine  the  written 
assertions  repecting  the  primary  witnesses  of  the  great  fact  of 
the  resurrection;  attendants,  many  of  whom  are  alive,  long  after 
the  writings  appear,  and  can  either  confirm  or  refute  the 
assertions  respecting  themselves?  Indeed  it  is  demonstrable 
that  the  case  of  the  resurrection  of  Christ  can  never  be  reject- 
ed for  want  of  a  sufficient  number  of  witnesses  to  attest  it; 
and  whilst  all  the  writers  of  the  New  Testament  relate  the 
fact  of  the  resurrection  expressly,  except  James  and  Jude, 
who  presuppose  and  allude  to  it,  as  the  ground  of  all  their  ex- 
ertions and  writings, — The  truth  is,  that  many  of  these 
writings  of  the  New  Testament  are  epistles  directed  to  parti- 
cular societies  or  individuals ;  and  so  most  in  con  trover  tibly 
lead  us  to  the  origin  of  the  New  Testament  scripture,  in  the 
very  age  in  which  the  facts  that  are  related  in  them,  took 
place; — and  hence,  the  genuineness  of  these  books,  as  written 
by  those  authors  whose  names  they  bear; — a  circumstance, 
which,  though  not  of  vital  importance,  is  yet  morally  certain, 
and  never  was  even  attempted  to  be  denied  by  infidels  in  the 
first  age  of  Christianity. 

Is  it  suspected  that  the  historians  of  Jesus  are  embarrassed 
in  their  testimony?  The  scriptures,  it  must  be  observed,  are 
supposed  revealed  for  the  use  of  man  to  the  end  of  time;  and, 
to  make  it  obvious  that  their  contents  are  written  by  different 
hands,  it  is  necessary,  that  they  present  not  merely  a  variety 
of  style;  but  also  that  freedom,  which,  whilst  it  moves  free  of 
contradiction,  manifests  a  liberty  of  choice,  by  each,  of  mate- 
rials, so  as  to  mark  his  production  a  distinct  production,  and 
worthy  of  a  place  amongst  the  rest.  This  principle  must  have 
been  particularly  kept  in  view  amongst  the  writers  of  the  life 
of  Christ;  since  the  taste  of  men  in  their  own  day  called  for 
all  the  variety  that  could  assemble  with  consistency,  in  order 
to  procure  a  perused  to  contemporary  histories  of  the  same 


chrkt's  bisuerhc^on.  57 

individual;  and  since  the  jealousy  of  distant  future  ages  could 
not  be  suppressed,  without  enlisting  all  the  prudence  that  could 
make  arrangements  to  scatter  the  appearances  of  contrivance 
and  design.  You  ought  to  remember  that  a  liberty  of  trans- 
lating into  their  pages,  from  the  great  mass  of  materials  that 
on  the  field  of  events  lie  before  them,  the  particulars  which 
seem  to  them  most  proper,  and  of  dispensing  with  many  others, 
is  a  privilege  which  all  historians  vindicate  as  belonging  unto 
them.  This  is  more  especially  the  case  with  those  who  pro- 
fessedly give  an  abridgment  only  of  transactions;  and  above 
all,  with  contemporary  abridgers,  who  all  write  to  be  esteemed 
useful,  and  to  be  read.  Hence  a  variety  in  the  narration  of 
the  incidents  of  his  life,  and  of  the  circumstances  attending 
his  death  and  resurrection,  is  necessarily  to  be  anticipated  in 
the  historians  of  Jesus:  a  variety  which,  whilst  it  is  disentan- 
gled, must  comport  with  their  respective  desires  to  be  perused, 
and  esteemed,  and  with  their  obvious  design  of  particular  dis- 
tinct histories,  and  yet  all  marked  abbreviations.  The  appli- 
cation of  some  or  all  of  these  principles  affords  a  key  to  open 
the  most  intricate  interference  among  the  historical  accounts 
of  the  life,  death,  and  resurrection  of  Christ. 

Much  has  been  objected  by  infidels  to  the  different  relations 
of  the  evangelists  respecting  the  supernatural  appearances  or 
angels,  who  attended  on  the  occasion  of  the  resurrection,  and 
who  addressed  the  women  that  went  soon  after  the  moment  at 
which  it  happened  to  the  sepulchre,  and  informed  them  of  its 
having  taken  place.  Thus  Matthew  says,  that  there  was  one 
angel,  that  descended,  and  rolling  back  the  stone,  sat  upon  it; 
Mark  says,  that  there  was  a  young  man,  clothed  in  long  white 
raiment,  and  in  the  tomb ;  Luke  says,  that  there  were  in  the 
tomb  two  men  in  shining  garments;  and  John  says,  that  there 
were  two  angels  in  the  tomb,  the  one  at  the  head,  and  the 
other  at  the  feet,  of  the  position  which  Jesus  had  occupied. 
But,  it  is  evident,  that  both  Mark  and  Luke  suppose  their  ap- 
pearances in  human  shape  to  spring  from  an  unexpected  and 


5S  chkist's  resttrreciiok, 

supernatnral  origin;  whilst  Matthew  and  John  speak  of  their 
angels  as  assuming  particular  positions  which  a  bodily  frame 
only  can  occupy.  Remembering  this  fact,  we  have  only  fur- 
ther to  recollect,  in  order  to  see  the  consistency  of  their  varia- 
tions here,  that  the  Hebrews,  when  they  spoke  of  angels  ap- 
pearing in  human  shape,  indifferently  called  them,  as  in  the 
case  of  their  famous  visit  to  Abraham  and  Lot,  men  or  angels  f 
and  that  in  many  instances  of  the  mission  of  angels,  there  is  a 
chief  in  the  delegation ,  who  sometimes  engrosses  the  appella- 
tion to  himself,  and  sometimes  is  only  classed  with  his  as- 
sociates ;  as,  in  the  same  instances  of  Abraham  and  Lot's  men 
or  angels,  who  are  again  and  again  mentioned,  in  the  recital  of 
the  same  transactions,  both  in  the  plural  and  singular  number. 
For,  let  me  remark,  there  is  not  the  shadow  of  an  incon- 
sistency in  their  accounts  of  the  position  of  these  angels  at  the 
trnie  the  women  arrived  at  the  sepulchre.  The  women,  it  is 
beyond  a  doubt,  did  not  arrive  till  some  short  time  after  the 
resurrection; — a  period  from  the  descent  of  Matthew's  angel 
and  from  his  rolling  back  the  stone  and  sitting  upon  it,  more 
than  sufficient  to  permit  his  removal  into  the  sepulchre;  where 
all  the  other  historians  speak  of  the  abode  of  this  heavenly  de* 
putation  at  the  moment  of  the  women's  arrival. 

But,  my  brethren,  what  I  would  particularly  remark  to  you 
here  is,  that  whilst,  with  all  of  their  profession,  the  historians  of 
Christ  exercise  a  distinguishing  prudence  in  the  choice  of  those 
particulars  they  are  to  narrate  respecting  its  concomitant  circum- 
stances, they  all  assert,  most  positively,  the  main  point,  the  re- 
surrection itself  There  is  the  utmost  freedom  of  heart  appa- 
rent in  all  their  declarations  of  this,  and  the  utmost  ardor 
shown  to  present  it  as  the  centre  around  which  all  their  powers 
of  belief  are  collected  and  gathered  together.  No  reader  of 
the  New  Testament  can  peruse  its  pages,  without  seeing  that 
the  alleged  fact  of  a  risen  Saviour,  is  the  call  which  reassembles 
his  disciples;  is  the  spirit  which  animates  them  unto  a  unity 
of  proposed  exertions;  is  the  bond  which  binds  them,  in  all 


CHRISTY'S    EESUREECTIOX,  59 

regions,  with  equal  firmness  to  the  same  cause;  is  the  object 
wliich  inspires  them  to  write  of  Jesus  of  Nazareth ;  and  is  the 
foundation  on  which  they  would  build  the  whole  of  that  society 
they  are  travelling  so  far  and  wide  to  establish. 

Oar  fourth  and  last  inquiry  is,  Are  the  witnesses  of  Christ's  re- 
surrection men  of  moral  honesty;  and  in  the  propagation  of  this 
doctrine  are  they  without  ail  intentions  to  deceive?  This  is  the 
great  point  now  to  be  established.  For  if  the  resurrection  is 
an  event  possible,  and  if  it  may  be  effected  by  the  cause  to 
which  it  is  ascribed;  if  the  disciples  were  competent  witnesses 
to  ascertain  this  great,  inviting,  and  prominent  fact;  if  they 
have  declared  that  they  both  had  and  improved  every  desira- 
ble opportunity  of  ascertaining  it,  by  all  the  unerring  marics 
which  a  risen  friend  and  master,  absent  part  only  of  three  days, 
and  bearing  the  green  wounds  of  crucifixion,  could  present:  if 
as  a  cloud  of  contemporaneous  and  personal  witnesses  they 
hive  roost  unfeignedlv  declai'ed  that  they  did  ascertain  it; — it 
will  follow,  if  they  are  not  determined  to  urge  an  imposition 
upon  the  world,  that  the  matter  of  their  concurrent  testimony  is 
entitled  to  our  belief,  and  the  rejection  of  it  is  highly  un- 
rCvisonable,  But  how  sincere,  and  fully  persuaded  of  the  truth 
of  what  they  propagated  they  were,  will  clearly  appear  from  the 
following  considerations. 

Had  they  been  hypocritical  impostori?,  how  could  they  have 
given  us  so  many  excellent  instructions  as  they  have  done  m 
their  writings?  Had  they  been  men  of  this  description  would 
they  have  been  so  careful  to  have  their  writings  so  replete  with 
&o  many  excellent  moral  precepts  and  so  many  pious  sentiments  ? 
In  this  character,  could  they  have  exix)sed  vice  in  so  odious  a 
light,  and  have  been  ever  so  watchful  to  drag  into  view  and 
reprobate,  with  such  a  sincere  countenance,  the  ways  and  mo- 
tives that  conduct  unto  itf  Would  such,  impossible!  have 
portrayed  it  in  all  its  aggravated  circumstances  in  their  own 
cases?  Could  feigned  characters  have  explained  so  clearly  to 
ii»  the  reality  of  the  hidden  religion  of  theljeart?    Or  would 


60 

they,  in  a  word,  have  breathed  in  all  their  writings  such  a  sa- 
vor of  genuine  unpolluted  holiness? 

But  what  I  have  now  mentioned  I  intend  as  presumptive 
evidence  only, — L bring  human  nature  to  bear  testimony,  by 
all  her  possible  capacities  of  acting,  to  the  sincerity  of  the 
apostles  of  Christ.  And  be  it  remembered  that  all  I  am  proving 
on  this  head,  is, — That  the  apostles  were  men  of  moral  hones- 
ty and  had  no  intentions  to  deceive.  My  brethren,  had  not 
the  apostles  been  thoroughly  persuaded  of  the  certainty  and 
truth  of  the  fact  which  they  propagated,  is  it  credible  that  such 
a  number  of  them,  after  having  been  so  easily  dispersed  by  the 
melancholy  prospect  on  the  cross,  would  have  all  reassembled 
and  united  to  propagate  the  greatest  falsehood  that  ever  was 
imposed  upon  the  world ;  and  that  every  individual  of  them  af- 
terwards, should,  in  the  midst  of  the  most  discouraging  difficul- 
ties and  dangers,  and  even  under  the  arm  of  death,  have 
continued  to  assert,  maintain  and  propagate  this  most  palpable 
falsehood,  though  little  honor,  wealth,  or  prospect  of  promotion 
of  any  kind,  could  operate  to  purchase  his  perseverance?  Ne- 
ver did  it  happen  in  another  case,  tliat  even  one  man,  far  less 
a  number  of  men,  all  at  the  same  time,  and  about  the  same 
affair,  were  of  so  odd  a  turn  of  mind;  so  easily  attached  to  a 
glaring  scheme  of  imposture;  and  then  so  stubborn  and  so  de- 
void of  the  common  principles  and  feelings  of  humanity  in  his 
dissemination  of  it;  so  bold  in  the  face  of  every  enemy,  so  nn- 
shackled  by  the  remonstrances  of  friends ;  so  ready  to  tear  him- 
self from  the  bosoms  of  the  most  intimate  relations — all  to 
sound  abroad  a  known  and  fabricated  falsehood ;  proclaim  it 
too,  at  the  peril  of  his  own  reputation,  at  the  expense  of  that 
ease  which  we  all  ultimately  seek;  at  the  risk  from  daily  in- 
creasing persecutors  of  his  own  life,  and  under  those  sad  anti- 
cipations of  an  awful  reckoning  at  last  which  even  the  hypocrite 
must  often  feel. 

Zoroaster,  the  author  of  the  superstition  of  the  Chaldeans, 
indeed,  maintained  some  of  tJie  grossest  errors  he  at  first  broael> 


CSRIST^S    REStrRE^C-flON.  61 

ed,  and  propagated  them  till  the  day  of  his  death.  But  in  this 
there  was  nothing  wonderful.  He  had  few  and  feeble  ene- 
mies to  encounter ;  the  most  exalted  and  powerful  princes  and 
nobles,  in  most  of  the  circumjacent  regions,  soon  appeared 
upon  his  side.  As  a  reward  of  his  perseverance,  his  ambition, 
his  ease,  his  convenience,  his  honor,  his  worldly  interest,  had 
all  a  prospect,  daily  brightening  too,  that  they  w^ere  to  be  ef- 
fectually consulted.  To  stand  the  first  man  in  ecclesiastical 
matters  in  all  the  kingdoms  of  the  east;  to  appoint  laws  and 
ordinances  which  as  lights  from  his  singular  wisdom  were  to 
be  received ;  and  to  behold  kings,  princes,  and  magistrates, 
look  up  to  him  for  laws,  liberty,  and  instruction,  were  the  pow- 
erful motives  which  influenced  and  led  forward  the  conduct  of 
this  ancient  and  admired  chief  of  the  wise  men  of  the  east.^ — 
Besides  they  were  doctrines,  not  obvious  facts,  which  this  phi- 
losophical individual  strove  to  establish;  and  great  as  his  mind 
was,  many  of  his  errors  might  have  beguiled  him  into  a  belief 
of  their  better  foundation,  either  by  their  venerable  parentage 
for  many  generations  among  the  nations  whence  he  imported 
them,  or  by  those  specimens  of  plausibility  by  which  error  so 
frequently  imposes  upon  the  greatest  of  mankind. 

Similar  things  must  be  said  of  Mahomet,  that  false  though 
admired  prophet,  among  the  nations  which  he  deceived.  This 
extraordinary  man  exhibits  a  mixture  often  operative  though 
seldom  so  successful  in  human  nature,  of  insatiable  desires  of 
glory  and  power,  of  carnal  gratifications  and  delights,  and  of 
religious  respects,  on  the  one  hand;  and  on  the  other,  of  that 
wild  enthusiasm  which  creates  to  itself  heavenly  nsions,  cul- 
tivates an  intercourse  with  them ;  and  then  devotes  all  time  and 
talents  in  obedience  to  their  supposed  mandates.  Even  in 
some  of  his  alterations  and  changes  of  formerly  written  revela- 
tions which  lead  the  unreflecting  reader  of  the  Koran  to  won- 
der at  the  stubborn  impudence  of  the  Arabian  impostor,  there 
appears  to  be  no  less  the  operations  of  a  heated  imagination, 
fiauringto  itself  heaven  subduing  all  inconsistencies  to  gratify 

6* 


62  Christ's  resurrection. 

the  desires,  and  to  supply  the  wants  of  its  greatest  favorite,  than 
of  that  inclination  which  so  visibly  reaches  forth  its  hand  to 
turn  an  acquired  exalted  station  to  administer  to  the  tastes 
and  passions,  it  is  known,  can  now  be  gratified.     A  vast  fabric 
has  been  erected  by  Mahomet,  but  its  loosely  jointed  parts  are 
obviously  the  brood  of  an  imagination  which  had  been  active 
in  silence;  whose  images  brightened   daily  and  gathered  life 
upon  it;  which  had  returns  of  those  that  were  most  congenial,   ' 
till  it  bowed  in  reverence  and  heard  their  divine  mandates; 
which  led  to  withdraw  into  retirement  till  all  was  supposed  de- 
livered that  was  to  qualify  the  legislator ; — and  which  after  suc- 
cess   commanded  by  other  powers  and  this  confidently  inspi- 
red preparation,  believed  alteration  to  succeed  alteration  among 
his  former  revelations,  in  order  to  reward  so  prosperous  and  high- 
ly favored  a  messenger  of  heaven  .^I  ascribe  the  success  of  Ma- 
homet to  other  causes  than  to  his  wild  enthusiasm ;  because,  in  his 
instance,  there  were  many  other  causes  that  evidently  operated ; 
and  are,  indeed,  sufficient  to  account  for  all  the  spirit  and  fury 
of  his  perseverance,  although  we  should  suppose  that  he,  as  an 
individual,  started  from  motives  of  imposture  only.     The  pri- 
vate fortune  of  the  Arabian,  previous  to  his  assumption  of  the 
character  of  the  prophet  of  God,  was  great  and  influential :  His 
uncle,  who  though  late  in  becoming  a  convert,  yet  in  all  dangers 
of  the  early  part  of  his   progress  proclaimed  himself  his  pro- 
tector, was  a  great  and  powerful  prince;  and  could,  and  did 
effectually  protect  him :  And  he  was  early  inured  to  warfare, 
which,  it  is  known,  he  soon  applied  to  the  propagation  of  his 
religion ;  and  the  success  of  which  promised  always  to  raise 
him,  and  soon  did  so,  to  the  highly  gratifying  station  of  being 
the  prince  and  priest  of  his  people.     Once  start  the  son  of  Ab- 
dallah,  and  every  motive  that  lies  within  his  view  points  to  per- 
severance, and  comes  in  the  lines  that  will  push  him  forward. — 
The  honor  of  the  last  and  greatest  prophet  of  God ;  the  glory  of 
ihe  founder  of  a  new  religion;  the  influence  which  his  own  cir- 
cumstances can  procure  him;  the  protection  that   bis  uncle 


christ''s  resurrection.  63 

actually  affords  him ;  the  spirit  which  the  manner  in  which  he 
enrols  the  names  of  proselytes  inspired ;  all  attest  the  known 
principles  in  human  nature  on  which  this  great  deceiver  propa- 
gated his  cause.     I  ask,  is  it  possible  for  the  common  prin- 
ciples of  human  action  to  stop  the  course  which  is  once  bo- 
gun,  bribed,  solicited,  and  steeled  to  further  exertions,  as  both 
the  early  and  more  late  progress  of  Mahomet's  ambition,  enthu- 
siasm, or  military  renown,  is  perceived  to  be?     He  has  great 
difficulties  to  encounter,  and  at  length  his  life  is  threatened 
more  than  once;  but  by  this  time  he  is  a  warrior;  and  are  not 
the  glancing  of  arms,  the  parade  of  martial  order,  the  noise  of 
musters,  the  hardships  of  marches,  the  dangers  of  baUle,  what 
breathe,  independent  of  all  other  causes,  a  spirit  into  man, 
which  leads  to  its  own  cultivation ;  and  when  the  laurels  of 
victory  have  already  adorned  the  brow,  can  any  thing  farther 
be  needful  to  keep  for  ever  the  name  of  the  first  captain  on  the 
roll  of  danger? 

But,  my  brethren,  very  different  from  the  situations  no^ 
described,  were  those  of  the  continually  persevering  disciples 
of  Jesus.  They  could  not  be  mistaken  respecting  the  matter 
they  propagated — it  was  no  doctrine  formerly  disputed  or  re- 
ceived amongst  men,  nor  was  it  a  delusion  that  could  rise  by 
degrees  upon  their  rehgious  feelings  by  the  assistances  of  fan- 
cy ;  it  was  a  palpable  matter  of  fact ;  a  matter  to  be  turned  and 
examined  on  all  sides  by  marks  that  their  senses  and  their  rea- 
son could  not  mistake.  On  a  doctrinal  point,  the  greatest 
mind  may  be  deceived,  and  a  single  imagination  may  burst  into 
a  blaze  of  enthusiasm  by  the  images  that  court  admittance  into 
it ;  but  in  the  concurrent  matter  of  the  testimony  of  the  apos- 
tles, we  have  a  fact  only ;  a  fact  that  invites  to  its  examination 
their  reason  and  their  senses;  and  which,  as  it  is  impossible  to 
suppose  such  a  number  transported  into  a  trance  of  enthusiasm 
in  a  moment,  so  it  presents  none  of  that  unsettledness  in 
which  imagination  wanders  when  it  loses  itself  in  religious 
frenzy,  but  it  ties  down  every  power  of  their  minds  to  a  palpa- 
ble object  of  observation  only. 


64 

Is  it  said  that  they  started  and  pursued  their  course  from 
the  glory  of  being  the  founders  of  a  new  religion  ?    An  indivi- 
dual may  arise,  feel  his  ambition,  and  swear  undaunted  perse- 
verance from  such  a  motive: — But  could  a  number  of  men  do 
so?     Could  a  number  of  men,  collected  together  as  Christ's 
disciples  were,  and  untutored  as  their  education  proclaims  them 
to  be,  do  so?     Could  they  rJl  agree  to  remain  on  the  same 
level,  and  would  never  an  one  of  them  feel  an  ambition  to  out- 
strip the  rest  of  his  companions?  Teeming  with  the  vanity  of 
imposing  upon  the  whole  world,  are  these  men  so  profoundly 
artful  that  they  will  never  show  a  shadow  of  desire  to  pilfer 
from  one  another  a  portion  of  that  glory  which  is  so  dear  to 
them  in  its  divided  state?     If  the  disciples  of  Christ  buy  the 
renown  of  founders  of  a  pure  religion  at  the  expense  of  present 
reputation,  ease,  and  life,  can  it  be  supposed,  that  these  men, 
these  men  thus  breathing  ambition  only,  would  all  seek  a  por- 
tion, and  a  small  portion  only,  of  the  general  stock  in  the  firm 
of  glory  which  belongs  to  the  apostles?  Do  men  thus  peaceably 
trade  in  the  world  of  ambition,  and  thus  for  many  years,  though 
in  different  circumstances  and  possessed  of  different  talents, 
yet  remain   the  contented  and  humble  sharers  of  a  general 
treasury?     Can  ambition  thus  content  itself,  when  its  zeal  has 
snatched  up  a  falsehood,  for  the  maintenance  of  the  truth  of 
which,  against  conscience  and  honor,  life  is  sacrificed,  and 
when  after  long  fatigue  in  the  propagation  of  it,  contentions 
arise  and  reproofs  are  administerd  ?  Ambition  might  fire  Ma- 
homet and  other  individual  impostors,  with  a  desire  to  shine 
through  all  difficulties  and  dangers,  the  authors  of  a  new  reli* 
gion ;  but  we  think  it  impossible  that  this  ambition  could  enter 
into  the  minds  of  so  many  men  at  once,  and  the  peculiar 
aspiring  nature  of  the  principle  not  shoot  forth,  in  their  in- 
stances, into  that  individual  and  selfish  aggrandizement  which 
it  assumes  on  every  other  occasion  where  circumstances  can 
remonstrate  so  feebly  against  its  most  characteristic  operations. 
But  why  do  I  reason  in  this  manner?    What  glory  or  honor 
eould  possibly  accrue  to  the  undaunted  and  continually  per- 


Christ's  KEstRREcnoN..  $5 

severing  disciples  of  Jesus?  Was  not  the  fame  of  Jesus  grea* 
in  the  world  before  his  disciples  entered  upon  the  propagation 
of  their  cause ;  and  was  it  not  as  the  servants  of  this  renowned 
master  that  they  encountered  their  perils  and  death?  Jesus  of 
Nazareth,  a  man  mighty  in  word  and  deed,  is  the  confessed 
author  of  all  the  doctrines  they  preached,  the  precepts  they 
inculcated,  and  the  ordinances  to  which  they  challenged  an  at- 
tention ;  and  before  those  who  then,  or  ever  will,  believe  them, 
they  are  only  the  immediate  disciples  of  a  great  teacher  that 
obscures  them,  and  hides  them  in  his  shade;  whilst  before  their 
opponents,  they  are,  and  will  ever  be,  the  most  wretched  and 
vile  of  characters. — It  cannot  be  from  ambition  that  the  disci- 
ples of  Christ  enrol  in  a  common  cause  their  names ;  travel 
through  all  lands,  amidst  all  hardships  and  dangers;  and  ever 
with  their  life  in  their  hand  ready  to  be  laid  down  as  the  only 
stopping  place  they  will  allow  to  their  progress. 

But  is  it  said  that  the  prospect  of  worldly  protection  and  ag- 
grandizement bought  their  singular  and  unwearied  endeavors? 
No  protection,  no  emolument,  no  preferment,  could  long  in  the 
propagation  of  their  undertaking,  be  expected  from  the  princes 
^nd  great  ones  of  the  earth  by  those  that  could  not  expect  them 
and  did  not  receive  them  at  the  origin  of  their  undertaking. 
The  treasures  of  the  rich  and  powerful  never  opened  to  the 
first  preachers  of  the  gospel.  Where  they  staged  all  the  great 
and  influential  were  already  exasperated  against  them  and  rea- 
dy to  destroy  them  for  the  very  name  which  they  proclaimed* 
And  in  all  places  of  the  world  the  discouraging  faces  of  want 
and  poverty  soon  presented  themselves  as  the  only  supposablfl 
circumstances  in  which  they  could  ever  afterwards  struggle 
^^f'ith  their  cause.  My  brethren,  the  whole  history  of  the  dis- 
ciples, and  their  declarations,  in  their  epistles,  before  thousands 
in  their  own  day,  who  could  easily  have  contradicted  them, 
instead  of  receiving  their  statements  on  this  head  as  the  dic- 
tates of  inspiration,  show  us  that  the  apostles  did  not  act  from 
pure  principles  of  avarice;  whilst,  let  me  add,  that  instead  of 


66  Christ's  kesubrectiojn. 

being  allured  m  any  respect  by  the  protection  of  the  rulers  and 
nobles  of  the  world,  they  receive,  wherever  they  show  their 
countenances  and  broach  tlieir  cause,  scarcely  any  thing  but 
contempt,  insult,  threatening,  imprisonment,  scourging,  and 
death.  Men  that  started  from  concerted  measures  of  avarice, 
and  schemes  of  applause  from  the  governors  of  nations,  could 
not,  all,  long  have  pocketed  this  sheer  emptiness  of  disappoint- 
ment, and  all  this  catalogue  of  evils  and  death  into  the  bargain. 

Is  it  suspected  that  they  were  warmed  into  a  forgetfulness  of 
the  main  subject,  by  the  activity,  the  promises  and  dangers  of 
distinct  and  collateral  pursuits?  A  practice  of  this  nature  it  is 
possible  to  engraft  on  the  principles  of  human  nature.  Ma- 
homet's military  glory  and  activity  were  quite  sufficient,  accord*- 
ing  to  the  laws  of  human  action,  to  nourish  his  zeal  and  perse- 
verance towards  the  close  of  his  life,  even  on  the  supposition 
that  he  commenced  his  course  from  entirely  different  motives. 
But  it  ought  to  be  remembered,  that  the  disciples  of  Christ 
had  none  of  the  activity,  the  splendor,  or  renown  of  a  hero,  to 
gather  up  all  reflections  to  the  present  moment  and  impending 
pressures  of  futurity;  and  to  make  them  forget  vs^hat  was  the 
primary  and  professed  object  of  their  undertaking.  Were  the 
disciples  impostors,  they  kept  the  only  thing  which  could  have 
been  the  most  galling  and  teasing  to  their  feelings  always  be- 
fore  their  eye;  and,  wonderful  indeed !  they  never  sought  to  taste 
of  the  least  solace  under  this  image  of  their  hyi3ocrisy,  in  all  tho 
various  expedients  of  human  contrivance. 

Thus,  my  brethren,  if  the  apostles  were  not  acting  in  the 
cause  they  propagated  as  honest  men,  seriously  convinced  that 
what  they  affirmed  was  the  truth,  they  all  acted  a  part  the  most 
singular  and  without  a  parallel  in  the  whole  history  of  man. 
It  proceeded  from  such  motives  as  no  other  ever  practised  upon, 
and  on  these  motives  it  was  pursued  with  a  constancy  of  which 
the  most  engaging  and  profitable  inducements  have  seldom 
furnished  us  an  example.  The  poor,  the  despised,  the  perse- 
cuted apostles,  take  up,  knowingly  and  deliberately,  a  most  dis- 


Christ's  resurrection.  67 

reputable  and  execrated  topic,  the  resurrection  of  a  crucified 
inipostor;  about  this  they  all  agree  at  once-  honor  does  not  in- 
duce them  to  propagate  it,  wealth  does  not  bribe  them,  security 
does  not  allure  them;  on  the  other  side,  poverty  hangs  upon 
tliem,  imprisonments  arrest  them,  awful  deaths  thin  their  num- 
bers, and  yet  to  the  last  they  are  zealous  and  unshaken.  Hence, 
christians,  I  am  forced  to  allow,  that  to  have  thus  pursued 
such  a  conduct,  as  supposing  them  disingenuous  they  must 
have  done,  would  have  been  to  counteract,  in  their  instances, 
in  the  most  violent  manner,  and  for  a  long  tract  of  time,  the 
constituent  principles  of  action  in  human  nature— on  wliich 
mankind  in  all  ages  have  judged  that  men  are  to  act,  and  which 
they  have  never  been  known  in  a  single  instance  so  far  to 
pervert. 

That,  however,  they  were  so  far  perverted  by  the  apostles  of 
of  our  holy  religion  I  would  now  demonstrate  impossible,  by 
an  appeal  to  the  principles  of  human  nature  in  every  man's 
own  breast.  Look  inwards,  my  brethren,  and  examine  and 
feel,  if  it  be  possible  for  human  nature  so  far  to  divest  herself 
of  her  common  desires,  her  rooted  inclinations,  and  her  ruling 
propensities?  Can  you  believe  that  the  apostles,  plain  and 
simple  fishermen  so  lately,  are  now  these  strange  monsters 
which  a  supposition  of  design  and  imposture  so  preeminently 
proclaim  them  to  be?  Where  truth  is  concerned,  indeed,  and 
conscience  is  about  to  be  injured,  there  are  often  surprising 
and  in  all  other  circumstances  incredible  heroism  and  stead- 
fastness displayed  by  the  human  mind  in  encountering  and 
overcoming  difficulties  and  dangers  of  every  kind.  A  sense  of 
duty  braces  and  fortifies  the  mind ;  and  suppresses  the  rising  bent 
of  natural  inclination,  fear,  and  self-love,- and  thus  will  keep  on 
the  arena  the  wrestler,  whatever  enemies  he  has  to  engage,  and 
whatever  wounds  he  may  receive  while  life  and  strength  remain. 
But  that  independent  of  this  principle,  yea,  in  direct  opposition 
to  It,  under  the  uneasiness  of  a  guilty  conscience,  a  number  of 
common  men ,  all  as  already  remarked,  at  the  same  time,  and 


03  Christ's  resttrhectton. 

about  the  same  affair,  should,  together  with  this  burden  of  a 
mind  inwardly  dissatisfied  with  their  cause,  without  any  known  or 
assignable  operating  motive,  encounter,  during  years,  every  hi- 
deous form  of  danger,  should  see  their  fellows  for  the  same  cause 
dismissed  from  the  abodes  of  light,  and  dismissed  by  the  most  dis- 
graceful and  excruciating  torments ;  should  be  in  prisons  and  un- 
der scourges  themselves^  and  yet  no  one  of  them,  during  fifty  or 
sixty  years,  should  seem  to  hesitate  even  in  the  prosecution  of  their 
undertaking;  but  should,  on  the  tide  of  years,  wax  bolder  and 
bolder,   and  proclaim  more  zealously  their  persecuted  truth; 
should  swear  to  it  at  his  own  block  and  on  his  own  cross ;  should, 
with  his  last  breath,  obtest  the  world  to  believe  him,  and  even 
to  die  thus  for  the  great  truth  the  world  must  receive.— That  a 
number  of  men,  I  say,  should  thus  start,  and  thus  for  ever  act, 
passes  all  the  bounds  of  credibility  with  any  reasonable  man. 
Will  any  bold  champions  of  the  infidel  world  assume  any  false 
tenets  they  please,  they  may  have  the  most  delightful  and  spe- 
cious, and  let  them  go  progagate  them  through  the  nations 
far  and  wide;  under  the   scorn  and  contempt,  till  the  termina- 
tion of  their  mortal  career,  of  the  virtuous  rulers  of  their  own 
country;  a  pestiferous  nuisance  by  their' unheard  of  novelties  in 
the  eyes  of  the  learned  and  great,  in  all  places  of  the  earth;  at 
the  expense  of  every  convenience,  at  the  combating  of  so  many 
dangers,  at  the  loss  of  many  of  their  own  lives,  at  the  daily 
peril  of  them  all,  and  then  returning  let  the  remainder  tell  us, 
that  it  is  possible  for  human  natuie  to  perform  such  an  incredi- 
ble and  tragical  scene  as  they  feign  the  witnesses  of  the  resur- 
rection of  Christ  to  have  done?  In  the  meantime,  we  pronounce 
that  their  stout  hearts  will  fail  them,  and  that  notwithstanding 
they  practise  on  the  principles  of  emulation,  yet,  in  their  in- 
stance, human  nature  will  declare  that  she  is  unable  for  such  a 
soul-abhorrent  undertaking. 

My  brethren,  almost  all  infidels  attack  the  honesty  of  the 
apostles.  They  seem  willing  to  grant  that  the  fact  of  the  ra- 
pid spread  of  the  gospel  in  the  first  age  of  Christianity  is  evi- 


CHRET's   BJStrREECTION,  69 

dence  that  there  were  a  sufficient  number  of  men  proclaiming 
it ;  and  they  can  with  no  steadfastness  assert  that  the  disciples 
could  not  most  undoubtedly  ascertain  whether  Christ,  who  had 
been  absent  from  them  only  part  of  three  days,  rose  from  the 
dead. — But  the  determined  deceit  and  hardihood  of  imposture 
of  the  apostles,  they  think,  introduced  that  mighty  revolution 
of  religious  sentiment  into  the  world,  which  took  place  eigh- 
teen hundred  years  ago. 

But  1  must  urge  this  view  of  the  subject  which  we  have  been 
taking.     Could,  oh!  infidels,  so  many  men  as  were  employed 
obviously  from   the  very  commencement  in  propagating  the 
resurrection  of  Christ,  have  been  enlisted,  by  their  own  volun- 
tary choice,  into  the  ranks  of  the  propagation  of  a  known  and 
fabricated  falsehood  ?     If  there  can  be  in  Asia,  Europe,  Africa, 
or  America,  so  many,  savage  or  reiBned,  learned  or  unlearned, 
collected  together  to  thinkseriously  even  of  propagating  among 
the  nations,  a  known  fabrication,  then,  I  will  venture,  oh! 
enemies  of  our  heavenly  bom  hopes,  to  stipulate  for  the  chris- 
tian world  that  they  will  renounce  their  faitt     And  I  will  ven- 
ture upon  another  proposal.     Supposing  so  many  men  to  start 
in  any  manner  whatsoever  which  exhibits  the  fact,  if  each  and 
all  of  them,  for  years,  wear  eountenances  of  sincerity,  speak 
the  very  feelings  of  the  heart,  and  die  under  the  robes  of  their 
solemn  mockery,  then  we  shall  permit  these  competitors  of  the 
apostles  to  ^tinguish  that  star  of  immortal  life  which  the  re- 
surrection of  Christ  has  brought  over  our  world,  and  to  bury 
in  the  dust  those  sublime  anticipations  which  our  fashioning 
like  to  his  glorious  body  begets. — But  till  this  takes  place,  we 
hold,  my  christian  brethren,  that  the  principles  of  human  na- 
ture, in  all  ages,  and  under  all  climes,  is  bearing  silent  testi- 
mony, solid  as  the  foundations  of  the  earth,  and  unextinguish- 
able  as  is  the  light  of  the  sun,  to  the  character  of  the  witnesses 
of  Christ's  resurrection,  and  to  the  divine  cause  Id  which  they 
were  engaged. 
7 


70  Christ's  resurrection, 

A  word  more,  my  brethren.  About  any  matter  of  fact  of 
importance,  all  the  connected  chcumstances  have  a  powerful 
kifiuence  in  regulating  and  confirming  our  assent.  But  as 
connected  with  every  other  affair  there  is  no  instance  in  which 
they  conduce  so  much  to  the  establishment  of  the  main  point 
aa  in  that  of  the  resurrection  of  Christ.  Could  more  suitable 
and  worthy  ends  be  proposed  to  be  attained  by  an  event,  or 
could  they  be  better  proportioned  to  its  importance,  than  those 
\¥h:ich  are  proposed  to  be  attained  by,  and  are  set  forth  as  the 
equitable  reasons  of  this  great  occurrence?  The  redemption 
of  the  world,  and  the  government  of  the  redeemed  society  by 
him  who  hath  established  it,  are  the  dignified  and  justly  pro- 
portioned ends,  proclaimed  to  be  attained  by  the  death,  and 
miraculous  resurrection  from  the  dead  of  man's  mediator. 

I>o  we  attend  to  the  circumstances  amidst  which  this  event 
took  place?     How  could  Jesus  be  absent  from  the  tomb  whilst 
soldiers  were  standing  over  it  to  prevent  the  felonious  endeav- 
ors of  former  friends, — in  any  other  way  than  what  we  have 
related  ?     After  the  affair  was  over  they  might  easily  adopt  any 
excuse  for  their  cowardice  or  inattention,  which   their  own 
ingenuity,  or  the  craft  of  others  might  suggest.     But  are  they 
not  driven  to  a  most  miserable  shift,  though  no  doubt  they 
adopted  the  most  plausible,  to  give  their  story  the  least  ap- 
pearance of  coloring?     The  best  that  they  can  say  is,  "His 
diijciples  stole  him  away  whilst  we  slept."     Wise  men,  who^ 
though  so  wrapt  up  in  a  profound  sleep,  that  the  necessary 
noise  of  rolling  -back  the  stone  from  the  sepulchre  could  not 
awake,  yet  heard,  and  saw,  in  the  midst  of  this  their  profound 
sleep,  and  remembered  and  could  tell  too,  with  the  morning's 
%fet,  the,  vei'y  conduct  and  its  quality,  which  the  disciples 
o^-Jesus  did  lead  I — They  stole  him  away  whilst  we  slept! 

Do  we  attend  to  the  consequences  which  followed?    How 
could  tlie  belief  of  a  ris^i  Saviour  have  so  rapidly  diffused  itself 


Christ's  restjrrecIion.  71 

on  all  sides,  if,  besides  the  disciples  having  countenances 
beaming  with  ardor  and  sincerity  on  all  occasions,  they  had  not 
had  an  evidence  correspondent  to  the  extraordinary  nature  of 
the  fact  they  propagated,  always  attending  them?  Nations, 
you  know,  were  subdued  at  once  and  kingdoms  as  in  one  day, 
by  the  power  and  prosperity  of  the  witnesses  of  Christ's  resur- 
rection. To  what  are  we  to  attribute  the  unexampled  suc- 
cess respecting  such  an  extraordinary  cause?  Is  it  not  to  a 
birth  of  miracles  which  succeeded  to  the  great  miracle  of  Christ's 
resurrection  m  the  persons  of  the  apostles,  who  wrote  and 
spike  daily  of  miraclss;  of  miracles  too  of  the  most  public  and 
palpable  nature,  and  which  could  not  but  be  scrutinized  by  the 
public  in  the  most  particular  manner?  Did  the  apostles  pro- 
claim the  wonder  of  the  resurrection  and  ascension  of  Christ, 
and  then  allege  their  own  sufficiency  to  work  miracles,  be  as- 
sured that  mankind  would  not  admit  an  imposition  to  be  pat 
upon  them  from  men  of  such  high  pretensions,  and  in  such  a 
serious  concern.  Enemies  in  that  age  of  general  superstition 
might  ascribe  the  miracles  of  Christ  and  of  his  apostles,  to  a 
malignant  cause,  and  thus  might  elude  the  force  of  the  miracl  es 
to  produce  a  conviction  in  their  mind  of  the  truth  of  the 
doctrines  in  a  subserviency  to  which  it  was  alleged  thev  were 
performed;  but  since  they  never  denied  the  fact  of  their  ex- 
istence, the  certainty  that  millions  were  converted  by  them 
and  always  acknowledged  their  history  as  even  the  dictates  of 
inspiration,  puts  it  beyond  doubt  that  these  miracles  did  take 
place;  and  that  the  unexampled  success  of  the  apostles  was 
owing  to  their  discerned  sincenty  in  asserting  the  resurrection, 
and  these  prominent  and  congenial  operations  which  could  be 
produced  by  their  hand.  Yes,  the  power  of  working  miracles, 
they  declared,  was  in  Clnist,  their  crucified  but  now  risen 
Saviour,  and  they  said  tliey  received  it  from  him;  and  all  men 
are  looking  to  this  long  contested  cause  of  half  a  century's 
standing  for  the  proofs  of  which  it  so  higlily  boasts,  and  this 


72  CSRIST's  eesurbection. 

is  given  them  till  in  every  quarter  the  morally  lame  world 
arise  and  walk. — Our  faith,  my  brethren,  is  in  God :  For,  it 
is  still  the  voice  of  heaven  which  continues,  and  will  to  every 
age  continue,  through  these  evidences  that  are  bright  as  the 
robe  of  the  angel,  to  say,  respecting  Christ  our  Saviour,  He  is 
not  here,  for  he  is  risen. — Amen. 


BISCOURSE  III* 


ON  THE  DIVINITY  OF  CHRIST. 


Heb.  1:6.     Let  all  the  angels  of  God  worship  him. 

Many  controversies,  my  brethren,  have  been  agitated  m 
the  christian  world  about  matters  of  little  moment.  Topics 
which  early  education,  in  a  divided  state  of  the  church,  has 
engrafted  upon  our  minds,  grow  up  v/ith  our  years,  and,  in 
respect  to  the  greater  part  of  professing  christians,  maintain  a 
strength  either  of  independent  or  of  associated  importance,  far 
beyond  that  to  which  enlightened  and  charitable  christians 
can  consider  them  entitled.  In  the  mind  of  man  there  is  a 
strong  and  operative  principle  of  self-love,  predominating  more 
secretly  in  some  than  in  others,  but  generally  in  a  higher  de- 
gree  in  the  leaders  of  parties  than  in  other  men  ,•  and  when  this 
principle  has  been  warmed  by  opposition  into  action,  whatever 
it  has  once  espoused,  must  be  protected,  with  equal  zeal  and 
tenacity;  and  thus  these  leaders,  who  have  always  some  re- 
tainers, devote  their  whole  talents  and  time  to  subjects  which 
appear  indeed  to  be  fairly  fought  into  importance,  but  which 
otherwise  could  never  interfere  with  christian  character,  with 
christian  duty,  nor  with  christian  happiness.  The  past  cen- 
tury and  the  present  have  presented  perhaps  more  instances  of 
the  honesty  but  frailty  of  the  human  mind  in  this  respect,  than 
all  the  ages  that  have  preceded  since  the  christian  en.  The 
wrangling  of  the  schools,  previous  to  the  introduction  of  the 
proper  naethod  of  philosophizing,  about  being  and  its  propei; 

7* 


/ 


74  Christ's  divinity. 

ties,  lost  itself  in  airy  distinctions  which  no  man  could  under- 
stand; but  after  all  these  absurdities  were  banished  from  purely 
philosophical  pursuits,  the  church,  in  many  corners,  with  aw- 
ful sublimity,  held  the  thunderbolts  of  her  power,  her  anathe- 
mas, over  the  heads  of  those  who  could  not  understand  the 
distinctions  of  leading  men,  and  who  would  not  speak  and  act 
respecting  these,  as  if,  in  the  eye  of  Providence,  they  were  the 
sum  total  of  present  truth. 

But  while,  with  the  general  voice  of  the  more  considerate 
and  pious,  we  regret  that  christian  fellowship  is  often  embitter- 
ed or  interrupted  by  a  zeal  that  outstrips  knowledge,  we  can- 
not agree  with  some,  that  all  controversy  is  foreign  to  Chris- 
tianity. The  zeal  of  the  prophets,  the  edge  of  the  expressions 
of  the  Prince  of  peace  himself,  the  attitudes  of  Paul  in  his 
fighting  the  good  fight  of  faith,  and  the  common  feelings  of  all 
parties  of  christians,  show  that  we  ought  not  tamely  to  permit 
the  foundations  to  be  destroyed. 

There  is  no  truth,  however  clear,  which  has  not  had  its  op- 
ponents. The  being  of  a  God,  the  existence  of  the  material 
world,  the  immortality  of  our  souls,  the  divinity  of  the  scrip- 
tures,  have  all  been  denied :  and  that  some  of  the  most  impor- 
tant truths  which  are  contained  in  these  scriptures  would  be 
denied,  is  what  every  reflecting  man,  from  the  principles  of 
human  nature  and  from  his  knowledge  of  its  tendencies,  would 
be  ready  to  predict:  nor  is  a  continued  and  determined  oppo- 
sirion  to  them,  any  presumption  against  their  truth,  any  more 
than  a  continued  and  bitter  opposition  is  a  presumption  that 
the  scriptures  are  not  the  word  of  God,  or  that  God  himself 
does  not  exist.  The  being  of  a  God  is  a  fundamental  truth 
iliroughout  the  universe,  the  existence  of  the  material  world 
IS  a  fundamental  truth  to  man  that  is  its  inhabitant,  the  in> 
mortality  of  intellectual  natures  is  a  fundamental  truth  to  all 
them  who  dread  annihilation;  and  the  son  is  not  more  neces- 
sary in  the  centre  of  the  planetary  system,  than  is  the  light  of 
knowledge,  respecting  the  character  of  Christ,  to  his  church. 


Christ's  DiviNiTr,  73 

The  opponents  of  the  divinity  of  our  Saviour  may  think  tha4 
our  error  is  but  an  error  of  the  judgment,  and  not  of  the  heart; 
and,  therefore,  like  other  errors  of  the  kind,  to  be  supposed 
entertained  without  depravity  and  ahenation  from  God:  but 
let  us  suppose  that  our  side  is  true,  and  that  this  truth  is  sup. 
ported  by  evidence. 

We  would  not  restrict  the  mercy  of  God,  but  if  he  did  love 
us  as  our  views  suppose,  if  our  Saviour  be  as  glorious  as  we 
believe,  if  he  humbled  himself,  as  we  think  we  see  that  he  did, 
if  he  has  bound  us  to  his  Father  and  to  himself  by  so  many 
expressions  of  authority  as  are  scattered  throughout  every  page 
of  his  word,  and  if  he  has  sanctioned  all  the  laws  of  faith  and 
the  covenant  of  his  church,  as  we  understand,  by  the  sanctions 
of  eternal  life,  and  eternal  misery,  themselves  being  judges, 
would  they  not  suppose  us  more  vile,  if  we  did  not  endeavor  to 
defend  these  doctrines,  than  they  can  suppose  the  doctrines 
themselves  10  be  erroneous  ?     Take  away  the  divinity  of  Christ 
and  that  which  is  necessarily  connected  with  it,  his  atonement, 
and  is  not  its  very  life,  in  our  view  of  Christianity,  destroyed? 
There  are  indeed  no  men  who  have  illustrated  the  relations  of 
moral  agents  and  who  have  spoken  of  the  extent  and  purity  of 
the  moral  law,  to  better  purpose,  than  those  who  believe  in  the 
divmity  of  the  Saviour;  and  there  are  no  men  whose  lives  have 
been  more  irreproachable;  but  take  out  of  their  system  of  re- 
ligious thoughts,  their  view  of  the  character   of  the  Son  of 
God  and  of  his  work,  and  you  leave  them  with  the  whole  uni- 
verse  essentially  changed;  God  is  not  the  same,  his  govern- 
ment  is  not  the  same,  their  motives  to  action  are  not  the  same, 
and  their  prospects  are  not  the  same.     Of  all  the  controver-' 
sies  that  can  arise  among  professing  cliristians,  there  is  none 
that  can  approximate  the  singular  preeminence  of  this  contro- 
versy.     Though  the  opponents  of  the  doctrine  of  Christ's  di- 
vinity  rest  secure  in  the  confidence  with  which  they  entertain 
their  sentiments;  yet,  they  must  see,  what,  we  think,  from  their 
own  familiarity  with  the  Saviour  as  a  mere  man,  they  are  apt  to 


75  Christ's  divinity, 

overlook  in  respect  to  us,  That  we  dare  not  deny  the  Lord 

who  bought  us,  but  must  defend  his  cause. 

In  deciding  any  controversy  it  is  necessary  that  there  ho 
some  fundamental  principles  in  which  both  parties  are  agreed. 
Now,  in  prosecuting  this  controversy,  we  declare,  that  it  is  our 
belief,  that  it  cannot  be  decided,  but  by  the  authority  of  revela- 
t^on      To  presume  that  we  can  decide  it  upon  principles  of 
natural  religion,  is  to  suppose  that  we  know  the  will  of  God 
mdependently  of  any  revelation,  and  that  revelation  itself  is  a 
superfluity,   'indeed,  so  obvious  is  it,  that  this  question  must 
be  decided  bv  revelation,  that  our  opponents  seem  to  concede 
this  to  us.     So  obvious  a  principle  is  it  that  if  God  be  reveal- 
incT  himself  to  us,  he  will  give  a  better  account  of  his  charac- 
ter and  actions,  than  we  can  by  the  utmost  stretch  of  reflec- 
tion acquire;  it  is  only  after  we  have  lost  ourselves  m  the  dif- 
ficulties of  our  subject,  that  we  can  venture,  even  implicitly, 
to  deny  it.     Unitarians  do,  indeed,   insist,  purely  from  the 
dictates  of  reason,  that  it  is  impossible  for  three  persons  to 
subsist  in  one  essence;  but  the  weight  which  they  obviously 
lay  upon  this  principle,  is  to  free  themselves  the  more  success- 
fully,  from  certain  views  and  expressions  of  scripture  with 
which  the  Trinitarians  press  them. 

The  leading  object,  brethren,  which  God  has  in  view  in  re- 
veaimg  himself  to  man  is  to  preserve  the  purity  of  roligious 
worship.  The  adoration  of  the  one  God  is  the  first  and  fun- 
damental commandment  to  which  all  others  are  subservient; 
and  to  guard  men  against  idolatry  is  the  very  end  for  which 
the  prophets  and  inspired  men  were  sent  by  that  God,  who 
saya  that  he  will*  not  give  his  glory  to  another.  Indeed  if  a 
religion  were  to  encoifrage  idolatry  by  the  whole  tenor  of  its 
communications,  we  might  at  once  state,  that  it  overturns  its 
own  purposes,  and  that  it  cannol  be  true. 

But  in  all  the  nations  where  the  religion  of  Christ  was  about 
to  be  propagated,  idolatry  was  established  and  rendered  endear- 
ing  to  the  people,  by  the  beauties  of  poetical  composition,  by 


CHBIST's    DIVIXITY.  77 

the  splendor  of  consecrated  temples,  and  by  the  costly  rituals 
on  which  they  were  in  the  habit  of  attending;  and  the  false  Gods 
themselves  whom  they  adored,  sprung  up  among  them  from 
their  renowned  warriors  and  legislators.  These  had  all  a  hu- 
man origin ;  and  a  revelation  was  required  that  would  clearly 
state  God's  holy  jealousy,  and  mark  what  characters  were  to  be 
adored  and  what  it  would  be  blasphemy  to  worship. 

There  is  no  character  spoken  of  in  the  scriptures,  in  respect 
to  which,  men  were  eminently  in  danger  of  falling  into  an 
idolatrous  adoration,  except  that  of  the  Messiah.  This  char- 
acter, however,  had  been  so  long  expected,  so  many  figures  of 
him  had  been  displayed,  and  so  many  advantages  had  been  pro- 
posed to  arise  from  his  government,  that,  when  he  appeared, 
if  he  surrounded  his  path  with  a  train  of  miracles,  died,  rose 
again  from  the  dead,  and  ascended  into  heaven,  men  could 
scarce  refrain  from  adoring  him. 

But,  my  brethren,  if  he  be  only  a  mere  creature,  all  this 
splendid  train  of  events  in  his  history,  can  never  entitle  him 
to  religious  homage,  but,  in  the  revelation  which  is  given, 
calls  for  precautionary  admonitions  and  w^arnings  in  every 
pige  not  to  raise  that  adoration  which  belongs  to  the  great 
God,  to  any  creature  however  beneficent.  The  whole  of 
revelation,  my  christian  brethren,  instead  of  suspending 
the  thunders  of  divine  vengeance  over  the  gross  idolatry  of 
the  heathen,  which  by  the  natural  progress  of  society  in  sci- 
ence and  knowledge,  might,  in  some  degree,  have  begun  to 
totter,  and  which  could  by  no  means  stand  long  before  the  de- 
claration, 1  will  have  no  other  Gods  before  me,  ought  to  have 
directed  its  energies  against  this  germ  of  idolatry  which  grows 
out  of  its  own  husbanding,  and  which,  if  not  fully  and  distinclw 
ly  reprobated,  will  rob  God  of  his  glory  till  the  end  of  time. 

But  instead  of  this,  what  do  the  scriptures  do  ? — They  begin 
with  the  declaration,  at  the  time  of  the  giving  the  law  to  Israel, 
My  name  is  in  him,  whilst  yet  this  name  has  been  no  othev 
wise  explained  than  by,  Almighty  God,  or  I  am  that  I  Jifn. 


78 

When  the  church  was  provided  with  a  system  of  praise,  she 
was  taught  to  speak  of  him  as  the  Son  of  God,  as  God  whose 
throne  is  forever  and  ever,  and  as  the  Lord  to  whom  it  is  said, 
sit  thou  at  my  right  hand.  Isaiah,  in  the  most  solemn  circum- 
stances, has  to  tell  us  that  his  name  is  to  be  called  Emmanuel, 
and  Wonderful,  Counsellor,  the  mighty  God,  the  everlasting 
Father,  and  the  Prince  of  peace.  Daniel  proclaims  him  to  be 
the  Ancient  of  days;  Micah  calls  him  the  ruler  in  Israel  whose 
goings  forth  are  from  of  old,  even  from  everlasting;  and  Zach- 
ariah  pronounces  him  the  man  who  is  God's  fellow. 

These  are  extremely  dangerous  expressions  to  announce  for 
the  regulation  of  the  worship  of  nations,  which,  for  so  many 
ages,  had  laid  hold  upon  the  slightest  encouragement  to  idol- 
atry. One  would  have  been  apt  to  think  that  the  God  of  Is- 
rael who  had  chosen  a  particular  people  for  the  express  piir- 
pose  of  preserving  the  worship  of  the  one  Gcd  unadulterated, 
would,  in  some  way  or  other,  have  restricted  the  tendency  of 
this  language  respecting  the  Messiah,  so  that  he  might  not 
have  been  stript  of  his  peculiar  glory,  by  its  being  bestowed 
upon  another.  But  what  is  very  remarkable  in  the  revelations 
of  the  Old  Testament,  is,  the  longer  the  Spirit  continues  to 
epeak  on  the  subject,  the  more  bold  and  unrestricted  is  the 
language  used,  to  press  this  Messiah  forward  as  an  object  of 
adoration.  The  nations  must  do  him  service,  and  kiss  the  Son 
least  he  be  angry,  in  the  songs  of  their  praise;  but,  at  last,  he 
comes  to  his  temple  as  his  own  house,  and  receives  the  adora- 
tion to  which  he  who  sits  between  the  cherubims  is  entitled. 
Behold,  1  will  send  my  messenger,  and  he  shall  prepare  the 
way  before  me:  and  the  Lord  whom  ye  seek  shall  suddenly 
come  to  his  temple,  even  the  messenger  of  the  covenant  whom 
ye  delight  in:  behold  he  shall  come  saith  the  Lord  of  Hosts. 
Mai.  2:7. 

But  if  the  writers  of  the  old  Testament  all  conspired  to 
bring  forward  the  Messiah  as  an  object  of  that  adoration  which 
belongs  to  God  alone,  let  us  see  how  the  more  clear  light  of 


Christ's  divixity.  79 

the  New  Testament  directs  our  conscience  upon  the  subject. 
Undoubtedly,  if  Christ  be  God,  he  will  be  worshipped  in  the 
New  Testament,  both  by  men  and  angels;  but,  if  he  be  not 
God,  while  very  eminent  language  may  be  used  respecting 
hmi,  yet,  the  diamonds  of  the  crown  of  heaven  will  be  guard- 
ed, so  that  no  one  shall  wear  them,  but  the  eternal  and  uncre- 
ated God  who  alone  has  a  right  to  have  them  upon  his  head. 
But  w^onderful  to  tell,  the  very  forerunner  cannot  think  himself 
worthy  to  stoop  down  and  to  unloose  the  latchet  of  his  shoe; 
while  the  ]\Iessiah  himself,  who  reveals  his  Father,  says  that  he 
came  down  from  heaven,  that  he  is  m  heaven,  that  his  Father 
worketh  hitherto  and  he  works,  that  his  Father  and  he  are  one, 
that  he  hath  given  him  to  have  life  in  himself;  and  while  he 
receives  homage  from  all  that  offer  it.     An  angel  will  say  lo 
the  most  venerable  and  beloved  of  inspired  men,  f  am  thy  fel- 
low servant,  worship  God :  but  when   there  was  the  greatest 
danger  of  enthusiasm  in  his  cause  setting  an  example  which 
men  would  forever  follow,  as  Jesus  stood  the  risen  Saviour  before 
the  disciples,  and  Thomas  exclaimed,  my  Lord  and  my  God, 
he  took  no  care  to  correct  the  expression,  as  if  it  were  un- 
guarded; but,  on  the  other  hand,  received  it,  as  that  to  which 
he  was  entitled.     Indeed,  he  did  believe  himself  to  be  enti- 
tied  to  adoration,  and  adoration  equal  with  his  Father:  for 
when  he  was  about  to  call  the  nations  of  the  earth  from  their 
idolatry  and  superstition,  and  to  bring  them  under  the  light  of 
the  truth  of  heaven,  he  said  to  his  disciples.  Go  preach  the 
gospel  to  every  creature,  baptising  them  in  the  name  of  the 
Father,  and  of  the  Son,  and  of  the  Holy  Ghost.     He  will  not 
permit  an  individual  to  enlist  under  his  banners,  but  him  who 
bows  in  the  solemnity  of  the  initiating  ordinance,  equally  to 
the  Father,  Son  and  Spirit;  as  if  to  preclude,  in  future  ages, 
any  dispute  about  the  genuineness  of  this  sentiment,  TFiere 
are  three  that  bear  record  in  heaven,  the  Father,  the  Word,  and 
the  Holy  Ghost,  and  these  three  are  one. 


fiO  Christ's  diviniti:. 

The  apostles  and  evangelists  rise  far  above  the  prophets  and 
even  Christ  himself,  in  their  declarations,  that  the  Son  of  God 
is  to  be  worshipped.     As  the  tree  of  revelation  grows  and  its 
peculiar  fruits  look  more  distinctly  displayed  to  the  eye,  that 
adoration,  which  the  apostle  emphatically  calls  the  fruit  of  the 
lip,  clusters  on  every  branch  as  belonging  to  Christ.     So  the 
disciples  in  taking  the  first  preparatory  step  in  the  great  work 
to  which  they  had  been  appointed,  prayed,  saying,  thou  Lord 
who  knowest  the  hearts  of  all  men,  show  whether  of  these  two 
thou  hast  chosen;  and  Stephen  who  led  the  way  to  the  faith 
and  devotion  of  martyrs,  said,  Lord  Jesus,  receive  my  spirit. 
Indeed,  to  the  name  of  Jesus  every  knee  does  bow  and  every 
tongue  does  confess,  of  things  in  heaven,  and  things  in  earth, 
and  things  under  the  earth.     Says  our  text,  let  all  the  angels 
worship  him;  and  the  whole  of  the  heavenly  host,  in  the  book 
of  the  Revelation,  worship  equally  him  who  sitteth  upon  the 
throne  and  the  Lamb.     It  is  astonishing,  in  what  climaxes  of 
praise,  this  adoration  is  presented.    Unto  him  who  loved  us, 
and  washad  us  from  our  sins  in  his  own  blood,  and  hath  made 
ns  kings  and  priests  unto  God  and  his  Father;  to  him  be  glory 
and  dominion  for  ever  and  ever.     And  every  creature  which  is 
in  heaven,  and  on  the  earth,  and  under  the  earth,  and  such  as 
are  in  the  sea,  and  all  that  are  in  them,  heard  I  saying,  Bless- 
ing, and  glory,  and  power,  be  unto  him  that  sitteth  upon  the 
throne  and  unto  the  Lamb  for  ever  and  ever.    And  they  cried 
with  a  loud  voice,  saying,  salvation  to  our  God  who  sitteth 
upon  the  throne,  and  unto  the  Lamb. 

It  may  be  said  that  it  is  only  a  secondary  worship  that  in 
these  passages,  by  all  created  existences,  is  given  to  the  Son 
of  God.  But  we  have  no  hint  of  this  in  all  revelation ;  there  is 
the  same  ecstacy  when  the  mind  is  turned  towards  him  that 
sitteh  upon  the  throne,  or  towards  the  Lamb. ,  In  reality,  this 
inferior  kind  of  adotation,  which  in  the  writings  of  men  we 
find  so  often  mentioned,  is  nothing  else  than  a  figment  which 


Christ's   Divir^iTv.  81 

false  systems  of  religion  have  led  them  to  adopt.  We  acknow- 
ledge an  homage  among  men  which  our  manners  easily  inter- 
pret ;  but  that  homage  which  is  directed  from  earth  to  heaven, 
must,  if  there  is  any  meaning  in  it,  acknowledge  necessities 
and  dependence  on  the  one  hand,  and  omniscience  and  infin- 
ite care  on  the  other.  Adoration  supposes  an  actual  inter- 
course carried  on  intelligibly  between  the  parties ;  we  confide  in 
a  knowledge  which  at  the  moment  attends  to  us,  and  in  a  care 
which  cannot  be  disappointed  in  its  exertions  for  our  welfare. 
The  adoration  of  saints,  or  angels,  or  any  mere  created  exis- 
tence, is  the  most  abandoned  rejection  of  reason  that  ever  su- 
perstition adopted;  for  while  there  are  millions  in  diiTerent 
places  and  different  situations  in  the  world,  who  are  filling 
■  their  mouths  with  arguments,  it  is  supposed,  that  a  mere  crea- 
ture, whose  existence  is  confined  to  a  point  in  the  creation, 
may  yet,  like  the  great  God  himself,  see  millions  of  objects,  in 
different  places,  all  at  the  same  instant  of  time;  and  also  ef- 
fectually attend  to  them.  If  Christ  be  not  God,  those  only  act 
a  consistent  part  who  intrepidly  and  boldly  assert  that  Paul 
and  other  wTiters  of  the  New  Testament  often  reason  incon- 
clusively, and  who  refuse  all  adoration  except  to  the  one  God 
the  Father.  If  the  Son  be  not  divine,  he  is  not  entitled  to  di- 
vine homage; — but  we  apply  our  reasoning  to  the  case  in 
hand.  Christ  is  worshipped,  he  is  worshipped  by  m.en  and 
angels ;  he  was  worshipped  in  the  days  of  his  flesh,  and  is  to 
be  worshipped  till  the  end  of  time. — Such  are  the  clear  and  re- 
peated appointments  of  heaven.  Why  so?  He  has  the  omni- 
science, the  omnipresence,  and  omnipotence  of  Deity, 

Indeed  the  great  God  knew  that  adoration  could  not  be  con- 
sistently and  contentedly  given  to  his  Son,  by  those  whose 
religion  was  purified  by  the  fountain  of  revelation,  unless  his 
character  were  presented  with  the  attributes  and  properties 
which  belong  to  the  divine  nature.  Hence  not  only  were  the 
prophets  commanded  to  speak  of  him  as  God's  fellow,  as  the 
Ancient  of  days,  as  Emmanuel,  as  the  everlasting  Father,  and 
8 


82  Christ's  divimtv^ 

God  whose  throne  is  for  ever  and  ever;  but  the  New  Testa- 
ment writers  were  directed  to  present  him,  more  especially,  as 
God,  as  having  God's  attributes,  and  as  performing  God'^g 
works.  By  their  declarations  are  the  lights  thrown  around  us 
which  send  off  to  an  infinite  distance  all  the  darkness  and  idol- 
atry which  otherwise  would  necessarily  seem  to  attend  the 
worship  of  the  Son  of  God. 

We  proceed  in  addition  to  what  we  have  heard, — Feed  the 
church  of  God  which  he  hath  purchased  with  his  own  blood, — 
Paul,  when  he  began  to  speak  about  his  Saviour,  sometimes 
became  most  deeply  interested,  and  his  words  flowed  in  the 
most  ecstatic  eloquence.  This  was  the  case  v/hen  he  was 
taking  a  final  farewell  of  the  elders  of  the  church  of  Ephesus; 
and  when,  by  the  spirit  of  inspiration,  he  saw  the  grievous- 
wolves  that  were  to  enter  not  sparing  the  flock;  and  amongst 
his  last  words,  to  melt  them,  and  to  gain  them,  he  says  to 
these  elders,  Feed  the  church  of  God  which  he  hath  purchased 
with  his  own  blood.  It  is  supposed  that  the  word,  God,  was 
not  oiiginally  in  this  expression  of  the  deepest  earnestness  from 
the  apostle  Paul ;  because  it  is  not  found  in  a  few  ancient  man- 
uscripts.  But  the  form  of  his  eloquence  which  is  so  fair,  is  mu- 
tilated, and  its  life  departs,  when  we  alter  the  reading,  which 
all  the  most  ancient  and  authentic  manuscripts  contain,  and 
which  is  so  like  that  wonderful  expression  in  his  epistle  to  the 
Romans,  respecting  J  esus  Christ,  which  he  spake  as  he  re- 
flected on  his  brethren,  his  kinsmen  according  to  the  flesh: 
^'  who  is  God  over  all, blessed  for  ever,  Amen." 

A  similar  observation  is  applicable  to  that  language,  Great 
is  the  mystery  of  godliness,  God  was  manifested  in  the  flesh ; 
where  it  has  also  been  stated  that  an  unhallowed  hand  of  inter- 
polation had  been  successfully  employed ;  and  to  the  celebra- 
ted passage  in  John's  first  epistle.  There  are  three  that  bear 
record  in  heaven,  the  Father,  the  Word,  and  the  Holy  Ghost, 
and  these  three  are  one.  The  anti-trinitarians  imagine  no  ju- 
dicious critic  would  be  willing  to  allow  a  place  to  this  last 


CHRIST''s   DIVCflTY,  83 

passage,  in  the  page  of  inspiration.  This  much  we  must  re- 
mark, that  what  they  tear  out  obviously  leaves  a  chasm ;  while, 
it  may  be  asserted,  that  the  trinitarians  have  never,  in  fact, 
been  detected  in  the  very  act  of  amending  the  originals  of  rev- 
elation to  aid  their  argument,  whereas  tlieir  opponents 
are  by  no  means  scrupulous,  in  laying  their  hand  on 
the  sacred  originals,  and  erasing  from  them  every  text 
which  their  ingenuity  may  suggest  to  them  probably  to  be  an 
interested  amendment.  It  has  been  alleged  that  we  alter  scrip-^ 
ture;  but  on  the  evidence  of  experience,  and  as  opposed  to 
gratuitous  suggestions  from  our  opponents,  we  hold  that  we 
are  immaculate.  The  trinitarians  need  not  be  afraid  of  the 
curse  of  God,  ^'  Whosoever  shall  add  to  this  book,  to  him 
shall  be  added  the  plagues  which  are  contained  therein  ;'*  for 
though  the  whole  of  their  ranks  were  reviewed  there  will  not 
be  found  a  single  name  that  actually  has  been  detected  in  offer- 
ing the  strange  fire.  But  on  the  other  hand,  my  brethren,  the 
unitarians  never  make  a  new  translation  into  any  lansur.oe,  or 
give  to  the  world  an  edition  of  the  originals;  but  you  hear 
them  grumbling  about  innumerable  passages  as  of  doubtful 
authenticity,  and  tearing  out  others  with  as  much  confidence 
of  their  being  spurious,  as  if  they  could  refer  to  some  histori- 
cal records  of  the  impious  alterations.  There  have  been  some 
of  their  belief  in  every  age  since  the  christian  era,  and  nearly 
equally  without  scruples  about  erasing  what  is  particularly  dis- 
pleasing; and  hence  it  is  a  thing  necessarily  to  be  expected, 
that  some  passages,  which  are  supposed  to  enter  vitally  into 
the  controversy  between  us  and  them,  should  be  <ioubted,  and 
that  others  should  be  discarded. 

But  there  are,  my  brethren,  by  the  New  Testament  writers,  as 
a  proof  of  his  divinity,  the  attributes  of  God ,  ascribed  to  Christ : 
eternity  in  these  words,  «  In  the  beginning  was  the  Word,  and 
the  Word  was  with  God,  and  the  Word  was  God:^  uncharge- 
ableness  in  these,  «  before  Abram  was  I  am;  I  am  Alpha  and 
Omega,  the  first  and  the  last:"  omnipresence  in  these, «  irf) !  1  am 


84  Christ's  divinity. 

with  you  always:''  omnipotence  in  these,  "  upholding  all  tilings 
by  the  word  of  his  power :"  universal  dominion  in  these,  "all 
things  are  put  under  him,  and  there  is  nothing  which  is  not  put 
under  him,  God  the  Father  f;xcepted,  who  put  all  things  under 
him :"  and  sovereignty  in  these, "  for  as  the  Father  raiseth  up  the 
dead  and  quickeneth  them,  even  so  the  Son  quickeneth  whom 
he  will." — These  attributes  of  deity  are,  indeed,  more  frequently 
implied  than  expressed.  So,  where  it  is  said,  that  the  Word  was 
made  flesh  and  dwelt  among  us;  that  God  sent  forth  his  Son, 
made  of  a  woman,  made  under  the  law,  to  redeem  them  that  were 
under  the  law;  who  being  in  the  form  of  God  and  thought  it  not 
robbery  to  be  equal  with  God,  made  himself  of  no  reputation,  and 
took  upon  him  the  form  of  a  servant;  and  though  he  was  rich,  yet 
for  our  sakes  he  became  poor,  we  have  an  evidence  that  pre- 
existence  is  predicated  of  him,  and  that  it  was  by  a  sovereign 
act  of  his  own,  that  he  assumed  our  nature  and  appeared  as 
our  mediator.  When  we  see  him  acting  on  the  principle  in  the 
days  of  his  flesh,  that  he  knows  what  is  in  man,  and  when  we 
now  behold  him  in  the  administration  of  his  universal  kingdom, 
sending  the  angels  as  ministering  spirits,  superintending  the 
faithfulness  and  love  of  his  followers,  examining  their  wants 
and  advocating  their  cause,  his  omnipresence  necessarily  ap- 
pears. And  when  we  reflect  that  the  Father  judgeth  no  man, 
but  hath  committed  all  judgment  to  the  Son;  there  is  so  obvi- 
ously omniscience  required  to  fit  him  for  this  station,  that  one 
might  say,  solemn  as  is  t^ie  general  judgment  in  itself,  and  so- 
lemn as  it  is  presented  in  revelation,  accounts  after  all  must 
be  settled,  if  he  be  a  limited  creature,  without  knowledge 
either  to  condemn  or  acquit.  A  judge  who  is  to  bring  into 
judgment  for  every  thought  and  for  every  secret  thing,  who  is 
to  try  the  heart  and  the  reins  of  the  children  of  men,  can  be  no 
other  than  the  omniscient  God. 

But  there  are  divine  works  which  the  New  Testament  as- 
cribes to  Christ.  He  is  the  creator ;  "  and  without  him  was 
not  any  thing  made  that  is  made,"  «  For  by  him  were  all  things 


t!fiRIST''s   DIVINITY.  85 

'Created  that  are  in  heaven,  and  that  are  in  earth,  visible  and  in- 
visible, whether  they  be  thrones,  or  dominions,  or  principali- 
ties, or  powers,  all  things  were  created  by  him  and  for  him." — 
The  first  of  these  expressions  is  found  in  the  beginning  of 
John's  gospel;  and  as  Matthew  and  Luke  had  both  written 
before  John,  and  given  an  account  of  the  lineage  and  birth  of 
Christ  according  to  his  human  nature,  John  will  follow  some- 
thing of  their  manner,  and  present  us^  not  with  the  history  of 
the  child  born,  but  of  the  Son  given;  and  so  the  Word  is  in 
the  beginning  with  God,  is  God,  without  him  nothing  is  made 
that  is  made;  but  afterwards  he  becomes  flesh  and  dwells 
amongst  us.  What  imprudence  in  the  beloved  disciple,  if 
Jesus  be  only  a  mere  man,  after  the  prophets  had  spoken  so 
unguardedly,  after  Christ  himself  had  said  so  much  that  might 
be  followed  with  the  most  dangerous  consequences ;  and  after 
Paul  had  settled  it,  by  the  character  of  his  writings,  that  he 
was  to  be  received  as  God  over  all  blessed  for  ever,  amen,  to 
commence  that  book,  in  which  he  was  to  bring  forward  Christ's 
expressions,  about  coming  down  from  heaven,  about  being  in 
heaven,  about  being  before  Abraham,  about  having  life  in  him- 
self, about  being  one  with  his  Father,  in  which  he  w^as  to  be 
addressed  by,  my  Lord  and  my  God,  with  such  an  introduction 
as  he  here  makes !  The  very  words  which  he  uses  are  applied 
to  no  created  existence.  The  man  who  was  born  of  a  woman , 
who  had  flesh  and  bones,  and  was  crucified,  retires,  in  these 
introductory  conceptions  of  John,  from  all  created  forms,  and 
appears, — what  is  he? — the  word  of  God,  in  the  beginning  with 
God,  yea,  God,  and  all  things  are  made  by  his  hand.  In  John's 
conceptions,  his  Saviour,  though  he  becomes  flesh  and  taberna- 
cles^among  men,  is  originally,  no  other  tlian  he  who  dwells  in 
light  inaccessible  and  full  of  glory. 

But  as  he  created  all  things  so  he  upholds  them.  In  him  all 
things  consist;  He  upholdeth  all  things  by  the  word  of  his  pout- 
er.— If  these  expressions  were  spoken  respecting  tlio  Father, 
their  philosophy  and  sublimity  would  be  marked  by  oui-  oppo- 

8* 


86' 

nents  and  presented  as  an  argument  for  the  divinity  of  the 
scriptures,  arising  from  the  sublimity  of  their  language.  In- 
deed, while  the  expressions  are  inimitably  sublime,  I  must  re- 
mark, that  it  is  blasphemous  to  refer  them  to  a  mere  creature. 
Let  us  try  the  last  of  these  expressions  as  appropriated  to  cre- 
ated energy.  The  construction  in  which  the  words  lie,  forbids 
their  application  to  God  the  Father.  Whom  shall  we  bring 
forward  with  such  a  fountain  of  power  and  with  such  a  facility 
of  communication?  Shall  we  imagine  them  appended  to  Moses 
or  Elias,  to  Paul,  or  to  the  angel  Gabriel? — The  words  suit 
not  any  creature .  They  remind  us  of  that  omnific  voice,  Let 
there  be  light,  and  it  was. 

But  it  may  be  said  we  fill  the  scriptures  with  mysteries,  and 
militate  against  philosophy.  But  such  is  our  case,  my  breth- 
ren, we  cannot  avoid  mystery .  The  greatest  mystery  of  all  to 
me  would  be,  since  it  must  be  so  abhorrent  to  revelation  to 
present  a  mere  creature  as  God,  since  it  would  be  so  easy  to 
establish  the  truth  on  this  subject;  and  since  there  was  only 
one  character  mentioned  in  the  whole  scripture  that  men  were 
eminently  in  hazard  of  being  beguiled  by,  that,  instead  of  the 
truth  being  told  about  this  character,  the  very  reverse  is  not 
only  alluded  to  and  stated  in  innumerable  passages,  but  it  is 
interwoven  with  the  whole  plan  of  the  divine  government,  and 
with  that  salvation,  as  scripture  would  seem  to  state  it,  which 
is  bestowed  upon  the  meanest  of  the  saints. 

The  alcoran  is  an  honest  book  compared  with  the  bible;  for 
there  the  distinction  of  persons  in  the  one  godhead  is  rejected: 
reason  is  a  better  guide  than  revelation ;  for  she  has  a  greater 
prospect,  by  the  light  of  science,  of  dispelling  the  clouds  of 
superstition ;  and  of  all  things  in  the  universe,  that  are  inapt  to 
accomplish  their  own  ends,  infinite  wisdom  has  been  the  least 
successful  in  guarding  her  own  honors. 

For,  my  brethren,  Christ  will  be  believed  to  be  God,  and  will 
be  worshipped,  till  the  end  of  time.  In  every  age  almost  all 
who  have  read  the  scriptures,  believe  that  it  is  stated  in  them. 


Christ's  divinitt.  B7 

that  our  Saviour  is  God.  There  are  some  exceptions,  and  a 
few  of  these  are  men  of  very  considerable  talents  and  learning ; 
but  they  are  not  more  than  we  would  expect  to  meet  with  in 
this  part  of  that  great  field  of  controversy  which  encompass^ 
the  paths  of  men.— The  operations  of  Providence,  my  brethren, 
are  translating  into  all  languages  the  original  books  of  inspira- 
tion ;  they  are  carried  into  all  lands  in  the  hand  of  those  servants 
who  have  the  most  august  view  of  their  Saviour's  character; 
who  cannot  utter  the  word  salvation  without  connecting  it 
with  an  omnipotent  procurer ;  and  who,  as  if  to  confound  the 
philosophy  that  would  lay  a  hasty  hand  upon  any  portion  that 
has  fair  claims  to  be  considered  a  part  of  inspiration,  triumph- 
antly bear  along  those  passages  which  criticism  has  supposed 
that  she  has  expunged.  The  world,  at  present,  has  something 
of  the  christian  activity  of  the  days  of  the  apostles;  but  it  is 
all  under  trinitarian  banners. 

We  know  there  are  many  objections  started  to  the  divinity 
of  Christ;  some  founded  on  the  supposed  absurdity  attending 
the  doctrine  itself,  and  others  arising  from  what  is  said  in  scrip- 
ture about  Christ's  inferiority  to  the  Father.  We  acknowledge 
that  we  cannot  comprehend  the  doctrine  of  the  trinity.  It  is  a 
mystery  far  surpassing  the  comprehension  of  man.  But  so  is 
eternity,  so  is  self-existence,  and  so  is  omnipresence.  Yea,  so 
is  almost  every  thing  in  nature :  The  principle  of  the  attraction 
of  cohesion,  magnetism,  and  gravitation,  the  connexion  between 
mind  and  matter,  and  the  manner  of  perception  of  external 
objects.  It  is  but  little  we  know  of  ourselves  or  all  that  is 
around  us;  and  we  may  surely  grant  that  when  the  eternal,  self- 
existent,  and  infinite  being,  reveals  himself,  there  will  be 
something  about  his  purely  revealed  character,  that  will  as 
infinitely  transcend  our  capacity,  as  do  his  eternity  and  im- 
mensity in  his  natural  character.  But,  my  brethren,  if  we  can 
reason  in  any  respect  from  analogy,  the  absolute  simplicity  of 
the  divine  existence,  both  in  nature  and  in  personality,  is  not 
recommended  to  us  by  any  thing  that  exists.  There  are  certain 


^  Christ's  divinity, 

elementary  substances,  simple  and  unmixed  in  themselves, 
but  they  always  coexist  in  nature  with  other  elements  to  make 
up  the  actual  unities  which  creation  presents.  TThe  light  of  the 
sun  has  several  primary  rays,  the  particles  of  heat  have  not  all 
the  same  degree  of  refrangibility,  the  air  has  three  elements  in 
its  composition;  water,  though  so  like  an  unity,  is  made  up 
of  distinct  substances,  every  vegetable  has  three  elements, 
every  animal  is  composed  of  matter  and  the  principle  of  anima- 
tion, and  all  the  stones  which  form  the  great  body  of  our  earth, 
are  formed  of  several  primary  elements,  which  cannot  be  sepa^ 
rated  without  breaking  up  the  very  properties  which  are  so 
distinct  and  have  been  so  permanent.  The  elements  of  the 
divine  character,  are,  indeed,  transcendent  in  their  distinction 
and  union.  All  other  things  being  created,  their  unity  arises 
from  tlie  combination  of  distinct  natures ;  but  the  godhead, 
being  uncreated  and  eternal,  there  is  only  one  simple  element 
of  nature  in  it,  and  the  distinctions,  different  from  all  other 
beings,  arise  from  the  form  of  subsistence :  a  mystery  unlike  to 
any  thing  else,  and  which  men  always  degrade  and  injure  when 
they  would  attempt  to  explain  it,  or  to  place  it  on  any  other 
foundation  than  the  dictates  of  revelation, 

Christ  is  inferior  to  the  Father  as  mediator.  In  this  charac- 
ter he  is  his  father's  servant,  he  is  clothed  with  human  nature, 
the  Word  is  made  flesh,  the  Son  of  God  is  born  of  a  woman,  he 
that  was  in  the  form  of  God  puts  on  the  fashion  of  a  man,  he 
grows  in  wisdom  and  in  stature  and  in  favor  with  God  and 
man,  he  is  hungry,  he  is  weary,  he  rejoices,  he  weeps,  he  prays, 
he  complains,  he  suffers,  he  dies.  When  we  join  the  company 
of  the  Son  of  man  there  is  nothing  within  the  whole  circle  of 
human  duty  or  privilege  which  we  do  not  see  him  perform. 
That  he  should  say,  his  Father  sent  him,  that  he  does  not  d^ 
his  own  will,  that  he  can  do  nothing  of  himself,  that  his  Father 
is  greater  than  he,  that  the  Father  heareth  him  always,  that  he 
could  send  his  angels  to  strengthen  him,  that  he  is  an  heir 
ander  hira,  and  that  at  last  he  will  surrender  his  kingdom  to 


Christ's  DiviNirr.  89 

him,  are  expressions  which  he  ought  to  use,  and  ideas 
which  he  ought  to  repeat  and  vary  by  every  form  of  lan- 
guage, to  let  his  true  character  be  known,  and  to  explain 
the  circumstances  of  his  history  as  they  really  took  place. 
Nothing  can  be  more  astonishing  than  that  the  adversaries  of 
Christ's  divinity  should  insist  on  the  innumerable  statements 
in  scripture  which  present  Christ  as  inferior  to  the  Father, 
when  we  grant,  that,  although  it  be  clearly  and  fully  stated  that 
he  is  divine,  yet,  the  general  line  of  the  whole  business  of  the 
mediator,  was  to  act  on  earth  as  man,  and  to  state  what  were 
llie  results  of  his  acting  in  this  character.  The  unitarians  in 
laying  hold  of  one  side  of  Christ's  character  and  denying  the 
other,  remind  us  of  the  modern  Jews,  who,  to  reconcile  the 
prophecies  respecting  their  Messiah  both  suffering  and  reign- 
ing, imagine  two  Messiahs,  the  one  tentative  and  unsuccess- 
ful, and  the  other  persevering  and  triumphant.  We  believe 
tliat  both  characters  meet  in  the  one  Messiah;  that  Clu^st 
both  suffers  and  reigns,-  but  his  sufferings  are  correlative  to  a 
state  of  humiliation,  and  his  dominion  is  correlative  to  a  state 
of  exaltation :  and  we  believe  that  his  character  qualified  him  for 
even  the  extremes  of  both  these  states.  As  man  he  was  born, 
as  the  Word  he  was  in  the  beginning;  as  man  he  was  laid  in  a 
cradle,  as  God  he  was  worshipped  there;  as  man  he  grew  in 
wisdom  and  in  stature,  as  God  he  was  the  same  yesterday,  to- 
day and  for  ever;  as  man  he  was  tempted  of  Satan,  as  God  he 
said.  Get  thee  behind  me,  for  it  is  written  thou  shalt  worship 
the  Lord  thy  God  and  him  only  shalt  thou  serve;  as  man  he 
was  baptised  in  Jordan,  as  God  he  kept  the  fan  of  vengeance 
in  his  hand  thoroughly  to  purge  his  floor;  as  man  he  walked 
about  the  regions  of  Galilee,  as  God  he  called  his  disciples 
and  said  to  them,  I  will  make  you  fishers  of  men;  as  man  be 
was  wearied  and  sat  on  Jacob's  well,  as  God  he  told  the  wo- 
man of  Samaria  all  that  ever  she  did ;  as  man  he  attended  the 
marriage  at  Galilee,  as  God  he  turned  the  water  into  wine ;  as 
man  he  was  hungry,  as  God  he  fed  five  thousand  on  a  few 


90  Christ's  divinity, 

loaves  and  fishes ;  as  man  lie  wept  at  the  grave  of  Lazarus,  as 
God  he  said,  Lazarus  come  forth;  as  man  he  was  in  agony  in 
Gethsemene,  as  God  he  instituted  the  sacred  ordinance  of  the 
New  Testament  passover;  as  man  he  expired  on  the  cross,  as 
God,  when  in  death,  he  wrote  a  charter  for  life,  and  rose  tri- 
umphantly over  death;  as  man  he  was  seen  ascending,  as  God 
he  made  good  his  way,  leading  captivity  captive;  as  man  he  is 
our  forerunner  entered  into  heaven,  as  God  he  is  heir  of  all 
tilings;  as  man  he  presents  the  sacrifice  of  himself  within  the 
veil,  as  God  he  sits  on  the  right  hand  of  the  majesty  on  high, 
angels,  authorities,  and  powers  being  made  subject  to  him;  as 
man  he  is  the  head  of  his  body  the  church,  as  God  he  reigns  in 
Zion,  and  has  all  things  put  under  his  feet. 

But  while  there  are  two  distinct  natures  in  Christ  they  are 
united  in  one  person.  This  is  my  beloved  Son  in  whom  1  am 
well  pleased.  He  that  ascended  is  the  same  that  descended, 
first  into  the  lower  parts  of  the  earth,  and  then  ascended  far 
above  all  heavens,  that  he  might  fill  all  things.  For  he  hath 
appointed  a  day  in  the  which  he  will  judge  the  world  in  righte- 
ousness by  that  man  whom  he  hath  ordained.  Looking  for 
that  blessed  hope,  and  the  glorious  appearing  of  the  great  God 
and  our  Saviour  Jesus  Christ. 

Two  natures  and  one  person  in  Christ: — A  mystery  again! 
But  it  is  a  mystery  not  like  that  of  the  trinity,  where  the  divine 
nature  alone  is  concerned;  it  is  a  mystery,  which,  as  the 
properties  of  a  creature  are  connected  with  it,  comes  recom- 
mended to  us,  by  all  the  individualities  of  organized  existences 
in  the  universe;  all  are  unions  of  diflTerent  natures.  All  or- 
ganized existences  derive  their  perfection  and  are  adapted  to 
the  end  of  their  formation  from  the  combination  of  elements 
that  are  dissimilar;  and  Christ's  character  is  adapted  to  the 
accomplishment  of  the  great  work  which  was  appointed  to 
him,  by  his  being  the  omnipotent  and  adorable  creator  of  all 
things,  and  by  his  being  man  who  is  both  capable  of  sufiering 
and  of  dying. 


chbist's  divinity.  91 

We  would  not  have  Christ  considered  to  be  God  by  all 
men.  The  infidels,  who  deny  the  authority  of  his  religion  and 
who  acknowledge  that  Jesus  of  Nazareth  did  exist,  and  gave 
origin  to  that  religion  which  bears  his  name,  can  consider 
him  in  no  other  light  than  as  a  man,  artful,  eloquent,  success- 
ful, and  revolutionizing.  The  Jews  themselves  are  in  every 
respect  greatly  excusable,  if  he  was  only  a  mere  man;  for  be- 
fore them  he  pertinaciously  adhered  to  language  which  they 
understood  to  claim  divinity,  and  made  himself  undoubtedly 
in  their  presence  equal  to  God.  Indeed  his  whole  ministra- 
tion was  criminal,  and  polluted  their  land,  their  city,  and 
their  temple,  if  he  was  a  man  only.  Moses,  their  lawgiver, 
was  afraid  to  speak  in  his  own  name,  and  always  bespeaks  the 
ear  of  piety,  with,  The  Lord  spake  unto  Mose.:.  saying;  he 
trembled  at  the  introduction  of  idolatry,  and  said.  Thou 
shalt  worship  the  Lord  thy  God  and  him  only  shalt  thou  serve. 
Their  prophets  had  no  other  spirit  than  that  of  their  great  law- 
giver. But  Jesus  had  no  scruples  of  introducing  idolatry 
among  them,  and  of  condemning  them  to  the  fire  of  hell  if  they 
refused  to  follow  him.  Ye  believe  in  God,  said  he  to  the 
Jews,  believe  also  in  me.  For  the  Father  judgeth  no  man, 
but  hath  committed  all  judgment  to  the  Son ;  that  all  men 
should  honor  the  Son  even  as  they  honor  the  Father.  But 
Jesus  answered  them,  my  Father  worketh  hitherto,  and  I 
work :  therefore  the  Jews  sought  the  more  to  kill  him ;  because 
he  not  only  had  broken  the  Sabbath,  but  said  also  that  God 
was  his  Father,  making  himself  equal  with  God. 

Our  Saviour,  my  brethren,  is  not  to  be  blamed  for  forming 
a  contrast  to  Moses  and  all  the  prophets  in  their  zeal  for  the 
glory  of  the  God  of  Israel.  Revelation  is  all  of  a  piece  as  it 
respects  Christ.  It  is  a  great  army  of  prophets,  of  priests  of 
the  most  high  God,  of  princes,  and  of  seers,  collecting  to- 
gether, under  the  Old  Testament  dispensation,  to  destroy  the 
mouldering  idols  of  idolatry,  and  yet  to  place,  permanent  as 


92  Christ's  divinity. 

is  time,  and  unfading  as  is  tiie  sun,  an  object  before  men, 
clothed  in  all  the  attributes  of  human  nature,  to  be  adored. 
The  New  Testament  takes  up  the  determination  received  from 
so  many  voices,  and  at  the  very  first  begins  to  add  every  fea- 
ture that  can  awe  imagination  and  instil  hope.  Wise  men 
worship,  and  angels  sing,  glory  to  God  in  the  highest,  peace 
on  earth,  and  good  will  towards  men;  the  mother  nurses  in 
Bethlehem  him  whose  goings  forth  were  from  of  old,  even 
from  everlasting,  and  of  whose  kingdom  there  shall  be  no  end ; 
and  Zacharias  prophesies  to  the  infant  John,  and  thou,  child, 
Shalt  be  called  the  prophet  of  the  highest;  for  thou  shalt  go 
before  the  face  of  the  Lord  to  prepare  his  ways.  The  whole 
disciples,  listening  to  his  claims  and  attending  to  his  miracles, 
by  sea  or/^nd,  on  the  mountains  or  in  the  valleys,  keep 
up  the  sound  of  adoration.  Lord  save,  thou  hast  the  words  o^ 
eternal  life,  Lord  thou  knowest  all  things,  thouknowest  that  I 
love  thee.  My  Lord  and  my  God.— The  universe,  my  brethren, 
is  startled  and  does  homage  when  the  moment  of  the  fulness 
of  time  arrives.— The  sun  looked  on  the  death  of  Moses  as 
a  common  occurrence,  of  Abraham,  of  David,  and  of  Isaiah. 
Though  perhaps  some  of  these  \;vere  sawn  asunder,  the  earth 
felt  no  commotion,  the  graves  maintained  their  silence,  and 
the  veil  of  God's  temple  knew  no  violence.  But  this  is  no 
common  death,  it  is  not  the  death  of  an  inspired  legislator,  of 
a  prophet,  of  a  mere  friend  of  God;  for  the  sun  is  darkened, 
the  earth  shakes  to  its  foundations,  the  graves  are  emptied  by 
the  entrance  of  the  breath  of  life,  and  the  veil  of  the  temple  is 
rent  from  top  to  bottom.— And  this  strain  of  adoration,  and 
of  homage,  which,  from  the  beginning  the  world  has  circula- 
ted from  age  to  age,  the  disciples  of  Jesus  adopted,  and 
^yherever  they  went  they  taught  the  knee  to  bow  to  the  name 
of  Jesus.  And  the  christian  world  have  bowed,  and  will  for 
ever  bow:  for  our  religion  should  either  be  discarded  as 
blasphemous  and  idolatrous,  or  our  mediator  ghould  here- 


93 

ceived  as  truly  divine,  the  brightness  of  his  Fathers  glory, 
and  the  express  image  of  his  person.  Yes,  my  brethren,  for 
the  great  God,  and  the  Holy  Ghost,  if  Christ  be  only  a  creature, 
is  chargeable,  immediately  and  directly,  above  all  others,  with 
overspreading  our  world  with  this  blasphemy.  The  Holy 
Ghost  shall  come  upon  thee,  and  the  power  of  the  Highest  shall 
overshadow  thee,  therefore,  that  holy  thing  which  shall  be  born 
of  thee  shall  be  called  tlie  Son  of  the  Highest.  If  this  lan- 
guage was  to  signify  that  the  Ancient  of  days  was  appearing 
among  men,  it  was  a  beautiful  and  well  timed  expression  which 
announces  that  the  thing  which  was  born,  though  seemindy 
insignificant,  was  the  Son  of  the  Highest ;  but  if  it  was  to  signify 
that  human  nature  was  a  more  immediate  effect  of  divine  pow- 
er in  Christ  than  in  other  men,  and  so  exalting  him  to  divine 
honors;  it  was  an  expression,  which  is  like  the  tongue  of  sin- 
ful man,  an  unruly  evil,  full  of  deadly  poison.  For,  my  breth- 
ren, no  creature,  angel  or  archangel,  though  new  from  the 
hand  of  God,  bright  as  the  gold  dropt  from  tlie  furnace  which 
formed  the  hinges  of  Milton's  gates  of  heaven,  can  be  entitled 
to  any  of  the  peculiar  honors  of  Deity. — The  opponents  of 
Christ's  divinity  speak  highly  of  the  morality  of  the  gospel ;  it 
is  pure  and  untainted,  say  they;  a  peculiar  blessing  to  our 
world;  but  if  morality,  in  any  point  of  view,  respects  the  rela- 
tions of  the  creature  to  his  creator,  the  principles  of  the  scrip- 
tures and  their  expressions,  if  Christ  be  a  created  existence  only, 
are  what  overturn  the  very  foundations  of  that  moral  order 
which  is  supposed  to  support  the  pillars  of  the  divine  govern- 
ment throughout  the  universe,  and  give  to  it  its  sublime  char- 
acter. Yes,  if  other  worlds  are  like  ours,  if  God  hath  revealed 
himself  to  them,  and  told  them  that  all  the  angels  around  his 
throne  worship  one  who  has  been  born  amongst  them,  and  that 
they  must  worship  him;  that  they  must  use  expressions  in  their 
nK)st  solemn  language,  of  him  being  the  Lord  of  all,  in  whom 
all  things  consist,  and  by  whom  all  things  were  created  in 
beaven  and  in  earth,  the  universe,  which  is  so  fair,  and  the 
9 


94  Christ's  DivmiTr, 

perfection  of  whose  physical  form  is  so  absolutely  finished^  has 
been,  and  by  its  creator  himself,  turned,  in  all  its  moral  in- 
habitants/into  perpetual  idolatry.  The  most  polluted  of  all 
systems  of  morality  is  that  which  dresses  up  a  creature  by 
names,  attributes,  works,  and  stations,  to  appropriate  to  itself 
the  homage  of  the  Eternal,  and  which  states  that  all  this  is  the 
doing,  through  ages  and  generations,  of  God  himself.- — —But 
enough ! 

Revelation  is  the  covenant  and  promise  of  God.  Its  propo- 
sitions may  contain  mysteries,  but  cannot  inculcate  blasphe- 
mies. They  may  humble  the  pride  of  reason,  but  they  cannot 
mislead  devotion.- — All  is  well. — Thou  Lord  Jesus  in  the  be- 
gmniiig  hast  laid  the  foundations  of  the  earth,  and  the  heavens 
are  the  works  of  thine  hands;  they  shall  perish  but  thou  re- 
mainest,  and  they  shall  all  wax  old  as  a  garment,  and  as  a  ves= 
ture  shalt  thou  fold  them,  and  they  shall  be  changed;  but  thou 
art  the  same  and  thy  years  shall  not  fail  The  grace  of  our 
Lord  Jesus  Christ,  the  love  of  God,  and  the  communion  of  the 
Holy  Ghost,  be  with  you  all.  Amen. 


DISCOURSE  IV. 


CHRIST'S    SUFFERING  WITHOUT  THE  GATE, 


Heb.   13: 12.     Wherefore  Jesus  also,  that  he  might  sanctify 
the  people  with  hi^  oicn  blood,  svffered  without  the  gajte. 

A  STRIKING  adaptation,  my  brethren,  to  all  their  intended 
relations,  subsists  amongst  the  works  of  God.  Every  object  in 
nature  is  exactly  suited  to  the  circumstances  of  its  condi- 
tion. The  beauty  and  wisdom  of  its  m.aker  are  fully  perceived 
only  when  its  relations  are  considered.  Not  an  object  in  the 
natural  world  undisturbed  by  the  injurious  hand  of  a  sinful 
agent,  but  smiles  on  the  prosperity  of  all  those  with  which  it 
is  intimately  connected;  these  bear  the  same  benign  aspect  to 
those  that  environ  them;  this  circle  the  same  to  that  which  en- 
compasses it,  till  the  immense  fabric  of  the  universe  stands  ar- 
rayed in  the  utmost  exactness  of  harmony  and  order.  In  the 
providential  dispensations  of  God  the  exact  subserviency  of 
eventtoevent,  of  series  of  operations  to  mighty  evolutions,  of 
predisposed  circumstances  to  what  are  to  fulfil  them,  gives  us 
the  same  view  of  the  boundless  symmetry  established  in  the 
divine  operations.  Do  we  survey  the  kingdom  of  grace,  coq- 
sider  it  in  the  predictions  and  types  that,  in  the  first  ages  of  the 
world,  and  particularly  under  the  Jewish  economv,  bore  a  re- 
spect to  the  displays  and  realities  of  New  Testament  times, 
still  we  are  led  to  admire  the  correspondence  of  one  thing  to 
another,  and  to  say  of  God's  works,  in  wisdom  he  hath  made 
them  all 


96 

What  has  suggested  this  introductory  train  of  ideas  is  the 
view  we  take  of  the  subject  of  discourse  we  have  now  read  to 
you,  as  we  have  considered  it,  not  merely  in  its  connexion  with 
tlie  immediate  context,  but  as  a  constituent  part  of  this  admi- 
rably arranged,  and  beautifully  constructed  epistle.  This  text, 
we  suspect,  is  often  read  without  the  mind  being  led  into  a 
just  view  of  all  those  points  of  exact  correspondence,  to  which, 
in  that  delicate  and  copious  contrast  that  the  author  must  be 
supposed  triumphantly  to  consummate  in  this  epistle,  the  dis- 
tinguished station  of  this  text  towards  tlie  close  of  it,  and  its 
character  as  the  last  touches  he  puts  upon  his  perfect  picture, 
must  be  supposed  to  conduct  the  mind  of  tlie  more  attentive 
and  reflecting. 

In  the  preceding  part,  my  brethren,  of  this  epistle  it  has  been 
sliown,  That  every  high  priest  taken  from  amongst  men  must 
offer  both  gifts  and  sacrifices  unto  God :  That  the  Aaronical 
priesthood  did  offer  botli  gifts  and  sacrifices,  which,  however, 
could  not  make  him  that  did  tlie  service  perfect  as  pertaining 
to  the  conscience:  And  that  Christ  being  come,  an  high  priest 
of  a  greater  and  more  perfect  tabernacle,  did  obtain  eternal  re- 
demption for  us.  Already,  by  the  writer  of  this  epistle,  have 
these  three  points  been  regularly  adverted  to,  and  fully  de- 
monstrated. 

What,  then,  the  relations  of  our  text  lead  us  to  ask,  is  the 
reason  of  the  apostle's  returning  here  towards  the  conclusion 
of  his  epistle,  in  the  midst  too  of  his  impressive  practical  ex- 
hortations and  injunctions,  to  a  subject,  all  the  parts  of  which, 
he  hath  already  apparently  exhausted ;  and  in  what  manner 
does  his  contrast  of  the  sin-offering  of  the  Jews,  and  sacrifice 
of  Christ  here,  illustrate,  still  more  clearly  tlian  has  yet  been 
done  in  preceding  points  of  comparison,  the  harmony  of  the 
system  of  truth,  exhibited  first  in  a  shadowy,  and  tlien  in  a 
real  manifestation?  Is  it  true  that  the  apostle  has  no  higher 
motive  for  returning  to  a  subject,  to  which  he  has  done  so  much 
justice,  than,  as  some  commentators  would  appear  to  main- 


WITHOUT   THE   GATE.  97 

tain,  to  account  for  the  literal  fact  of  Jesus' crucifixion  without 
the  gate  of  Jerusalem? 

When  I  meditate  on  the  relations  of  this  text;  when,  in  par- 
licular  I  look  into  the  commandment  mentioned  in  the  prece- 
ding verse,  and  which  is  the  hinge  of  the  apostle's  argument 
here;  a  commandment  which  I  recollect  their  law  expressly 
enjoined  upon  the  Jews,— to  burn  the  bodies  of  their  sin-offer- 
ing without  the  camp  of  Israel;  I  see  I  cannot  add  to  this  re- 
collection, a  view  of  Christ's  crucifixion  on  the  desecrated 
ground  where  the  anathematized  suffered  their  accursed  death, 
without  convictions  arising,  that  many  have  neither  fully  ex- 
amined the  typical  system  of  ancient  sacrifices,  nor  the  admira- 
ble and  connected  structure  of  this  epistle,  the  design  of  which 
is  to  illustrate  to  Hebrew  converts  the  doctrines  of  Christianity, 
by  leading  the  mind  through  the  whole  field  of  their  own  pro- 
phecies and  ceremonies  of  worship,  while  every  prophecy  is* 
placed  by  the  side  of  its  own  event,  and  every  type  is  read  in 
the  light  of  its  own  antitype. 

If  my  text,  however,  my  brethren,  be  the  marrow  of  this  won- 
derful epistle— if  this  epistle  collect  into  a  focus  all  the  scat- 
tering rays  that  presaged  the  rising  sun  of  righteousness— if 
the  whole  of  the  loose  tints  that  wandered: on  the  dark  shadows 
of  the  patriarchal  and  Mosaic  economy,  be  collected  into  the 
cloudless  noon  which  warms  and  fills  us  with  life,  as  we  read 
it— and  if  my  text  be  to  the  epistle,  like  the  divine  light,  that  at 
his  conversion,   emerged,  brilliant  as  the  sun,  from  the  noon- 
day that  surrounded  the  author  of  it,  what  abilities  are  ade- 
quate to  the  task  that  is  now  before  me?     Who  can   travel 
through  the  lines  of  its  relations;  show  it  in  all  the  bearings  of 
its  respective  parts;  and  do  justice  to  the  general   sentiment 
which  the  proposition  conveys?     This  text,  oh  God,  leads  us 
to  interpret  the  principal  emblems  thou  sawest  proper  to  insti- 
tute previous  to  the  fulness  of  time;  to  investigate  the  extent  of 
the  efficacy  of  the  great  sacrifice  of  the  New  Testament;  and 
to  establish  from  tlie  treasures  of  revelation,  the  general  senti- 

9* 


P8  Christ's  suffering 

ment  which  is  here  so  prominently  propounded.  Thy  grace, 
oh  God,  is  sufficient  for  us;  and  under  thy  direction  I  would 
first,  investigate  the  import  of  the  respective  clauses  of  this  text; 
and  then,  secondly,  demonstrate  the  general  truth  which  it 
declares. 

We  begin  our  inquiries  by  ascertaining  tlie  import  of  th8 
dause  which  the  immediate  context  presses  upon  our  notice, — 
For  the  bodies  of  those  beasts  whose  blood  is  brought  into  the 
sanctuary  by  the  high  priest  for  sin,  are  burned  without  the  camp : 
Wherefore  Jesus  suffered  without  the  gate. 

In  a  preceding  part  of  this  epistle,  let  me  remark,  we  are  ex- 
pressly informed  -that  Christ,  who  is  here  said  to  have  suffered 
without  the  gate,  was  constituted  a  priest,  not  after  the  order 
of  Aaron,  but  after  the  order  of  Melchisedec.  Now  both  Aaron 
and  Melchisedec,  we  have  seen,  must  be  supposed  to  offer  both 
gifts  and  sacrifices;  and  Melchisedec's  oblations  being  merely 
typical  as  well  as  Aaron's,  could  make  a  typical  atonement 
only.  What  then  is  peculiarly  taught  us  in  this  epistle  by 
Christ's  being  made  a  priest,  not  after  the  order  of  the  former, 
but  after  that  of  the  latter? 

Aaron  was  the  priest  of  the  Jewish  nation  only,  but  Mel- 
chisedec, who  lived  four  hundred  years  before  the  Mosaic 
economy,  and  to  whom  Abraham  the  father  of  circumcision 
paid  tithes,  was  absolutely  a  priest  without  respect  to  any  pai^ 
ticular  people,  and  adumbrated  Christ  as  the  Saviour  of  the 
Gentiles  no  less  than  of  the  Jews.  Had  the  high  priest  of  our 
profession  sprung  up  under  the  order  of  Aaron,  as  the 
Le\'itical  priesthood  was  appointed  expressly  for  the  Jew- 
ish nation,  whom  God  had  chosen  from  amongst  all  the  na^ 
;.ions  of  the  earth  to  be,  for  a  time,  a  separate  and  a  peculiarly 
sanctified  people,  none  could  have  obtained  salvation  by 
Clirist  but  the  Jews  only.  In  the  steps  of  divine  providence 
which  led  the  church  through  all  previous  changes  and  ripened 
her  for  the  fulness  of  time,  Egypt  aijd  her  first  born,  at  the 
epoch  of  the  passover,  strictly  represented  tlie  world  deserving 


WiTHOrt   THfi    GATE.  99 

God^  wrath ;  and  the  children  of  Israel,  whose  first  bom  were 
saved  by  the  atonement  of  the  paschal  Lamb,  and  in  whom  all 
the  rest  of  their  brethren  found  protection,  strictly  represented 
the  members  of  the  true  church ;  and  Aaron  and  his  sons,  who 
were  chosen  to  officiate  to  a  people  so  separated  and  sanctified, 
could  not  widen  the  circle  of  their  relations  beyond  the  de* 
finite  character  of  their  original  call,  and  that  end  to  which  the 
people  for  whom  they  were  appointed  to  minister  in  the  priest's 
office,  had  been  so  especially  separated.  The  sons  of  Levi 
were  not  shadows  before  the  vision  of  sinners  of  mankind  sim- 
ply, of  a  Saviour  to  be  revealed,  but  they  were  types  of  this 
great  cliaracter,  under  the  circumscribed  relations  of  that  cove* 
nant  which  separated  them  and  their  people  from  the  accursed 
nations  immediately  represented  by  Egypt ;  and  which  placed 
themselves  and  their  people,  as  it  were,  in  a  city  of  refuge,  till 
the  death  of  their  priesthood,  and  the  cessation  of  their  obla- 
tions take  place  at  an  appointed  time.  To  the  Levites,,  indeed, 
for  whom  to  be  his  own,  God  released  the  first  born  to  the  com- 
monwealth of  Israel, — the  first  born  whom  he  had  had  a  right 
to  destroy,  but  whom  he  had  admitted  to  be  exchanged  for  the 
Lamb  of  the  passover,  tithes  are  appointed  to  be  paid  by  all 
the  tribes  of  Israel,  as  an  evidence  that  it  is  from  the  blood  of 
atonement  they  have  a  right  to  live ;  but  while  all  Israel  ac- 
knowledge their  dependence  upon  the  priesthood,  the  means  of 
their  reconciliation  to  Deity,  in  the  tenth  of  the  increase  of 
their  hands ;  yet,  these  very  characters  themselves  occupy  their 
preeminent  station  in  Israel,  only  by  substitution  in  the  room 
of  the  first  born,  the  heirs  of  the  inheritance  of  Jacob;  and 
even  on  this  ingrafted  stock  where  we  see  them,  they  them- 
selves must  acknowledge,  that  they  are  only  the  interior  arch  of 
that  great  rainbow,  which  to  the  world  at  large  was  an  emblem 
of  the  real  priesthood  and  atonement  for  sin.  And,  as  I  may 
so  say,  Levi  also,  who  received  tithes,  paid  tithes  in  Abraham  : 
For  he  was  yet  in  the  loins  of  Abraham  when  Melchisedec  mel 
hitn.    Melchisedec  before  the  eye  of  mankind  sinners  standi 


100  Christ's  suj?fering 

arrayed  in  absolute  relations ;  no  nation  in  respect  to  him  is  an 
emblem  of  our  world,  and  none  presents  a  people  separated  for 
bis  peculiar  ministrations;  his  lineage  is  not  marked  on  any  re- 
cord; his  office  does  not  date  its  origin  from  any  epoch  of  time; 
its  exercise  is  not  cut  off  by  predictions  and  decrees  that  scatter 
the  people  whom  he  serves  from  the  sacred  eminence  he  and 
they  occupy; — "  He  is  without  father  and  mother,  without  de- 
scent, having  neither  beginning  of  days  nor  end  of  years;  but 
made  like  unto  the  Son  of  God,  abideth  a  priest  continually." 

But,  my  brethren,  if  Aaron  officiated  not  in  the  open  world, 
but  under  the  cover  of  a  restricted  economy;  if  this  cover  be 
a"ected  not  by  his  own  performances,  but  by  the  blood  of  that 
sacrifice  which  a  particular  people,  under  a  previous  protection 
from  divine  predictions  and  promises,  presented  each  family 
for  itself;  it  is  obvious,  that  his  sacrifices  respected  God,  not  in 
his  absolute  character  of  governor  of  the  universe,  but  of  go- 
vernor of  a  peculiar  people  by  positive  institution :  And  hence 
his  sacrifices,  that  were  formally  sin-offerings,  could  not,  from 
the  very  nature  of  relations,  be  admitted  to  the  eminent  station 
of  absolute  and  formal  emblems  of  the  great  sacrifice  for  sin- 
ners of  mankind. 

If  these  observations  be  well  founded,  then,  it  is  obvious, 
that  though,  on  the  one  hand,  our  apostle  hath  already  shown 
the  inefficacy  of  the  blood  of  bulls  and  of  goats,  and  the  sprink- 
ling of  the  ashes  of  an  heifer,  to  purge  the  conscience  from 
dead  works  to  serve  the  living  God ;  and,  on  the  other,  the 
efficacy  of  the  death  of  Christ  to  obtain  eternal  redemption  for 
us ;  yet  he  hath  not  exhibited  the  true  character  of  the  type, 
as  contrasted  with  the  antitype  in  the  formal  sin-offerings  of  the 
Jewish  economy,  whose  blood  on  the  great  day  of  atonement  was 
carried  into  the  holiest  of  all,  and  whose  bodies  were  burnt 
without  the  camp. 

My  brethren,  an  offering  for  sin  that  is  in  every  respect  per- 
fect and  accepted  of  under  a  typical  economy,  must  not  only 
haye  it3  blood  carried  into  the  figure  of  heaven,  or  holy  of  ho- 


\\TTHOUT  THE   GATE.  101 

lies  J  but  the  priest  and  people  themselves  must  eat  of  it,  and 
live  upon  the  nourishment  it  is  supposed  to  yield  them.  Of  the 
peace-offerings  and  burnt-offerings  of  the  Jews,  so  distinct 
throughout  their  divine  ritual  in  character  from  the  sin-offerings, 
the  priesthood  and  people  could  eat;  and  their  blood  being 
sprinkled  before  the  vail,  they  could  thus  behold  in  them  an 
emblem  of  a  perfect  sacrifice,  though  not  before  the  governor 
of  the  world,  yet  before  that  merciful  God  who  had,  in  relation 
unto  them,  left,  as  it  were,  his  seat  in  heaven  where  he  views 
our  world  as  such,  and  had  entered  with  themselves  within  the 
circumscribed  circle  he  had  been  pleased,  by  the  blood  of  the 
paschal  Lamb,  to  draw  for  them.  The  blood  of  these  peace- 
offerings  and  burnt-offerings,  however,  never  could  venture  in- 
to the  holiest  of  all,  because  the  first  tabernacle  being  yet  stajid- 
ing, — the  tabernacle  of  the  priesthood  and  people  of  Israel, — 
no  sacrifice  could  be  a  feast  even  ceremonially  whose  blood 
should  dare  to  meet  the  eye  of  the  Eternal,  beyond  the  contract- 
ed canopy  under  which  he  had  condescended  to  reside 
with  them.  Hence,  says  the  apostle,  in  the  9th  chapter  of  this 
epistle,  "  Now  when  these  tilings  were  thus  ordained  the 
priests  went  always  into  the  first  tabernacle,  accomplishing  the 
service  of  God;  but  into  the  second  went  the  high  priest  alone, 
once  every  year,  not  without  blood,  which  he  oflfered  for  him- 
self and  for  the  errors  of  the  people;  the  Holy  Ghost  this  signi- 
fying, that  the  way  into  the  holiest  of  all  was  not  yet  made 
manifest,  wliile  as  the  first  tabernacle  was  yet  standing." — The 
Jewish  tabernacle  in  its  two  apartments  of  Holy  and  Mosl 
Holy,  admitted  of  being  interpreted  three  ways :  As  an  emblem 
of  heaven  and  earth;  of  the  church  militant  and  church  triun> 
phant;  and  of  the  circumscribed  and  indefinite  economies  of 
the  dispensation  of  God's  grace.  Considering  themselves  as 
sinners,  and  God  absolutely  holy,  the  first  view,  and  thai 
through  which  all  the  rest  are  happily  perceived,  that  they  can 
take  of  the  tabernacle,  is,  that  in  which  they  see  in  the  first  ta- 
bernacle, the  peculiarity  of  their  own  separated  station ;  and  in 


102  Christ's  suffering 

the  second,  the  Judge  of  the  world  yet  hiding  himself  from 
them.  Yes,  at  the  era  of  the  erection  of  the  tabernacle  God 
withdraws  from  the  world  at  large,  and  dwells  in  the  holy  camp 
of  Israel;  at  the  termination  of  this  dispensation  he  breaks 
down  the  wall  of  peculiar~separation  which  he  had  built,  and 
on  the  theatre  of  the  world  calls,  Ho!  every  one  that  thirsteth, 
come  ye  to  the  waters  and  drink;  and  when  he  shall  have 
gathered  the  subjects  of  his  kingdom  from  the  four  winds  of 
heaven,  and  placed  them  on  the  thrones  of  glory  to  which  he 
has  destined  them,  then  will  he  connect  himself  to  these  his 
creatures  by  an  im.mediate  dominion ;  and  the  Jews,  who  as  a 
people  related  to  their  tabernacle  were  only  cerem.onially 
sanctified,  as  they  interpreted  this  tabernacle  itself,  could  see  im- 
mediately in  it,  nothing  but  the  figure  of  their  own  happy  privi- 
leges, and  a  representation  of  privileges  upon  earth  that  were 
yet  beyond  them;  and  through  these  glasses  they  could  con- 
template the  real  chQrch  militant  and  triumphant;  and,  imagin- 
ing the  veil  to  be  removed,  even  the  absolute  kingdom  of  the 
Mediator  surrendered  up  to  the  Father.— But,  is  it  said,  that 
the  high  priest  enteredinto  the  holy  of  holies  ?  He  did  so  once 
every  year:  But  it  was  m  the  character  of  the  representative  of 
God's  firstborn,  who,  in  Egypt,  in  the  night  of  their  sanctifica- 
tion,  had  been  cerem.onially  redeemed  to  be,  till  the  wall  of  par- 
tition then  erected  were  cast  down,  a  peculiar  people;  it  was 
with  the  memorial  of  the  passover  he  entered;  and  by  his  enter- 
ing in  this  manner,  he  was  permitted,  as  his  dispensation  was  of 
a  restricted  and  temporary  nature  only,  to  view,  once  every  year, 
the  station  from  which  God  had  condescended  to  choose  the  Is- 
raelites, and  to  which  afterhehadservedhispurposes  with  them 
he  would  return;  the  station  from  which  he  addresses  mankind 
sinners  in  the  privileges  of  the  dispensation  of  mercy ;— that  dis- 
pensation which  applied  to  the  sinner  changes  his  character  and 
nature,  and  clothes  him  with  the  garments  of  salvation; — those 
garments  which  in  the  kingdom  of  heaven  will  be  eternally  the 
pure  and  white  robes  of  the  saints. 


WITHOUT    THE    GATE.  103 

But  if  the  blood  oftlie  sin-offering  on  the  great  day  of  atone- 
ment be  only  a  renewal  of  the  passover,  and  in  this  relative 
sense  only,  an  atonement  for  the  high  priest  himself,  and  for 
the  errors  of  the  people,  what  difference,  we  are  led  to  ask,  is 
there  between  the  original  passover,  and  the  sin  ofierings  on 
the  great  day  of  atonement  in  the  Jewish  constituted  economy? 
The  original  passover  was  a  formal  sin-offering,  its  blood  was 
sprinkled  towards  the  naked  eye  of  heaven,  on  the  door  posts 
and  lintels  of  the  door,  and  the  people  all  eat  of  it.  Out  of  the 
original  paschal  Lamb  was  begotten  by  a  new  birth  the  person 
of  a  people,  that  as  a  vine  was  to  be  planted  in  a  fruitful  land : 
and  which,  though  changing  often  individual  leaves,  and  often 
torn  and  broken  in  its  members,  was  yet  to  grow  till  the 
great  husbandman  should  clear  the  ground  for  another  more 
pure  and  promising  stock.  The  Levitical  sin-offering  of  the 
passover,  on  the  other  hand,  never  could  beget  a  new  people: 
it  could  only  raise  into  immediate  view  the  primary  fountain 
from  which  their  life  sprung  •  and  calling  their  faith  to  this,  year 
after  year,  it  was  a  means,  in  its  character  of  reminiscence,  of 
washing  from  ceremonial  defilement.  Christians,  every  Israel- 
ite had  as  much  a  ceremonial,  as  every  real  christian  has  a 
spiritual  new  birth ;  and  his  character  of  born  of  God  all  flow- 
ed from  that  blood  of  atonement  that  was  the  basis  of  the 
Jews'  peculiar  economy,  as  the  christian's  new  birth  all  issues 
from  the  great  passover  at  the  fulness  of  time;  and  in  their  con- 
stituted economy,  the  memorial  of  their  passover  was  a  means 
of  daily  washing  them,  as  our  remembrance  of  the  death  of 
Jesus  in  our  New  Testament  supper,  is  a  means  of  our  puri- 
fication. 

But  if  the  sin-offering  on  the  great  day  of  atonement  must 
be  viewed,  not  as  a  formal  pattern,  before  the  sight  of  heaven, 
like  the  original  passover,  of  the  great  sacrifice  for  sin ;  and  if 
it  is  not  to  be  viewed,  like  the  burnt-offerings  and  peace-offer- 
ings, as  real  patterns  shown  for  their  instruction  and  comfort^ 


104  Christ's  svttbhtsq 

to  a  peculiar  but  already  reconciled  people,  how,  let  me  in- 
quire, since  its  blood  has  entered  into  the  holiest  of  all,  does 
it  discriminate  itself  from  all  other  sacrifices? 

Here,  I  beg  your  attention  to  the  fact  that  the  variety  of  sin- 
offerings  which  on  the  great  day  of  atonement  was  first  pre- 
sented, and  being  a  memorial  of  the  passover,  took  off, 
from  the  original  deed,  a  copy  of  its  privileges  for  that 
year,  and  so  paved  the  way  during  that  period  of  time,  for  their 
bornt-offerings,  peace-offerings,  and  ordinary  siii-offeringg^ 
tJiough  consisting  of  bullocks,  rams,  goats,  and  lambs,  was  in 
effect  only  one  offering.  Remembering  this,  we  have  only  to 
add  farther,  that  while  all  other  sacrifices  are  erablem.s  of  a 
real  purification  from  sin,  either  in  the  open  world,  or  to  a  pe- 
culiar people  within  the  circle  of  their  separation;  yet,  the 
offering  in  question,  will  support  neither  of  these  characters. 
During  the  encampment  of  the  children  of  Israel  in  the  wil- 
derness their  camp  encircled  their  privileges,  whilst  all  without 
it  was  unhallowed  ground ;  in  the  desert,  it  represented  Ca- 
naan, in  the  world ;  and  on  the  altar  that  was  in  the  midst  of 
their  holiness  they  saw  the  fat  of  their  sin-offerings  laid  by  the 
consecrated  sons  of  Aaron,  but  it  is  thoroughly  consumed, 
while  the  fire  is  yet  unsatisfied :  for  over  the  heads  of  the  offerers^ 
breaks  a  voice  which  pronounces  them  unclean,  and  drive3 
tiiem,  with  the  remainder  of  the  offering,  from  the  holy  ground 
oai  which  they  stand,  into  the  profane  world,  and  there  the 
fire  is  rekindled  and  burns  till  all  is  destroyed.  The  bullock-, 
the  sin-offering,  and  the  goat,  the  sin-offering,  whose  blood 
was  brought  in  to  make  an  atonement  in  the  holy  place ,  shall 
one  carry  forth  without  the  camp ;  and  they  shall  burn  in  th© 
fire  their  skins,  and  their  flesh,  and  their  dung ;  and  he  that 
bumeth  them  shall  wash  his  clothes,  and  bathe  himself  in  wa- 
ter, and  afterward  he  shall  come  into  the  camp.     Lev.  16. 

But  we  will  analyse  another  instance  of  the  Levitical  sin- 
offerings  on  the  day  of  the  commencement  of  the  ecclesiastical 


WITHOUT   THE   GATE.  105 

year  of  Israel.     The  scape-goat  makes  an  atonement  for  Israel ; 
but  this  is  in  the  same  lot  with  another  which  has  been  slain  - 
whose  blood   has  been  sprinkled  towards  and  upon  the  mercy 
seat  in  the  holy  of  holies ;  and  whose  hide,  flesh,  and  dung  are 
burnt  without  the  camp.     What  is  the  import  of  this  wonder- 
ful manner  of  oblation  on  the  great  day  of  atonement?     Does 
not  this  machinery  of  expiation  show  us,  that,   though  the 
blood  of  the  latter  has  been  admitted  to  renew  the  memorial 
of  the  passover,  and  to  afford  for  a  moment  protection  to  the 
representative  of  Israel,  while  under  the  darkening  cloud  of  in- 
cense   he   views,  on  the  day  that  recals  the  origin   of  their 
economy,  the  glorious  character  in  which  God  originally  chose 
them-  yet,  the  blood  which  he  scatters  around  him  in  the  em- 
blem of  heaven,  having  served  its  present  purpose,  loses  all 
efficacy;  the  guilt,  which  was  supposed   buried  for  a  moment, 
rises  from  under  it ;  this  being  all  Israel's  is  thrown  back  upon 
them ;  and  there  is  no  way  of  their  being  freed  from  it,  but  by 
the  happy  institution  of  the  other  ceremonial  sacrifice,  that, 
without  attempting  to  expiate  it,  carries  it,  on  its  living  head, 
into  the  wilderness?     The  scape-goat  is  a  type  of  the  Messiah, 
as  it  is  generally  viewed,  only,  in  as  far  as  it  is  a  ceremonial 
atonement  for  the  sons  of  Jacob  in   the  city  of  their  refuge  ; 
but,  in  as  far  as  it  is  the  winding  up  of  that  offering  which,  in 
its  complicated  process,  has  touched  upon  the  eye  of  Deity  as 
he  sits  upon  the  circle  of  the  heavens,  it  proclaims  to  the  Jews, 
That  the  offerings  of  the  children  of  Israel  are  of  no  avail ;  that 
the  moral  relations  of  the  people,  notwithstanding  all  their  of- 
ferings, are  still  the  same :  It  says,  ye  peculiar  people,  ye  race 
already  sanctified,  may  be  saved,  to  all  the  ends  of  your  sancti- 
fication ;  but  the  moral  character  of  man — the  world  and  all 
that   dwell  in  it,  are  yet  absolutely  guilty.     Yes,  my  hearers, 
the  representative  of  the  first  born  of  God  in  Egypt,  did  slay 
his  offering  and  was  permitted  to  view  the   formal  emblem  of 
heaven   annually;  and  by  this  review  of  their  original  privi- 
leges to  refresh  the  spirit,  renovate  the  vigor,  and  purify  from 
10 


t06  Christ's  suFFERiJfG 

filth,  for  the  passing  year,  the  whole  ritual  of  the  Jewish  na- 
tion ;  iie  was  permitted  to  reconcile  the  holy  place,  and  the 
tabernacle  of  the  congregation,  and  the  altar:  But  yet  every 
time  he  finished  his  service  he  might  liave  cried  out, "  We  need 
a  greater  and  more   perfect  tabernacle,  one  not  of  this  build- 
ing.'*    Looking  around  him^  this  high  priest  might  have  ex- 
claimed, oh !  ye  sons  of  the   promise,  we  have  not  a  perfect 
image  even  of  a  sin-offering. — I  perceive  that  the  blood  of  our 
sin-offering   which  is  permitted  to   reach  the  mercy  seat,  and 
to  remain  there  covering  our  guilt,  while  1  stand  for  a  short 
space  on  this  day,  as  the  representative  of  the  sons  of  Jacob ; 
yet,  as  soon  as  my  presence  withdraws,  the  guilt  that  seemed 
buried,  rises  from  under  the  temporary  shadow;  and  that  we 
may  find  safety,  it  must  again  be  transferred  to  another  offering 
whicli  bears  it  away  into  tlie  wilderness,  the  located  emblem 
to  us  of  an  accursed  world — where  it  abides,  never  expiated  by 
blood    And.  moreover,  the  whole  original  sacrifices,  instead  of 
affording  any  communion  v/ith  God  and  with  one  another,  are 
consumed    in  the  same  world  of  our   sinful  nature.     As  the 
sons  of  a  promising  God,  the  seed  of  Abraham,  the  children  of 
the  birthright   of  Jacob,  as  a  people  ledeemed  by  God  at  a 
marked  period  of  time,  I  see,  indeed,  that  God  does  admit  our 
sacrifices  for  sin,  to  renew,  for  a  few  moments^  the  paschal  sacri- 
fice, through  which,  from  every  one's  own  hand,  God  originally 
sanctified  his  people  to  himself;  but  while  this  is  the  case,  the 
ceremony  breaks    av^ray    among  my  hands,   and,  just  having 
announced  our  positive  economy  and  the  privileges  which  it  free- 
ly contains;  it  escapes  from  our  view,  like  an  image  in  a  dream 
that  changes  and  moulders  away  while  we  contemplate  it.    To 
behold  a  perfect  ceremonial  sin-offering  from   the   hand  of  "a 
priest  separated  from  among  the  people,  and  sanctified  to  his 
office,  as  I  am,  it  is  necessary  to  look  without  the  orbit  of  our 
restricted  economy,  it  is  necessary  to  look  into  the  wide  thea- 
tre of  the  world  itself,  where  guilt  in  its  naked  character  ap- 
pears ;  and  to  see  presented  there  a  sin-offering  whose  blood 


WITHOUT   THE    GATE,  107 

has  been  accepted  of  by  God,  and  whose  flesh  feeds  the  people 
that  offer  it.  Yes,  children  of  Abraham,  to  explain  our  sa- 
crifices which  have  not  merely  a  typical  character,  but  as  con- 
trasted with  sacrifices  previous  to  our  economy,  have  this  char- 
acter particularly  modified  according  to  our  subservient  dis- 
pensation, I  must  tell  you,  that  the  law  of  our  sacrifices  must  be 
interpreted  by  a  connexion  with  the  history  of  our  religion. 
When  we  sing  the  Lord  hath  sworn  and  will  not  repent,  thou 
art  a  priest  for  ever,  after  the  order  of  Melchisedec— Mel- 
chisedee  who  blessed  Abraham  and  all  us  in  him, — then,  and 
then  only,  do  we  see  that  great  high  priest,  and  his  sacrifice 
that  in  the  accursed  world,  is  a  perfect  emblem  of  the  great 
sacrifice  for  sin. 

Guiding  our  thouglits,  my  brethren,  by  the  discriminating 
principles  of  this  epistle — that  every  high  priest  must  oiier  both 
gifts  and  sacrifices  unto  God,  and  that  Aaron's  priesthc-;d  v/as 
cerem^onially  inferior,  and  included  under  that  of  Melchisedec, 
we  have,  in  some  measure,  illustrated  our  prospects,  and  are 
now  ready  to  telJ  you,  that  this  doctrine  is  the  subject  warmly 
presented  in  our  text  and  context.  When  it  is  said  in  the  9ih 
verse,  tliat  it  is  a  good  thing  to  have  the  heart  established  by 
grace,  not  with  meats,  which  hav:©  not  profited  them  tliid  have 
been  occupied  therein,  it  is  obvious,  that  by  meats  the  apostle 
intends  sacrificial  meats,  and  that  his  aim  is  to  convince  us, 
that  all  the  sacrifices  of  which  the  Jews  could  eat  were  such  as 
presupposed  their  God  already  reconciled  to  them  and  were 
not  strictly  sacrifices  of  expiation  or  sin-offerings.  For  it  is  im- 
raediatelly  subjoined,  verse  10th,  We  have  an  altar  whereof  they 
have  no  right  to  eat  which  serve  the  tabernacle.  This  was  the 
altar  of  sin-offering;  an  altar  which  though  materially  the  same 
with  the  altar  of  burnt-oflferings  and  peacerofferings,  had  yet  a 
peculiar  character  as  related  to  the  sin-offering,  and  consumed 
all  the  marrow  and  fat  that  was  imposed  upon  it,  without  pro- 
ducing, on  the  great  day  of  atonement,  a  sweet  smelling  savor 
nnto  God;  as,  in  the  common  sin-offerings,  and  tlie  offerings  of 


108  Christ's  suffering 

ignorance,  as  well  as  the  burnt-ofterings,  the  peace-offerings, 
and  the  drink-offerings,  on  the  same  day,  and  ail  the  other  festi- 
vals and  dedications,  and  in  the  daily  sacrifice  was  produced. 
This  altar,  the  11th  verse  shows  us,  yielded  the  honor  of  per- 
fecting an  emblem  of  expiation,  and  leaving  priest  and  people 
under  ceremonial  defilement,  saw  them  carry  off  to  a  clean 
place  without  the  camp  of  Israel,  the  remainder  of  that  sacri- 
fice, its  virtues  could  not  sanctify.  "  For  the  bodies  of  those 
beasts  whose  blood  is  brought  into  the  sanctuary  by  the  high 
priest  for  sin  evei7  year,  is  burnt  without  the  camp."  Failing 
within  the  circle  of  their  sanctification  to  produce  a  savor  of  a 
sweet  smell,  the  sacrifices  of  the  sons  of  Jacob  are  tried  on  the 
open  theatre  of  our  world,  and  all  that  we  can  learn  from  these 
sin-offerings  is,  that  though  the  God  of  Jacob  be  pacified,  the 
ruler  of  the  universe  is  yet  offended, — absolutely  offended — that 
his  wisdom  and  jealousy  demolish  the  very  shadows  of  a  sin- 
offering. 

But  although  the  Israelites  durst  not  eat  of  their  sin-offer- 
inas,  and  although  in  the  open  world  they  were  entirely  con- 
sumed, and  both  in  relation  to  them,  and  to  tlie  condition  of 
the  scape-goat,  their  sin  is  yet  crying  for  vengeance;  yet,  our 
apostle  informs  us,  that  we  have  a  right  to  eat  of  this  altar  of  sin- 
offering  .  Melchisedec,  who  blessed  Abraham  in  the  character 
of  priest  of  the  most  high  God,  has  offered  his  emblems  of  ex- 
piation, and  in  the  world  of  mankind  he  maintains  the  charac- 
ter of  king  of  righteousness,  by  the  perfect  acceptance,  as  it  is 
supposed,  of  his  sacrifice,  and  as  the  relations  of  his  priesthood, 
a  perfect  image  of  the  eternal  priesthood  of  Jesus  Christ,  de- 
monstrate; and  the  apostle  now  exhibits  to  our  view  the  great 
antitype  of  this  priest,  that  was  made  like  unto  the  Son  of  God. 
In  our  text  we  are  called  to  behold  Jesus,  the  substance  of  all 
predictive  forms;  Jesus  who  has  taken  from  the  head  of  the 
scape-goat  all  the  sin  of  the  true  Israel  it  ever  bore  into  the  wil- 
derness; who  has  carried  it  back  to  the  seat  of  the  ineffectual 
sacrifices  of  the  sons  of  Jacob;  and  who,  demolishing  entirely 


WITHOUT    THE    GATE.  109 

their  whole  restricted  and  emblematical  ritual,  by  a  legislative 
anathema  of  your  house  is  left  unto  you  desolate;  then  stands 
on  the  bare  bosom  of  our  accursed  earth,  on  that  station  that 
had  been  so  long  awaiting  him;  and  on  this  station  of  our  open 
world  he  purifies  the  things  of  heaven  itself  by  his  blood,  and 
he  gives  us  his  flesh  to  eat.  "  Wherefore  Jesus  also,  that  he 
might  sanctify  the  people  w^ith  his  owm  blood,  suffered  without 
the  gate."  Yes,  thou,  oh!  Jesus,  a  priest, not  after  the  order  of 
Aaron,  but  after  that  of  Melchisedec,  wast,  on  the  scene  of  the 
death  of  persons  excommunicated  and  anathematized  from  the 
peculiar  people  that  God  had  chosen,  subjected  to  the  fire  of 
tlie  ^vrath  of  the  Judge  of  the  spirits  of  all  men,  which  no  sa- 
crifice could  ever  endure;  and  on  this  accursed  scene,  thou  didst 
endure,  sustain,  and  exhaust  it:  like  the  bush,  which  was  a 
figure  of  thee,  and  which  grew  in  an  unhallowed  region,  except 
what  its  own  light  and  heat  consecrated,  burning  and  not  con- 
sumed. 

Having  authoritatively  revoked  their  subservient  economy, 
and  thus  having  also  by  his  death  redeemed  the  faithfulness  of 
God  that  had  been  pledged  under  the  emblems  that  had  been 
shown  to  the  Jews  of  a  real  sacrifice,  as  well  as  having  fulfilled 
all  shadows  that  ever  prefigured  him,— is  it  not  with  propriety, 
my  brethren,  that  the  apostle  continues  the  subject,  and  urges 
the  improvement  of  this  great  prospect  that  he  has  opened  in  the 
world  at  large  on  them,  who  by  a  wall  of  separation,  had  been 
so  long  preserved  a  peculiar  people?  He  has  just  been  telling 
the  Jews,  that  in  the  dispensations  of  God,  their  emblems  have 
passed  away,  and  that  now  they  are  come  to  Mount  Zion,  the 
city  of  the  living  God,  the  heavenly  Jerusalem,  to  the  church  of 
the  first  born,  to  God  the  judge  of  all,  to  the  spirits  of  just  men 
made  perfect,  to  tlie  mediator  of  the  new  covenant,  and  to  the 
blood  of  sprinkling  that  speaketh  better  things  than  that  of 
Abel:  to  beseech  them,  therefore,  to  leave  their  camp,  the  image 
of  it,  and  to  enter  into  the  city  itself,  is  what  is  to  be  expected. 
Hence  these  subsequent  verses — Let  us   therefore   go  fortli 

10* 


]  10  Christ's  sufferixg 

unto  him  without  the  camp  bearing  his  reproach,  for  here  we 
have  no  continuing  city  of  abode,  but  we  seek  one  to  come. — 
The  blood  of  Abel,  my  brethren,  being  the  first  that  was  shed 
in  our  world,  stands,  in  our  apostle's  reasoning,  opposed  abso- 
lutely to  the  blood  of  Christ;  it  opens  a  mouth  of  vindictive 
justice,  Vv'hich  has  blown  from  the  field  of  truth  the  sacrifice  of 
Melchisedec  and  left  only  the  mystery  of  his  names,  from  which 
to  learn  the  extent  and  formalities  of  his  office,  which  has  held 
the  first  born  of  Israel  for  ever  forfeited  unto  God,  and  which 
has  consumed  the  sin-offerings  of  Israel's  peculiar  economy  as 
a  standing  testimony  that  God  is  a  consuming  fire :  But  while 
Christ  vindicates  the  propriety  of  instructing  the  world  by  those 
mere  images  that  divine  justice  tears  asunder  in  the  history  of 
its  procedure,  he  does  yet  take  upon  himself  the  whole  task  of 
opposing  the  fury  of  divine  vengeance,  and  his  blood  speaks 
better  things  than  the  blood  of  Abel.  Hence  follows  this  ex- 
clamation of  the  apostle:  By  him,  therefore,  let  us  offer  the 
sacrifice  of  praise  to  God  continually,  that  is,  the  fruit  of  our 
lip,  giving  thanks  to  his  name. 

But  against  the  general  view  of  the  subject  which  we  have 
exhibited,  it  may  perhaps  be  objected,  that  we  place  the  Jewish 
types  in  such  an  inferior  station  among  the  emblems  that  God 
had  appointed  to  prefigure  Christ,  that  we  invert  the  order  of  a 
gradual  increase  of  light  and  privilege  till  the  fulness  of  time. 
But,  it  is  obvious,  our  view  militates  against  this  idea  in  the 
clearest  and  most  forcible  manner.  The  introductory  econo- 
mies that  God  had  established  in  our  world,  as  already  hint- 
ed, were  pure  expressions  of  his  free  and  sovereign  grace;  the 
limited  or  unlimited  nature  of  them,  might  have  been  changed 
or  continued  according  to  the  divine  pleasure.  Nothing  can 
be  more  erroneous  than  to  suppose  that  the  Jewish  economy 
was  capable  of  being  formally  repealed  only  in  the  death  of  the 
Saviour  of  the  world.  Had  it  not  been  for  the  prophecies  that 
carried  down  its  existence  till  the  fulness  of  time,  this  restricted 
and  positive  econemy,  might,  at  any  time,  have  been  as  sover- 


WITHOUT   THE    GATE.  Ill 

eignly  revoked  as  it  had  been  freely  instituted.  Being  indeed, 
established  upon  divine  promises  and  predictions   as  the  last 
typical  dispensation,  it  was  indispensable   that  it  should  con- 
tinue till  tlie  Messiah  arrived ;  and  containing   real  types  and 
shadows  which  he  alone  could  fulfil,  this   Messiah    must  be 
said  to  have  nailed  it  to  his  cross,  since  in  this  way  only  could 
forms  be  displaced  by  their  substance;  but  considering  the 
economy  by  itself,  it  was  the  subject  of  authoritative  establish- 
ment or  revocation  only.     Jesus  nailed  to  his  cross  all  pre-ex- 
isting shadows,  as  well  as  those  in  the  Jewish  economy;  al- 
though, this  being  the  last  typical  dispensation,  and  containing 
the  privileges  of  all  previous  times,  and  many  pre-eminent  excel- 
lencies of  its  own ;— privileges  and  excellencies,  however,  that 
the  world  at  large  might  have  forever  enjoyed,  but  which  were 
sovereignly  bestowed,  for  the  wisest  purposes,  upon  a  peculiar 
people,— it  is  said^  in  relation  to  this  people,  that  as  the  Sun 
himself  arose  and  dispelled  all  shadows,  the  wall  of  their  separa- 
tion disappeared.     The  Jews  from  the  epoch  of  their  deliver- 
ance from  Egypt,  represented,  by  the  peculiarity  of  their  privi- 
leges, the  world,  as  it  had  once  been  placed  under  a  dispensation 
of  mercy ;  and  all  the  rest  of  the  nations  are  viewed,  during  this 
period  of  time,  as  under  the  region  and  shadow  of  death;  and 
when  the  light  that  is  the  fulfilment  of  prophecy  and  prediction 
is  now  about  to  visit  the  long  abandoned  nations,  Jesus  dis- 
pels the  shadows  of  the  world,  dispels  them  from  under  the  re- 
stricted and  particular  pavilion  under  which  they  had  been  all 
grouped  together;  and  breaking  down  thus  a  partition  wall  that 
a  particular  dispensation  had  erected,  he  gives  to  the  world  the 
realization  of  all  types,  and  those  privileges  they  once  enjoyed, 
but  which  had  been  long  withdrawn  from  them. 

Remembering,  then,  that  the  world  in  every  age  had  had 
figures  of  Christ,  we  see  clearly,  how  the  Jewish  economy  was 
inferior  among  the  types,  and  yet  its  privileges  must  be  con- 
sidered an  advancement  on  the  scale  of  light  and  privilege  in 
the  dispensations  of  God.     A  perfect  figure  might  easily  have 


112  CHRIST^S  StJPFERI^^G 

been  mistaken  for  the  reality.  But  while  the  Jewish  burnt-offer- 
ings and  peace-offerings  were  shadows  that,  under  their  restrict- 
ed economy,  taught  them  the  true  relations  of  a  formal  sacrifice 
for  sin ;  while  the  blood  of  these  was  sprinkled  before  the  vail, 
and  they  themselves  eat  of  the  sacrifice ;  their  sin-offerings  that 
ventured  to  purify  the  representation  of  heaven  itself,  the  abode 
of  Deity  by  his  presence,  his  law,  and  his  yet  covered  mercy, 
taught  them,  in  the  most  practical  and  convincing  manner,  that 
the  blood  of  bulls  and  of  goats  could  never  take  away  sin. 
The  ordinances  of  all  previous  types  were  merely  sovereign 
and  admirably  adapted  methods  of  teaching  mankind,  in  the 
first  and  rude  ages  of  the  world,  the  fiict  of  a  real  atonement; 
and  the  machinery  of  the  Jewish  economy  in  its  ordinances  of 
expiation  merely,  was  prominently  superior  to  all  previous  in- 
stitutions,  reflecting  the  shadow,  though  not  the  formal  image, 
of  a  sin-offering,  and  also  proclaiming  in  the  most  pointed  man- 
ner the  worthlessness  and  insufficiency  of  them  all.  "For  the 
law  having  a  shadow  of  good  things  to  come,  and  not  the  very 
image  of  the  things,  can  never,  with  those  sacrifices  which  are 
offered  year  by  year,  make  the  comers  thereunto  perfect."  A 
perfect  image  of  a  sin-offering  once  presented  and  formally  ac- 
cepted by  God,  would  ceremonially  have  forever  taken  away  all 
conscience  of  sin;  and  as  there  could  be  only  one  offering  by 
Christ  in  making  a  real  atonement,  so,  had  the  sin-offerings  of 
the  Jews  displayed  a  perfect  image,  they  could  have  been  only 
once  presented ;  the  majesty  of  equity  would  have  forbidden 
the  presumptuous  ceremony,  that  attempted  to  appease,  what 
"was  already  pacified.  The  Jews'  sin-offerings  were  only  the 
shadow  of  an  image,  they  were  only  the  remembrance  of  sin 
once  every  year;  of  sin,  which  though  expiated  ceremonially  in 
the  original  passover,  was  yet  morally  unbroken  and  untouched, 
and  which  cried  annually  before  them  for  that  vengeance  which 
it  merits.  The  law,  as  well  as  reason,  or  the  inspirations  of 
the  New-Testament,  enstamped  its  seal  of  imperfection  upon 
its  own  methods  of  expiation ;  Its  usages  suggested  to  our 


WITHOUT   THE   GATE.  113 

apostle,  what  his  reason,  and  the  spirit  of  inspiration,  so  power- 
fully urge  in  these  subsequent  words,  "  For  then  would  they  not 
have  ceased  to  be  offered?  because  that  the  worshippers  onoe 
purged  should  have  had  no  more  conscience  of  sins :  But  in  tliose 
sacrifices  there  is  a  remembrance  again  made  of  sins  every  year: 
For  it  is  not  possible  that  the  blood  of  bulls,  and  of  goats 
should  take  away  sins." 

Thus  we  have  illustrated  our  first  object, — we  have  shown 
what  is  meant  by  Jesus  suffering  without  the  gate.  And  the 
sum  of  our  remarks  is,  That  a  leading  object  of  this  epistle  is 
to  convince  us  that  the  Jewish  dispensation  was  confessedly  a 
restricted  and  subservient  economy;  that  it  never  in  its  priest- 
hood and  sacrifices  formally  typified  Christ;  and  that  wlien 
Christ  offered  his  great  sacrifice  it  was  as  the  antitype  of  M^l- 
chisedec;  Melchisedec  who  was  priest  of  the  most  high  God, 
and  who  blessed  Abraham  and  filiated  to  his  sons  tlieir  right  of 
priesthood;  Melchisedec  who  officiated  without  a  respect  to  any 
people,  and  adumbrated  Christ  as  the  Saviour  of  sinners  of 
mankind;  Melchisedec  who  directs  the  eye  to  our  Saviour  in  the 
open  and  accursed  world — without  the  purlieus  of  the  Jewish 
sanctified  economy — without  the  camp  of  Israel — without  the 
city  of  Jerusalem — on  Golgotha  the  scene  of  the  death  of  the 
excommunicated  and  cut  off  from  ancient  Israel. — Here  Paul 
has  shown  us  that  Christ  trode  the  winepress  alone,  and  tliat  of 
the  people  there  was  none  with  him. 

Neither  is  our  view  of  the  subject  idle  speculation.  It  il- 
lustrates in  a  wonderful  manner  the  absolute  purity  of  God, 
and  his  perpetual  jealousy  of  his  honor;  it  shows  us  that  the 
practical  ceremonies  of  the  Jews,  as  well  as  the  prophecies, 
proclaimed,  that  the  Messiah  respected  in  his  office,  not  any 
particular  nation,  but  the  world  at  large;  and  it  leads  us  to 
trace  the  free  dispensation  of  mercy,  its  offices,  and  its  bless- 
ings, to  the  point  in  history,  where  we  see  Abraham,  the  father 
of  the  Jewish  nation,  elevated  above  the  temporal,  and  shining 
by  the  spiritual  promises  that  God  made  to  him ;  promises  that  of 


114  CHBIST's  SUFFEEING,  &C. 

themselves  were  worthy  of  God,  and  justified  the  propriety  of 
eaacting  and  establishing  those  that  were  temporal  emblems, 
and  subservient  to  their  manifestation.  In  a  word,  it  frees  the 
New  Testament  dispensation  from  that  influence  which  the 
economy  of  circumcision  is  so  apt  to  exert  over  the  spiritual 
body  of  the  redeemed.  In  respect  to  the  external  character  of 
the  New  Testament  church,  we  are  taught  that  we  are  to  re- 
gulate it,  rather  by  what  prevailed  previous  to  the  Mosaic 
economy,  than  by  the  usages  and  practices  of  that  subservient 
and  evanescent  dispensation;  that  as  Melchisedec  blessed 
Abraham  as  the  temporal  ally  of  Sodom  and  in  the  open  air,  ^ 
our  New  Testament  churches  need  no  consecration  like  posi- 
tively separated  materials  of  ceremonial  worship;  nor  is  the 
kingdom  of  Christ  to  be  viewed  as  necessarily  connected  with 
those  temporal  supports  that  upheld,  on  a  particular  spot  of  our 
earth,  for  a  limited  period,  and  for  a  subservient  purpose,  the 
material  fabric  of  ceremonies  that  adumbrated  it. 


DISCOURSE  T* 

THE   PEOPLE  SANCTIFIED  BY  CHRIST'S  BLOOD. 


Heb.   13:12.     Wherefore  Jesus  also,  tlurt  he  might  sanctify 
the'peaple  with  his  own  blood,  suffered  without  the  gate. 

The  second  thing,  my  brethren,  that  in  the  explication  of 
our  text  demands  our  attention,  is  "  the  people"  to  sanctify 
whom  Jesus  suffered  without  the  gate.  Who  are  those  that 
are  here  called  "  the  people?"  We  are  still  presented  with 
typical  language,  and  language  that  is  immediately  drawn  from 
the  Jewish  economy.  Because  of  their  separation  to  God  and 
of  their  enjoyment  of  his  institutions,  the  children  of  Israel 
were  called,  m  contradistinction  to  all  other  nations,  the  Lord's 
people. 

When  Abraham  was  called  to  sojourn  in  a  strange  land,  and 
when  tliis  land  became  his  own  by  the  charter  of  a  divme 
promise,  a  seed,  to  spring  from  his  loins  like  the  stars  in  hea- 
ven for  multitude,  was  planted  upon  it;  this  seed  was  guarded 
through  the  generations  of  Isaac  and  Jacob;  and  both  from 
their  original  separation,  and  this  guardianship  to  preserve 
them  from  intermixture  with  others,  did  the  Israelites  enjoy 
the  appellation  in  our  text.  Afterwards  by  G  od  there  was  given 
unto  them  a  law  which  still  more  particularly  distinguished 
them,  and  separated  them  from  all  other  nations.  Not  only 
did  the  rainbow  of  a  faithful  promise  silently  surround  and  en- 
close them,  and  a  law  incorporate  the  variety  and  singularity 
of  their  privileges;  but  miraculous  providences  further  pro 


116  THE  PEOPLE    SANCTIFIED 

daimed  their  character;  while  living  prophets. correcting  their 
tendencies  to  deviation,  and  stimulating  their  endeavors  to 
maintain  that  eminent  and  happy  station  above  all  people  to 
which  God  had  been  pleased  to  exalt  them,  uttered,  from 
generation  to  generation,  the  most  unequivocal  voice.  Hence, 
on  the  records  of  the  Jewish  nation  we  have  evidences  that 
while  all  other  nations  are  considered,  not  as  the  Greeks  and 
Romans  viewed  people  of  other  regions  under  civil  barbarism, 
but  under  a  religious  degradation;  they  themselves  are  the 
chosen  and  sanctified  people  of  God.  Thus  Isaiah,  when 
prophesying  of  the  Messiah,  says,  I  will  give  him  for  a  cove- 
nant of  the  people,  and  a  light  of  the  Gentiles. 

The  name,  Sons  of  God,  however,  was  known  in  our  world 
long  before  the  promise  of  a  holy  seed  was  made  to  Abraham 
as  the  father  of  the  Jewish  nation.     The  worshippers  of  the 
true  God  obtained  this  appellation  even  in  the  antediluvian 
world.     Hence,  when  the  promise  of  a  seed  was  made  to 
Abraham,  it   was  that  he  should  be  the  father  of  many  na- 
tions,— intimating,  that  as  he  alone  was  particularly  chosen  as 
the   person  in  whose  family  the   worship  of  God  should  be 
preserved,  and  from  whose  privileges  the  visible  church  should 
derive  her  character  and  deduce  her  history;  so  this  character 
and  history,  although  eminently  characteristic  of  his  own  liter- 
al offspring  for  a  time,  yet  would  at  length  diffuse  themselves 
over  a  wider  field,  and  show  that  the  God  who  had  chosen 
Abraham,  was  the  same  God,  who  had  spread  the  rainbow  of 
his  promise  over  the  sons  of  Noah.     Yes,  Abraham ,  as  has 
been  demonstrated,  is  blessed,  not  by  a  messenger  who  re- 
sides within  the  circle  of  his  own  family,  but  by  the  priest  of 
the  most  high  God  as  he  dwells  in  the  world  at  large.     Hence, 
all  the  prophecies  and  predictions  that  are  made  to  the  chiU 
dren  of  Abraham  according  to  the  flesh,  lead  them  to  remem- 
ber, that,  in  the  great  plan  of  God's  mercy,  of  which  at]present 
they  display  the  only  visible  part,  they  are  only  a  very  subor* 


117 

dinate  wheel,  which,  in  performing  its  revolutions,  will  neces- 
sarily bring  into  view  the  rest  of  the  machinery  that  is  all 
compacted  and  jointed  together  with  it.  Consequently  Ra- 
hab  and  Babylon,  Tyre  and  Egypt,  Philistia  and  Ethiopia,  arc, 
though  present  enemies,  yet  received  in  the  mouth  of  prophecy, 
and  hailed  with  the  lips  of  praise,  as  people  of  the  future  joy- 
fu-l  privileges  of  Zion.  The  wilderness  and  solitary  place 
change  their  appearance  before  the  Jews  and  grow  into  the 
richest  verdure.  As  the  sun  of  righteousness  arises,  they  in- 
vite the  kings  of  the  earth  to  advance,  and  behold  his  glory. 

On  this  principle  Jeremiah,  a  prophet  of  the  Jews,  declared, 
After  those  days  I  will  make  a  new  covenant  with  the  house 
of  Israel  and  with  the  house  of  Judah,  not  according  to  the 
covenant  which  I  made  with  your  fathers,  when  I  took  them 
by  the  hand  to  bring  them  out  of  the  land  of  Egypt ;  but  this  is 
the  covenant  that  1  will  make  with  the  house  of  Israel,  after 
those  days,  saith  the  Lord;  I  will  put  my  law  in  their  inward 
parts,  and  write  it  in  their  hearts,  and  I  will  be  their  God,  and 
they  shall  be  my  people.  True  Israelites  were  under  the  Jew- 
ish economy  purified  and  sanctified  by  the  spirit  of  God,  as 
well  fas  saints  are  under  the  New  Testament  dispensation. 
Hence  this  prediction,  which  our  apostle  quotes  three  times  in 
this  epistle,  was  not  intended,  in  its  primary  and  literal  ac- 
ceptation, to  teach,  that  in  New  Testament  times,  God  would 
sanctify  men  internally,  nor  is  it  applied  for  this  object  in  a  sin- 
gle instance  in  this  epistle.  The  object  of  it,  defined  and  in- 
terpreted by  our  apostle,  is,  to  convince  the  Jews  of  an  ulterior 
and  spiritual  dispensation  to  which  theirs  was  introductory, 
and  in  comparison  with  which  it  was  material :  a  dispensation 
before  which  theirs  would  vanish  away,  and  which  in  its  own 
attributes  would  ultimately  and  permanently  sit  down  the  gen- 
uine form  of  the  worship  of  a  spiritual  society.  After  ih.o 
apostle,  in  the  preceding  chapter,  has  illustrated  the  priesthood 
after  whose  order  Christ  is  constituted  to  his  sacerdotal  office, 
he,  in  the  eighth  chapter,  produces  this  prophecy,  to  teach  the 
11 


II B  THE    PEOPLE  SANCTIFIED 

Jews,  from  their  own  scriptures,  the  designed  abrogation  of 
their  former  dispensation,  and  the  inspired  fact  of  a  new  cov- 
enant :  and  while  the  names  of  Judah  and  Israel  are  still  used 
in  speaking  of  this  new  dispensation  j  yet,  these  titles,  so  en- 
dearing to  the  ears  of  Israelites,  obviously  widen  their  em- 
brace and  exalt  their  dignity,  by  designating  the  spiritual  in- 
stead of  the  literal  seed  of  Abraham. 

Thus  the  people  for  v/hom  Jesus  suffered  without  the  gate 
are  they  who  enjoy  the  privileges  of  the  dispensation  of  mercy. 
Their  character  is  relative  to  the  priesthood  of  Christy  who  was 
formally  typified  by  Melchisedec,  that  priest  of  the  most  higb 
God   who  blessed  Abraham,   and  through   him   the  Jewish 
priesthood   and  people;  and  after  their  subservient  economy, 
the  people  of  every  kindred,  tongue,  and  nation,  that  are  called 
to  be  the  spiritual  seed  of  this  great  progenitor  of  the  faithfuL 
It  would  be  the  common,  but  a  lame  view  of  the  subject,  to 
suppose  the  objects  of  mercy  under  the  New  Testament  dis- 
pensation  interested  exclusively  in   the  happy  character  of 
those  people  for  whom  Christ  suffered  without  the  gate  of 
Jerusalem.    The  Jews,  while  ceremonially  distinguished  from 
the  people  who  enjoy  the  happy  privileges  of  the  new  covenant^ 
or  dispensation  of  the  gospel,  yet,  had  under  the  cover  of  their 
ceremonies,  spiritually  and  morally  the  very  same  offers  and 
calls  of  mercy  that  we  enjoy.    Their  ceremonies,  we  have  al- 
ready remarked,  were  merely  methods  of  instruction  J  and  im- 
plied, as  obtaining  at  tliat  time,  a  spiritual  and  moral  dispen- 
sation, of  which  they  were  the  material  external  expressions. 
When  we  answer  the  question  then,  who  are  the  people  for 
whom  Jesus  suffered  without  the  gate?  we  must  reply,  all  that 
have  enjoyed  the  dispensation  of  his  grace  since  the  first  prom- 
ise on  which  it  was  founded,  and  all  that  ever  will  enjoy  it  till 
the  end  of  time. 

But  here  we  must  ask,  did  Christ  suffer  promiscuously  for 
all  to  whom  an  offer  of  his  gospel  is  made?  And  let  me  ob» 
serve,  that  we  are  expressly  informed  that  there  is  one  God  and 


BY  chjiist's  blood.  119 

one  mediator  between  God  and  men,  the  man  Christ  Jesus. 
This  decision  of  holy  writ  shows  us  that  the  character  of  me- 
diator IS  relative  to  mankind  sinnei-s,  and  not  to  the  sovereign 
and  immanent  acts  of  Deity,  I\Iany  divines  in  order  to  estab- 
lish the  definite  satisfaction  of  Christ  for  thoso  only  who  ulti- 
mately obtain  salvation  by  him,  have  appeared,  either  to  shun, 
or  very  slightly  to  pass  over,  all  that  the  scripture  declares  re- 
specting the  formal  relations  of  our  Mediator's  character,  in- 
stead of  considering  it  as  correlative  to  sinners  of  mankind, 
they  have  put  out  of  sight  the  law  to  which  he  was  made  sub- 
ject, and  have  expressed  themselves  as  if  the  decree  of  election 
were  the  rule  formally  of  our  Saviour'^s  obedience. 

But  many  passages  of  scripture  make  it  obvious  that  it  was 
human  nature  that  Christ  took  upon  him,  and  that  it  was  to  the 
law  of  this  nature  he  yielded  his  obedience.  "  Verily  he  took 
not  upon  him  the  nature  of  angels,  but  he  took  upon  him  the 
seed  of  xA.braham.*''  Every  gradation  of  intelligent  being  has  a 
law  founded  in  the  comparative  principles  of  its  own  nature  in 
the  great  scale  of  existence;  and  this  text  of  scripture  demon- 
strates that  while  it  was  the  law  of  God  that  Jesus  obeyed; 
yet,  it  was  not  the  majesty  of  Deity,  as  it  appears  in  a  law  ne- 
cessarily concreated  with  the  angels  and  suited  to  their  grada- 
tion of  being,  but  this  majesty,  as  it  appears  in  that  law  which 
was  concreated  with  man,  and  founded  in  the  peculiar  princi- 
ples of  his  nature.  Hence  says  another  passage  enstamped 
with  the  same  authority,  He  was  made  of  a  woman,  made  under 
the  law,  to  redeem  them  that  were  under  the  law,  that  we  might 
leceive  the  adoption  of  sons. 

If  I  understand  many  divines,  they  consider  Jesus  as  acting 
tinder  a  law  peculiar  to  himself  as  Mediator;  correlative  to  the 
supposed  dignity  of  his  person  as  God-man,  They  reduce  the 
form  of  his  character  from  the  dignity  of  Deity,  and  elevate  it 
far  above  humanity;  whereas,  if  I  understand  the  scriptures, 
the  Mediator  supports  two  forms  of  character, — the  representa- 
tiye  of  God  towards  us,  and  the  representative  of  man  towards 


120  THE   PEOPLE   SANCTIFIED 

God ;  but,  in  no  instance,  are  these  distinctive  features  of  his 
character  coufounded  in  the  discharge  of  his  office,  any  more 
than  are  his  natures  in  the  constitution  of  his  person.  No,  the 
person  of  Christ  is  one,  and  can  in  relation  to  its  actions  be 
viewed  two  ways  only — as  God,  or  as  man.  As  God,  how- 
ever, it  is  obvious,  he  can  be  the  formal  subject  of  no  law. 
Hence  it  must  be  as  man,  that  he  is  considered  as  our  acting 
Mediator,  in  the  achievement  of  the  work  of  our  redemption. 
The  form  of  his  character  is  that  of  man ;  that  he  may  repre- 
sent man,  and  that  he  may  reindenmify  the  rule  of  justice  that 
man  had  broken.  It  is,  indeed,  a  truth  that  the  Mediator  is 
God  as  well  as  man,  and  that  both  the  nature  of  God  and  the 
nature  of  man,  meet  essentially  in  the  constitution  of  his  me- 
diatorial person;  but  the  light  in  which  the  Son  of  God  the 
Father's  servant,  not  by  a  delegated  authority  of  headship  over 
all  things,  in  which  sense  he  is  the  Father's  representative 
majesty  and  glory  to  us,  but  as  he  is  viewed  a  subject  of  law, 
of  the  law  founded  essentially  and  immutably  in  the  principles 
of  our  nature,  and  as  he  is  viewed  under  the  authority  of  this 
law  accomplishing  our  salvation,  he  is  the  man  Christ  Jesus. 

Now  relative  to  this  view  of  the  Mediator's  character,  it  is 
obvious,  that  ths  satisfaction  of  Christ  must  be  viewed  as  in- 
definite. Omniscience  is  not  the  prerogative  of  man,  nor  a 
perfect  knowledge  of  the  secret  purposes  of  God.  Accident- 
ally to  the  character  he  is  now  actuating,  the  Mediator  may  in- 
deed have  a  restricted  and  definite  intention  in  his  death ;  but 
to  make  the  formal  object  of  man's  Mediator,  as.  he  sustains 
the  character  of  a  creature  composed  of  flesh  and  blood  and 
limited  intellectual  powers,  to  be  the  stamp  of  an  immanent 
eternal  purpose  of  God,  and  not  the  penalty  and  precept  of  the 
immutable  law  of  man's  nature,  is  to  invert  the  unequivocal 
language  of  the  Spirit,  "  Secret  things  belong  to  God,  but  those 
that  are  revealed  to  us  and  to  our  children."  Neither  does  it 
alter  the  matter  to  say  his  divinity  might  have  made  revela- 
tions of  the  particular  persons  that  were  to  be  saved  to  his 


iBY  daRlsf^S  BLOOD,  121 

bumanity ;  for  we  are  not  now  speaking  of  the  natures  of 
Christ,  and  what  his  human  nature  might  have  been  accident- 
ally endowed  with,  but  we  are  speaking  of  the  character  which 
in  law  the  Mediator  sustained,  as  by  suffering  and  obedience  he 
achieved  our  salvation. 

From  what  I  have  said  it  would  be  inconclusive  to  infer  that 
the  satisfaction  of  Christ  was  absolutely  indefinite.  It  was  in- 
definite in  reference  to  the  voice  of  the  law  that  called  for  it, 
luid  in  reference  unto  the  aspect  of  the  character  which  the  Me- 
diator, as  mane's  representative,  turned  to  this  law :  but  he  who 
planned  the  universe,  and  knows  the  end  from  the  beginning, 
is  concerned  about  the  business  of  our  salvation,  and  we  must 
not  only  consider  it  as  correlative  to  tlie  character  of  the  Medi- 
ator, but  as  related  to  the  omniscient  and  alkperfect  Creator. 
Now  here,  it  is  undoubted,  that  both  in  the  mind  of  God  the 
Father,  and  of  God  the  Son,  who  is  the  first-born  of  every 
creature,  by  whom  are  all  things,  and  for  whom  are  all  things , 
as  well  as  he  is  our  Saviour,  there  are  and  must  be,  among 
tliose  under  the  dispensation  of  grace,  a  definite  number  in 
whose  stead  Jesus  stands.  God  sees  the  end  from  the  begin- 
ning; and  as  in  revelation  we  are  expressly  informed,  that 
there  were  a  certain  definite  seed,  whom  God  the  Father  gave 
to  his  Son  in  the  covenant  of  peace  between  them  both,  to  be 
redeemed  by  him ;  so  for  this  seed  and  this  only,  did  Christ,  as 
before  the  eye  of  his  Father,  suffer.  That  God  thus  knew  the 
end  from  the  beginning,  and  that  he  left  many  to  perish  from 
an  act  of  his  sovereignty,  were,  we  further  remark,  subjects  of 
revelation,  and  objects  of  man's  knowledge:  hence  Christ  as 
Mediator  knew  that  there  was  an  election  that  was  to  be  saved, 
and  that  he  as  their  Mediator  represented  this  election — that  it 
was  their  curse  that  he  endured  and  for  them  alone  that  he 
obeyed.  These  are  things  we  know;  but  we  do  not  know  the 
particular  persons  whom  God  placed  in  the  election;  neither  is 
this  the  prerogative  of  the  Mediator — in  any  view  of  his  char- 

11* 


122  THE   PEOPLE   SANCTIFIED 

acter  as  Mediator,  far  less  as  man's  representative; — but  his 
prerogative  as  he  is  the  great  and  omniscient  God.  Pre- 
science and  omniscience  are  not  predicates  of  man  or  of  man's 
representative,  but  of  the  eternal  and  omniscient  first  cause 
of  all  things, — as  he  is  viewed,  too,  as  this  first  cause. 

Nor  does  this  view  of  the  subject  militate  against  the  death 
of  Christ  being  considered  as  a  procuring  cause  of  particular 
redemption.  Christ's  death  is  definite — first,  in  relation  to 
the  divine  purpose — secondly,  as  it  is  an  estimated  price  by 
suffering,  for  them  whom  God  hath  chosen,  and  who  are  known 
to  himself; — himself  who  cannot  subject  to  a  greater  or  less 
degree  of  ignominy  and  affliction,  than  his  sense  of  justice  and 
knowledge  of  all  things  and  their  qualities,  will  lead  him,  in 
the  station  of  righteous  judge,  to  express :  and  being  definite 
in  these  senses;  it  is  so,  both  as  related  to  God  as  his  mind 
views  the  subject  in  his  purpose  or  intention ;  and  as  it  is  a  price 
of  redemption  given  to  him — given  as  he  himself  a  righteous 
judge  exacts  and  gathers  it  till  justice  is  satisfied:  but  it  is 
not  definite  as  related  to  the  preceptive  will  of  God,  and  as 
the  divine  intention  runs  along  the  line  of  the  law  which  pre- 
scribes to  him  his  duty,  and  guides  God's  Son,  in  the  charac- 
ter of  his  Father's  servant,  and  as  our  obedient  and  suffering 
surety. 

An  attention  to  the  simple  distinction  now  made,  we  think, 
would  necessarily,  among  all  who  allow  of  the  absolutely  per- 
fect character  of  God,  and  his  absolute  knowledge  of  all  things, 
put  a  stop  unto  disputes  about  the  definite  or  indefinite  na- 
ture of  Christ's  satisfaction.  Viewed  simply  in  relation  to  the 
character  of  man's  representative  and  Mediator,  it  can  be  no 
■  nore  definite,  in  the  nature  of  moral  relations,  than  man  can 
be  supposed  possessed  of  them,  and  suited  to  exercise  the  pre- 
rogatives of  prescience  and  omniscience;  but  viewed  in  rela- 
tion to  that  mind  which  from  eternity  has  had  an  absolutely 
perfect  view  of  its  works,  their  properties  and  relations;  and 


BY  chrkt's  blood<  123 

viewed  as  a  price  estimated  by  God,  and  taken  by  his  own 
hand  that  must  do  right,  it  is  as  absolutely  definite,  as  God's 
character  is  perfect,  both  in  knowledge  and  holiness. 

We  are  aware  that  the  view  which  we  have  just  taken  of  the 
people  sanctified  by  the  blood  of  Christ,  has  been  considered 
as  destroying  that  freedom  of  will  which,  it  is  supposed,  all  the 
commands,  promises,  and  threatenings,  of  revelation  necessa- 
rily presuppose.  But  it  ought  not  to  be  forgotten  that  the 
character  of  God  is  of  that  perfect  kind,  which,  while  it  neces- 
sarily involves  a  mystery  in  its  connexion  with  all  its  works, 
yet  is  never  to  be  robbed  of  its  essential  and  unalienable  pre^ 
rogatives  because  of  such  an  inscrutable  mystery.  Matter  is 
extended,  and  its  different  globes  roll  at  immense  distances 
from  one  another,  and  God  is  coexistent  with  all  of  them— he 
is  present  every  where;  and  yet,  he  who  is  a  pure  spirit,  in  this 
omnipresence,  certainly  has  no  relation  to  our  ideas  of  ex- 
tension. No,  here  is  a  mystery,  respecting  the  divine  na- 
ture, equally  impenetrable  with  the  mystery  of  self-existence 
itself. 

The  connexion,  however,  between  God  and  his  rational 
creatures  no  less  overwhelms  our  capacities  of  comprehension 
We  cannot  know  how  the  absolutely  perfect  God  sustains  our 
mmds  every  moment,  and  comprehends  all  their  motions  and 
actions  in  his  infinitely  wise  plan  from  which  all  things  have 
originally  sprung,  and  of  which  the  least  atom  or  its  move- 
ments form  a  definite  part;  but  we  must  acknowledge  that  it  is 
equally  possible  for  God,  mysteriously  indeed  to  us,  to  connect 
himself  so,  according  to  his  character  of  absolute  perfection, 
with  immaterial  and  rational  agents,  and  yet  to  leave  unim- 
paired the  distinctive  properties  of  their  moral  nature,  as  it  is 
possible  for  him  to  be  every  where  present  with  material  crea- 
Hon,  and  yet  to  leave  to  it  the  properties  of  extension  and 
figure.  That  we  act  freely  is  a  dictate  of  consciousness,  and 
that  we  are  accountable  for  tliese  free  actions,  is  a  dictate  of 
conscience— the  highest  authorities  from  which  our  reason  can 


124  THE   PEOPLE   SANCTIFIED 

receive  testimony;  but  how  we  are  as  necessarily  dependent 
creatures,  to  reconcile  this  freedom  of  action  and  this  account* 
ableness,  with  the  relation  in  which  the  all-perfect,  intelligent 
first  cause,  stands  to  us,  is  a  matter  that  we  can  no  more  ac- 
count for,  than  we  can  account  for  God's  ubiquity,  and  coex- 
istence with  figured  and  extended  matter :  and  it  is  equally 
unphilosopbical  and  unreasonable  to  dispute  the  former  as  to 
deny  the  latter.  From  everlasting  God  in  absolute  perfection 
looked  through  the  whole  system  of  his  creation,  and  saw 
all  things  in  themselves  and  their  relations;  beheld  every 
wheel  turn,  and  the  influence  it  produced  on  every  other; 
saw  all  acting,  and  each  in  its  own  sphere  and  on  its  own 
points  of  contact ; — till  both  in  material  and  immaterial  things, 
the  great  drama  of  nature,  which  God  had  planned,  even  to  the 
least  particle  that  enters  into  its  composition,  or  ray  of  intelli- 
gence that  illumes  the  dark  material  pillars  of  the  great  fabric, 
closed  its  actings. 

From  what  we  have  said,  it  is  obvious,  that  under  the  ex- 
pression, "  the  people,"  in  relation  to  the  external  covenant 
which  subsists  between  God  and  man  by  the  great  high 
priest  of  our  profession,  and  as  sprinkled  with  his  blood  in  the 
privileges  that  invest  them,  all  those,  as  already  remarked,  to 
whom  the  call  of  the  gospel  has  come,  must  be  supposed  inclu- 
ded. The  blood  is  the  blood  of  Jesus  an  high  priest,  not  after 
the  order  of  Aaron,  but  after  that  of  Melchisedec;  this  high 
priest  of  Jews  and  Gentiles  is  the  Mediator  between  God  and 
sinners  of  mankind ;  and  the  offer  of  the  peace  that  is  by  his 
blood,  must  comport  with  the  nature  and  relation  in  which  we 
are  led  thus  to  contemplate  his  character.  The  proffer  of  the 
waters  of  life  must  be,  Ho!  every  one  that  thirsteth,  come  ye 
to  the  waters  and  drink. 

But  this  general  dispensation  of  his  grace  must,  like  all  the 
other  works  of  God,  be  traced  to  God  himself,  and  tried  by  his 
perfect  knowledge  of  the  end  from  the  beginning;  and  as  we 
umioubtedly  know  that  under  the  general  cover  of  offered  mer» 


BY  Christ's  blood.  125 

cy  many  are  left  utterly  to  perish;  so  God  the  judge  of  all 
the  earth  that  will  do  right,  must,  in  the  character  of  the  author 
of  his  secret  purposes,  and  of  righteous  actings,  be  viewed  as 
definitely  ordaining  what  takes  place  within  the  happy  circle 
of  salvation;  and  this  as  justly  connected  with  that  person  to 
whom  he  hath  sworn,  and  who  by  sufferings  and  punishment 
hath  achieved  our  redemption.  In  the  spirit  of  true  philoso- 
phy and  sound  reason,  we  must  view  an  expression  of  the 
sovereign  will  of  God,  that  teaches  the  properties  of  the  crea- 
ture, recognizes  their  nature,  and  does  justice  to  their  capaci- 
ties of  acting,  called  by  divines  his  preceptive  will ;  and  we 
must  also  acknowledge  an  intelligent,  energetic  will,  that  looks 
through  all  parts  of  his  vast  works,  and  as  the  first  cause  di- 
rects and  moves  them;  and  though,  in  relation  to  the  former  of 
these,  the  proffer  of  the  gospel  is  to  all  indefinitely  as  people 
separated  by  the  appointment  of  God  to  have  the  blood  of  the 
great  sin-offering  of  Christ  sprinkled  towards  them;  yet,  in  re- 
lation to  the  latter,  the  people  must  mean,  those  that  Christ 
was  appointed  in  the  decree  of  the  covenant  of  redemption  to 
represent;  whose  debt  he  actually  paid  to  justice;  and  who,  in 
a  subordination  to  this  decree,  and  as  the  fruit  of  this  pur- 
chase, believe  in  him.  The  rigliteousness  of  the  antitypical 
and  real  passover  is  to  all  Jews  and  gentiles  that  hear  of 
Christ's  name;  but  it  is  upon  all  them  only  who  believe. — Yes, 
my  brethren,  we  may  be  called  saints  because  of  our  privileges 
issuing  from  the  sufferings  of  Christ;  but  unless  we  be  united 
to  him  by  faith,  unless  we  believe  the  testimony  of  God  re- 
specting his  Son,  and  fromi  the  matter  of  this  testimony,  which 
sets  his  obedience  unto  the  dealh  before  us  as  the  foundation 
on  which  our  hopes  of  eternal  life  are  to  rest,  we  receive  him, 
never  can  we  be  entitled  unto  the  high  and  interesting  charac- 
ter, which  the  spirit  of  inspiration  sets  up,  purified  and  washed, 
in  our  text,  and,  as  the  antitype  of  the  holy  people  of  God  of 
old,  calls  theni, "  the  people." 

From  the  view  taken,  it  is  evident,  that  the  first  promise  to 
Adam  and  to  his  immediate  descendants,  comprised  the  matter 


126  THE   PEOPLE   SANCTIFIED 

of  a  covenant  respecting  salvation  by  the  Messiah :  that  the 
covenant  made  with  Noah,  a  preacher  of  righteousness,  exhib- 
ited the  faithfulness  of  God  under  the  same  solemn  aspect: 
that  Abraham's  covenant  began  to  withdraw  from  them  the 
light  that  in  faint  rays  had  previously  wandered  through  the 
world  at  large,  and  to  direct  them  into  a  more  bright  but  con- 
tracted incidence  on  his  own  posterity :  that  the  covenant  with 
the  nation  of  Israel  actually  enclosed  them  upon  the  people 
and  spot  of  the  earth,  which,  during  the  Mosaic  dispensation, 
were  peculiarly  separated  and  sanctified  by  them :  and  that  at 
the  end  of  this  dispensation,  when  the  sun  himself  arose,  the 
same  hath  taken  place  with  respect  to  all  that  he  hath  yet  visit- 
ed in  his  progress  over  our  world.  The  almighty  God  con- 
siders himself  bound  b\  his  promise  and  oath,  to  give  eternal 
life  to  as  many  as  believe  in  his  Son ;  and  he  condescends  to 
pr^ent  himself  in  this  character  to  all  to  whom  he  proclaims 
his  gospel.  His  voice  announces,  "  he  that  believeth  shall 
he  saved." 

I  would  remark  further  here,  that  it  appears  that  Christ,  in 
suffering  for  those  whom  according  to  the  purpose  of  God  he 
represents,  did  not  suffer  to  an  abstract  relation  of  the  law. 
While  we  cannot  enumerate  the  variety  of  their  trans- 
gressions, nor  estimate  the  different  shades  of  their  guilt;  yet 
God  must  perceive  the  sins  of  all  men,  and  decide  at  once  on 
the  amount  of  their  desert;  and  as  he  must  calculate  the  just 
and  immutable  demands  of  his  law,  so,  when  he  imposes  upon 
man's  surety,  what,  in  moral  reckoning,  his  absolute  know- 
ledge perceives,  and  his  holiness  detests,  it  must  be  the  exact 
weight  of  punishment  which  the  balances  of  his  holy  sanctuary 
have  adjusted.* 

*The  Hopkinsians  assert  that  justice  is  satisfied  so  that,  in  moral  reck- 
OQing,  were  it  not  for  the  decrees  of  God,  all  men  might  be  saved;  there 
being  put  into  the  cup  of  the  death  of  Christ  all  that  justice  for  all  men 
could  prepare.  But  in  opposition  to  this,  the  justice  of  God  here  is  kept 
immaculate,  by  his  omniscience  presenting  to  it  the  amount  of  the  desert 


BY  Christ's  blood.  127 

To  speak  of  an  intriDsic  merit  in  the  punishment  of  Christ, 
ofitselfsufficient  for  the  salvation  ofall  men,  is  both  to  mistake 
the  attributes  of  punitive  jusrice,  and  the  nature  of  Christ's 
substitution;  as  well  as  to  involve  the  extent  of  Christ's  sati^ 
faction  under  the  grasp  of  that  decree  of  God  which  appoint- 
ed the  Mediator  to  his  office,  and  which  connected  him,  as  an 
effectual  means,  with  the  end  of  salvation  to  be  obtained.  If 
Christ  was  appointed  by  a  decree  of  God  to  his  office;  if  this 
decree,  in  laying  out  the  extent  and  formalities  of  it,  contem- 
plated, in  its  bosom,  .merit  for  the  salvation  of  all  men;  and  if 
this  means  is  connected  with  its  end,  which,  in  the  na'ture  of 
tlnngs,  can  be  only  conditional  or  absolute,  then  it  will  foU 
low,  either  according  to  the  view  of  Armenians,  that  Christ 
died  conditionally  for  the  whole  worid,  or  according  to  the 
view  of  some  others,  that  he  died  absolutely  for  111  man- 
kind. 

The  intrinsic  excellence  which"  fills  us  with  admiration  as 
we  contemplate  Christ,  was  not  in  the  cup  of  his  death  itself 
appointed  by  God  as  the  specific  indemnification  of  his  law, 
but  m  the  dignity  of  his  person,  which,  had  it  been  so  appoint- 
ed by  God,  might  have  satisfied  for  a  thousand  worids;  and 
m  that  exuberance,  which,  from  this  essential  dignity,  made 
the  death  of  Christ  of  immeasurable  value.  The  mistake  of 
many  on  this  subject  is,  they  forget  that  the  death  of  Christ 
with  respect  to  its  merits,  must  always  be  estimated  by  the 
judge  who  inflicts  it,  and  that  whatever  his  sense  of  justice 

of  the  ains  of  all  men.  and  by  this  justice  laying  no  more  of  it  npon 
Chnst,  than  the  weight  which  belongs  to  the  persons  whom  he  repre- 
sents.^  The  method  of  a  settlement  on  general  terms  with  justice  origi- 
nates  m  the  absolute  weakness  of  men;  and  reminds  us  of  the  views  of 
mankmd  formerly  respecting  the  constitution  of  material  things  It  was 
flnpposed  that  in  the  bodies  of  matter  the  elements  were  huddled  fortui- 
tously together;  but  modern  science  teaches  us  that  through  all  nature 
the  elements  unite  together  on  the  principles  of  absolutely  definite  r,to^ 
portions.  *^ 


128  THE   PEOPLE    SANCTIFIED 

imposes  as  the  punishment  due  from  the  penalty  of  the  law, 
that,  and  that  alone,  whatever  be  the  overflowing  excellency  of 
the  person,  can  be  denominated  the  merit  of  his  achievement 
by  suffering.  The  surety  of  the  elect  could  give  no  more 
than  justice  exacted.  I  came  not,  says  he,  to  do  mine  own 
will,  but  the  will  of  him  that  sent  me. 

The  decree  respecting  the  appointment  of  the  Mediator  to 
his  office,  and  which  must  decide  the  extent  of  object  con- 
templated in  his  death,  exhibits  itself,  in  scripture,  in  two  as- 
pects  the  first  respects  his  relation  to  mankind  sinners,  and 

the  sec5ond  respects  the  individuals  whom,  from  amongst 
these,  God  had  sovereignly  chosen,  and  in  this  decree  of  the 
Mediator  to  his  office,  had  united  to  him;  and  whose  punish- 
ment, as  thus  represented  in  him,  he  had  adequately  and  just- 
ly to  endure.     "  I  lay  down  my  life  for  the  sheep." 

The  offer  of  the  gospel  is  not  founded  on  a  physical  suffi- 
ciency in  the  death  of  Christ  for  the  salvation  of  all  men;  but  in 
the  relation  of  the  Mediator's  office  to  sinners  of  mankind ;  nor 
can  it  be  objected  to  this  view  of  the  subject,  that  since  men  are 
called  by  the  gospel  promiscuously,  it  would  be  inviting  those 
who  are  not  interested  in  the  death  of  Christ  by  the  intention 
ofGod,  to  partake  of  a  feast  which  had  not  been  prepared  for 
them.  The  call  of  the  gospel  simple  and  undefined,  does  in- 
deed address  every  ear,  it  sounds  an  alarm  to  every  description 
of  sinful  character,  and  proffers  the  blessings  of  life  to  it:  but  it 
ought  never  to  be  forgot,  that  the  present  subject  of  our  discus- 
sion always  presupposes  an  inquiry  on  the  part  of  the  persons 
addressed;  an  inquiry  invited  by  the  known  prerogatives  of 
God's  sovereignty,  and  a  knowledge  of  the  distinction  be- 
tween his  secret  and  revealed  will— whether  all  men  are  to  be 
saved,  or  part  only;  and  here  the  minister  of  truth  must  re- 
peat what  God  himself  hath  said  on  this  very  subject,  "I 
will  have  mercy  on  whom  I  will  have  mercy."  Hence  Jesus, 
who  is  the  great  prophet  of  liis  church,  stood  himself  and  cried, 


12f 

<'  If  any  man  thirst  let  him  come  to  me  and  drink ;"  he  com- 
manded his  prophets  and  his  apostles  to  do  the  same;  and  yet 
Jesus  said,  in  the  ministry  of  the  same  office,  "  I  know  whom  I 
have  chosen." 

Again,  we  would  still  further  remark  on   this  clause,  that 
our   view   exhibits  the   Mediator  as  officiating  between  two 
parties — representing  God  to  us — and  us  to  Gad.     His  two 
natures  meeting  in  the  constitution  of  his  mediatorial  person, 
occasion  actions  sometimes  to  be  ascribed  to  the  one   nature 
which  logically    belong  to  the  other.     Feed  the  church  of 
God  which  he  hath  purchased  with  his  own  blood ; — God  can 
neither  suffer  nor  die; — God   hath    appointed   a  day  in  the 
which  he  will  judge   the  world  by  that  man   whom  he  hath 
ordained :    It  is  not  the  prerogative  of  man  to  try  the  heart 
and  reins,  and  decide  eternally  upon  their  qualities.     Hence 
we  must  remark  that  Jesus  as  Mediator  has  a  twofold  head- 
ship in  heaven;  a  headship  as  the  representative  and  forerun- 
ner of  his  people,  in  which  character  our  title  to  heaven  is  re- 
alized in  his  person ;  and  a  headship  over  all  things  and  re 
lations  extrinsical  to  his  church,  and  by  the  authority  of  which 
he  makes  all  things   work  together  for  her  present  and  eternal 
welfare.      To  the  first  of  these  stations  he  hath  made  his  way 
through  the  perfect  discharge  of  the  duties  of  the  law  of  man's 
nature.     Qualifying  himself  for  it  by  the  assumption  of  h»- 
manity,  he  merited  it  by  obedience  and   suffering,  and  now 
possesses  it  as  the  strict  legal  issue  of  the  work  which  he  per- 
formed.    But  to  the  second  he  hath  been  appointed,  as  a  fre<? 
and  honorary  reward  sovereignly  bestowed  as  he  is  the  repre- 
sentative of  his  Father  in  the  glorious  dominion  which  has 
been  disponed  to  him.     Hence  in  this  character  he  directs  all 
things;  will  judge  the  world;  and,  when   the  drama  of  the 
universe  is  wound  up,  he  will  retreat  from  the  immediate  sta, 
tion  he  now  occupies — that,  in  this  sense,  the  Son  himself,  who 
had  in  his  humiliation  to  say,  My  Father  is  greater  than  I, 
may,  in  his  exaltation,  be  subject  to  the  Father. 
12 


130  THE    PEOPig    SANCTIFIED,  &a 

We  may  just  add  one  other  remark,  connecting  the  pieced- 
ing,  and  the  present  discourse,  and  the  members  of  the  pres- 
ent  among  themselves,^ — that  the  first  born  of  Israel  were  the 
life  and  lords  of  their  brethren ,  and  so  when  Christ  is  con- 
nected with  every  creature  as  its  first  born,  he  is  viewed  as  the 
Creator  and  Lord  of  it;  when  again  he  is  connected  with  the 
redeemed  as  their  first  born,  he  appears  before  us  as  the  origin 
of  their  life,  and  the  sovereign  of  their  conduct;  and  when  as 
Mediator  he  has  a  name  given  him  which  is  above  every  name, 
it  is  the  majesty  of  Deity  that  shines  upon  the  robes  of  his 
character,  and  makes  every  knee  in  heaven,  and  in  earth,  and 
Tinder  the  earth,  bow  to  him. — As  God  then,  my  brethren, 
Christ  is  our  Creator;  as  God's  vicegerent  in  the  kingdom  of 
the  universe,  he  is  our  guardian,  in  life,  in  death,  and  in  the 
state  of  the  dead ,  and  as  he  is  our  proper  representative,  he  is 
aur  life  itself,— having  begotten  it,  and  preserving  it- — distil- 
ling the  dew  of  grace  from  his  own  fulness  to  increase  and 
ripen  the  field  of  his  saints,  till,  as  a  holy  nation,  a  peculiar 
people,  a  royal  priesthood,  the  image  of  himself,  they  sit  down 
on  his  throne  in  the  highest  heavens. — Oh !  Jesus,  we  are  thy 
people  by  profession;  make  us  thy  people,  not  by  the  will  of 
the  flesh,  nor  by  the  will  of  man,  nor  by  the  blood  of  our  privi- 
leges, but  by  the  water  and  spirit  of  life 


BISJCOUKSE  VI* 


SANCTIFICATIOxN  FROM  GUILT. 


Heb.  13:12.     Wherefore  Jesus  also,  that  he  mighi  semctify 
the  peaple  idth  Ms  own  blood,  suffered  without  the  gaie. 

Having  explained,  in  the  two  former  discourses,  the  two 
clauses  which  communicate  separate  and  distinct  ideas, 
we  come  now,  my  brethren,  to  show  that  Jesus  sanctifies 
^'  the  people'^  with  his  o^^n  blood.  This  is  the  most  interest^ 
ing  part  of  our  undertaking,  instructive  of  itself,  reflecting  light 
on  what  has  preceded,  and  connecting  the  whole  into  a  mag- 
nificent and  solid  structure. 

It  must  be  remembered  tliat  the  sanctification  which  k 
•effected  by  Christ,  according  to  the  import  of  the  word  sanc- 
tification in  this  espistle,  comprises  purification  from  guilt,  a 
title  to  the  possession  of  heaven,  and  internal  purity  conforma. 
ble  to  the  high  pretensions  of  this  title.  The  Israelites  were 
purified  ceremonially  by  their  passover,  from  that  sin  the  wages 
of  which  is  death;  they  passed  through  the  wilderness  living 
upon  manna,  heavenly  food;  and  thay  never  rested  till  they 
entered  into  their  promised  land.  Hence,  when  the  true  Isra- 
elites are  sanctified  by  their  great  high  pnest,  there  are  thret 
relations  in  their  purification.  Yes,  as  Christ  is  anointed  with 
the  spirit,  justified  in  his  resurrection  from  the  dead,  and  as- 
cends into  heaven;  so  his  people  are  anointed,  justified  and 
glorified.  *«For  both  he  that  sanctifieth,  and  they  who  are 
sanctified^  are  all  of  ona  " 


132  8ANCTIFICATI01!?    FROM    GUILT, 

In  entering  on  the  illustration  of  this  momentous  portion  of 
our  work,  we  premise,  that  Christ  who  sanctifies  the  people  with 
his  blood,  and  whom  we  have,  in  all  our  preceding  reasonings, 
presumed  to  be  peculiarly  connected  with  them,  is  strictly  and 
piwperly,  by  the  appointment  of  God,  the  representative  in 
law  of  his  people. 

The  principle  of  representation,  though,  in  this  case,  oppo- 
sed by  many,  is  yet  recommended  to  our  belief,  by  its  practi- 
cal interpretation  in  all  departments  of  natural  and  human  op- 
wation.  Every  company  transacts  its  business  by  agents, 
every  nation  has  its  ambassadors,  every  people  organize  and 
carry  on  their  affairs  by  representatives ;  the  planets,  in  their 
respective  orbits,  bear  along,  under  their  immediate  attraction, 
their  respective  satellites  ,•  and  philosophy  says  that  the  sol^r 
system  itself  describes  a  slow  path,  in  the  boundless  regions  of 
^ace,  around  an  unknown  and  distant  centre,  felt  by  the  sun, 
and  tacitly  submitted  to  by  his  attendents.  The  angels  are 
ranked  under  orders  of  precedency ;  the  messengers  of  dark- 
ness appear  in  legions,  and  their  mighty  captain  to  whom  they 
iook  gives  his  commissions  and  receives  congratulations ;  and 
the  race  of  men  make  way  for  succeeding  generations,  through 
that  dreary  state  which  is  abhorrent  to  their  nature,  and  which 
scripture  informs  us  is  an  entail  from  the  unhappy  purchase  of 
our  common  father. — But  this  truth,  thus  formally  stated,  will 
interweave  itself,  and  glean  strength  to  its  character,  sometimes 
more  and  sometimes  less  perceptible,  throughout  all  our  sub- 
sequent reasonings. 

We  are  to  prove,  to-day,  that,  in  sanctifying  them,  Christ 
purifies  his  people  from  guilt. 

This  is  evident,  in  the  first  place,  because  Christ  suffered, 
and  his  sufferings  must  have  obtained  the  forgiveness  of  the 
sins  of  his  people.  Jesus,  that  he  might  sanctify  the  people 
with  his  own  blood,  suffered  without  the  gate.  Jesus,  in  his 
estate  of  humiliation,  suffered  hunger,  cold,  thirst,  watching 
and  care,  slander  and  reproach,  every  kind   of  temptation, 


SAJfCTIFICATION    FkOM    GUILT.  133 

agony,  and  death.     Standing  the  substitute  of  that  man  whose 
history  informs  us,  that,  as  all  objects  attract  or  repel  one  an- 
other in  nature,  so,  even  malign  intellectual  beings  are  permit- 
ted to  interfere  actively  with  his   concerns,  Jesus  'fulfilled  all 
righteousness  by  satisfying  the  law  of  man,  in  those  trying  cit^ 
cumstances,  where  this  his  foe  could  make  the  most  dismal 
attack.     The  legions  of  darkness  carried  the  waters  of  bitter- 
ness into  the  soul  that  v/as  holy,  harmless,  and  undefiied,  but 
which  was  pierced  with  the  sliarpest  arrows  that  ever  inflicted 
a  wound.     The  sons  of  men,  who  look  upon  appearance  only, 
dipped  in  malice  their  shafts,  and  reached  the  heart  in  the  in- 
stance of  the  Son  of  man.     They  rejected  his  title,  they  con- 
demned him  for  blasphemy,  they  pierced  his  hands  and  his 
feet  on  the  accursed  tree.     And  God,  in  his*ci]aracter  of  holy 
judge,  met  with  him  in  Gethsemene,  and  wrung  his  frame  in 
agony,  and  his  soul  with  exceeding  sorrow  even  unto  death; 
and  at  death,  when  all  truly  rigliteous  martyrs,  in  the  heroism 
of  their  minds,  and  from  the  ardor  of  their  rigliteous  cause  ex- 
claim, that  they  would  not  exchang-e  their  situaUon  for  a  thous- 
and worlds,  Jesus,  on  the  cross,  in  the  mystery  of  his  suffer 
mg,  stood  alone,  and  exclaimed,  My  God,  my  God,  why  hast 
thou  forsaken  me! 

Now,  did  providence  inflict  these  sutferings  on  one  that  was 
free  from  personal  fault,  and  also  imputed  sin?  Could  God 
thus  bring  every  kind  of  misery,  cruelty,  and  death  itself, — an  ac- 
cursed death,  upon  him  that  was  personuily  sinless,  and  separ- 
ate from  «in  in  every  respect? — The  reaiizLiiion  of  this  supposi- 
tion would  give  us  a  strange  and  an  unf.ivtrable  idea  of  that 
supreme  and  guardian  in  teliigence,  whom  rer.ron  pronounces  eve- 
ry way  just  and  righteous.  What  injustice,in  ^he  view  of  reason, 
to  inflict,  in  an  unpaialleled  manner,  those  very  siuTerings  which 
we  suppose  a  consequence  of  sin,  and  whicii  on  all  hands  are 
allowed  to  be  what  are  to  punish  it,  on  him  tbjt  is  absolutely  in- 
nocent; or  how  does  this  agree  with  what  G'l  '  hath  declared  in 
his  own  word?    Is  it  ever  there  said  that  God  aiaj  punish  such 

12* 


134  SANCTIFICATION    FROM    G^ILT. 

innocence?  Is  it  ever  there  said,  that  however  inoffensive,  how- 
ever holy  and  harmless  one  may  be,  yet,  he  will  not  spare  this 
one,  but  will  exceed  his  ordinary  course  to  punish  and  afflict 
him — snatching  off  the  martyr's  joy  when  all  .leave  him  but 
his  God  ?     Against  this  scripture  and  reason  remonstrate. 

But,  my  brethren,  it  is  not  more  impossible  to  account  for 
the  singular  sufferings  and  death  of  Christ,  without  supposing 
them  all  to  take  place  in  our  guilty  room,  than  it  is  possible  to 
reflect  upon  them  in  his  instance,  and  not  perceive  that  they 
must  be  a  real  sacrifice  for  sin.  If  Christ  voluntarily  under- 
took to  satisfy  for  iniquity ;  if  he  had  a  right  to  do  so,  and  did 
voluntarily  subject  himself  to  man's  obnoxious  relation  to  the 
law  of  God;  then  God  the  Father  could  subject  him  to  all  the 
sufferings  he  underwent.  As  the  wages  of  sin  is  death,  he 
could  pour  into  his  soul  all  the  bitterness  of  it,  and  produce  on 
his  body  all  its  immediate  effects.  This  was  what  equity  on 
the  supposition  of  a  substitution  authorized  and  required,  and 
could  not  but  inflict. — Are  Christ's  sufferings,  then,  we  ask, 
the  real  demolition  of  it,  as  well  as  the  effect  of  guilt? 

Christ,  my  brethren,  is  God  and  man  in  one  person.  We 
would  not  at  present  prove  but  presume  this;  asking  if  any 
language  could  be  supposed  so  unguarded  as  that  of  scripture 
respecting  Jesus,  if  he  is  not  to  be  viewed  as  a  divine  person? 
He  is  called  God  in  climaxes  of  language  where  the  mind  is  led 
to  the  belief  of  the  most  exalted  acceptation  of  words ;  the 
name  Jehovah,  peculiar  to  God  in  the  vocabulary  of  Israel,  is 
given  to  him,  and  affixed  upon  him  by  interpretations  that  at- 
tempt to  show  us  the  true  mystery  of  this  peculiar  name;  his 
agency  in  the  creation  of  all  things  is  exhibited  as  a  subject 
never  to  be  questioned ;  providence  is  in  his  hand  as  in  that  of 
one  who,  not  like  a  creature,  but  the  omnipotent  preserver, 
continually  manages  all  its  concerns;  worship  by  angels  and 
men,  is,  in  its  highest  attributes  of  praise  presented  to  him; 
be  possesses,  in  the  field  of  revelation,  the  natural  and  moral 
attributes  of  Godhead;  and,  what  no  other  is  deemed  able  to 


SANCTIFICATION    FROM   GUILT.  135 

perform,  he  saves  the  souls  of  men,  and  at  judgment  will  jii4ge 
their  most  secret  thoughts. 

If  Christ  be  the  true  God,  for  himself  in  this  character  lie  is 
under  no  law,  and  in  the  same  act  in  which  his  Father  sover- 
eignly appoints  him  to  undertake  it,  he  must  be  supposed  equal- 
ly sovereignly  to  accept  the  work  of  our  redemption ;  hence 
his  human  nature,  which  is  personally  united  to  the  divine,  is 
justified,  in  its  moral  acquiescence  to  suffer  for  us,  from  the  digni- 
ty of  the  union  to  which  it  is  admitted,  from  the  promises  of  assis- 
tance and  acceptance  in  the  work  to  be  accomplished,  and  from 
the  glorious  reward  of  it,  heir  of  all  things,  and  judge  of  the 
world,  to  which,  in  the  person  of  the  Son  of  God,  it  is  exalted. 

Now  what  end  must  be  supposed  accomplished  by  this  per- 
sonal glory  and  dignity,  mixed  with  those  sufferings  and  death, 
which  this  son  of  God  underwent? — The  moral  works  of  God 
have  all  an  end  correspondent  to  the  dignity  of  the  means 
which  he  employs  to  accomplish  them;  as  is  clear  from 
the  perfection  of  his  nature,  and  wisdom  of  his  plans. 
How.  then,  could  such  glory  be  obscured  by  such  ignominy, 
could  such  life  be  supposed  subjected  to  such  an  accursed  death, 
could  such  innocence  be  involved  in  the  deepest  consequences 
of  guilt?  Is  there  within  the  scope  of  human  imagination  an 
end  that  will  justify  this  dispensation  of  the  Almighty;  but 
that  great  and  singular  one  which  justice  and  wisdom,  in  the 
absolutely  perfect  progress  of  their  procedure  could  not  at- 
tain, but  by  thederth  of  that  person,  who  could  both  die,  and, 
in  the  dignity  of  h\>  character,  give  infinite  value  to  the  act  of 
his  death?  No!  '  '  e  sufferings  of  the  Son  of  God,  inourna- 
ture,  were  what  i!c  •  Unn  of  guilt  demanded,  and  the  ex- 
cellence of  his  c'  r/eifects  this  expiation.  The  word 
was  made  fl^sh  -r  mongst  us,  and  we  beheld  his  glory, 
the  glory  .  of  h  :.>2oUen  of  his  Father,  full  of  grace 
and  trut)}  ^V'  enemies  we  were  reconciled  to 
God  by  tl 


136^  SANCTIFICATION   PEOM   GUILT. 

But  I  remark,  in  the  second  place,  that  Christ  must  have  by 
his  blood  obtained  the  remission  of  the  sins  of  his  people,  from 
the  contrast  which  is  stated  in  the  scriptures  between  the  purifica^ 
tion  obtained  by  the  sacrifices  under  the  law  of  the  Jewish 
economy,  and  that  purification  which  they  ascribe  to  Christ 

That  the  sacrifices  under  the  Jewish  dispensation  did  make 
an  atonement,  according  to  the  end  for  which  they  were  ap- 
pomted,  IS  mdubitable  from  the  whole  voice  of  scripture      The 
unanimous  voice  of  the  innumerable  passages  which  mention 
he  Jews    sm-offerings  is,  that,  in  one  respect,  a  ceremonial, 
they  make  an  atonement;  and   their  burnt-offerinas,   which 
were  the  first  transcript  in  their  positive  economy  ta^ken  from 
their  sin-offerings  on  the  great  day  of  atonement,  and  were  dis- 
tinguished  from  them  only  by  producing  a  sweet  smelling  savor 
,    unto  God,  in  all  their  history  among  the  patriarchs,  where  they 
were  alone  simple  as  the  first  passover,  and  in  the  Mosaic  econ- 
omy, where  they  spread  out  into  a  great  variety,  are  uniformly 
said  to  be  an  acceptable  atonement  unto  God.     Whatever  is 
the   pollution  or  vice,   the  trangression  or  offence  of  Israel 
these  sacrifices  purge  them  by  their  blood.-To  this  view,  therJ 
IS  not  the  shadow  of  an  objection,  in  the  fact,  that  there  were 
some  sins  m  Israel,  such  as  murder,  adultery,  and  idolatry, 
for  which  no  sacrificial  atonement  was  appointed  nor  allowed- 
The  perpetrators  of  these  sins,  as  soon  as  their  guilt  was  a- 
certamed,  and  the  unhappy  character  into  which  they  had  en- 
tered appeared,  died,  and  absconded  from  the  name  and  privi- 
leges of  Israel.     We  speak  of  Israelites  as  the  sons  of  Jacob  ~ 
purged  and  preserved  till  the  circle  of  their  emblematical  econ- 
omy is  filled  up  and  evanishes. 

This  atonement,  however,  which  was  made  for  ancient  Israel 
was  typical  and  ceremonial  only,-  and  Christ  is  the  substance 
of  which  these  sacrifices  that  so  undoubtedly  made  it,  were  a 
shadow.-In  many  places  of  the  New  Testament,  and  indeed 
m  the;  whole  of  this  ep^s  le  to  the  Hebrews,  is  Christ  oppo- 


SANCTIFICATION    FROM    GUILT.  137 

»ed  to  the  Jewish  sacrifices,  and  exhibited  as  the  antitype  of 
them.  Remembering  that  particulars  are  included  under  gen- 
eral views,  we  see,  that  the  whole  of  the  Jewish  dispensation 
\3  contrasted  with  that  of  the  Christian;  particularly  in  Paul's 
epistles  to  the  Galatians,  the  Ephesians,  and  the  Colossians, 
and  the  subservient,  introductory,  and  typical  nature  of  the 
former,  clearly  and  incontrovertibly  established.  In  particular, 
as  evidencing  a  typical  relation  to  Christ,  the  great  antitype 
that  gives  virtue  and  efficacy  to  every  dispensation,  it  is  said, 
in  almost  interchangeable  expressions  in  all  these  epistles,  that 
Christ  by  his  death  exhibited  the  body  of  which  the  legal  sa- 
crifices were  a  shadow,  and  abolished  in  his  flesh  the  law  of 
commandments  contained  in  ordinances.  He  blotted  out,  says 
Paul  expressly  to  the  Colossians,  the  hand  writing  of  ordinan- 
ces that  was  against  us,  and  which  was  contrary  unto  us,  and 
took  it  out  of  the  way,  nailing  it  to  his  cross.  Indeed,  the 
whole  of  the  writings  of  the  New  Testament  conspire  to  the 
establishmen:  of  this  very  point.  Christ  came,  say  the  gospels, 
to  destroy  the  Jewish  temple,  and  to  raise  it  up  again,  in  its 
spiritual  character,  in  three  days.  What  the  law,  says  Paul  to 
the  Romans,  could  not  do  in  that  it  was  weak  through  the 
flesh,  God,  in  sending  his  own  Son  in  the  likeness  of  sinful 
flesh,  hath  performed.  Before  the  Corinthians,  Christ  is  the 
passover  sacrificed  for  us,  and  the  rock  smitten.  And  in  all 
tiie  speeches  recorded  in  the  Acts  of  the  Apostles — the  sacred 
orators,  in  the  solemnity  of  persecution  and  death,  review  the 
promises  of  the  Fathers,  and  the  privileges  that  were  once  so 
discriminative  of  the  beloved  of  God,  and  proclaim  that  their 
reign  is  terminated,  and  that  the  kingdom  of  heaven,  under  the 
Prince  of  Life,  whom  they  had  crucified,  has  now  appeared 
amongst  men. 

But  for  the  establishment  of  this  momentous  truth,  the  man- 
ner in  which  the  spirit  of  inspiration  conducts  this  epistle,  af- 
fords us  the  most  clear,  decisive,  and  irrefragable  proofs.  The 
whole  scope  of  tliis  epistle  is  to  establish,  from  the  Old  Testa- 


138  SANCTIFICATION   FROM   GUILT. 

raent  scriptures,  the  divinity  of  the  New  Testament  dispensa- 
tion,  and  the  superiority  of  this  dispensation  to  that  which  was 
introductory  to  it.     In  the  beginning  of  it,  its  superiority  in 
regard  to  its  author  in  his  official  character,  as  the  great  pro- 
phet and  high  priest  of  our  profession,  is  elucidated;  and  then 
comes  before  our  view  the  shadowy  and  ineffectual  temple  and 
sacrificesof  the  priesthood  of  Aaron,  compared  with  the  sub- 
stantial and  efficacious  sacrifice  of  him,  who,  by  the  oath  of 
God,  had  been  constituted  a  priest  after  the  order  of  Melchise- 
dec.     In  particular,  in  the  ninth  and  tenth  chapters,  the  inferi- 
ority and  typical  import  of  the  Jewish  sacrifices,   and  on  the 
other  hand  the  effectual  and  all-prevalent  virtue  of  the  sacri- 
fice of  Christ,  is  proved  beyond  the  power  of  sophistry  to  be- 
stow the  least  coloring  on  a  contrary  opinion .     Here  the  chain 
ofnervous  and  close  reasoning,  of  appropriate  and  unambigu- 
ous expressions,  will  neither  yield  nor  be  mistaken.     For  the 
law,  having  a  shadow  of  good  things  to  come,  and  not  the  very 
image  of  the  things,  can  never  make  the  comers  thereunto  per- 
fect; but  (it  is  spoken  in  immediate  contrast)  Christ,  by  the 
one  offering  of  himself,  for  ever  perfected  them  who  are  sancti- 
fied.—In  a  word,  two  priesthoods  are,  from   the  fifth  chapter 
of  this  epistle,  obviously  compared ;  both  are  ordained  for  men 
in  things  pertaining  to  God ;  both  offer  gifts  and  sacrifices;  the 
sacrifices  of  the  one  may  satisfy  to  the  purifying  of  the  flesh,  but 
cannot  purge  the  conscience — their  economy  therefore  waxeth 
old  and  vanisheth  away :  the  other  purges  the  conscience  by 
being  once  offered,  ceases  to  be  repeated  because  the  end  of 
perfection  is  attained ;  and  it  is  the  whole  and  only  oflfering  of 
fJie  piiesthood  of  that  moral  dispensation  where  the  character  is 
cleansed  and  the  heart  is  purified.     If  the  sacrifices  of  the  law, 
those  sacrifices  that  made  an  atonement,  were  not  types  of 
Christ  and  he  their  formal  antitype,  contraries  ought  not  to 
be  contrasted,  shadows  ought  not  to  be  either  compared   with 
them,  or  to  be  distinguished  from  their  substances . 


SANCTIFICATION   FROM  GUILT.  139 

I^  however,  my  brethren,  the  sacrifices  under  the  law  made 
a  typical  atonement,  and  if  Christ  be  the  antitype  of  these 
sacrifices,  it  will  follow,  that  he  made  a  real  atonement.  For 
does  not  the  very  notion  of  a  figure  and  that  which  it  repre- 
sents establish  this  part  of  our  inquiry?  Are  not  the  sign  and 
the  thing  signified  relative  concerns;  and  the  reality  found 
always  in  the  principal,  the  appearance  of  which  is  exhibited 
in  a  portraiture  of  representation  ?  Is  the  image  reflected  in  the 
mirror  without  the  reality  presenting  itself  before  it?  Is  the 
shadow  ofthe  forest  on  the  mountain's  top  seen  waving  in  the 
breeze,  and  fonning  with  surrounding  objects  a  beautiful 
landscape  in  the  lake  below,  without  the  existence  of  such  a 
mountain  and  forest  really  in  nature?  No,  every  shadow 
must  bear  a  relation  to  a  substantial  object,  every  figure  to  a 
reality;  and  the  types  which  under  the  Old  Testament  dis- 
pensation by  ceremonial  expiations  prefigured  Christ,  and 
which  only  prefigured  him,  must  present  him  to  us  as  making 
a  real  atonement.  Yes,  if  the  whole  ofthe  language  of  scrip- 
ture and  reasonings  of  the  apostles  in  stating  a  contrast  be- 
tween the  Jewish  dispensation  and  its  sacrifices;  and  the 
diristian  dispensation  and  its  great  sacrifice,  which  sprinkles 
every  page  of  its  law,  and  every  person  of  its  spiritual  Israel, 
be  not  beyond  parallel  unapprqpriate  and  unmeaning,  we  have 
a  second  demonstrative  argument  that  Christ  has  purified  his 
people  from  guilt. 

But  I  observe,  thirdly,  that  it  appears  that  in  sanctifying 
his  people  by  his  blood,  Christ  procured  remission  of  sins  for 
them,  fi-om  the  attitudes  and  stations  which  his  death  is  re- 
presented to  assume  in  the  field  of  revelation. 

In  the  first  stay  and  prop  of  fallen  man,  the  words  which 
are  both  prophetical  and  promissory,  present  Christ  as  combat- 
ing Satan  the  old  Serpent,  as  wounding  and  being  wounded, 
and  thus  achieving  our  salvation.  The  seal  of  that  promise 
of  God  to  Abraham  which   begat  his  faith  and   preserved 


14b  SANCTIFICATION   FROM:   GUILT. 

it,  distilling  joys  and  consolations,  as  he  wandered  a  pilgrim 
on  earth  without  any  fixed  habitation,  was  a  sign  of  blood  in 
the  flesh  of  Abraham,  which  taught  him  that  the  joy  and  con  • 
solation  which  he  experienced,  were  not  from  the  simple  exer- 
cise of  faith  on  the  promise  of  an  absolute  God,  but  of  that 
faith  which  feeds  upon  its  peculiar  object  that  is  afterwards  to 
be  revealed  as  bearing,  the  cup  of  salvation  filled  from  its  own 
blood.  When  the  first  born  of  Israel  were  dedicated  to  the 
Lord,  as  a  type  of  the  seed  of  him  who  is  the  first  bom  of 
every  creature,  they  were  sanctified  by  the  blood  and  death  of 
those  victims,  which  we  have  already  shown  to  be  figures  of 
the  real  sacrifice  of  the  Son  of  God.  When  the  psalmist  is 
about  to  predict  that  a  seed  shall  serve  Christ  in  every  age,  h« 
jg-eviously  surveys  the  dismal  scene  on  which  he  purchases 
the  honorable  prospect;  and  beholding  the  dark  clouds  that 
gather  around  him,  and  the  tempest  they  pour  upon  his  head, 
about  to  write  it  in  a  song  of  mourning  for  the  church,  in  the 
very  first  words,  he  anticipates  the  expressions  of  the  expiring 
Jesus,  "  My  God,  my  God,  why  hast  thou  forsaken  me?'* 
Isaiah  looks  into  his  endless  kingdom,  and  sees  in  Chrisfs 
hand  the  grand  plans  of  infinite  wisdom  advancing;  he  sees 
him  prolonging  his  days,  and  the  pleasure  of  the  Lord  pros- 
pering in  his  hand ;  but  just  before  this  grand  prospect  arises 
to  view,  the  spirit  has  been  leading  the  prophet  to  see  him  as 
a  lamb  led  to  the  slaughter,  and  as  a  sheep  before  his  shearers 
is  dumb,  so  opening  not  his  mouth.  Daniel  who  saw 
kingdoms  rise  and  fall,  saw,  among  the  rest  of  his  illustrious 
visions,  that  holy  city  audits  walls, for  the  present  restoration 
of  which  he  so  successfully  prayed,  after  it  had  been  built  and 
had  stood  for  ages,  yet  overturned  and  its  sanctuary  destroyed, 
— lie  saw  the  sacrifice  and  oblation  of  Israel  cease  for  ever; 
and  yet  he  sees  an  end  made  of  sins,  reconciliation  made  for 
iniquity,  an  everlasting  righteousness  brought  in,  the  vision 
and  prophecy  sealed  up,  and  the  most  holy  anointed ; — and  all 


SANCTIFICATION   FROM   GUILT.  141 

this  at  the  moment  when  Messiah  is  cut  off,  but  not  for  him- 
self. 

The  prophecies  reach  their  fulfilment  on  the  page  of  historv, 
and  the  morning  star  that  ushers  in  the  clear  day  of  New  Tes- 
tament privileges  appears :— the  voice  of  one  crying  in  the  wil- 
derness, says,   "Prepare  ye  the  way  of  the  Lord,  make  his 
paths  straight  :"~the  children  of  Israel  assemble  around  John 
the  Baptist,  and  believe  him  a  prophet :— he  solemnizes  them 
by  preaching  the  doctrine  of  repentance :— he  fills  them  with 
the  wonders  of  faith,  saying,  I  baptise  you  with  water  unto  re- 
pentance, but  he   that  cometh  after  me,  is  mightier  than  I, 
whose  shoes  I  am  not  worthy  to  bear;  he  shall  baptise  you 
with  the  Holy  Ghost  and  with  fire:— heaven  marks  this  great 
and  expected  character  by  a  sign,  and  a  voice,  saying,  this  is 
my  beloved  Son   in  whom  I  am  well  pleased: — and,  after  all 
this  preparation,  and  amidst  all  this  solemnity,  John,  the  har- 
binger, says  of  this  Son  of  God,  as  he  advances  towards  him, 
and  has  attracted  his  eye  among  a  great  crowd  of  spectators, 
«« Behold  the  Lamb  of  God  that  taketh  away  the  sin  of  the 
world."— On  thepassover  wherej  the  lamb  was  sacrificed  that 
occasioned  this  beloved  Son  to  be  thus  called  the  Lamb  of  God, 
Jesus  and  his  disciples  attend,  when  all  things  are  ready  for 
the  Son  of  man  going  as  it  had  been  written  of  him;  and  with 
a  certain  prospect  of  his  death  just  before  him,  he  takes  the 
cup  which  contains  the  wine  of  the  paschal  feast,  and  abroga- 
ting the  Old  Testament  institutions  by  virtue  of  the  introduc- 
tion of  a  new  and   better  testament,  he  says,  "  this  cup  is  the  . 
new  testament  in  my  blood  shed  for  the  remission  of  the  sins 
of  many ;  drink  ye  all  of  it."— Miracles,  my  brethren,  of  various 
kinds,  and  of  a  stupendous  nature,  did  Christ  perform,  and 
into  glory  was  he  transfigured  ,•  but  although  some  of  the  former 
might  have  been  selected,  and  made  to  be  the  admiration  and 
praise  of  the  church  to  the  end  of  time,  had  Jesus'  death  been 
an  evidence  only  of  his  divine  mission,  and  not  our  sanctifica- 
tion  from  the  guilt  of  sin;  and  although  the  latter  shone  the 


142  SANCTIFICATION   FROM    GtTILT, 

brightest  of  the  marks  of  his  history,  if  his  honor  only  had  to 
be  kept  in  perpetual  remembrance;  yet,  we  see,  that  when 
Christ  is  to  summon  the  world  around  him,  and  to  enlist  all  their 
admiration  and  praise  towards  his  character,  he  does  not  show 
himself  with  the  dead  rising  at  his  call ;  or  the  sea  subsiding 
at  his  reproof  J  or  in  the  glory  of  transfiguration,  where  his 
countenance  is  like  the  sun,  and  his  raiment  like  the  light  of 
the  sun;  but  he  singles  out  the  sign  of  the  prophet  Jonas,  the 
death  that  he  is  now  to  accomplish  at  Jerusalem,  on  this  event 
he  hangs  the  whole  glory  of  the  New  Testament  dispensation, 
and  to  it  he  turns  the  admiration  and  praise  of  his  followers  till 
the  end  of  time, — Do  this  in  remembrance  of  me..  The  saints 
in  the  heavenly  Jerusalem  have  attained  perfection;  their 
knowledge  is  unclouded,  their  halleluiahs  need  no  more  the 
incense  of  intercession;  and  yet  by  the  laws  of  their  glorious 
abode  and  as  the  natural  birth  of  their  attained  perfection^ 
they,  looking  on  the  Son  of  God  as  a  Lamb  that  had  been 
slain,  exclaim,  "  unto  him  that  loved  us,  and  washed  us  from 
our  sins  in  his  own  blood,  and  hath  made  us  kings  and  priests 
unto  God  and  to  his  Father,  be  honor  and  glory  forever  and  ever, 
amen. — Great  God*  can  any  believe  that  the  death  of  Jesus, 
which  is  the  burden  of  Old  Testament  prophecy,  which,  in  the 
inspirations  of  the  New  Testament,  throws  into  shade  all  the 
miracles  and  glory  of  Christ,  which  stands  alone  as  the  great 
object  of  wonder  and  sacred  praise  to  all  his  followers,  anti 
which  tlie  triumphant  church  still  alone  celebrates,  is  intended 
for  no  higher  purpose,  according  to  the  opinion  of  some  pro- 
fessing christians,  than  an  evidence  of  sincerity  in  a  great  pro- 
phet?—as  the  death  of  Paul,  and  of  Peter,  and  of  all  martyrs 
is  an  evidence  that  it  is  truly  their  belief  they  delivered  to  the 
world?  Is  not  the  cup  of  the  new  testament  in  Christ's 
blood,  filled  with  the  blood  of  a  real  atonement,  the  blood 
shed  for  the  remission  of  sins? 

Let  us  look  around  through  the  wide  prospects  of  revelation : 
if  it  be  the  sanctification  we  have  pointed  out,  those  scriptures 


S  A  NOTIFICATION    FROM   GUILT.  143 

which  address  men  in  all  circumstances  and  conditions  of  life, 
and  which  borrow  language  from  all  the  scenes  of  their  joy  or 
mourning,  will  not  leave  us  without  gathering  illustrations 
from  all  quarters  to  this  momentous  topic.  Throughout  the. 
whole  world  at  the  time  that  J  esus  suffered,  and  when  his  disciples 
described  in  writing  the  nature  and  end  of  his  sufferings,  there 
were  sacrifices  offered,  and  it  was  believed  that  those  whose 
blood  was  shed  were  sacrifices  expiatory  of  guilt:  But  while 
the  offerers  might  have  been  mistaken  as  to  the  particular  at- 
tainm.ent  of  the  victims  which  they  led  to  the  altar  to  render 
their  Gods  propitious  to  them ;  under  the  spirit  of  inspiration,  the 
language  which  expressed  their  belief,  is  borrowed  by  the  apos- 
tles and  applied  to  Christ's  death,  without  explanation  or  hesi- 
tation; and  they  distinguish  it  from  all  sacrifices  of  thanks- 
giving in  this  pointed  manner,  "  He  was  sacrificed  for  us,  he  is 
the  propitiation  for  our  sin,  through  whom  we  have  the  atone- 
ment, but  now  once  in  the  end  of  the  world  Iiath  he  appeared 
to  put  away  sin  by  the  sacrifice  of  himself.^' — But  the  world 
long  oppressed  in  misery,  cannot  be  mistaken' respecting  the 
language  which  describes  the  redemption  of  those  captives 
whose  definite  character,  and  substantial  ransom,  ancient  war- 
fare had  so  long  established.  Is  Jesus'  death  called  a  ransom? 
is  it  so  called  without  hesitation?  is  the  language  repeated  by 
the  spirit  of  inspiration  and  still  supposed  sufficiently  clear? — 
Be  assured,  it  is  not  intended,  by  this  artless  but  impressive 
use  of  the  instrument  of  conveying  human  thought,  to  steal 
unawares  the  chains  of  falsehood  upon  the  disciples  of  the  i'€- 
ligion  of  Christ,  and  to  immure  them  for  ever  in  the  darkness 
of  error.  No,  I  see  the  light  of  the  Sun  of  Righteousness  and  feel 
his  warmth,  under  a  cloudless  sky,  whenever  I  read  these  ex 
pressions  and  such  like,  "  He  gavehimself  for  us,  that  he  might 
redeem  us  from  all  iniquity.  In  whom  we  have  redemption 
through  his  blood,  the  forgiveness  of  sins:  He  was  made  of  a 
woman,  made  under  the  law,  to  redeem  them  that  were  un- 
der  the  law,  that   we  might  receive  the  adoption  of  sons,'" — 


144  SANCTIFICATION    FROM   GUILT. 

Moreover,  a  sense  of  property  is  a  principle  that  has  ever  oper- 
ated in  human  nature,  it  has  operated  by  leading  one  to  view 
his  own  stock,  and  to  compare  it  with  the  stock  of  thousands 
around,  and  then  to  seek  to  transfer  the  least  desirable  in  his 
own  possession  for  what  he  esteems  more  highly  in  the  posses- 
sion of  his  neighbors;  and  the  words  to  buy,  to  purchase,  never 
floated,  in  the  atmosphere  of  human  society,  vague  and  unde- 
fined, but  in  all  ages  comprised  the  discriminations  which  hu- 
man interests  ascertain  and  so  often  review;  and  when  meta- 
phorically applied  to  moral  subjects,  the  analogical  meaning 
which  truth  and  justice  affix  to  them  is  equally  strict,  and 
equally  recognizes  a  change  of  relations  on  the  principle  of  a 
standard  of  equity.  But  Christ  hath  bought  us  with  a  price, 
he  hath  purchased  to  himself  a  people,  he  hath  bought  us  not 
with  corruptible  things  as  silver  and  gold,  but  with  his  own 
precious  blood. — Hence  I  am  forced  to  conclude  that  though 
the  love  of  God  to  us  be  the  spring  of  our  salvation ;  yet  God 
is  so  holy,  and  so  determined  to  show  his  perfect  equity  to  all 
his  intelligent  creatures,  that,  in  his  character  of  moral  gover- 
nor of  the  universe,  he  will  not  part  with  a  sentence  of  pardon 
for  the  robbery  that  has  been  committed  on  the  prerogatives  of 
his  holy  law,  till ,  in  moral  reckoning,  the  last  farthing  has 
been  paid  to  punitive  justice. — But,  in  a  word,  we  are  sinners, 
God,  as  scripture  declares,  has  been  offended  by  us;  and  our 
reconciliation  to  this  offended  God  has  been  effected  by  the 
death  of  Christ.  When  we  were  enemies  we  were  reconciled 
'  to  God  by  the  death  of  his  sou.  Collect,  my  brethren,  your 
powers  of  reason  around  this  view  of  the  sufferings  and  sacri- 
fice of  the  son  of  God. — ^Reconciliation  to  God  is  not  said  to  be 
accomplished  by  persuasion,  by  peculiar  words  that  dropped  from 
Christ  upon  the  cross,  and  which  appeased  an  offended  Deity, 
and  turned  the  hearts  of  sinners  towards  him.  Throughout 
revelation,  it  is  the  act  of  Christ's  death  itself,  that  is  represent- 
ed as  the  cause  of  reconciliation,  and  in  numberless  forms  is 
shown   to  our  eye,  as  the  only  object,  that  God  will  admit  to 


SANCTIFICATI(S?f   FROM:  GtJILT,  l45 

be  honored  with  the  renown  of  this  blessed  achievement. 
Truth  never  flowed  so  sweetly  from  the  lips  of  the  speaker  as 
from  those  of  Jesus,  and  never  were  such  incontrovertible  evi_ 
dences  of  this  tmth  being  delivered  by  a  messenger  of  heaven, 
as  shone  in  the  miracles,  which,  during  his  life  and  at  his  resur- 
rection, took  place;  but  the  excellence  of  his  instructions,  and 
the  omnipotence  of  his  miracles,  lie  in  undisturbed  obscurity, 
and  not  an  object  does  the  spirit  of  God,  in  this  great  and  joy- 
ful business  of  reconciliation,  press  on  our  sense,  as  the  noble 
cause  of  accomplishing  it,  but  the  sufferings  and  death  of  him 
who  is  the  Son  of  God,  Why,  oh!  hearers,  has  murder  been 
condemned  by  the  eternal  law  of  righteousness,  why  has  the 
murder  of  the  innocent  been  considered  an  aggravation  of  the 
crime,  why  has  the  murder  of  the  prophets,  and  holy  men  of 
God,  been  branded  with  marks  of  his  hottest  displeasure,  if  the 
death  of  the  apostle  and  high  priest  of  our  profession,  is,  thus 
viewed  in  tlie  light  of  simple  death  only,  an  odor  of  a  sweet 
smell  unto  God  ?  This  death  of  Christ  i-econciies  ail  things  in 
heaven  and  in  earth  unto  God;  but  if  this  be  not,  by  being  a 
satisfaction  to  infinite  justice,  reason  is  bewildered;  eternally 
bewildered,  in  reflecting  upon  God*s  passing  by  all  wonders  of 
providence,  and  all  other  points  of  the  miraculous  history  of 
Jesus,  and  fixing  the  eye  of  men  and  angels  upon  this  one 
event  as  the  only  means  of  reconciliation  of  sinners  to  himself; 
this  event  which  is  so  abhorrent  eveiy  where  else;  this  event, 
the  ignominious  nature  of  which  would  have  made  his  histo- 
rians, had  they  considered  it  as  a  violent  natural  occurrence 
only,  seldom  advert  to  it,  whilst  every  page  would  have  teemed 
with  the  splendor  of  his  miracles,  and  the  glory  of  his  resur- 
rection; this  event  which  stands  as  a  mere  account  of  murder 
i>etween  God  and  ancient  infidel  Israel,  who  imbrued  their  hands 
in  hisViood,  that  Israel,  who  for  this  daring  crime,  are,  in  their 
children,  under  a  rod  of  vengeance  to  this  day ;  the  event  which, 
however,  distinguishes  the  believing  Israel,  throughout  scrip- 
ture^ with  that  adoption  which  is  a   complete  contrast   to  this 

33* 


146  SANCTIFICATION   FROM   GUILT. 

miserable  rejection  of  the  Jews ;  the  event  which  stands  and 
will  stand  on  every  leaf  of  the  New  Testament,  the  joy  and 
exultation  of  those  apostles  who  saw  it  once  as  the  death  only 
of  their  master,  and  all  forsook  it  and  fled;  but  who  received  the 
promise  of  the  Father,  and  then  received  it,  as  the  redemption, 
not  by  the  power  of  their  Mesiah's  life  of  temporal  Israel,  but 
by  the  atonement  of  his  death,  of  that  Israel  with  whom  is  made 
the  new  covenant  in  his  blood. 

Bat  I  have  not  yet  done  with  my  elucidation  of  the  scriptu- 
ral station  of  the  death  of  Christ.     Christians,  the  apostles  and 
prophets  were  inspired  in  all  the  messages  which  from  heaven 
they  bore  to  men,  and  the  truths  which  they  uttered  were  the 
uncontaminated  favors  of  infinite  wisdom.     In  vindication  of 
their  sincerity  in  communicating  the  impulses  of  the  spirit  only, 
they   submitted  to  every  hardship,  and   to  death  itself;  they 
w^ere   stoned,   they  were  sawn  assunder,  they  were  slain  with 
the  sword,  they  were  crucified;  but  wonderful  to  tell,  revelation 
has  passed  over,  after  giving  long  histories  of  their  lives,  all 
these  memorable  exits  of  apostles  and  prophets,  as  if  their  death, 
after  they  had  served  their  generation,  were  not  worthy  to  oc- 
cupy a  line  of  revelation,  or  a  thought  of  immortal  man.     Mo- 
ses was  a  prophet  and  legislator;  but  what  says  the  spirit  of  his 
death?     His  life  is  minutely  described      His  birth,  his  expo- 
sure, his  flight,  his  marriage,  his  circumcision,  his  miracles,  his 
grief,  his  divine  conferences,  his  intercessions ;  but  his  death  is 
out  of  the  view  of  men,  and  is  reckoned  unworthy  of  a  single 
letter  from  the  pen  of  inspiration.     Some  have  said  that  Isaiah 
was  sawn  assunder.     Who  knows?     Is  Isaiah's  death  of  any 
interest  to  the  world?     He  was  a  holy   man$  but  his  death  is 
less  taken  notice  of  in  inspiration  than  the  path  of  the  raven 
which  Noah  sent  from  the  ark,  and  which  went  to  and  fro  till 
the  waters  were  abated.     Of  Peter  it  has  been  said  that  he  was 
crucified,  and  with  his  head  downwards  at  his  own  request. 
But  is  this  a  certainty?     Ancient    history  states   it.     But 
whether  it  was  so  or  not  is  a  matter  of  no  more  moment  to  us, 


SANCTIFICATION  FROM   GUILT.  147 

than  what  became  of  the  blossoms  of  Aaron's  miraculous  rod. 
Of  Paul  it  is  said  that  he  was  beheaded.  It  may  be  so.  Is  it 
any  matter  to  angels  or  men  whether  it  was  so  or  not?  His 
exertions  may  have  had  a  greater  influence  on  the  condition  of 
mankind  than  those  of  any  other  man ;  but  his  death  has  no 
more  connexion  with  their  welfare  than  have  the  particles  of 
the  dust  of  his  body  which  lie  in  total  unconcern  to  mankind 
till  the  morning  of  the  resurrection.  But  the  death  of  Jesus — 
this  is  portrayed  in  every  page,  this  is  declared  by  God  to  be 
the  cause  of  reconciling  the  world  to  himself,  this  borrows  il- 
lustrations from  all  the  practices  and  ways  of  men  to  recom- 
mend it  as  a  real  satisfaction ;  it  is  called  a  sacrifice,  a  sacrifice 
for  sin,  an  atonement,  a  propitiation,  a  redemption,  a  price,  a 
value  of  purchase ; — this  is  made  the  great  centre  around  which 
the  songs  of  the  church  militant  and  triumphant  for  ever  ascend 
and  swell  into  the  highest  anthem ; — this  appears  in  all  the 
visions  of  the  prophets  as  the  cause  of  all  things  dedicated  by 
blood.  Oh!  my  hearers,  this  is  the  event  which  arises  amidst 
the  rise  and  fall  of  empires,  to  connect  into  a  focus,  the  scatter- 
ing rays  of  r:  evidence  amongst  the  nations,  where  God's  good- 
ness had  V  261  known  by  rains  and  fruitful  seasons  only,  or 
where  it  ha  1  sitone  brighter  in  emblems  of  the  unspeakable  gift 
of  God;  thi:  is  the  event  that  brings  heaven  and  earth  into  per- 
petual fellowship  and  one  eternal  family.  For  it  pleased  the 
Father  th  '-~  *'rrs  siiould  ;ill  fulness  dwell,  and  having  made 
peace  thro  .  )d  of  his  cross :  by  him  to  reconcile  all 

things  to  ;tfn&elf,  by  Jiim,  I  say,  whether  they  be  things  in  hea- 
ven, or  th     --  ^n  eaith.     Col.   1:19,  20. 

Oh!  m;  ren,  wh?  ^  ^.n  empty  concern  engages  the  atten- 

tion of  t^  ^     its  of  this  universe,  if  the  death  of 

Christ  b'^  _ :  teinal  justice  has  set  upon  the  re- 

lease c:^  -  \     The  creator,  by  his  words,  by  tlie 

usages  h-  .-^  he  prophecies  he  hath  uttered,  by 

the  d  .3'-"  th  given,  by  the  ordinances  which  he 

hatb  inst  ,  eniy  exercises  wliich  he  hath  lighted 


!48  SA?fCTIFICATION    FROM   GtJILT. 

up  among  the  angels  and  the  spirits  of  the  just,  is  making  a 
chorus  as  when  at  the  birth  of  creation  the  sons  of  God  shouted 
for  joy -.—And  for  what  is  it?  I  intend  no  impiety  by  what  ! 
gtate. — It  is  to  afford  a  complete  contrast  to  the  wisdom  of  the 
morning  stars  when  they  sang  together.  Nothing  is  more 
sublime  and  beautiful  than  this  expression  respecting  the  de- 
votion of  the  heavenly  host  when  the  foundations  of  our  earth 
were  laid.  But  now  the  creation  tunes  its  harps,  and  not  for  a 
morning,  but  for  eternity,  to  celebrate  a  fabric  that  is  made 
mighty  and  grand  by  false  colors  only ;  as  if  the  Deity  had  be- 
come weak,  and  yet  still  wanted  his  renown. — My  brethren,  I 
believe  that  if  the  death  of  Christ  had  not  been  an  atonement, 
the  creator  of  this  universe  would  not  have  spoken  of  it  from 
the  beginning  of  time,  and  in  every  page  of  the  New  Testa- 
ment, as  he  has  done ;  but  would  have  given  a  different  charac- 
ter to  the  whole  of  his  revealed  will.  Had  not  Christ  been  his 
eternal  Son  and  his  death  the  redemption  of  the  world,  I  be- 
lieve he  would  have  put  another  subject  into  the  mouths  of 
immortal  beings  and  especially  those  who  are  immediately 
around  his  throne ;  I  believe  he  would  have  given  them  some- 
thing worthy  of  his  wisdom  and  omnipotence  to  celebrate; — if 
it  had  been  only  his  sweeping  off,  in  the  last  and  most  perfect 
of  his  dispensations,  the  refuge  of  lies  into  which,  in  some 
sense,  the  whole  world,  in  its  expiatory  sacrifices,  had  entered. 
Yes,  God  ought,  my  brethren,  to  have  banished  not  only  the  su- 
perstition of  the  Gentiles  and  the  ceremonies  of  the  Jews  from 
our  world;  he  ought  to  have  set  his  mark  of  reprobation  on  the 
very  language  which  had  become  so  saci'ed  and  so  deceitful  by 
its  use  on  the  most  solemn  occasions. — But  while  the  sun  and 
the  moon  endure  every  thing  will  be  the  very  reverse. 

For,  my  brethren,  I  must  be  permitted  a  word  further  in  sup- 
port  of  the  atonement  of  Christ,  from  the  solemnities  of  the 
offering  of  this  day.  This  is  the  day  of  our  great  New  Testa- 
ment festival.  Some  have  supposed  that  there  are  many  days 
of  sacred  commemoration,  if  not  instituted,  at  least  authorized 


SANCTIPICATION  FROM  GUILT.  149 

by  God  J  such  as  solemn  memorials  of  the  resurrection  and  as- 
cension of  Christ.  But  I  must  state  my  belief  to  you.  Had 
God  appointed  a  commemoration  of  the  resurrection  of  Christ, 
or  of  any  miracle  wrought,  in  confirmation  of  the  truth  of  our 
holy  religion,  as  he  has  appointed  the  solemnities  of  this  day, 
I  would  tell  you,  that  though  the  expressions  of  revelation  and 
innumerable  views  in  it,  seem  to  proclaim  the  truth  of  the 
atonement;  yet  it  wants  that  singularity  of  elevation  to  which, 
on  the  supposition  of  its  being  the  price  paid  on  the  table  of 
eternal  justice,  I  would  anticipate  that  it  would  he  exalted. 
Elevate  any  thing  else,-  the  brightest  of  divine  operations 
which  can  be  the  evidence  of  the  heavenly  origin  of  our  hopes 
into  the  station  of  a  commemorative  ordinance  to  which  God 
binds  our  conscience,  I  must  believe  that  there  is  a  singular 
worth  and  substance  in  it  exactly  proportioned  to  the  dignity 
to  which  it  is  supposed  elevated. 

Had  God  commanded,  my  brethren,  the  children  of  Israel  to 
keep  up  the  memorial  of  Abraham's  standing  beside  the  three 
angels  while  they  feasted  at  his  table;  had  they  been  directed 
to  commemorate  the  passage  of  the  Red  Sea,  or  the  manna 
which  supported  them  forty  years  in  the  wilderness;  had  chrism 
tians  been  bound  in  the  temple  of  the  Lord,  to  commemorate 
the  power  of  Christ  when  he  said,  Lazarus  come  forth;  had 
they  been  bound  to  commemorate  his  ascension,  or  the  descent 
of  the  Spirit  on  the  day  of  Pentecost,  1  would  have  said  that 
the  divine  ordinations  place  many  things  on  a  parallel,  and  the 
design  of  the  one  must,  in  the  estimation  of  God,  be  equal  to  that 
of  the  other. 

But,  my  brethren,  the  scriptures  from  beginning  to  end  are 
astonishingly  cautious  on  this  head.  They  will  exalt  nothing  to 
the  dignity  of  a  commemorative  ordinance,  but  blood.  The 
manna  will  be  allowed  its  little  pot,  the  Red  Sea  will  have  a 
historical  record;  but  circumcision  and  the  passover  are  the 
solemn  sacraments  of  the  Old  Testament. 


150  SANCTIFICATION  PROM   GTTILT. 

.  And  what  is  the  sun  of  the  New  Testament  dispensation, 
which  presents  to  our  eye  heaven's  unequivocal  appointment  of 
an  ordinance  where  we  dare  not  eat  and  drink  unworthily  with- 
out being  guilty  of  the  body  ^md  blood  of  the  Lord?  Ah! my 
brethren,  remember  what  Moses  and  Elias  came  from  heaven 
to  speak  about;  remember  what  the  angels  desire  to  look  into; 
remember  your  Saviour  with  the  bread  and  the  cup  in  his 
hands; and  hear  his  voice, — this  is  my  body  broken  for  you,  this 
do  in  remembrance  of  me — and  this  cup  is  the  New  Testament 
in  my  blood,  shed  for  the  remission  of  the  sins  of  many,  drink 
ye  all  of  it, — and  you  will  see  that  in  divine  reckoning  there  is 
an  event  which  has  a  spirit  and  substance  in  it  above  all 
others. 

What  an  ordinance,  my  brethren,  is  this  which  to-day  we 
are  to  celebrate?  It  illustrates  divine  justice;  interprets  the 
ritual  of  Israel;  it  is  a  key  to  the  predictions  of  revelation;  it  in- 
troduces God  as  a  wise  teacher  speaking  plain  and  intelligible 
language  tp  his  children  about  the  death  of  his  Son ;  it  justifies 
the  solemnity  of  our  religious  assemblings  to  hear  of  the  blood 
of  sprinkling,  and  it  shows  us  that  there  is  some  meaning  in 
this  song  of  the  triumphant  church,  "  Thou  art  worthy  to  take 
the  book  and  to  open  the  seals  thereof;  for  thou  wast  slain  and 
hast  redeemed  us  to  God  by  thy  blood." 

This  blood,  in  the  cup  of  our  new  covenant,  is  the  blood  of 
sprinkling;  but,  ah!  my  brethren,  is  there  any  unholy  and  im- 
pious communicant?  He  will  besprinkled  as  with  the  drops 
of  metal  from  the  glowing  furnace;  for  our  God  is  a  consuming 
fire.  He  that  eateth  and  drinketh  unworthily  eateth  and  drink- 
eth  damnation  to  himself.  But  a  worthy  communicant!  what 
is  said  of  him  ?  He  is  sprinkled  with  the  spirit  of  promise  and 
of  assistance ;  and  will  appear,  after  a  little,  in  heaven,  among 
them  who  have  washed  their  robes  and  made  them  white  in  the 
blood  of  the  Lamb. — Ye.:,  my  brethren,  for  you  are  called  in 
scripture  priests  of  the  most  high  God,  and  you  are  called  the 


SANCTIFICATION   FROM   GUILT.  161 

temple  of  God ;  and  you  see  the  exquisite  propriety,  from  the 
whole  tenor  of  the  ritual  of  the  Old  Testament,  and  from  the 
fundamental  principles  of  the  New  Testament,  of  God's  be- 
stowing upon  you  these  appellations. — Aaron  was  called  of 
God ;  but  the  call  was  given  to  him  through  Moses ;  and  the 
authority  of  it  was  not  expressed  in  all  its  formalities  till  Moses 
sprinkled  him,  and  every  part  of  his  garments,  with  the  blood 
of  sacrifice.  In  this  manner  he  was  dedicated  unto  the  ser- 
vice of  God ;  and  it  is  as  you  are  sprinkled  with  the  blood  of 
the  great  sacrifice  which  was  offered  up  through  the  eternal 
spirit  without  spot  unto  God,  that  you  are  purged  from  dead 
works,  to  become  a  royal  priesthood,  an  holy  nation,  a  peculiar 
people  unto  God. — They  were  not  the  materials  of  the  tem 
pie  considered  in  itself,  not  even  the  ark  of  the  covenant,  and 
the  law  and  the  mercy-seat,  which  made  it  a  holy  fabric  of  di- 
vine service ;  the  book  of  the  law,  the  ark  of  the  covenant,  and 
the  mercy -seat,  and  all  the  furniture  of  the  tabernacle,  were  all 
sprinkled  with  the  blood  of  atonement,  and  thus  they  were  dedi- 
cated unto  God;  and  so,  as  you  are  God's  temple,  there  is  not 
an  inward  recess  of  your  nature,  nor  a  plan  of  holiness  in  your 
heart,  nor  a  form  of  it  that  appears  in  your  life,  but  which,  in 
the  estimation  of  heaven,  is  dedicated  to  divine  acceptance  by 
the  blood  of  Christ  *'  And  almost  all  things  are  by  the  law 
purged  by  blood ;  and  without  shedding  of  blood  is  no  remis- 
sion.. It  was,  therefore,  necessary  that  the  patterns  of  things 
in  the  heavens  should  be  purified  with  these ;  but  the  heavenly 
things  themselves  with  better  sacrifices  than  these.  For 
Christ  is  not  entered  into  the  holy  places  made  with  hands, 
which  are  the  figures  of  the  true;  but  into  heaven  itself,  now 
to  appear  in  the  presence  of  God  for  us." — Yes,  ye  firstborn, 
whose  robes  are  whiter  than  any  fuller  can  whiten  them,  the  de- 
stroying angel  may  pass  around  us ;  but  as  we  are  God's  Israel, 
our  names  are  written  in  heaven,  and  the  angel  has  received 
a  command  to  mark  the  door-posts  and  the  lintels  of  our  door 


152  SANCTIFICATION  FROM   GUILT. 

on  which  is  the  blood  of  sprinkling.  As  he  passes,  he  must 
utter  the  declaration,  Behold  the  blood  that  cleanses  from  all 
sin.  There  they  eat,  and  drink,  and  are  satisfied ;  and  start 
with  tlieir  loins  girt  and  their  lamps  burning  to  the  possession 
of  their  promised  land. — Yea,  I  hear  the  angel  of  the  covenant 
himself  speak;  what  says  he?  Come  ye  blessed  of  my  Father, 
inherit  the  kingdom  prepared  for  you  from  th«  foundation  of 
the  world.    Amen. 


DISCOURSE  VII. 


SANCTIFICATION  TO  LIFE. 


Heb.  13: 12.     Wlierefore  Jesus  also,  that  he  might  sanctify 
the  people  with  his  own  blood,  suffered  without  the  gate. 

The  next  thing,  respecting  the  sanctification  of  the  peopl« 
by  the  blood  of  Christ,  to  be  demonstrated,  is,  that  Christ  puri- 
fied tliem  by  that  perfection  of  obedience,  which  bestows,  in 
the  eye  of  justice,  a  claim  upon  tbem,  to  the  holiness  and  glory 
of  the  heavenly  state. 

There  are  some  who  have  imagined  that  the  atonement  of 
Christ,  or  his  sufferings  relative  to  the  penalty  of  the  law,  was 
all  that  justice  could  demand  in  order  that  eternal  life  might 
be  enjoyed  by  those  in  whose  stead  his  sufferings  were  sus- 
tained. Many,  otherwise  correct  in  their  sentiments,  assert 
that  the  law  of  God  is  fulfilled  by  punishment  only.  They 
aver  that  punishment  is,  in  moral  reckoning,  a  reparation 
of  the  law,  restoring  to  it,  through  its  penalty,  every  iota  of 
which  the  transgression  is  supposed  to  have  bereaved  it  in  its 
precept ;  and  so,  say  they,  it  must  be  esteemed  a  full  comple- 
tion of  all  its  demands.  Sin,  say  they,  is  exactly  the  couiv- 
terpirtof  the  duty  that  was  to  be  performed,  and  the  sufferings 
of  Christ  were  exactly  answerable  to  the  demerit  of  the  sin  for 
which  he  suffered;  therefore,  they  conclude,  the  law  of  our 
nature  must  be  fulfilled  merely  by  the  sufferings  of  Christ. 

Were  this  to  be  granted,  it  ought  to  be  remembered,  that  if 
from  scripture  we  could  establish  to  a  moral  certaintv,  that  th« 
14 


154  SArrcTiFiCATiox  To  life, 

virtae  of  the  sacrifice  of  Christ,  viewed  thus  more  simply  in  its 
nature,  did  establish  the  rights  of  his  people  to  heaven  on  a 
foundation  of  holiness,  then,  the  issue  of  our  inquiry  on  this 
part  of  our  subject,  would  be  the  same»  as  if  his  obedience  did 
divide  into  another  and  kindred  relation. 

But  the  reasoning  we  have  repeated,  in  our  view,  evidently 
embraces  an  ingenious  sophism.  The  law  of  God  requires 
direct  and  uninterruptal  obedience  from  his  creature,  no  less 
whefi  suifering  for  his  offences,  than  when  in  an  innocent 
state;  obedience,  too,  not  only  in  voluntarily  suffering  the 
punishment  due  to  it  irom  the  immutable  majesty  of  justice; 
but  obedience  to  the  primary  precept  of  the  law  which  imposes 
our  duty  upon  us  just  as  creatures  of  God.  The  remunerative 
obedience  that  encounters  and  satisfies  punitive  justice,  is  per- 
formed, in  another  moral  habit  of  character,  and  to  another 
vie?/  of  the  law,  than  that  which  lays  hold  upon  tis,  and  with 
an  attribute  of  immutability  correspondent  to  the  perfection  of 
God's  holy  character,  of  which  it  is  r  transcript,  leads  us  for- 
ward, through  the  lines  of  our  existence,  just  as  the  moral  and 
accountable  creatures  of  God.  It  ought  never  to  be  forgotten 
that  the  original  relations  of  the  intelligent  creature,  subject  it 
to  a  Qfecessity  of  direct  and  continual  compliance  with  the  pri- 
mary laws  of  its  nature,  into  what  state  soever  it  may  accident- 
aiJy  precipitate  itself  by  its  own  transgressions.  Hence  even 
m  8  gtate  of  suffering,  deemed  satisfactory  for  the  offences  for 
which  tl^  person  has  been  subjected  to  it,  there  must  be,  in 
the  form  of  duty,  positive  obedience,  distinct  from  this  voluni- 
tayy  fttld  penal  suffering,  in  order  that  ali-  the  relations  of  the 
law  of  God  may  be  fully  obtemperated. 

Nor,  let  me  remark,  can  this  relation  of  the  law  be  fulfilled, 
as  some  others  vrould  appear  to  think,  by  that  faith,  which  un- 
der th«  dispensation  of  mercy,  is  presented  as  the  mean*  of 
Tjnitii},^  ns  to  Christ,  our  representative;  and  who  is  supposed 
to  have  satisfied  the  penalty  of  the  law  for  us.  The  mind  that 
wouW  rest  in  this  view  of  the  subject,  that  would  consider 


SAXCTIFICATION   TO    LIFR.  J5a 

faitli  nnder  the  gospel  dispensation  as  substituted  for  the  origi> 
nal  duty  of  man,  never  has  investigated  them,  and  thoroughly 
misunderstands  the  fundamental  laws  of  morality,  Ciyigtian 
faith,  indeed,  as  soon  as  ever  the  relation  in  which  the  Media- 
tor stands  to  sinners  is  made  known,  becomes  a  moral  duty, 
and  man  is  bound  to  the  exercise  of  it,  no  less  than  to  that  of 
the  duties  which  spring  out  of  the  original  relations  of  his  Con- 
stitution,* but  it  can  never  be  said  that  it  is  substituted  io  the 
room  of  these  duties,  and  that  faith  in  Christ  is  now  the  primary 
law  of  the  creature.  What!  can  God  free  his  creature  absolute- 
ly, and  in  every  respect,  from  those  original  laws  by  which  its 
moral  nature  is  constituted — which  give  it,  morally  considered, 
its  very  existence?  No,  faith  under  the  gospel,  as  it  is  a  dutv, 
presupposes  the  moral  character  of  the  creature,  and  the  bw 
which  governs  it;  the  inftaction  of  this  law,  and  its  reparation 
by  our  surety;  and  then  it  enjoins  a  dependence  upon  him  ht 
salvation:  but  faith  in  the  IMediator,  never  can  be  consider- 
ed formally  a  part  even  of  the  original  law  of  ouv  natU'"?. 
The  perfections  of  Deity,  while  they  enjoin  always  a  circle  of 
obedience  that  is  as  wide  as  existing  moral  relations,  yet,  coi;ld 
never  enjoin  the  exercise  of  faith  in  a  Mediator,  in  those  re'i^ 
tions,  the  moral  voice  of  which  excluded  the  exhibition  c--^  ^ 
mediatorial  character.  We  are  not  now  speaking  of  faith  ^^i 
God,  as  he  is  our  Creator;  and  that  faith  which  in  the  dispen- 
sation of  grace,  God  enjoins,  by  an  expression  of  his  will  pure- 
ly moral,  (since,  it  is  obvious,  he  could  no  more  appoint  hM 
eternal  Son  to  be  our  Mediator  without  requiring  faith  in  h':« 
mediatorial  character,  than  he  could  create  an  intelligent  ere-; 
ture  without  requiring  faith  in  himself  as  Creator,)  this  faith, 
we  say,  thus  morally  founded  and  enjoined,  and  the  actual  ex- 
ercise of  obedience  relative  to  which,  scripture  informs  us,  is  ?. 
pure  grace,  embraces  Christ,  its  object,  as  a  complete  Savio.^ir, 
who,  in  order  that  the  sinner  might  be  saved,  hath  fulfilled  the 
law,  in  both  its  claims  of  punishment  and  obedience,  which  it 
!iad  upon  the  sinner,  and  it  tells  that  his  salvation  comes,  not 


156  SAKCTIFICATION   TO    LIFE. 

by  the  works  of  the  law,  but  by  the  free  grace  of  God;  but  this 
faith,  on  the  scale  of  moral  relations,  ean  never  rise  ic  a  Jiigher 
station  than  this,  nor  a  greater  end. 

i  am  aware,  that  against  the  actual  purchase  of  heaven  by 
the  merits  of  Christ,  and  particularly  by  his  positive  obedience, 
as  we  presume  it  necessary  to  be,  there  have  been  especially 
two  prejudices  entertained.  Some  have  maintained  that  the 
actual  purchase  of  heaven  by  that  price  on  account  of  which  the 
law  must  proclaim  it  to  be  ours,  militates  against  the  free  and 
gracious  origin  of  our  salvation;  while  othets  say,  that  it  de- 
stroys, by  laying  a  moral  claim  upon  God's  justice,  the  duty 
and  necessity  of  believers,  during  the  course  of  their  life  of 
faith,  pleading  sincerely  and  humbly  for  the  blessings  of  God's 
mercy. 

But,  have  not  the  former  forgot,  that  a  sinner's  salvation, 
can  be,  by  an  absolutely  perfect  God,  only  relatively  free? 
The  origin  of  our  salvation  is  the  offspring  of  mercy,  unmixed 
as  the  purest  ray  that  shone  on  Eden,  and  the  application  of  it 
to  us  as  miserable  and  wTetched  criminals  on  whom  the  axe  of 
justice  is  falling  to  destroy,  is  as  much  the  sovereign  grace  of 
God,  as  Israel's  manna  that  came  from  the  chambers  of  the 
dew;  but  as  we  are  represented  in  Christ,  our  salvation  is 
strictly  the  reward  of  the  duty  that  had  been  appointed  to  us, 
and  which  we,  through  him,  do  perform.  The  promises  of  God 
are  all  unmerited,  primarily  viewed;  but  none  of  these  promi- 
ses are  made  to  us  but  through  Christ;  and  while  the  promises 
themselves  have  all  the  character  originally  considered  we 
have  ascribed  to  them;  both  the  promises  to  the  Mediator  him- 
self, and  also  to  us  by  him;  yet,  the  blessings  which  are  the 
realization  of  these  promises,  we  aver,  are  strictly,  in  moral 
reckoning,  the  reward  of  obedience  perfectly  performed.  If 
they  be  not,  why  is  heaven  expected  for  Christ's  sake?  Why 
are  we  begotten  through  a  lively  hope  by  the  resurrection  of 
Christ  from  the  dead  to  it  as  incorruptible  and  undefiled? 
Why  does  Paul,  in  his  reasoning  in  his  first  and  second  chap- 


SAT^crrFicAHo:^  to  iife,  157 

t4grs  in  his  epistle  to  the  Ephesians,  not  only  set  us  in  heavenly 
places  in  Christ  in  the  spiritual  dispensation  of  the  gospel,  but 
in  the  conclusion  of  his  admirable  reasoning  on  this  subject, 
personally  with  Christ  in  the  heavenly  inheritance  itself? 

In  relation  unto  tlie  other  objectors,  I  would  ask.  is  it  from 
a  doubt  or  disbelief  of  any  part  of  the  law  of  our  nature  bein<T 
fulfilled  by  Christ,  or  of  the  rights  of  our  eternal  possession 
being  settled  in  the  court  of  heaven  by  ouradvocate  within  the 
vail,  that  they  imagine,  that  the  propriety  of  a  Christianas  press- 
ing his  humble  petitions  before  his  sovereign  Father,  is  to  ap- 
pear? Does  not  the  christian  pray,  and  become  animated  with 
importunity,  that  his  interest  in  Christ  may  be  secured,  and 
that  God's  glory  by  him  in  this  relation  of  dependence  on 
Christ,  maybe  promoted?  Does  the  christian  in  his  prayers 
actuate  the  character  of  a  creature  purely,  or  is  it  that  of  a  re- 
deemed one,  and  a  new  creature?  Opens  he  his  eye  under  the 
absolute  throne  of  the  eternal,  or  as  he  would  beliold  the  face 
of  God  reconciled  to  him  by  Jesus  Christ?  By  Christ  as  the 
way  he  approaches;  on  his  name,  as  the  foundaticm  of  his  hope, 
he  takes  his  stand;  and  he  believes  that  he  is  to  obtain  mercv, 
and  find  grace  to  Iielp  him,  by  this  confident  method  only  of 
access  to  God.  Heaven,  then,  may  be  secured  lo  the  elect  by 
a  title  that  justice  will  infallibly  protect;  and  yet,  at  the  same 
time,  the  members  of  the  visible  church  of  Chris%  so  weak,  so 
tempted,  so  ready  to  forget  God,  have  a  foundation  for  prayer 
equally  disencumbered  here,  as  the  duty  of  the  creature  is, 
compared  with  the  immanent  acts  of  Deity;  and,  as  we  should 
expect  it  tu  be,  bearing  a  striking  analogy  to  that  mvsterious 
relation. 

That  Christ  did  fulfil  the  precept  of  the  law,  and  in  fulfilling 
it  procured  actually  that  title  to  eternal  life  which  is  the  sub- 
ject of  our  inquiry,  is  clear  from  the  following  considerations. 

First,  the  precept  of  the  law  of  God  must  be  fidfilled  pre- 
viously to  any  creature  coming  to  heaven.  If  we  have  been 
correct  in  our  analysis  of  the  original  relations  of  the  creature 

14* 


158  SANCTIFICATION    TO    LIFE. 

and  of  the  unalterable  voice  of  the  law  in  its  primary  feature  of 
obligation,  it  is  impossible,  that  this  creature  can  be  admitted 
into  heaven  and  happiness,  unless  the  law  of  his  nature  be  ful- 
filled ,  either  by  his  own  obedience,  or  that  of  an  approved  sub- 
stilule.  The  law  of  God,  founded  in  the  relations  of  the 
creature,  is  of  eternal  obligation,  and  must,  if  God  be  just  and 
righteous,  ere  this  creature  enter  into  the  enjoyment  of  the  ho 
liest  of  all,  be  entirely  clothed  with  perfect  obedience.  Hence, 
say  the  scriptures,  heaven  and  earth  may  pass  away,  but  one 
iota  of  the  law  never  shall  fail. — This  precept  of  the  law,  in- 
deed, reaching  to  the  heart  and  reins,  and  regulating  all  the 
movements  and  actions  of  life,  man  himself,  it  must  be  ac- 
knowledged on  all  hands,  never  could  array  vnth  the  beauties 
of  perfection.  It  is  not  in  man  so  to  direct  his  steps  as  to  strike 
out  that  lustre  of  universal  and  animated  obedience,  which,  on 
tlie  solemn  day  of  God's  adjusting  accounts,  will  command  his 
approbation ;  and  may  for  ever  after  do  honor  to  the  lineage 
which  has  filled  the  heavenly  inheritance.  But,  could  the  Me- 
diator, the  beloved  Son  of  God,  be  made  under  this  law,  could 
his  essential  holiness  and  activity,  be  viewed  as  subjected  to 
it,  v/ithout  magnifying  and  making  it  honorable?  No!  the 
Son  of  God  was  made  of  a  woman ;  made  under  the  law,  to  re- 
deem them  that  were  under  the  law.  That  we  might  receive  the 
adoption  of  sons.  The  word  was  made  flesh  and  dwelt 
amongst  us,  (and  we  beheld  his  glory,  the  glory  as  of  the  only 
begotten  of  the  Father,)  full  of  grace  and  truth. 

Is  it  supposed  that  the  law  of  our  nature,  in  its  penalty  and 
precept,  might  be  fulfilled ,-  and  yet,  since  the  law  of  faith  has 
a  moral  foundation,  and  comes  into  operation  in  the  christian 
dispensation  by  the  appointment  of  the  Son  of  God  to  be  our 
Mediator,  that  a  title  to  heaven  by  the  obedience  of  Christ  can-, 
not  be  supposed  absolutely  secured  for  sinners ; — since  it  may 
be  argued,  that  the  dispensation  which  is  founded  in  the  rela- 
tions morally  constituted  by  the  appointment  and  offer  of  the 
Mediator,  call  for  the  discharge  of  a  duty  the  matter  of  which 


SANCTIFICATION    TO   XIPB.  159 

is  extrinsical  to  the  primary  circle  of  duty  that  encompasses 
and  binds  man  as  a  creature  merely? 

This  inquiry  is  seasonably  made,  to  lead  to  its  own  answer, 
and  also  to  assist  us  in  illustrating  the  true  relations  of  chris- 
tian faith.  It  is  obvious  that  the  mediation  of  Christ  can  be 
viewed  in  relation  to  this  duty  only  two  ways,-  either  as  a  foun= 
dation  on  which  God  addresses  us  as  in  general  reconciled  to 
mankind,  and  from  which  he  offers  us  salvation  on  condition 
that  we  believe;  or  as  a  means  intellectual  and  moral  by  which, 
in  a  consistency  with  the  principles  of  our  nature,  and  the  offer 
of  Christ  in  the  divine  testimony,  we  may  be  actually  united  to 
him  as  our  representative  head.  Whether  with  those  who  as- 
sert the  gospel  dispensation  to  be  a  new  law  to  man  of  obtaining 
life,  on  a  condition  whose  realization  must  ultimately  be  re- 
solved into  the  determinations  of  our  own  natural  powers;  or 
whether  this  dispensation  only  authoritatively  prescribes  the 
duty  of  faith  as  a  means  of  effecting  our  union  to  Christ,  must 
be  ultimately  determined,  by  an  induction  of  evidence  from  the 
scriptures.  They  are  the  sacred  records  that  develop  the  plan 
of  our  salvation,  and  which  will  lead  us  to  conclude  whether  we 
are  to  consider  Christ  as  a  star  with  which  we  are  to  connect 
ourselves  by  independent  appetencies  of  faith ;  or  whether,  in 
the  heavenly  places  where  Christ  and  his  people  are  joined  to- 
gether, God  has  made  them  all  one  planet,  where  the  great 
central  body  describes  the  path  that  all  the  attendants  follow, 
and  follow,  too,  by  the  fundamental  laws  of  their  union; 
whether  faith,  in  a  word,  has  the  power  of  self-direction,  or  whe- 
ther it  be  only  a  simple  dependency  on  him,  in  whom  our  indi- 
vidual character  is  legally  lost — till  the  last  judgment  is  past,  the 
mediatorial  kingdom  surrendered  up  to  the  Father,  and  God 
himself  is  all  in  all.— For,  my  brethren,  if  Christ  could  fully 
satisfy  the  law  of  our  nature  in  all  its  demands;  if  he  did 
do  it,  and  if,  in  doing  it,  he  did  acquire  a  title  actually  to 
heaven  for  his  people;  then  it  will  follow,  if  God  is  to  ratify 
this  right  for  his  Son's  sake,  that  their  faith  to  whom  it  is  rati- 


160  SANCTIFICATION     TO    LIFE. 

fied  forms  a  part  of  the  plan  of  their  salvation ;  and  that,  though 
it  be  extrinsical  to  the  obedience  of  the  law  of  their  nature,  yet 
its  operations  are  as  infallibly  secured,  as  the  perfection  of 
Christ's  obedience  is  supposed  necessarily  to  be  approved  of. 
In  this  way,  indeed,  of  union  to  our  head,  the  moral  justifica* 
tion  of  man  takes  place  purely  for  Christ's  sake  on  the  original 
law  of  the  creature,  and  the  faith  and  every  grace  of  this  crea- 
ture come  to  him  through  Christ,  and  it  grows  up  itself  unto 
the  measure  of  the  stature  of  a  perfect  man  in  him :  while  the 
despiser  of  the  gospel  will  be  condemned,  not  for  the  want 
merely  of  internal  grace,  but  for  rejecting  and  contemning  a 
method  of  salvation,  and  neglecting  an  exercise,  both  of  which 
are  so  suitable  to  his  state  and  intellectual  condition. 

Can  any  thing,  my  brethren,  be  more  clearly  proved  from 
scripture,  than  that  the  economy  of  grace  secures,  by  the  moral 
value  of  the  obedience  of  Christ,  the  title  of  his  seed  to  heaven  j 
and  that  the  life  of  faith  is  begotten  by  his  spirit's  gracious 
operations,  not  to  co-operate  to  the  same  end  wilh  Christ's 
merits,  but  to  fie  and  qualify  for  the  enjoyment  of  what  they  pro- 
vide?— But  our  way  is  not  yet  prepared  to  see  clearly  how  our 
views  of  this  subject  evolve  from  our  general  method  of  illus- 
trating  the  obedience  of  Christ.  The  relations  of  faith  cannot 
spring  up  clearly  and  forcibly,  till  our  proofs  of  Christ's  positive 
obedience,  and  his  purchase  of  heaven  by  it,  collect  their 
materials,  and  are  about  to  finish  with  a  full  display  of  all  their 
strength. 

I  remark,  therefore,  secondly,  that  it  appears  that  Christ 
prepares  a  title  to  heaven  for  his  people,  from  all  those  passages 
of  scripture  which  prove  that  Christ  purchased  his  church  to 
himself,  compared  with  those  that  teach,  that  through  him  she 
obtains  eternal  life.  The  passages  which  show  tiiat  he  pur- 
chased the  persons  of  his  people,  are,  taking  the  word  purchase 
as  a  general  term  answerable  to  all  those  that  are  equivalent  to 
it  in  scripture,  very  many.  We  shall  select  a  few  only,  where 
the  words  are  most  express  and  decisive.     "  Feed  the  church 


SANCTIFICATION    TO    LITE.  161 

of  God  which  he  hath  purchased  with  his  own  blood :"  "  He 
shall  see  his  seed,  he  shall  prolong  his  days,  and  the  pleasure 
of  die  Lord  shall  prosper  in  his  hand :"  "  He  hath  purchased  ns 
to  himself,  a  peculiar  people,  zealous  of  good  works  -."  "  He 
has  bought  us  with  a  price."  If  the  church  be  not  the  body  of 
Clirist,  why  is  he  the  vine  and  she  the  branches? — why  is  he  the 
foundation  and  she  tlie  building? — But  if  he  did  purchase  her, 
from  what  state,  and  to  what  end,  did  the  exchange  take  place? 
Without  doubt,  he  redeemed  her  from  the  captivity  of  sin,  and 
reinstated  her  in  the  privileges  of  that  liberty,  which  he  himself 
had  provided  for  his  bride,  the  Lamb's  wife.  Every  one  of  the 
foregoing  quotations,  and  all  passages  of  scripture  that  are 
similar  to  them,  incontestably  aver,  that  this  church,  thus  pur- 
chased, is  Christ's  own. — But  for  what  could  he  purchase  her 
as  his  own?  Let  the  following  scriptures  answer  this  question : 
^  That  he  might  present  us  as  holy  and  unblameable  before 
him,  namely,  his  Father,  in  love :"  "  That  he  might  make  us 
kings  and  priests  unto  God  and  his  Father." — But  could  Christ 
thus  present  us  before  his  Father,  or,  which  is  the  same  thing, 
put  his  people,  free  from  all  sin,  into  the  possession  of  heaven, 
and  this,  too,  under  the  notion  of  his  own  property  and  pur- 
cliase,  if  he  had  not  obtained  a  right,  in  the  court  of  eternal 
justice,  to  introduce  them  into  that  holy  place,  and  this,  too,  in 
such  a  relation  to  himself?  No:  these  considerations,  that 
Uiey  are  said  in  scripture  to  be  introduced  into  glory  by  Christ, 
and  to  be  introduced  as  Christ's  own  body,  make  it  incontro- 
vertibly  certain,  that  his  people  possess  their  title  to  the  man- 
sions above,  in  the  right  of  Christ's  obedience.  Hence  it  is 
expressly  said  in  scripture,  "  your  life  is  hid  with  Christ  in 
God,  and  when  he  who  is  your  life  shall  appear,  then  shall  ye 
also  appear  with  him  in  glory.  This  is  the  record,  that  God 
hath  given  to  us  eternal  life,  and  this  life  is  in  his  Son." 

We  observe,  thirdly,  in  order  to  prove  that  Christ  procured  a 
spotless  title  to  heaven  for  his  people,  and  puts  them  in  posses- 
sion of  it,  that  this  appears  from  all  those  passages  of  holy  writ 


162  SANCTinCATION    TO    UFE. 

which  declare  that  Christ  is  already  in  possession  of  heaven  in 
their  name.  When  one  receives  possession  from  the  proprietor 
and  disposer  of  an  important  situation,  as  a  forerunner  and 
representative  head,  it  is  granted,  by  him  who  bestows  the 
exalted  blessing,  that  all  the  representees  have  a  right  to  enter, 
in  their  contemplated  order,  upon  the  enjoyment  of  it.  This 
truth  as  naturally  and  necessarily  evolves  from  the  notion  of 
representation,  as  heat  does  from  the  glowing  furnace. 

But  many  passages  of  scripture  declare  that  Christ  is  enter- 
ed into  heaven  in  the  capacity  of  our  representative  head,  and 
that  this  is  only  in  consequence  of  his  having  obtained  a  title 
to  the  distinguished  eminence,  by  the  performance  of  that  obe- 
dience which  had  been  assigned  to  him  upon  earth.  To  be 
sure,  Christ  even  as  man,  might  have  been,  in  a  private  capa- 
city, exalted  to  heaven,  and  immortal  glory,  as  soon  as  ever  the 
human  nature  was  united  to  the  divine.  For  this,  the  union 
of  his  humanity  to  divinity,  and  its  own  spotless  innocence, 
undoubtely  laid  a  foundation.  But  he  could  not  be  elevated 
to  it  as  the  representative  head  of  his  people,  till,  by  his  death, 
he  had  sanctified  all  whom  he  represented,  for  entering,  legally 
and  virtually  in  him,  and  actually  in  due  time,  in  their  persons, 
into  that  pure  and  holy  place,  which  exceeds  all  others  and  is 
less  so  only  than  its  maker.  The  high  priest  of  the  Jews  could 
notenter  into  the  holy  of  holies,  until  he  had  sanctified  himself 
and  all  the  people  whom  he  represented,  by  the  efficacy  of  sacri- 
ficial atonement;  and  no  more  could  Christ,  as  the  representa- 
tive head  of  his  people,  enter  into  heaven,  till  he  had  prepared 
his  way,  and  obtained  a  title  to  it,  both  for  himself  in  this  capa- 
city, and  all  those  who  were  represented  by  him.  We  do  not 
say,  that  Christ  purchased  heaven  for  himself,  considered  merely 
as  God  and  man  in  one  person;  in  the  sense  we  have  just  now 
said,  that  even  his  human  nature  had  a  right  to  it,  as  soon  as 
united  to  the  divine;  but,  we  say,  that  it  was  only  in  this  way, 
that  the  Mediator,  possessing  all  prerequisite  reasons  in  the 
dignity  of  his  person,  could  be  exalted  unto  it,  in  the  capacity 


SANCTIFICATION  TO  LIFE.  16S 

of  representation  which  he  bears .  Hence  Christ  is  said  to  be 
sanctified  with  his  own  blood.  And  hence  the  scriptures 
which  speak  of  Christ  only  in  this  relation  of  our  representa- 
tive head  as  seated  at  the  right  hand  of  God  the  Father,  al- 
ways connect  together  as  reason  and  consequence,  the  humil* 
iation  and  sufferings  of  Christ  upon  earth,  and  his  exaltation 
and  glorification  at  the  Father's  right  hand  in  heaven.  Were 
it  necessary  we  could  quote  many  passages  pertinent  to  this 
purpose.  Let  the  following  instances  suffice.  «  The  God  of 
our  fathers  hath  raised  up  Jesus  whom  ye  slew  and  hanged 
upon  a  tree;  him  hath  God  exalted  with  his  own  right  hand 
to  be  a  Prince  and  Saviour,  for  to  give  repentance  to  Israel 
and  forgiveness  of  sins.  Acts  6:30,31.  But  we  see  Jesus 
who  was  made  a  little  lower  than  the  angels  for  the  sufferhig 
of  death  crowned  with  glory  and  honor,  that  he,  by  the  grace 
of  God,  should  taste  death  for  every  man :  For  it  became  him 
for  whom  are  all  things  and  by  whom  are  all  things,  in  bring- 
ing many  sons  to  glory,  to  make  the  captain  of  their  salvation 
perfect  through  sufferings.  Heb.  2:9,10.  Looking  unto 
Jesus  who  is  the  author  and  finisher  of  our  faith,  who  for  the 
joy  that  was  set  before  him  endured  his  cross,  despising  the 
shame  of  it,  and  is  now  set  down  on  the  right  hand  of  the 
throne  of  God.  Heb.  1 2: 2.  And  being  found  in  the  fashion 
of  a  man,  he  humbled  himself,  and  became  obedient  unto  death, 
even  the  death  of  the  cross  j  wherefore,  God  hath  highly  ex- 
alted him,  and  given  him  a  name  which  is  above  every  name, 
Phil.  2: 8,9.  These  passages  put  it  beyond  a  doubt,  that,  to 
allude  to  his  own  words,  it  behooved  Christ  to  suffer,  ai^ 
then,  as  a  consequence  of  his  suflferings,  to  enter  into  his 
glory. 

Is  more  proof,  however,  of  his  entering  into  heaven,  as  our 
representative  head,  demanded?  The  whole  language  of 
scripture,  and  the  whole  connexion  of  the  system  of  divine 
truth,  proclaim,  that   when   Christ  did  enter  into  heaven 


164  BANCTIFICATION   TO   LIFE. 

through  the  merits  of  his  sufferings,  it  was  in  the  capacity  of 
our  representative.  What  is  the  meaning  of  Paul's  reasoning 
Jn  tlie  epistle  to  the  Romans,  where  it  is  shown  that  we  are 
planted  together  with  Christ  in  the  likeness  of  his  death,  and 
raised  together  with  him  in  the  likeness  of  his  resurrection, 
that  we  are  heirs  of  God  and  joint  heirs  with  Jesus  Christ? 
what  is  the  meaning  of  his  reasoning  in  the  fifteenth  chapter 
of  his  first  epistle  to  the  Corinthians,  where  it  is  demonstrated 
that  "  Christ  is  risen,  the  first  fruits  of  the  resurrection  from 
the  dead,  and  that  if  we  rise  not,"  so  close  is  the  connexion, 
"neither  is  Christ  risen?"  what  is  the  meaning  of  his  rea- 
soiling  in  his  epistle  to  the  Colossians,  where  it  is  shown,  that 
we  are  buried  with  him  in  baptism,  and  risen  with  him  unto 
newness  of  life?  what  is  the  meaning  of  all  that  reasoning 
in  this  epistle  to  the  Hebrews,  where,  in  language  that  almost 
defies  a  misinterpretation,  he  is  said,  not  only  to  be  our  fore- 
nmner,  but  to  be  our  forerunner  entered  into  heaven  for  us? 
in  a  word,  what  is  the  meaning  of  almost  all  the  scriptures,  if 
Christ  has  not  entered  into  heaven,  and  this,  purely  in  his 
awn  right,  as  the  representative  head  of  his  people?  The 
scriptures  are  addressed  to  the  common  reason  of  mankind, 
and  intend  not,  on  the  most  important  of  all  subjects,  to  be*- 
guile;  and  the  following  particular  passages  sum  up  the 
scriptural  doctrine  upon  this  interesting  topic ;  "  He  is  the 
head  of  the  body  the  church,  who  is  the  beginning,  the  first 
born  from  the  dead,  that  in  all  things  he  might  have  the  pre- 
eminence." In  whom  we  have  obtained  an  inheritance,  being 
predestinated,  according  to  the  purpose  of  him,  who  worketh 
all  things  according  to  the  council  of  his  will.  Blessed  be 
the  God  and  Father  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  who  according 
to  his  abundant  mercy,  hath  begotten  us  again  unto  a  lively 
hope,  by  the  resurrection  of  Christ  from  the  dead ;  to  an  inheri- 
tance, incorruptible  and  undefiled,  and  that  fadeth  not  away, 
reserved  in  heaven  for  you.  If  children,  then  heirs,  heirs  of 
God,  and  joint  heirs  with  Clirist." 


5A^-CTIFICATI0N    TO    LIFE.  165 

But,  in  a  word,  1  observe,  that  it  appears  that  Christ  purcha- 
sed heaven  for  his  people,  and  that  they  come  to  the  possession 
of  it  only  by  him,  because  his  spirit  is  expressly  said  to  seal 
them  as  the  spirit  of  promise,  Eph.  1:13.  From  what  the 
metaphor  of  sealing  is  here  borrowed,  appears,  notwithstanding 
the  views  of  some  eminent  interpreters,  capable  of  being  ascer- 
tained to  a  moral  certainty.  This  epistle  is  obviously  greatly 
indebted  for  its  particular  language,  to  the  Old  Testament  dis- 
pensation; and  above  all,  is  it  indebted  to  it,  in  the  immediate 
context.  There  was  a  promise  made  to  Abraham  that  the 
land  in  which  he  sojourned  should  be  given  as  an  inheritance 
to  his  seed;  and  of  the  certainty  that  this  promise  would  be 
fulfilled  circumcision  was  given  as  a  seal.  Had  any  question- 
ed the  truth  that  the  children  of  Israel,  at  the  end  of  the  four 
hundred  years  mentioned  to  Abraham,  would  be  redeemed 
from  that  country  into  which  their  great  progenitor  foresaw 
they  were  to  descend  and  where  they  would  be  afflicted,  the 
Israelite  had  only  to  call  to  remembrance  the  mark  of  the  flesh 
of  his  foreskin,  in  order  to  return  an  answer,  from  the  covenant 
of  God,  ratified  in  the  vivid  evidence  of  blood,  to  show  the 
impossibility  of  his  not  enjoying  his  promised  inheritance.  In 
the  same  manner,  a  covenant  in  which  heaven  is  promised  is 
supposed  made,  in  the  moments  of  the  christian's  union  bv 
faith  to  Christ,  between  him  and  that  God  who  proclaims  by 
his  oath,  in  the  ofl^er  of  the  gospel,  that  whosoever  believes 
shall  be  saved;  and  this  passage  shows,  that,  in  the  economy 
of  grace,  the  spirit  is  dispensed  from  God,  by  Christ,  to  an- 
swer, with  respect  to  the  christian,  in  relation  to  the  heavenlv 
inheritance,  the  same  end,  that  circumcision  did  to  the  Israel- 
ites, in  their  bondage  and  expectation  in  Egypt.  The  sons  of 
Abraham,  if  God  be  faithful,  must  be  redeemed  by  power,  and 
actually  set  on  their  heavenly  places  of  divine  promise;  and  the 
spiritual  seed  of  a  greater  one  than  Abraham,  and  whose  sign 
of  sanctification  is  in  his  own  blood,  must  come  to  their  heavenly 
Canaan.  Hence  the  spirit  here  as  a  seal,  is  called  the  spirit 
15 


f66  S  A  NOTIFICATION    TO     LIFE. 

of  promise;  and  hence  his  relation  to  us  by  Christ  is  thus  ex» 
hibiled,  in  varied  but  exegetical  language,  in  the  subsequent 
verse.  "  Who  is  the  earnest  of  our  inheritance  until  the  re- 
demption of  the  purchased  possession,"  Hence  the  water  from 
Christ,  by  this  Spirit,  is  living  water  springing  up  to  everlast- 
ing life.  How  happy,  oh!  christian,  that  he  who  hath  begun  a 
good  work  in  us,  will  carry  it  on  until  the  day  of  Jesus 
Christ. 

Thus,  it  is  unquestionably  the  doctrine  of  revelation,  that 
Christ  who  could  not  but  magnify  the  law  of  our  nature,  in 
both  precept  and  penalty;  Christ  who  was  voluntarily  active  in 
yielding  obedience  wherever  the  law  demanded  it,  and  ready 
to  submit  to  the  degree  of  punishment  which  justice  could  in- 
flict, hath,  in  obeying  the  law  unto  death,  the  original  law  of 
our  nature,  not  only  redeemed  us  from  the  fetters  of  guilt,  but 
hath  also  infallibly  secured  our  title  to  heaven:  and  hence  the 
relations  of  faith  must  now  appear  in  their  true  colors. — Faith 
is  not  connected  in  a  meritorious  co-operation  with  the  obedi- 
ence of  Christ  in  procuring  heaven ;  but  it  is  an  exercise  neces- 
sarily enjoined  by  the  preceptive  will  of  God  in  the  dispensa- 
tion of  the  gospel;  and  its  actual  manifestation  in  a  reliance 
on  the  divine  testimony  is  the  mysterious  ligament  which, 
though  Christ  be  in  heaven  and  we  upon  earth,  God  himself 
u^es  to  unite  the  members  to  their  own  head. 

But  if  this  be  the  case,  faith  must  grow  up  amongst  the  other 
precious  productions  in  the  garden  of  our  intellectual  sanctifi-  *i 
cation,  and  this  internal  sanctification  must  all  flow  from 
Christ  as  our  representative.  The  body  would  have  a  contin- 
g^ent  member  engrafted  upon  it  in  any  other  view ;  a  hand,  for 
instance,  living  and  operating  whose  movements  originate  not  in 
the  unity  of  personal  existence,  but  which  is  connected  with  it 
in  respect  to  origin  and  vegetative  life,  like  the  mistletoe  with 
the  oak.  But  faitli  has  the  same  source  with  every  other  grace, 
and  issues  from  that  cistern  which  represents  all  the  streams  of 
Ufcy  fills  them  with  their  copious  abundance,  and  which  through 


SANCTIFICATION    TO    LITE.  167 

them  sends  forth   that   refreshment   which  keeps  green  and 
flourishing  the  fields  of  new  obedience.     By  grace  ye  are  save<i 
through  faith,  and  that  not  of  yourselves,  it  is  the  gift  of  God. 
But  this  brings  us  to  the  last  of  the  three  things  that  we 
were  to  demonstrate  respecting  the  sanctification  of  his  people 
by  the  blood  of  Christ,  namely,  that  he  separates  or  sanctifies 
the  principles  of  their  nature  inwardly  from  all  pollution  and 
contamination;  and   this  we  continue  to  illustrate  in  the  pre- 
sent discourse,  as  forming  a  component  part  of  our  present 
subject.     Here,  my  brethren,  let  me  premise  that  the  excel- 
lence of  the  mediatorial  character  of  Christ,  his  being  God,  as 
well  as  man,  was  a   thing  absolutely  requisite  to  give  dignity 
and  worth  to  all  his  actions;  but  it  is  not  a  consideration  that 
formally  makes  any  part  of  that  sanctification  which  purifies  us 
for  heaven.     The  excellence  which  entitles   him  to  adoration 
and  worship,  and  by  which  he  performed  what  the  most  exalt- 
ed creature  could  not  achieve,  all  resides  in  his  divinity;  and 
the  spotless  holiness  of  his  humanity,  all  terminates  in  the 
suitableness   of  the  constitution  of   his  mediatorial    person. 
The  righteousness  which  is  imputed  to  us  for  our  justification, 
and  the  holiness  which  is  communicated  to  us  for  our  internal 
purification,  were  either  wrought  out  by  the  energies  of  this 
glorious  personage,  or  communicated  to  him  from  the  original 
fountain  of  our  free  salvation;  and  they  are  not  his  natural  or 
essential  holiness  or  righteousness,  either  as  he  is  God  or  man. 
This  internal  holiness  of  ours,  after  which  we  are  inquiring, 
must,  indeed,  manifest  itself  in  the  person  of  Christ,  as  he 
stands  our  representative;  and  the  estimate  that  infinite  holi- 
ness makes  of  it  in  him,  in  the  business  of  imputing  his  righ- 
teousness  to  us  for  our  justification,  must,  in  equity,  be  corres- 
pondent to  that  internal  defilement  of  ours,  which,  by  commu- 
nication from  Christ,  it  is   intended  that  this  holiness  shall 
dispel.     But  this  holiness  is  not  the  holiness  of  the  person  of 
the  Mediator;  it  is  the  qualification  of  his  office;  for  itmustall 
be  transferred  to  the  happy  representees,  when  they  enter  into 


Ib^  8ANCTIFICATI0?f   TO    LIFE, 

that  pure  and  holy  place,  into  which  nothing  that  is  unclean 
m  its  properties  can  enter.  In  heaven  the  joint  heirs  with 
Jesus  Christ  will  not  have  a  relative  perfection  of  nature  in 
their  head;  they  will  be  the  spirits  of  just  men  made  perfect,- 
tiie  water  of  life  will  fill  them  to  the  brim;  each  one  will  walk 
in  his  uprightness;  the  new  creature  of  grace  shall  be  the  per- 
fect man  of  glory  r  and  yet  Christ,  even  when  he  has  finished 
this  mystery  of  grace,  and  has  delivered  up  the  kingdom  to  his 
Father,  and  God  is  all  in  all,  will  retain  the  perfection  of  his 
divine  and  human  natures.  The  simple  apprehension  of  the 
Son  of  God's  assuming  human  nature  is,  on  all  hands,  allowed 
not  to  be  a  formal  part  of  his  humiliation,  but  a  prerequisite  to 
both  states  of  his  mediation ;  and  the  constitution  of  his  per- 
son, in  the  perfection  of  both  natures  respectively,  is  only  a 
personal  prerequisite  to  the  accomplishment  of  our  salvation, 
in  both  its  branches  of  justification  and  sanctification. 

By  the  holiness  of  our  nature  manifesting  itself  in  Christ, 
as  just  mentioned,  it  is  not  meant,  though  it  be  not  the  essen- 
tial holiness  of  either  nature  in  him,  that  it  is  the  same  as 
holiness  of  obedience,  or  the  effects  of  volition.  This  is  the 
anointing  of  the  Mediator  which  we  consider  as  the  cistern  in 
him,  from  which  our  holiness  flows.  The  high  priest  under 
the  law  was  consecrated  not  by  blood  only,  but  also  by  the  oil 
of  anointing.  The  one  signified  his  legal  separation,  and  right 
of  actual  ministration ;  and  the  other  was  a  sign  of  a  concomi- 
tant qualification,  fitting  him  for  the  discharge  of  his  duty; 
and  so  Christ  is  anointed  with  the  graces  of  our  inward 
holiness. 

Some  divines  would  appear  to  think  that  Christ  was  anointed 
merely  to  answer  to  the  type  in  the  Levitical  priesthood. 
Nothing,  however,  can  argue  less  reflection,  less  acquaintance 
with  the  language  of  scripture,  less  knowledge  of  the  attributes 
of  justice,  or  less  extensive  views  of  the  harmony  of  type  and 
antitype,  than  this  method  of  stating  the  subject.  Christ's 
relation  to  his  people  required  that  he  should  be  sanctified  in 


S ANCTIFIC ATIOX    TO   XIFE.  169 

reality;  and  as  every  shadow  under  the  patriarchal  and  Mosai- 
cal  economies  arose  into  being,  to  reflect  and  give  some  idea  of 
the  great  subtance  from  which  they  sprung;  so  Christ  must  be 
considered  as  the  original  character,  for  the  sake  of  whom  they 
were  invested  with  whatever  they  did  display.  The  priesthood 
of  old  was  anointed  to  prefigure  Christ-s  anointing;  but  Christ 
himself  was  anointed,  because  the  eternal  relations  of  justice, 
in  the  station  which  he  occupied,  required  it.  Standing  our 
great  high  priest  while  the  sacrifice  of  himself  received  infinite 
value  from  the  altar  of  his  divinity  which  sustained  it,  Christ, 
anointed  with  all  grace,  the  grace  of  the  internal  purification  of 
his  people,  showed  to  the  eye  of  eternal  justice,  that  the  salva- 
tion which  he  achieved  surveyed  all  moral  relations  of  sinful 
man,  and  provided  his  recovery  wdth  honor  to  these  relations. 
The  penalty  of  the  law  he  repaired,  and  the  precept  of  it  he 
magnified ; — but  every  being  which  has  properties  to  be  esti- 
mated, has  a  substance  in  which  they  inhere, — every  intellec- 
tual existence  has  a  moral  being  previous  to  his  actings, — a 
being  which  may  be  afiected  by  natural  deformities,  and  which, 
if  tainted  with  corruption,  must  be  healed,  not  by  obe- 
dience nor  suffering,  but  by  a  communication  of  principles, 
that  will  insinuate  themselves  into  our  moral  existence  and 
renew  its  nature.  Hence,  when  Christ  oflTered  himself  to 
divine  justice,  it  was  not  the  sacrifice  of  himself  simply,  infi- 
nitely valuable  as  it  was,  that  he  presented,  but  this  sacrifice 
through  the  eternal  spirit;  and  thus  he  oflfered  himself,  not  only 
a  sacrifice  of  a  sweet  smell  unto  God,  but  this  same  sacrifice 
purges  our  conscience  from  dead  works  to  serve  the  living  God, 
When  the  spirit  descended,  at  his  baptism,  on  our  great  high 
priest,  the  visible  form  which  he  assumed  was  a  sign  of  that 
anointing  above  measure,  which  at  that  moment  was  supposed 
diffused  on  the  Mediator  to  qualify  liim  for  his  office.  What, 
indeed,  was  the  essence  of  this  anointing,  whether  a  substance 
or  a  modification  that,  in  moral  reckoning,  answered  to  real 

existence  in  the  natural  world,  is  a  subject  equally  mysterious 

15* 


170  SANCTIFICATION   TO    LIFE. 

m  whatever  way  we  consider  it;  but  notwithstanding,  we  loss 
sicht  of  absolute  justice  as  the  meridian  line  of  our  reasoning, 
if  we  do  not  include  the  fact  of  Christ's  unction  to  the  moral 
amount  we  have  stated,  among  the  elements  of  our  moral  rep- 
resentative perfection.  In  the  eye  of  strict  law  Christ  has  in 
his  Mediatorial  person  a  holiness  which  is  ours  in  him,  of  which 
he  is  only  the  depository  for  a  time,  and  which  from  him  to  us 
must  be  communicated.  Hence  he  is  said  to  have  been 
anointed  v\'ith  the  Holy  Ghost  above  measure,  and  hence  it  is 
said  that  out  of  his  fulness  we  receive  and  grace  for  grace. 

This  holiness  in  Christ  it  is  not  necessary  to  consider,  as  a 
suffusion  at  the  moment  of  his  baptism  only: — his  baptism  was 
hi  visible  inauguration  into  office;  and  yet  in  one  respect  he 
always  acted  as  our  Mediator;  but,  as  this  transaction  was 
viewed  as  a  formal  declaration  of  his  official  character  to  angels 
and  men,  so,  though  the  graces  of  the  spirit  always  in  some 
respects  resided  in  him,  yet,  this  was  the  moment  that,  as  it 
were,  summed  them  all  up,  and  brought  them  to  a  perceptible 
and  visible  character;  and  which,  setting  aside  all  shadows, 
presented  to  man  his  Mediator,  the  Christ. 

Bv  this  anointing  of  our  Saviour,'-  however,  he  was  not  com- 
pletely qualified  to  do  the  distinctive  office  of  a  great  high- 
priest  ;  or  rather,  as  all  the  rest  of  the  priesthood  who  could  all 
slav  sacrifices  of  every  kind,  derived  their  office  by  filiation  from 
the  Jewish  high  priest,  in  whom  the  whole  family  of  priesthood 
had  tlie  fountain  of  their  rights  and  privileges,  but  could  not 
enter  into  the  holy  of  holies ; — so  Christ  is  not  fully  consecra^ 
ted  to  discharge  all  the  parts  of  his  office  by  this  anointing 
alone.  As  he  bears  before  the  eye  of  the  eternal  into  the 
highest  heavens,  the  names  of  his  people,  he  must  conjoin  with 
this  holy  oil  of  the  spirit''s  unction,  the  blood  of  his  eternal 
separation  unto  God.  We  know  that  Christ  from  his  first  ap- 
appearance  on  the  stage  of  our  earth,  and  even  in  all  his  an- 
cient seers  and  prophets,  acted  in  virtue  of  his  right  to  exercise 
mercy  and  power,  as  this  right  was  acquired  by  his  own  death: 


SANCTIFICATION    TO    LIFE.  171 

—but  these  were  only  anticipations  in  acting,  on  a  foundation 
that,  in  truth,  was  always  sure,  but  which,  in  fact,  was  laid  only 
when  he  was  sanctified  by  dedication,  and  his  people  by  re- 
demption, through  his  own  blood. 

The  character  of  Christ's  priesthood  is,  in  our  day,  so  dress^ 
ed  up  in  the  language  of  a  technical  phraseology,  that  it  is  diffi- 
cult to  penetrate  to  a  just  view  of  its  scriptural  simplicity,  and 
particularly  as  explained  in  this  epistle.  In  the  second  chap- 
ter of  this  epistle,  Christ  is  called  the  captain  of  our  salvation 
made  perfect  through  sufferings ;  and  this  is  an  intended  view 
of  him  subservient  to  that  contrast  with  Melchisedec  and  Aaron, 
which  the  apostle  comes  so  soon  to  draw.  In  the  machinery  of 
thought  which  starts  from  this  point,  which  is  contemplated 
within  the  circle  of  the  apostle's  views  at  it,  and  which  diver- 
ges into  those  lines  of  illustration,  which  are  so  suitable  to  the 
people  to  whom  he  is  writing,  it  is  difficult,  without  the  most 
strict  attention  to  ihe  fundamental  principles  on  which  he 
rests  the  whole  weight  of  his  reasoning,  to  advance  with  him  to 
the  eminent  conclusions  in  which  he  rests . 

Some  professing  christians  have  said  that  Christ  is  not  to  be 
considered  as  acting  in  the  character  of  a  priest,  or  as  offering 
a  sacrifice,  till  after  his  ascension  he  appeared  in  heaven,  where 
he  pleads  from  the  wounds  of  his  flesh,  not  as  the  strokes  of  a 
victim,  but  as  the  affecting  signs  which  may  command  the 
compassion  of  Deity ;  as  the  pains  and  tears  of  a  child  com- 
mand the  sympathy  of  his  father.  But  it  is  clear,  that  the  apos- 
tle in  this  epistle,  distinguishes  between  priesthood  and  .sacri- 
fice; he  states  distinctly  two  priesthoods;  but  while  both  of 
these  must  offer  both  gifts  and  sacrifices,  what,  it  may  be  asked 
in  the  language  of  estimation,  was  the  value  of  these  sacrifices? 
Are  we  to  view  them  as  in  form  a  variety,  or  a  unity  included 
under  the  same  character?  We  speak  of  expiatory  sacrifices 
only ;  for  we  have  already  remarked,  that  the  burnt  offerings  of 
the  Levitical  priesthood  were  a  transcript  from  the  sin-offerings 
on  the  great  day  of  atonement,  and  that  all  the  other  offerings 


172  SANCTIFICATION     TO    LIFE. 

were  transcripts  from  these; — hence  as  the  sin-offerings  were 
only  a  remembrance  of  the  passover,  which,  though  offered  by 
many  hands,  yet  must,  in  relation  to  Israel  as  a  body  politic, 
be  considered  in  denomination  only  one  sacrifice,  it  is  obvious, 
that  the  value  of  all  the  Levi  deal  oblations  was  unity.  But 
from  this  unity  Aaron  derived  his  investiture  of  priesthood,  and 
all  the  variety  of  offerings  whose  blood  was  shed  at  his  conse- 
cration, and  afterwards  in  his  office,  were  in  value  simple  as 
this  original  seed,  that  thus  in  its  growth  spread  into  so  many 
opening  branches.  The  end  for  which  Aaron  was  consecra- 
ted to  minister  in  the  priest's  office,  and  for  which  he  filiated 
the  right  of  priesthood  to  his  sons  that  assisted  him,  was  no- 
thing more  than  to  carry  on  by  the  emblems  of  sacrifices,  an 
instructive  course  of  religious  services  among  a  people  already 
redeemed ; — redeemed,  however,  only  ceremonially  and  to  a 
typical  inheritance;  and  who  consequently  are  still  to  be 
taught  by  the  most  impressive  symbols  which  may  remind  them 
of  their  twofold  relation  in  which  they  stand  to  God — -ceremo- 
nially redeemed,  and  yet  morally  sinful.  Thus  the  Aaronical 
priesthood  offered  daily,  without,  in  their  own  view,  as,  at  least, 
from  the  nature  of  their  ordinances,  they  ought  to  have  consid- 
ered the  subject,  making  the  comers  thereunto  perfect. 

But  the  whole  services  of  the  Jewish  economy,  and  even  the 
original  sacrifice  of  the  passover,  were  founded  in  it,  and  in- 
cluded in  the  blood  of  the  covenant  of  circumcision ;  and  to  un- 
derstand fully  the  apostle's  doctrine  respecting  priesthood  in 
this  epistle,  we  must  trace  the  typical  blood  of  sacrifice  up  to 
the  period  of  the  life  of  him,  in  whose  loins,  Levi,  as  the  father 
of  the  Aaronical  priesthood,  did  homage  to  a  greater  and  more 
irenerable  priest  than  ever  were  any  of  his  sons.  At  the  time 
when  the  great  circle  of  circumcision,  which  distinguished  the 
Jew  from  the  Gentile,  was  described,  lived  Melchisedec,  Mel- 
chisedec  whose  very  office  as  priest  of  the  most  high  God,  sup- 
posed that  he  had  offered  an  expiatory  sacrifice: — and  taking 
his  standing  into  our  calculations,  we  have  two  priesthoods, 


SANCTIFICATION   TO   tlFE.  173 

inclosing  the  same  general  line  of  typical  oblation.— Henoe 
though  Aaron's  character  of  office  supposed  as  he  exercised  it, 
that  the  sacrificial  blood  which  was  the  foundation  of  his  right 
to  officiate  was  already  offered,  and  to  the  eye  of  heaven  spread 
abroad  in  the  passover ;  and  consequently  that  he  could  resemble 
Christ  as  a  priest,  as  he  would  be  supposed  clothed  in  heaven, 
with  the  office  of  priesthood,  after  his  blood,  which  gave  him  a 
right  to  it,  was  shed,  in  the  Egypt  of  our  world;  yet  the  apos- 
tle, in  his  beautiful  compound  reasoning,  will  not  fall  into  the 
solecism  of  calling  Christ's  death  a  sacrifice,  without  a  priest  to 
make  the  offering.  On  the  other  hand,  Christ's  sacrifice  is 
viewed,  all  the  time  that  it  is  contrasted  with  Aaron's  sacrifices, 
as  appended  to  its  true  priesthood — that  after  the  order  of  Mel^ 
chisedec ;  and  hence  though  this  was  in  the  heaven  of  the  Jewish 
economy,  in  the  place  where  the  holy  law  and  original  mercy 
of  God  reposed  in  arms  of  reconciliation,  it  was  yet  in  the 
world  of  our  accursed  nature.  Christ,  then,  was  a  priest  upon 
earth,  a  priest  by  the  oath  of  God,  and  offered  up  the  one  of- 
fering of  himself,  perfect  as  was  this  oath  by  which  he  was 
constituted ;  and  hence  he  is  said  to  have  now  entered  into  the 
true  heavens,  having  obtained  eternal  redemption  for  us. 

But  Aaron's  economy  is  intended  in  this  epistle,  to  give  us 
particular  information  especially  in  two  points.  As  he  is  the 
representative  head  of  the  people  in  the  heaven  of  their  pron> 
ised  land,  he  presents  a  sacrifice  for  them ;  and  among  their 
family,  as  a  holy  people,  and  the  sons  of  God,  born  of  blood 
and  water  in  Egypt  and  at  the  Red  Sea,  he  himself  is  compre- 
hended .  He  ventures,  too,  to  go  with  blood  beyond  the  borders 
of  their  peculiar  land ;  into  the  mystery  which  contains  secrets 
that  whisper  into  his  ear,  that  the  Israelites,  by  faith,  sho'ild 
leave  their  present  transitory  inheritance,  should  go  beyond 
the  borders  of  their  present  abode,  and  should  seek  another 
that  is  yet  to  come.  Yes,  Aaron  under  a  cloud  of  incense  en- 
tered with  the  blood  of  atonement  into  the  holiest  of  all; 
at  his  hand  it  was  there  ceremonially  accepted,  but  morally  re- 


174  SANCTIFICATION   TO   LIFE. 

jected ;  and  the  sin  of  the  sons  of  Jacob  was  sent  away  to  dwell 
in  the  wilderness  of  our  earth,  till  a  more  hopeful  sacrifice 
should  bear  it  into  the  regions  of  death  ,• — and  Christ  who  did 
offer  the  sacrifice  of  himself  in  the  kingdom  of  our  corrupted 
nature  must  carry  from  the  scene  of  his  death,  in  the  outer 
court  of  our  world,  his  blood  to  sprinkle  and  consecrate  the 
mercy  seat  that  is  eternally  within  the  veil.  Hence,  it  is  said, 
that  <'  he  is  able  to  save  to  the  uttermost,  all  them  that  come 
unto  God  by  him,  seeing  he  ever  liveth  to  make  intercession 
for  them." 

But,  my  brethren,  what  is  this  intercession  of  Christ?  It  is 
not  his  literal  blood  that  Christ  exhibits  in  heaven;  it  is  the 
value  of  his  death; — but  it  is  not  simply  this  as  it  is  estimated 
and  accepted  of  by  God; — it  is  this  as  heaven  has  been  given  to 
Christ  as  our  forerunner,  who  hath  merited  it  for  us, — and  as 
God,  in  all  the  perfection  of  his  nature,  is  supposed  promising 
to  Christ  the  possession  of  heaven  indubitably  to  all  his  repre- 
sentees. 

If,  however,  this  be  a  just  representation  which  describes  his 
intercession  by  the  strict  legal  relations  of  his  character  as  our 
forerunner,  then  it  will  follow,  that  Christ,  who  dispelled  all 
shadows,  those  under  the  law,  and  those  in  that  great  line  up 
to  Melchisedec  and  the  first  promise  from  which  they  sprung 
as  branches  from  the  same  stem, — and  who  was  alone  morally 
the  priest  of  sinful  man, — must,  in  the  very  act  of  dying,  have 
consecrated  himself,  with  his  own  blood,  to  an  everlasting 
priesthood,  and  obtained  for  the  whole  body,  head  and  mem- 
bers, the  possession  of  heaven.  This  was  undoubtedly  the 
case.  As  every  priest  according  to  the  scriptural  nomenclature 
must  be  dedicated  by  blood,  it  appears,  that  in  his  own  death, 
Christ  actually  became  a  priest;  and  though  he  acted  in  his 
priestly  character,  and  was  the  lamb  slain  from  the  foundation 
of  the  world,  this  was  only  symbolically  and  by  anticipation. — 
The  death  of  Christ  is  the  luminous  point  from  which  diverge 
all  the  rays  of  glory  to  himself  as  our  Mediator,  and  of  felicity 


SANCTIFICATION   TO   LIFE.  175 

of  heart  or  dignity  of  character  to  his  followers.  From  this 
point  he  started  to  his  glory  as  head  of  Zion,  and  head  over  all 
things,  animate  and  inanimate,  angels  and  archangels,  for  her 
welfare;  from  this  fountain  he  sent  forth  all  his  seers  and  pro- 
phets, and  spake  himself  the  will  of  God  to  sinful  men :  and 
from  this  sun  before  it  did  itself  arise  to  view,  he  sent  all  those 
reflected  rays  of  the  morning  of  priesthood  that  crimsoned 
our  world  with  a  garment  as  dyed  in  the  wine  fat. 

Some  have  said  that  Christ  was  actually  a  priest  from  all 
eternity,  and  that  he  really  acted  in  the  peculiar  robes  of  his 
office  from  the  era  of  the  visitation  of  mercy.  But  a  funda- 
mental principle  of  the  apostle  is,  that  every  high  priest  must 
be  taken  from  amongst  men;  real  human  nature  must  be  put 
on,  before  the  formalities  of  the  priestly  office  can  be  display- 
ed ;  and  hence  though  Christ  in  substance  supported  by  anti- 
cipation his  sacerdotal  office,  and  revealed  it  to  the  world 
from  the  earliest  notices  of  redemption ;  yet  it  was  only  in  the 
moment  of  his  dying  that  he  stood  recognized  by  God,  angels, 
and  men,  as  our  great  high  priest,  sanctified  by  blood.  Im- 
agine him  then  in  all  the  relations  of  his  acting  in  this  mo- 
ment of  offering  up  the  one  sacrifice  of  himself.  To  this  mo- 
ment we  carry  forward  his  anointing;  and  by  his  own  blood, 
and  the  oil  of  the  spirit,  we  see  him  now  standing,  under  the 
hands  of  consecration  to  an  everlasting  priesthood — his  blood 
flows,  and  tlie  work  is  done, — his  people  are  redeemed,  heaven 
is  eternally  purchased, — from  this  chamber  issue  all  the  twi- 
light rays  before  the  day  arises, — and  when  it  does  arise,  every 
shadow  flees  away;  and  the  great  temple  of  the  Lord,  com- 
prehending all  that  are  in  heaven,  and  that  are  in  earth,  stands 
resting  upon  this  foundation  of  the  oath  of  God,  the  death  of 
his  Son,  the  grace  of  the  Spirit, — as  all  conspiring  to  perfect 
for  us  a  priest  and  a  sacrifice  for  evermore. 

But  if  this  be  a  just  view  of  the  subject  then  all  the  lan- 
guage of  this  epistle  concerning  priesthood  must  be  consider- 


176  SANCTIFICATION   TO   LIFE. 

ed  as  descriptive,  and  intended  only  as  a  means  of  guiding  the 
mind  into  logical  principles,  which  might  be  stated  in  other 
Janguage:  and  then  Christ  our  representative  being  consecrated 
to  be  a  priest  for  evermore  by  his  own  blood,  will  mean  nothing 
else,  than  that  he  purchased  heaven  for  himself  in  this  charac- 
ter of  representation,  and  for  all  that  are  represented  by  him. 
This  accords  delightfully  with  the  contrast  in  which  the  lan- 
guage of  this  epistle  stands  to  that  of  the  rest  of  the  writings 
of  the  New  Testament ;  and,  indeed,  to  the  logical  statement 
from  which,  in  this  epistle  itself,  the  apostle  sets  off  into  the 
illustration  by  typical  representations  of  his  logical  concep- 
tions. In  the  second  chapter  the  apostle  says  that  Christ  is 
the  captain  of  our  salvation  made  perfect  through  suffering ; 
and  in  almost  every  other  place  of  the  New  Testament  Christ 
is  spoken  of  in  plain  terms,  or  in  such  as  must  be  converted 
into  the  same  import, — as  dying  and  saving  us  by  his  death : 
— or  which  is  the  same  thing,  possessing  heaven  in  our  name 
on  the  footing  of  his  perfect  obedience  to  the  law  of  our  na- 
ture.— Had  Christ  had  any  defilement  of  his  own  he  could 
not  have  purified  others;  hence  in  his  obtainment  of  a  station 
"  eternal  in  the  heavens,'*'  there  could  be  no  respect,  in  relation 
to  himself,  to  a  satisfaction ;  but  as  his  character  espouses,  as 
bone  of  its  bone  and  flesh  of  its  flesh  his  people,  their  redemp- 
tion on  their  part,  in  the  language  of  priesthood,  must  answer 
to  his  consecration  on  his,  as  heaven  is  respectively  and 
certainly  in  the  contemplation  of  them  both.  For  both  he 
tliat  sanctifieth  and  they  who  are  sanctified  are  all  of  one, 
wherefore  he  is  not  ashamed  to  call  them  brethren. 

That  this  holiness  which  is  the  anointing  of  our  great  high 
priest,  and  which  thus  co-operates  with  the  blood  in  his  conse- 
cration; which  was  poured  upon  him  at  his  baptism  j  but 
which  we  have  carried  forward  to  be  contemplated  in  its  effi- 
cacy at  the  moment  of  his  death;  must  have  appeared  in  the 
representative  character  of  the  Mediator,  is  clear  from  tlie 


SANCTIFICATION    TO    LIFE.  177 

fact  that  he  as  our  consecrated  high  priest  has  already  entered 
into  heaven  as  our  forerunner  for  us.  When,  my  brethren,  it 
is  said  if  any  man  sin  we  have  an  advocate  with  the  Father, 
Jesus  Christ  the  righteous,  it  is  to  be  remembered,  that  this 
attribute  of  righteousness  presents  our  advocate,  as  one  vi^ho 
has  the  pledge  of  the  success  of  his  advocation  in  the  station 
which  he  occupies;  who  must  be  hurled  from  his  glorious  and 
well  merited  throne,  before  the  cause  of  his  people  can  be  ulti- 
mately unsuccessful.  All  the  relations  of  the  Mediator  in  hea- 
ven recognize  him  as  the  vine  planted  by  the  throne  of  God, 
and  which  will  shoot  forth  its  branches,  till  it  shall  cover  para- 
dise v/ith  the  whole  of  the  ever-living  fruit  of  the  tree  of  life. 

Every  individual  who  is  thus  represented  in  heaven,  it  is 
known,  is  by  nature  depraved  and  the  inward  beauty  of  his 
nature  defaced  by  sin.  The  image  of  God  consisting  in  the 
moral  rectitude  of  our  nature,  the  adequacy  of  our  know- 
ledge to  our  situation  amongst  the  works  of  God,  and  the  in- 
variable direction  of  our  desires  and  aifections  according  to 
the  dictates  of  the  understanding,  was  lost  on  man's  first  dis-^ 
obedience  to  the  divine  law.  Justice,  however,  rendered  it 
impossible  that  Christ  should  enter  into  heaven  as  the  repre- 
sentative head  of  his  people,  without  displaying,  in  his  Media- 
torial person,  all  the  brightness  of  that  image  of  God  which 
was  the  constituent  glory  of  our  natures,  and  which  we  had 
entirely  dissipated  by  our  apostacy.  The  strict  law  of  God 
necessarily  excludes  from  the  gates  of  bliss  the  admittance 
even  representatively  of  sinfully  imperfect  creatures;  repre- 
sentation in  law  being  the  same  as  personal  appearance.  Is  it 
said,  that  this  is  a  great  mystery,  that  Christ  should  have  trea- 
sured up  in  his  Mediatorial  person,  all  the  holiness  that  is  to 
purify  and  sanctify  his  church  throughout  all  ages?  We 
grant  it  is.  It  is  that  inconceivable  subject  to  human  capaci- 
ty of  which  the  apostle  Paul  says,  "  this  is  a  great  mystery.'' 
We  cannot  comprehend  the  nature  of  it,  any  more  than  tla I 
16 


i7S  SATvCTIFICATION   TO    LIFE, 

of  any  other  mystery^  whose  dark  side  only  is  revealed  to  us; 
but  this  much  we  must  assert  respecting  it,  that  the  contrary 
doctrine  is  opposite  to  pure  law,  and  morally  impossible  in 
ah  ail-perfect  dispensation. 

But  that  Christ  is  really  anointed  with  the  graces  of  our 
sanctifi cation,  is  evident  from  all  those  passages  of  scripture 
whichj  presuming  it  to  be  in  him,  present  its  streams  as  issu- 
ing from  him  and  flowing  into  his  members.  If  our  union  to 
Christ  be  described  as  that  of  nourishment  from  him,  as  the 
branches  are  nourished  by  the  root ;  if  it  be  portrayed  as  that 
of  vital  connexion  and  direction,  such  as  subsists  between  the 
head  and  the  body ;  if  it  be  compared  to  a  sustaining  influ- 
ence, like  that  of  the  foundation  to  the  building;  and  if  these 
representations  do  respect,  even  inclusively,  our  internal  holi- 
ness,— then,  does  it  not  follow,  clear  as  the  eye  of  the  morn- 
ing, that  he  both  possesses  our  sanctification  in  his  Mediato- 
rial "person,  and  communicates  it  unto  us?  The  root  has  first 
the  vegetative  juice  which  its  laboratory  prepares  to  invigorate 
the  branches;  the  understanding  has  first  the  plan  of  opera- 
tions which  the  hands  may  put  in  execution;  and  the  founda- 
tion is  first  laid  correspondent  to  every  intended  part  of  it,  and 
then  is  reared  the  superstructure. — But  does  not  John,  the  be- 
loved disciple,  describe  the  union  between  Christ  and  his  people 
at  great  length,  and  in  language  which  principally  has  a  respect 
unto  a  vital  connexion,  when  he  speaks  of  Christ  as  the  vine 
and  we  the  branches?  Does  not  Paul  teach  us  the  same 
truth,  when  he  says,  that  the  whole  body  fitly  joined  together 
and  compacted  by  that  which  every  joint  supplieth,  according 
to  the  effectual  working  in  the  measure  of  every  part,  maketh 
increase  of  the  body  unto  the  edifying  of  itself  in  love?  Does 
not  Peter  paint  his  beloved  master  as  the  living  foundation 
stone,  disallowed  indeed  of  men  but  chosen  of  God  and  pre- 
cious; and  one  to  which  believers,  coming  as  unto  a  living 
stone,  are  built  up  a  spiritual  house  ?    We  cannot  receive  liter- 


SA^CTIFICATION   TO  LIFE,  i19 

al  descriptions  of  things  purely  spiritual;  but  could  expressions 
be  better  contrived  or  similitudes  be  better  selectedj  to  con- 
vince us,  that  in  the  dispensation  of  grace,  there  is  an  internal 
sanctification,  that  we,  who  are  morally  depraved,  receive;  and 
that  the  lines  of  this  sanctification  are  all  to  be  traced  into  the 
person  of  our  great  representative  head,  the  anointed  high 
priest  of  his  people?  No!  "In  him  dwells  all  the  fulness  of 
the  Godhead  bodily,  and  ye  are  complete  in  him."  "  The  word 
was  made  flesh  and  dwelt  amongst  us,  and  we  beheld  its  glory, 
the  glory  as  of  the  only  begotten  of  the  Father,  full  of  grace 
and  truth;  and  out  of  his  fulness  we  all  receive  and  grace  for 
grace.'' 

In  one  word,  it  is  undoubted,  that  Christ  is  anointed  with  the 
graces  of  the  Spirit,  and  that  his  people  receive  an  unction 
from  this  holy  one,  from  those  passages  of  scripture,  which 
show  to  us  the  relations  of  the  sanctifying  influences  of  the 
Holy  Ghost.  This  Spirit  does  reside  in  us  as  in  his  temple; 
lie  works  in  us  both  to  will  and  to  do,;  he  distributes  to  every 
one  grace,  and  gifts  of  free  favor; — but  he  only  takes  of  the 
things  of  Christ  and  shows  them  unto  us. — When  Christ  as- 
cended into  heaven  the  first  fruits  of  the  resurrection  from  the 
dead,  every  lineament  of  moral  perfection,  which  the  eye  of 
heaven  could  approve  as  the  qualification  of  the  full  harvest  of 
his  people,  in  every  ear  that  shall  grow,  in  any  age  or  nation, 
tongue  or  kindred,  till  the  end  of  time,  appeared  in  him,  or  was 
on  its  wing  in  the  hand  of  his  Spirit  to  those  saints  that  lived 
upon  tlie  radiations  from  his  fulness,  or  shone  in  those  spirits  of 
just  men  made  perfect  tiiat  bow  to  him  who  is  made  higher 
than  the  heavens  themselves. 

We  have  now,  my  brethren,  advanced  to  a  station  whence  we 
may  take  a  retrospective  view  of  the  road  we  have  travelled  in 
these  discourses,  and  see  how  appositely  the  most  exhilarating 
reflections  arise,  from  the  disentangled  course  the  path  we  have 
laid  out  pursues.     Locking  to  the  prominence  from  which  we 


180  8AXCTIFICATI03e    TO    LIFE. 

Started,  we  perceive,  that  there  arise  beyond  it,  the  original  state 
and  fall  of  man.  In  the  former  of  these  Adam  was  created, 
'with  the  perfect  law  of  God  impressed  upon  his  nature,  promis 
ing  endless  happiness  m  case  of  obedience,  and  threatening 
endless  misery  and  death  in  case  of  disobeniience.  Thus  stood 
Adam  as  on  our  earth  fresh  from  the  hand  of  his  Maker.  Into 
paradise,  a  garden  to  be  dressed,  and  the  emblem  of  social  abode, 
the  man  of  the  earth  was  by  the  kindness  of  his  creator  conveyed .; 
and  all  things  were  sovereignly  put  under  his  feet;  neighbors 
such  as  the  world  could  afford  were  marked  out  by  God,  a 
tree  of  knowledge  of  good  and  evil,  and  a  tree  of  life;  and  in 
this  state  of  society,  the  law  of  his  nature,  which  before  was  a 
covenant  of  life  and  death  for  himself  only,  now  became,  by 
God's  appointment,  a  covenant  for  the  family  of  mankind.  So- 
ciety was  organized  not  upon  mere  principles  of  nature,  as  the 
relation  of  Adam  and  Eve  the  parents  of  all  living,  but  upon 
sovereign  and  representative  relations ; — a  v/arning  voice  open- 
ed to  its  lord  from  diilerent  quarters  of  that  world  whose  wel- 
fare he  repiesiented,  and  to  dress  his  tenantry  in  wliich  was  his 
positively  appointed  employmient. 

The  trees  of  the  garden  are  in  a  little  hid  from  our  view  by 
the  brandish'ng  of  a  sword  of  fire  turning  every  vv'ay  to  guard 
the  tree  ojf  life.  Adam  is  driven  from  paradise;  the  gold  of 
his  creation  is  dim,  the  most  fine  gold  is  changed.  ■  But  though 
he  be  driven  into  his  native  earth,  and  sees  its  briers  and 
thorns  springing  up  from  his  fatal  change  in  paradise,  is  there 
no  hope  for  him  w^ho  was  so  lately  the  glory  and  head  of  the 
iiew  born  v/orld? 

Faint,  yet  genuine,  is  the  color  vWnch  streaks  the  horizon  to 
shoyf  that  the  hopes  of  the  human  "family  may  one  day  ripen 
into  perfection  by  efficacious  means  of  restoration.  The  rcbe  of 
'  mercy  mantles  our  first  parents,  and  it  is  put  upon  them  by 
the  hand  of  a  kinsman's  redeemer,  whose  flesh  is  supernatural 
seed  from  the  woman,  and  whose  power  is  divine  to  vanquish 


SAKCTiri€ATION    TO    LIFE.  ^181 

every  foe.  The  hope  of  life  by  this  Mediator  arises,  sorneiimes 
here  and  sometimes  there,  among  the  posterity  of  Adam,  till, 
in  the  days  of  Abraham,  he  and  his  posterity  are  inclosed 
within  the  circle  of  the  covenant  of  circumcision,  and  mankind 
become  distinguished  into  circumcision  in  the  flesh  and  im- 
circumcision.  The  former  are  the  adop'ed  sons  of  God, 
and  tiie  latter  are  without  God  and  without  hope  in  the  world, 
in  Egypt  the  respective  states  of  the  two  people  is  brought 
to  a  perceptible  bearing — light  is  on  the  one,  and  darkness 
on  the  other;  death  reigns  on  the  accursed,  and  life  from  the 
chambers  of  mercy  alights  upon  the  redeemed.  Sprinkled 
with  the  blood  of  their  covenant  the  sons  of  promise  enter 
upon  their  holy  land  and  enjoy  a  lioiy  habitation — till  a  better 
is  provided  for  Israel  by  the  Mediator  of  a  better  (estanaent 
established  upon  better  promises.  At  this  period  of  time 
the  genealogy  of  Jew  and  Gentile  is  lost  in  the  object  of 
the  divine  dispensations;  and  circumcision  and  uiiclrcum- 
cision,  barbarian  and  Scythian,  are  all  one  in  Chri>5t. — Tiie 
Mediator,  who  has  been  collecting  his  followers  fi-om  among 
a  particular  people,  and  the  nations  at  large,  and  who  bow 
again  collects  them  out  of  every  kindred  by  public  and  ex- 
cernal  means  suitable  to  an  indeiiiiive  and  general  call, 
has,  as  related  to  the  eye  of  omniscience,  the  church  invisi- 
ble, whom,  in  the  office  of  his  mediation  he  represents.  0( 
these  the  punishment  he  exhausts,  the  duty  he  fulfils,  the 
purity  he  provides — and  whilst  they  are  called  promiscuously 
with  others,  yet  the  mercy  of  God  pardons  their  sins  fr)r 
Christ's  sake,  his  grace  gives  them  a  title  to  liie  heayealy 
inheritance,  and  his  spirit  of  grace  imbues  their  heaits 
and  natures,  with  the  inward  principles  of  holiness, — 3esas, 
holy,  harmless,  undefiied,  and  separate  from  sinnere,  is 
their  forerunner  made  higher  than  the  heavens,  and  they 
are  fast  arriving,  in  their  respective  generation3,  wi'Jiout 
spot  or  wrinkle,    at   the   imraaculale  glory  of  which  their 

16* 


182  SANCriFlCATION    TO    WFB. 

head  is  in  possession. — Oh !  that  we  could  make  our  calling 
and  our  election  sure — We  are  not  our  own  we  are  bought 
with  a  price. — Blessed  God,  work  in  us  both  to  will  and 
to  do  of  thy  good  pleasure;  that  wlien  he  who  is  the  life 
of  his  people  shall  appear,  we  may  also  appear  with  him  in 
glory. — Amen, 


DISCOURSE  VIII. 


HE  WHO  IS  BORN  OF  GOD  SINNETH  NOT. 


I.  John  5: 1 8.     We  know  that  whosoever  is  born  of  God, 
sinneth  not. 

The  objects,  my  brethren,  of  religious  knowledge  are  very 
various.  The  books  of  creation,  providence,  and  revelation, 
afford,  each  of  them,  many  striking  and  important  lessons  on 
which  the  thoughts  of  man  considered  as  a  religious  being, 
may  be  employed  to  the  greatest  advantage.  In  creation  the 
power,  wisdom,  and  goodness  of  God  exhibit  themselves  to  the 
most  inattentive  in  no  less  a  clear  than' diversified  a  manner; 
and  if  any  be  more  careful  to  search  more  narrowly  into  its 
various  departments,  the  more  bright  and  more  numerous  dis- 
plays of  these  attributes  continually  present  themselves  to  his 
view.  Providence  also,  while  by  its  undoubtedly  suitable  and 
continued  disposition  of  things  towards  their  proper  and  lauda- 
ble ends  it  has  a  tendency  to  confirm  and  establish  us  in  the 
belief  and  the  better  understanding  of  these  sjjme  important 
objects  of  religious  knowledge,  has  also  a  tendency  to  acquaint 
us,  either  in  a  less  or  a  greater  degree,  with  others  no  less  mo- 
mentous and  interestincr.  Some  faint  idea  of  our  own  weakness 
and  depravity,  of  the  patience  and  forbearance  of  God,  and  of 
his  justice  and  mercy,  may,  by  an  attentive  perusal,  be  perceiv- 
ed in  the  book  of  God's  providence. 


184  HE    WHO    IS   BORN    OF    GOD 

Narrow,  however,  at  best,  as  well  as  obscure  and  indistinct, 
would  be  our  knowledge  of  divine  things  were  it  confined  to 
these  two  sources.  True,  indeed,  they  contain  much  objective- 
ly considered;  but  many  of  the  truths  lie  at  too  great  a  dis- 
tance, or  are  too  much  concealed  under  the  thick  cover  of 
seeming  perplexity,  for  the  weak  and  unimproved  faculties  of 
the  greater  part  of  mankind  ever  to  acquaint  themselves  with 
them.  Neither  in  fact,  although  they  should,  do  they  contain 
in  themselves  all  that  knowledge  that  is  necessary  to  conduct 
us,  in  our  presently  depraved  condition,  to  an  approvable  dis- 
charge of  our  duty.  To  accomplish  this  is  the  prerogative  of 
supernatural  revelation  alone.  They  are  the  scriptures  of 
truth  which  bring  forth  the  hidden  plans  and  purposes  of  God 
respecting  the  recovery  of  a  sinner  to  his  acceptable  obedience. 
The  book  of  nature  might  be  read  all  over,  creation's  hid,den 
treasures  laid  open,  and  the  mysterious  procedure  and  involv- 
ed connexions  of  providence  unravelled  and  clearly  explained  ; 
and  yet  the  least  intelligence  in  this  important  affair  never 
could  be  attained.  It  could  never  be  said,  we  know^,  it  is  by 
being  born  of  God.  We  know,  saith  our  apostle,  that  whoso- 
ever is  born  of  God,  sinneth  not. 

We  see  in  this  text,  a  person  standing  in  a  peculiar  and  dis- 
tinguished relation,  one  born  of  God:  we  see  an  endearing  line 
of  conduct  which  he  leads,  expressed  negatively,  he  sinneth 
not :  and  we  behold  our  apcstle's  confident  declaration  with 
respect  to  this  attribute  of  this  son  of  God,  he  knows  it.  Three 
important  inquiries,  therefore,  occupy  to-day  our  deliberations.  . 
— What  is  meant  by  being  born  of  God?  What  is  the  import 
of  the  language,  whosoever  is  born  of  God  sinneth  not?  and 
what  are  the  reasons  which  lead  the  christian  to  exclaim  for 
himself  and  others,  we  know,  that  whosover  is  born  of  God  sinr 
neth  not. 

First,  What  is  meant  by  being  born  of  God?  la  divinity 
there  is  sometimes  an  advantage  obtained  from  adopting  the 
form  of  theory  for  the  sake  of  perspicuity  of  arrangement  j  and 


smNETH   NOT. 


IB6 


believing  that  this  method  will  conduce,  in  the  present  inquiry, 
to  the  most  satisfactory  result,  we  beg  leave  to  present  you 
with  an  answer,  to  this  particular  inquiry,  in  the  form  of  a  de- 
finition. By  being  born  of  God,  it  is  presumed,  is  meant,  that 
after  his  natural  birth  there  is  a  real  change  produced  by  a  di- 
vine operation  in  all  the  faculties  of  the  soul  of  man,  by  the 
implantation  into  it  of  a  spiritual  and  supernatural  principle  of 
life  and  action.  It  will  not  admit  of  a  doubt  that  these  ex- 
pressions of  scripture,  born  of  God,  born  of  the  spirit,  born 
again,  born  of  the  spirit  and  water  of  life,  do  all  imply  some 
great  change  which  passes  upon  a  man  after  he  is  supposed  in 
natural  existence,  and  is  exercising  the  natural  powers  of  his 
mind. 

To  procure  assent  to  our  defiaition  as  a  proposition  of  divine- 
ly  revealed  truth,  we  are  aware,  that  the  inquisitive  mind  calls 
for  some  remarks  explanatory  of  this  spiritual  and  supernatu- 
ral principle  of  life  and  action,  presumed  to  be  implanted  into 
the  soul ;  and  then  for  proofs  of  its  implantation. 

We  remark,  in  the  first  place,  that  this  principle  is,  in  its  na- 
ture and  manner  of  implantation  into  the  mind,  truly  mysteri- 
ous. Here  we  know  not  the  way  of  the  spirit,  nor  how  the  bones 
do  grow  in  the  womb.  This  new  birth,  near  as  it  is  unto  us, 
and  apparently  under  our  observation,  is  yet  as  the  wind  which 
beateth  our  outward  frame  and  roareth  in  our  ears,  but  is  that 
of  which  we  can  give  no  account.  The  wind  bloweth,  saith 
our  Saviour,  where  it  listeth,  and  thou  hearest  the- sound  there- 
of, but  canst  not  tell  whence  it  cometh,  nor  whither  it  goeth, 
80  is  every  one  that  is  born  of  the  Spirit. 

Not  to  acquiesce,  however,  in  this,  as  well  as  in  many  other 
mysterious  cases  in  nature,  would  be  highly  unreasonable. 
We  know  no  more,  perhaps,  far  less,  how  our  minds,  the  nobler 
part  of  our  constitution,  actuate  our  gross  bodies,  than  we  do 
of  this  new  birth.  The  true  christian,  though  from  its  spiritual 
quality,  and  from  the  instantaneous  direction  of  his  thoughts  to 
the  objects  which  the  change  fits  him  to  perceive,  he  be  able  to 


186       ,  HE   WHO   IS   BORN  OP   GOD 

say  little  as  to  the  precise  nature  of  the  change  itself,  can  yet, 
both  from  his  knowledge  of  the  word  of  God  and  his  own  hap- 
py experience,  say  a  good  deal  both  of  its  gently  but  power- 
fully operating  cause,  and  of  its  pleasant  and  comfortable  ef- 
fects.— Which  brings  us  to  remark, 

Secondly,  That  this  is  a  principle  implanted  into  the  mind 
by  the  agency  of  the  divine  Spirit.  It  is  this  great  teacher  who, 
not  by  constraint,  but  willingly,  leads  and  conducts  the  chris- 
tian into  the  genuine  knowledge  of  the  truth,  and  makes  him 
feel  its  real  efficacy  and  power.  True,  indeed,  we  are  said  to 
be  born  again,"  not  of  corruptible  seed,  but  of  incorruptible,  by 
the  word  of  God.  The  word  is  the  unerring  rule  by  which, 
in  all  cases,  the  Spirit  operates;  and  is  with  regard  to  adults 
what  is  termed  the  moral  cause.  It  inculcates  the  necessity 
of  regeneration ;  it  points  to  the  true  efficient  of  it;  and  it  ex- 
hibits the  glorious  privileges  and  advantages  that  are  conse- 
quent upon  it.  It  is,  however,  an  instrument  only  of  which 
the  Spirit  makes  use.  To  the  Spirit  himself,  in  scripture,  is 
attributed  the  real  eifectuating  of  the  change.  "  According  to 
his  mercy  he  saved  us  by  the  washing  of  regeneration  and  the 
renewing  of  the  Holy  Ghost."  "  Who  were  born  not  of  blood, 
nor  of  the  will  of  the  flesh,  nor  of  the  will  of  man,  but  of 
God." 

But  we  remark,  lastly.  That  this  is  a  principle,  which,  be- 
ing implanted,  restores  the  whole  soul,  in  a  certain  degree,  to 
that  state  of  purity  and  holiness  in  which  it  was  originally 
formed.  In  man's  primeval  state  he  was  constituted  in  per- 
fect rectitude  after  the  image  of  God.  His  understanding,  his 
will,  his  affections,  and  indeed  every  power  he  possessed  as  a 
religious  and  moral  being,  were  free  from  the  least  taint  of  cor- 
ruption or  weakness,  to  disable  him  for  acting  his  part  in  the 
sphere  which  was  assigned  to  him.  This  was  the  happy  state 
in  which  he  knew  perfectly  the  rule  of  his  duty  in  every  occur- 
rence of  life,  and  delighted  to  comply  with  it.  Now  this  spir- 
itual principle  recovers  him  to  this  state;  though  not  perfectly? 


SINNETH   NOT,  |g7 

but  somehow  as  a  child  is  to  a  full  grown  man.  He  sees 
though  his  view  be  not  a  little  indistinct,  objects  in  their 
native  colors.  Whereas  in  his  original  state  he  knew,  as 
far  as  concerned  the  nature  of  his  situation,  on  every  object 
which  God  had  made,  or  relation  which  he  had  instituted,  the 
impresses  of  divine  authority;  so  now,  in  some  degree,  he  re- 
cognizes the  same  dignified  and  interesting  points  of  know- 
ledge. Whereas  he  then  knew  that  the  creation,  animate  and 
inanimate,  and  the  law  of  obedience,  proceeded  from  God  •  so 
now  he  knows  that  the  scriptures,  which  no  less  than  the  works 
of  creation  and  providence,  are  enstamped  with  impressions  of 
divine  authority,  spring  from  the  same  original.  God  hath 
shined,  as  the  scripture  saith,  into  his  heart  to  give  him  the 
light  of  the  knowledge  of  the  glory  of  God  in  the  face  of  Je- 
sus  Christ,  that  his  faith  should  not  stand  in  the  wisdom  of 
men,  but  in  the  power  of  God. 

But  it  is  not  divine  light  alone  of  which,  by  being  bom 
again,  this  man  is  made  a  partaker.  As  in  his  original  state 
he  not  only  knew  but  delighted  in  his  duty,  so  now  he  has  not 
only  his  understanding  enlightened  to  perceive  it,  but  his  will, 
and  every  active  principle  of  his  constitution,  perverse  and 
alienate  from  the  life  of  God  as  they  were  before,  are,  in  this 
day  of  God's  power,  altered  and  restored,  in  a  great  measure, 
to  their  primitive  order  and  ability.  His  desires,  his  affec- 
tions, his  sense  of  right  and  wrong,  or  conscience,  are  all 
purified;  and  while  the  two  foraier  are  put  under  a  happy 
regulation,  and  directed  to  suitable  objects,  the  latter  is  restored 
to  ite  rightful  authority  and  dominion  in  the  soul.  The  man 
is  now  no  longer  constrained  to  obey  merely  from  the  com- 
manding voice  of  the  law  without  him  :  this  is  the  day  in  which 
it  is  put  into  his  heart.  By  the  new  birth  he  has  an  inward 
feeling  of  his  obligation;  a  knowledge  how  his  duty  is  to  be 
performed;  and  a  principle  prompting  him  to  the  performance 
of  that  which  is  holy  and  upright.  But  we  cannot  sum  up  the 
state  into  which  his  mind  is  put  by  regeneration,  so  well  as 


1 88  HE  WHO  IS  BORN  OP  GOD 

by  saying,  that,  in  truth  and  earnest,  he  is  begun  to  realize  the 
words  of  our  Saviour:  "Thou  shalt  love  the  Lord  thy  God, 
with  all  thy  heart,  with  all  thy  soul,  and  with  all  thy  mind,  and 
thy  neighbor  as  thyself." 

Having  made  these  remarks  on  the  principle  itself,  we  come 
now  to  adduce  the  proofs  that,  in  the  new  birth,  this  principle 
of  life  and  action,  whatever  be  its  nature  or  manner  of  implanta- 
tion, is  infused  into  the  soul. 

There  are  many  who  allow  of  the  necessity  of  an  operation 
of  the  Spirit  on  the  mind  in  order  to  accomplish  regeneration, 
who,  notwithstanding,  deny  that  there  is  any  real  change 
which  takes  place  intrinsically  in  the  faculties  of  the  mind 
itself.  They  say  that  to  deny  an  operation  of  the  Spirit  on 
the  mind,  would  be  to  obscure  and  unstring  all  those  clear  and 
nervous  passages  of  scripture,  which  we  find  so  pointed,  and 
so  often  repeated  on  this  head.  But  at  the  same  time  that 
they  allow  this,  they  deny  that  it  is  of  any  other  nature  than 
what  is  extrinsical  and  moral  in  its. effects:  that  is,  the  Spirit 
operating  externally  on  it  influences  the  mind  to  attend  to 
tlie  word,  the  rule  by  which  the  man  is  to  be  reformed,  but  he 
produces  no  change  on  the  nature  or  in  the  quality  of  the  soul 
itself.  Indeed  we  willingly  allow  that  there  is  no  change 
produced  in  the  essence  of  the  mind,  or  in  its  necessary  and 
physical  modes  of  acting.  These  are  still  the  same,  and  can- 
not be  altered  while  human  nature  is  human  nature.  But  we 
assert  that,  considering  the  mind  in  a  moral  point  of  view, 
and  with  regard  to  the  qualities  of  its  actions,  it  is,  as  a  prin- 
ciple from  which  these  actions  spring,  greatly  changed;  and 
this,  by  the  implantation  of  the  spiritual  and  supernatural  prin- 
ciple we  have  m.entioned. 

Our  first  proof  is  from  the  nature  of  the  change  itself  Here 
it  will  be  necessary  to  glance  a  little  at  the  state  of  man,  .as 
represented  to  us  in  scripture,  previous  to  regeneration .  Not 
to  make  much  research,  nor  to  adduce  many  passages,  we  havo 
this  clearly  depicted  in  the  two  following  apposite  ones,  from 


SINNETH    NOT.  189 

the  Epistle  of  Paul  to  the  Ephesians.  In  the  beginning  of  the 
second  chapter  he  says:  "You  who  were  dead  in  trespasses 
and  sins,  wherein  in  times  past  you  walked  according  to  tlie 
course  of  this  world,  according  to  the  prince  of  the  power  of 
the  air;  the  spirit  that  now  worketh  in  the  children  of  disobe- 
dience." Again,  in  his  fourth  chapter  and  eighteenth  verse : 
<*  Having  the  understanding  darkened,  being  alienated  from 
the  life  of  God,  through  the  ignorance  that  is  in  them,  because 
of  the  blindness  of  their  hearts."  Here  the  understanding,  the 
will,  and  the  conscience,  not  only  the  leading  powers  in  the 
soul,  but  powers  which  either  presuppose  or  comprehend  in 
their  exercise  all  the  rest,  are  represented  in  indeed  a  very  dis_ 
ordered  and  perverted  condition.  Is  it  said  that  it  does  not 
sufficiently  appear  from  tiiese  passages  that  it  is  the  mind  itself 
that  is  enfeebled  and  morally  corrupted ;  but  that  they  only 
evince  that  they  are  the  exercises  of  it  which  are  disordered 
and  perverted?  We  might,  granting  this,  (what  the  words 
quoted  will  not  allow  us  to  do,  without  the  most  violent  dis- 
tortion,) reply  and  urge  with  our  Saviour,  that  a  tree  is 
known  by  its  fruit.  But  we  shall  turn  the  argument  into 
another  channel. 

At  man's  first  appearance  in  the  world  he  was  unquestionably 
furnished  with  moral  endowments  far  superior  to  what  by 
nature  he  now  possesses.  He  was  then  in  the  image  of  God. 
God  created  man,  it  is  said,  in  his  own  image;  in  the  image  of 
God  created  he  him.  It  is  not  the  soul  as  acting,  nor  the 
exercises  of  it,  to  which  there  is  here  a  respect,  and  on  account 
of  which  man  is  said  to  hare  been  created  after  the  image  of 
God.  It  is  the  frame  and  constitution  of  the  man  previous  to 
his  acting.  He  is  created  in  it.  But  though  he  was  created 
in  this  state,  mark  what  is  bis  natural  condition  now .  He  is 
born  as  the  wild  ass's  colt;  his  frame  is  shapen  in  sin,  and  con-  ■ 
ceived  in  iniquity;  his  hearty  the  moving  principle  to  action^  is 
deceitful  above  all  things,  and  desperately  wicked.     Thus,  it 

is  clear,  that  previously  to  regeneration,  not  only  the  exercises 
17 


190  HE  WHO  IS  BORN  OF  GOD 

of  the  soul,  but  the  soul  itself  is  spiritually  enervated  and 
morally  depraved. — The  consequence  to  the  establishment  of 
a  principle  of  grace  implanted  in  regeneration  into  the  soul  is 
undeniable.  Regeneration  reverses  the  state  of  man^  and 
whatever  was  deficient  in  the  soul  by  sin,  must  be  supplied  by 
grace. 

Secondly:  This  truth  is  confirmed  from  ail  those  passages 
of  scripture  which  ascribe  actions  to  the  renewed  man  as  really 
his  actions,  but  which,  in  his  natural  state,  he  has  no  ability  to 
perform,     Heie  it  may  be  laid  down  as  an  undoubted  truth, 
that  an  action  can  never  be  ascribed  to  a  person  as  his  action, 
if  he  has  no  capacity  in  his  nature  suitable  to  the  peiformance 
of  that  kind  of  action,  but  is  carried  forward  to  it  merely  by  an 
external  impulse.     It  is  an  absurdity  to  say  that  it  is  in  any 
respect  his ;  the  intent,  matter,  end,  and  consequences  of  it  are 
ascribable  to  the  external  agent  only  who  operates  upon  him. 
Indeed  we  willingly  allow  that  we  are  dependent  upon  God 
every  moment  of  our  existence,  and  even  for  that  particular 
disposition  in  which  our  minds  are  when  about  to  act  or  when 
acting;  but  then  we  assert  that  we  have  within  ourselves  a  fit- 
ness or  capacity  suitable  to  the  performance  of  the  actions 
which  are  termed  ours,  and  on  account  of  which  they  are  so 
denominated.     Now,  the  new  man  performs  spiritual  actioifB; 
he  CO mpareth spiritual  things  with  spiritual;  he  eateth  spiritual 
meat,  and  he  drinketh  spiritual  drink;  he  prayeth  in  the  spirit, 
and  he  singeth  spiritual  songs.     Previous  to  his  regeneration, 
however,  he  had  not  a  fitness  or  capacity  congruous  to  the  per- 
formance of  these  actions.     "  The  natural  man  receiveth  not 
the  things  of  the  spirit  of  God;  for  they  are  foolishness  to  him; 
neither  can  he  know  them,  because  they  are  spiritually  discern- 
ed.'"    Here  his  inability  is  plainly  declared,  and  the  reason  is 
assigned — spiritual    tilings  are  spiritually  discerned.     There 
is,  on  the  perception  of  spiritual  objects,  a  new  simple  idea  in 
the  mind,  v;hich,  in  its  unrenewed  capacit)^,  it  could  not  re- 
ceive.    Thus,  if  we  allow  not  of  a  spiritual  principle  of  life  and 


SIN7?ETH    NOT.  191 

action  implanted  into  the  soul,  capacitating  it,  or  should  it  be 
better  expressed,  giving  it  a  fitness  of  nature  for  the  perform- 
ance of  these  spiritual  actions,  the  inevitable  consequence  will 
be,  that  the  actions  which  are  ascribed  to  the  renewed  man  are 
not  at  all  ascribable  to  him,  but  to  the  Holy  Spirit  who  operates 
upon  him ;  a  consequence  which  will  overturn  the  very  funda- 
mental principles  of  morality  and  man's  accountability;  and 
hence  the  true  account  of  the  inhabitation  of  the  Spirit  is  as 
we  have  presented  his  operations. 

Other  arguments  might  have  been  drawn  from  other  general 
considerations,  such  as  regeneration  is  termed  a  new  birth 
and  a  new  creation;  but  passing  these,  we  shall  only  mention, 
and  consider  a  little,  three  passages  of  scripture,  which  will 
admit  of  no  other  explication  than  what  clearly  and  pointedly 
coincides  with  this  opinion. 

"  That  which  is  born  of  the  flesh  is  flesh,  and  that  which  is  born 
of  the  Spirit  is  spirit."  That  the  spirit  here,  which  is  said  to  be 
produced  by  the  Holy  Ghost,  can  be  referred  to  nothing  else 
than  a  supernatural  principle  of  life  and  action,  is  clear  from 
the  carriage  of  the  context,  from  the  opposition  in  which  it 
stands  to  the  flesh,  and  from  the  character  and  circumstances 
of  the  speaker.  If  this  language  denotes  not  this  principle, 
why  did  the  Saviour  lay  such  emphasis  on  these  words?  If 
by  being  born  again  were  meant  a  reformation  only  of  the 
exercises  of  the  soul,  could  the  teacher  sent  from  heaven, 
and  who  was  in  heaven,  find  no  more  clear  and  perspicuous 
method  of  expressing  himself  to  the  laudably  astonished  and 
inquiring  mind  of  Nicodemus,  than  by  asserting  that  the  change 
was  spirit;  a  word  always  used  to  denote  some  real  sub- 
stantive existence.  In  the  preceding  verse  he  had  stated  the 
absolute  necessity  of  it  to  salvation;  and  by  his  solemn  assevera- 
tion, he  must  have  thrown  the  mind  of  the  man  into  the  greatest 
anxiety  and  solicitude;  and  are  we  to  suppose,  that  notwith- 
standing this  was  a  case  in  which  doubts  were  the  most  easily 
resolved,  and  views  the  most  easily  rectified,  that  however 


192  HE  WHO  IS  bor:?  of  &qd 

Christ,  in  this  very  verse,  the  only  one  where  he  professes  to 
explain  himself,  used  language  which,  to  Nicodemus,  conveyed 
nothing  but  the  contrary  idea  to  a  common  reformation  of  life, 
and  which,  to  all  men,  must  convey  the  same? 

Again :  The  flesh  lusteth  against  the  spirit,  and  the  spirit 
against  the  flesh ;  and  these  are  contrary  the  one  to  the  other. 
That  by  the  flesh  are  here  meant  inclinations  to  vice  and  wicked- 
ness, is  obvious  from  the  common  acceptation  of  the  w^ord  flesh 
in  the  New  Testament ;  but  especially  from  the  description 
given  of  it  in  the  imm-ediate  context.  In  the  same  soul,  how- 
ever, in  which  are  these  inclinations,  there  are  others  of  an 
opposite  nature.  The  spirit  lusteth  against  the  flesh,  as  well 
as  the  flesh  against  the  spirit, — It  cannot  be  said  that  the 
lustings  of  the  spirit  here  are  the  twinges  and  strokes  of  natural 
conscience,  considered  merely  as  a  natural  faculty  of  the 
mind,  enlightened  by  the  external  word,  to  a  perception  of  its 
duty.  Though  it  be  allowed  that  this  faculty,  after  that  the 
mind  by  the  aid  of  revelation  is  led  to  understand,  in  a  good  de- 
gree, the  distinction  between  right  and  wrong,  often  exerts 
itself  in  severe  reproofs  of  the  conduct  of  the  natural  man ; 
yet,  it  would  be  a  fond  interpretation  indeed,  to  understand  its 
exercise  for  what  is  here  termed  the  lustings  of  the  spirit.  A 
person  is  said  to  lust  when  he  indulges  those  principles  of  his 
nature  which  are  incentives  to  action,  and  which  show  them- 
selves previous  to  the  operation  of  conscience,  and  the  proper 
or  improper  indulgence  of  which  is  the  subject  over  which  con- 
science exercises  its  authority.  Hence  the  spirit  here  must  be 
some  principle  in  the  soul,  or  some  seat  of  the  affections, 
which,  from  its  very  nature,  exerteth  itself  as  a  new  creature, 
against  the  lustings  of  the  unsanctified  part  of  the  soul,  which 
is  here  termed  the  flesh. 

But  lastly:  That  by  these  ye  might  be  made  partakers  of  a 
flivine  nature.  It  cannot  be  asserted  that  this  divine  nature  of 
which  we  partake  is  that  of  the  Deity.  This  is  incommunica- 
ble to  any  creature.     If  it  be  any  thing  inherent  in  us  at  all^ 


SrN^ETH  XOT.  193 

it  can  be  only  some  divine  and  supernatural  quality  graciously 
and  freely  communicated  to  us.  But  that  it  is  this  is  obvious. 
^  For,  why  should  it  be  called  a  nature,  a  permanent  and  an 
abiding  thing,  if  it  were  not  some  real  inherent  quality? 
Nature  denotes  not  any  adventitious  and  extrinsical  con- 
nexions, but  always  the  internal  state  and  properties  of  any 
subject.  It  may  be  termed  a  divine  nature,  because  it  assimi- 
lates the  christian,  in  some  degree,  in  the  correctness  of  his 
understanding,  the  uprightness  of  his  intentions,  and  the 
holiness  of  his  desires,  to  God,  whose  nature  is  truly  divine. 

The  second  general  object  of  inquiry  in  our  discourse  was, 
what  is  meant  by  the  language,  "  Whosoever  is  born  of  God 
sinneth  not?" 

In  what  sense  we  are  to  understand  the  phrase,  sinneth  not, 

is  a  matter  about  which  there  has  been  some  difference  of 

opinion.     Some  have  said  that  all  that  is  intended  by  it  is, 

that  the  persons  who  are  here  said  to  be  born  of  God,  cannot 

commit    that    sin    unto    death,    which    is    the    subject    of 

which  the  apostle  has  been  immediately  speaking,  and  which 

is  mentioned  in  the  sixteenth  verse.     But  since  it  is  here  used 

as  a  part  of  a  general  and  an  unlimited  proposition,  and  since 

the  same  mode  of  language  is  used  in  a  preceding  part  of  the 

epistle,  evidently  from  the  connexion  in  a  greater  latitude  of 

meaning,  we  think,  that  though  it  be  past  all  doubt  that  this 

sin  is  not  excluded,  the  phrase,  however,  must  have  a  more 

extensive  signification.     On  the  otlier   hand,  it  is  obvious 

that  it  cannot  be  understood  in  an  absolute  and  unrestrained 

sense;  so  that  no  one  who  is,  as  here  said,  born  of  God,  can 

commit  any  sin.     Scripture  in  innum.erable  instances,  and  the 

experience  of  the  best  of  saints,  in  all  ages,  declare  against 

this  view  of  the  subject.     Job,  a  perfect  and  an  upright  man, 

one  that  feared  God  and  eschewed  evil,  cursed,  in  impious 

ingratitude,  the  day  in  which  he  was  bom,  and  the  night  in 

which  he  a  man  child  was  conceived.     He  asked  in  earnest 

17*     ' 


^ 


194  HE  WHO    19   BOSN    Ot  GOD 

impious  questions,  why  died  1  not  from  the  womb?  why  did 
I  not  give  up  the  ghost  when  I  camo  out  of  the  belly?  David, 
a  man  after  God's  own  heart,  perpetrated  iniquities,  and 
often  laments  over  them.  "  Mine  iniquities  have  gone  over 
mine  head  as  a  burden  too  heavy  for  me  to  bear."  And  Peter 
the  most  zealous  apostle  of  our  Lord,  sinned,  till  he  wept  in 
repentance;  for  he  had  denied  his  Lord  and  master.  "]f," 
says  this  apostle  John,  in  this  very  epistle,  "  any  man  say  that 
he  has  no  sin,  this  man  deceiveth  himself,  and  the  truth  is  not 
in  him." 

To  answer  this  inquiry,  therefore,  f?e  would  remark  the 
following  things : 

First:  That  he  who  is  born  of  God  doth  not  sin,  inasmuch 
as  he  has  a  settled  disposition  of  mind  to  guard  against  every 
means  that  may  have  a  tendency  to  urge  him  to  the  perpetra- 
tion of  iniquity.  In  this  respect,  as  is  added  in  the  following 
part  of  the  verse,  he  keepeth  himself.  Satan's  temptations, 
into  however  enticing  and  seemingly  advantageous  forms  they 
may  be  thrown,  are  all  detested  by  him.  Conscious  of  the 
justness  of  the  exhortation,  resist  the  devil,  he  strives  to 
oppose  him,  although  he  should  appear  as  an  infuriated 
lion,  menacing  to  deprive  him  of  every  thing  which  men  count 
valuable  in  this  world,  should  it  be  even  life  itself;  or  should 
he  appear,  not  in  this  terrifying  aspect,  but  in  that  more  mild 
one,  in  which  he  often  traverses  the  world,  exhibiting  vices 
under  the  semblance  of  present  interest  or  advantage,  or  as  a 
means  to  obtain  some  future  apparejitly  valuable  end.  With 
what  is  called  the  world,  he  is  also  no  less  unwilling  to  yield 
a  compliance.  Whatever  may  be  its  urgencies,  or  whatever 
arguments  it  may  use  to  support  and  render  current  the  evil 
customs,  habits,  and  practices,  which  but  too  often  and  too  pow- 
erfully prevail  in  it,  his  mind  is  continually  set  against  them, 
and  earnestly  expresses  itself  to  be  kept  far  from  the  wicked. 
Gather  not  my  soul  with  sinners,  saitb  the  Psalmist,  nor  my 


SINNETH     NOT.  195 

hands  with  bloody  men.  But  they  are  not  external  enemies 
only  that  make  assaults  on  the  interests  of  the  soul  of  man. 
The  worst  enemies  whom  he  has  to  contend  with  are  those  of 
his  own  house.  Even  the  person  who  is  farthest  advanced  in 
sanctification,  has  a  law  in  his  members  warring  against  the 
law  of  his  mind,  and  about  to  bring  him  into  captivity  to  the 
law  of  sin .  Now  to  guard  against  the  machinations  of  this 
restless  and  wicked  foe  within  him,  is  what  the  true  christian 
has  an  established  resolution  always  to  do.  [t  is  the  lanauage 
of  which  his  heart  approves,  I  would  do  good,  though  evil  be 
present  with  me. 

But,  secondly,  He  w^ho  is  born  of  God  does  not  sin,  inas* 
much  as  he  does  not  commit  sin  with  deliberation  and  premed- 
itated device.  The  natural  man  is  not  only  off  his  guard  with 
respect  to  the  ensnaring  enemies  of  his  soul;  but  it  is  charac* 
teristic  of  him,  that  he  often  lays,  with  all  the  depth  of  his 
penetration,  schemes  by  which  he  may  accomplish  some  great 
wicked  design.  Should  his  pride,  his  vanity,  his  malice,  hia 
envy,  his  ambition,  his  revenge,  or  his  avarice,  create  to  him  a 
desirable  object,  for  the  attainment  of  this,  he  is  often  seen  td 
introduce  into  his  system  of  practice,  every  species  of  iniquity; 
no  murder,  no  perjury,  no  profanity,  no  acts  of  impiety,  appear 
too  great  for  him  to  be  guilty  of.  But  he  who  is  born  of  God 
cannot  sin  after  this  manner.  He  is  one  who  keeps  the  ways 
of  the  Lord;  who  does  not  so  wickedly  depart  from  his  God- 
his  judgments  are  ever  before  him,  and  he  puts  not  away  hia 
statutes  from  him.  He  may  appear  indeed  at  times  to' per* 
form  ablameable  action,  which  apparently  has  its  origin  in  evU 
intention;  but  this  is  to  be  imputed  rather  to  the  imperfection 
of  his  state,  or  to  his  ignorance  of  his  obligation  in  that  particu- 
lar instance,  than  to  any  premeditated  and  settled  design  of  do- 
ing evil.  This  is  the  case  in  which  is  exemplified  in  his  chai^ 
acter,  the  truth  of  the  saying,  that  he  is  one  who  fears  tlie  Lord, 
and  obeys  the  voice  of  his  servant,  and  who  yet  walks  in  dark' 


1 96  HE  WHO  IS  BORN  OP  GOD 

ness,  and  has  no  light. — When  to  will  is  present  with  him,  but 
to  perform  that  which  is  good  he  finds  not. 

But,  thirdly,  He  who  is  born  of  God  cannot  sin,  inasmuch 
as  he  does  not  perpetrate  evil  actions  with  affection  and  love 
to  them.  The  unrenewed  man  not  only  deliberates  how  he 
may  accomplish  a  wicked  action,  but  he  even  executes  wicked 
designs  with  eagerness  and  delight.  He  works  all  unclean- 
ness  with  greediness.  To  slander  and  despise  just  and  sacred 
authority  both  human  and  divine,  to  interrupt  and  mar  the  hap- 
piness of  others,  to  bring  into  disrepute  and  render  useless  the 
best  and  most  momentous  concerns,  civil  and  religious,  are  un- 
dertakings in  which  he  often  embarks  with  the  greatest  alacri- 
ty, and  which  by  one  step  after  another  he  pursues  with  increas- 
ing joy.  But  the  renowned  son  of  God  has  no  such  affection 
towards  evil  deeds.  On  the  Other  hand,  this  kind  of  sin  is 
the  burden  of  his  soul.  He  crieth  when  he  feeleth  this  law  in 
his  members,  these  corrupt  affections  of  the  old  man,  warring 
against  the  law  of  his  mind,  and  about  to  lead  him  intocaptivi- 
ty  to  the  law  of  sin,  Oh !  wretched  man  that  J  am,  who  shall 
deliver  me  from  the  body  of  this  death!  The  idea  of  proceed- 
ing to  a  wicked  action  with  delight  shocks  his  frame.  His 
bones  quake  under  it,  and  the  blood  altereth  its  course  in  his 
veins.  It  is  to  him  an  oppressing  and  an  overwhelwing  burden ; 
it  ends  his  peace,  it  stuns  the  man,  it  is  upon  him  the  weighty 
and  insupportable  body  of  death.  Oh!  wretched  man,  said 
Paul,  that  I  am,  w^ho  shall  deliver  me  from  the  body  of  this 
death! 

But,  fourthly.  He  w^ho  is  born  of  God  does  not  sin,  because 
he  does  not  run  on  in  a  perpetual  course  of  iniquity.  The 
wicked  not  only  deliberate  about  it,  and  enter  eagerly  on  a 
wicked  action ;  but  the  imaginations  of  their  thoughts  are  evil 
and  that  continually.  That  end  which  dignifies  the  actions  of 
men,  and  that  authority  of  an  upright  rule  which  stamps  their 
worth  upon  them,  are,  in  actions  which  often  have  a  specious 


SINNETH   NOT.  197 

appearance,  really  neglected  A  man  may  be  industrious  from 
self-interest ;  patriotic  from  ambition  or  natural  feeling ;  osten- 
sibly religious  from  habit  or  a  desire  to  obtain  a  devout  reputa- 
tion; a  scholar  may  traverse  the  fields  of  science  from  mere 
curiosity;  and  a  legislator  may  be  just  purely  to  fill  the  circles 
of  society  with  encomiums  upon  his  conduct.  And,  as  it  can- 
not be  denied  that  men  may  often  act  thus,  so  we  may  aver, 
that  conscience,  were  her  dictates  alone  to  be  recorded,  would 
represent  all  the  world  that  lieth  in  wickedness,  by  those  spe- 
cious but  unapproved  lineaments  of  character.  Day  and  night 
their  thoughts  weave  schemes  over  which  the  genius  of  inter- 
est, curiosity,  ambition,  or  instinctive  patriotism,  presides. 
Not  a  dictate  of  conscience  is  revered  purely  for  its  majesty, 
nor  is  a  glance  of  the  great  end  of  human  actions,  the  glory  of 
the  Creator,  permitted  to  rule  and  govern  them.  They  are  all 
gone  out  of  the  way;  they  are  altogether  unprofitable,  there  is 
none  that  doeth  good,  no  not  one. 

Than  this  conduct,  however,  the  christian  maintaineth,  in 
regard  to  the  rule  and  end  of  his  actions,  a  line  of  life  much 
more  amiable.  He  is  one  who  can  say,  though  not  in  an  abso- 
lute sense,  I  was  upright  before  him,  and  I  kept  myself  from 
mine  iniquity.  Yes,  this  man  about  whom  there  is  much  sin- 
ful imperfection,  strives  to  rise  above  his  infirmities  by  all  the 
operations  of  sincerity;  by  the  spur  which  every  failure  gives 
to  his  conscience;  by  redoubling  his  resolutions;  and  by  press- 
ing forwards  toward  the  mark  of  perfection.  "  I  count  not 
myself  to  have  apprehended,  but  this  one  thing  I  do;  forget- 
ting those  things  that  are  behind,  and  reaching  forth  unto  those 
things  that  are  before,  I  press  toward  the  mark,  for  the  prize  of 
the  high  calling  of  God  in  Christ  Jesus." — I  cannot  but  weep 
here  over  some  on  whom  a  trembling  observation  has  been 
suspended,  and  for  whom  agitations  have  increased.  Have  the 
motives,  my  brethren,  of  the  unsanctified,  the  thousands  of  earthly 
and  carnal  conceptions  which  sit  brooding  on  their  minds  and 
generating  the  labyrinth  of  their  schemes,  and  which  send 


^Q  HE   WHO   IS  BORN  OP  GOD 

forth  in  life  and  vigor  so  many  renewals  of  them,  been  the  par- 
ent  of  your  morality  and  religion?  Ah!  what  a  corrupted 
heart  under  a  profession  so  honorable !— Wo  unto  you  hypo. 
crites,foryou  are  like  to  whited  sepulchres  which  appear  beau- 
tiful outwards;  but  within  are  full  of  dead  men's  bones  and  of 
all  uncleanness.— Thisis  the  doom  of  the  wicked  j  but  happy  is 
the  righteous;  fori  remark, 

Lastly,  That  he  who  is- born  of  God  does  not  sin,  inasmuch 
83  he  does  not  commit  that  sin  which,  in  the  tenth  verse,  is 
said  to  be  unto  death.  By  this  sin  is  meant  either  the  sin  of 
total  apostacy  or  the  unpardonable  sin  against  the  Holy  Ghost; 
of  which  our  Lord  speaks,  Mark  3: 29.  Whichever  of  these  it 
be;  or  should  it  be  both;  for  it  seems  somewhat  difficult  to  de- 
termine, whether  a  person  can  make  a  profession  of  the  gospel 
for  some  time  and  then  finally  apostatise,  and  not  be  chargeable 
with  blasphemy  against  the  divine  Spirit;  and  certain  it  is, 
that  there  cannot  be  this  blasphemy,  without  at  the  same  time 
final  apostacy;  we  say,  whatever  he  the  nature  of  this  sin  we  do 
not  determine.  Suffice  it  to  say,  that  it  is  certain,  that  it  is  a 
sin  for  which  there  is  no  forgiveness:  and  that  as  our  text 
says,  he  who  is  born  of  God  cannot  be  guilty  of  it.— Which 
brings  us  to  our  last  inquiry, 

Which  was,  lastly,  What  are  the  reasons  from  which  he 
who  is  born  of  God  exclaims  for  himself  and  others,  we  know, 
that  whosoever  is  born  of  God,  sinneth  not.  Various  are  the 
considerations  from  which  we  might  show  you  the  christian 
adopting  this  language  with  respect  to  the  sin  unto  death,  so 
awful  in  itself,  and  so  prominently  included  in  our  text;  but 
we  look  for  arguments  and  demonstrations  which  will  not  only 
secure  against  this  final  catastrophe;  but  which  will  inspire  us 
to  adopt  this  language  in  regard  to  the  other  sins,  which  we 
have  asserted  the  saint  has,  in  these  words,  before  his  eye. 
Desirous  to  maintain  as  far  as  possible  the  same  line  of 
thought  unbroken  before  your  view,  we  recur  to  the  spiritual 
and  supernatural  principle  of  life  implanted  into  the  soul;  to  a 


SIKNETH   NOT.  199 

review  and  amplification  of  its  relations;  to  the  sure  influences 
which  water  it;  and  to  the  parental  care  of  him  who  is  the 
head  of  these  influences. 

We  remark,  in  the  first  place,  That  this  principle  of  life  and 
action,  proved  to  be  implanted  into  the  soul  in  regeneration, 
ever  abides  in  it,  and  is  never  eradicated  from  it.  True  indeed, 
the  fruits  and  eflfects  of  it,  the  exercises  of  the  habit  of  faith, 
love,  and  every  other  grace  of  the  christian,  may  fade,  and  fail  of 
giving  either  examples  to  others,  or  comfort  and  assurance  to 
the  person  himself.  The  phrase  "  sinneth  not,"  does  not  plead 
absolute  exemption  from  iniquity.  But  though  this  be  the 
case,  the  habit  of  grace  in  the  heart  does  not  lose  its  seat,  nor 
the  seed  of  life  the  germinating  quality  of  sending  forth  a 
beautiful  and  fruitful  produce.  The  artificer,  when  he  lies 
down  to  rest,  loses  not  the  knowledge  of  his  art,  nor  the  capa- 
city of  putting  it  in  execution.  Neither  does  the  seed,  though 
during  the  cold  and  inclemency  of  winter  it  lie  dormant,  and 
discover  no  inclination  to  break  the  clod,  fail,  when  the  genial 
season  and  warming  influences  of  the  sun  return,  to  send  forth 
that  verdant  and  flourishing  vegetation  which,  in  the  spring, 
adorns  the  face  of  the  earth.  The  same  is  the  case  with  the 
christian.  Though  he  may  be  so  fatigued  and  overcome,  not 
indeed  with  the  delightful  task  of  making  christian  attainments, 
but  with  the  wrestling  and  war,  which,  with  innumerable  ene- 
mies, he  has  to  maintain,  as  to  desist  from  his  laudable  employ, 
and  to  lay  himself  down  for  a  time  to  take  a  culpable  and  an  ill- 
timed  rest;  though  he  may  be  in  the  winter  of  desertion; 
though  that  enlivening  influence  which  sent  forth  in  its  vigor 
the  growth  of  the  seed  of  life  which  is  in  his  mind,  may  have 
withdrawn  itself,  yet  the  habits  and  principles  of  the  man  are 
not  lost:  on  the  other  hand,  when  the  day  alters,  and  the  lime 
of  the  Lord's  visitation  draweth  nigh,  the  seed  which  seemed 
to  be  dead  is  quickened,  and  the  man  who  had  resigned  him- 
self to  a  forbidden  rest  is  restored  to  his  former  glorious  exer- 
cise.      Thy  dead  men  shall  live,  together  with  my  dead  body 


^0  HE    WHO    IS    BORN    OP    GOD 

shall  they  arise;  awake  and  sing,  ye  that  dwell  in  the  dust;  for 
thy  dew  is  as  the  dew  of  herbs;  and  the  earth  shall  cast  out 
her  dead.  Is  more  proof  of  this  important  point  asked?  Are 
not  the  gifts  and  callings  of  Grod  without  repentance?  Is  it  not 
said,  the  truth  dwelleth  in  us,  and  shall  be  in  us?  And  that 
whosoever  is  born  of  God  cannot  commit  sin,  for  his  seed  re- 
maineth  in  him,  and  he  cannot  sin,  because  he  is  born  of  God  ? 

But  we  observe,  secondly,  that  this  gracious  principle  of  life 
and  action  which  is  implanted  into  the  soul  in  regeneration, 
and  which  always  abides  in  it,  gives  to  the  mind  of  the  chris- 
tian such  a  peculiar  turn  and  disposition,  as  fully  justifies, 
respecting  him,  the  assertion  made  in  our  text.  His  under- 
standing is  truly  and  correctly  enlightened  to  a  considerable 
degree,  in  those  momentous  matters  which  present  themselves 
as  injunctions  or  motives  to  universal  obedience;  and  in  those 
instructive  points  that  are  to  direct  him  both  positively  how  to 
maintain  his  duty,  and  also  how  to  avoid  the  implicated  and 
ensnaring  cases  of  human  life.  He  is  sensible  of  the  authority 
of  God,  and  knows  the  obligations  to  gratitude;  he  sees,  by  the 
penetrating  eye  of  his  faith,  in  their  own  aspects,  the  future 
endearing  objects  that  are  to  meet  obedience ;  and  he  remem- 
bers the  awful  nature  and  threatened  consequences  of  vice. 
He  knows,  too,  the  promises  of  God,  and  how  richly  they  are 
provided  with  every  thing  suitable  to  his  exigencies;  he  is 
acquainted  with  the  ordinances  and  institutions  of  his  worship, 
and  he  cannot  be  forgetful  of  the  need  of  circumspection  to 
escape  the  entanglements  of  a  circumventing  world. 

Having  thus  his  understanding  properly  enlightened,  is  it 
possible  that  he  can  forego  this  genuine  knowledge  of  his,  and 
diJiberately  persevere  in  a  line  of  conduct  which  his  own  mind 
reprobates?  Can  he,  for  instance,  notwithstanding  the  proper 
impressions  he  has  received,  deny  and  contemn  the  authority 
of  God ;  reject  from  his  view  the  most  inviting,  delightful,  and 
invaluable  objects ;  or  live  careless  of  the  known  and  direful 
consequences  of  iniquity? — But  why  do  we  insist  upon  hii 


SINNETH    NOT.  201 

knowledge?  The  active  principles  of  his  mind  are  no  less 
renewed  than  is  his  understanding.  His  affections  sweetly 
and  powerfully  incline  liim,  as  a  dutiful  son,  to  receive  and 
obey  the  equitable  commands  of  his  righteous  Father;  his  de- 
sires prompt  him  to  the  pursuit  of  the  glorious  objects  which 
his  faith  discovers;  and,  as  an  encouragement  to  him,  his  con- 
science intimates  to  him  the  present  pleasures  of  godliness. 
The  saint  is  of  the  same  turn  of  mind  with  his  Saviour,  and 
desires  to  adopt  the  words,  which,  as  uttered  in  prophetic  vision, 
he  used :  "  1  delight  to  do  thy  will,  O  my  God ;  thy  law  is 
within  my  heart." 

Thus,  though  because  his  knowledge  is  not  absolutely  per- 
fect, he  may  take  some  unwary  and  forbidden  steps,  or  because 
he  has  a  law  in  his  members  warring  against  the  law  of  his  mind, ' 
he  may  at  times  yield  to  the  importunities  of  the  former,  when 
he  should  be  going  along  with  the  dictates  of  the  latter,  he  is 
not,  however,  without  grieving  for  his  indiscreet  rashness  in  the 
one  case,  or  his  too  easy  compliance  in  the  other.  He  is  not 
like  the  dog  that  returns  to  his  vomit  again,  or  the  sow  that 
was  washed  to  her  wallowing  in  the  mire.  He  commits  not 
this  sin,  for  which,  as  Peter  insinuates,  there  is  no  forgiveness. 
Neither  does  he,  like  the  dissolute  man,  abandon  himself  to 
work  all  uncleanness  with  greediness.  15ut  he  is  like  a  man 
who  has  some  desirable  object  in  view,  and  whose  inclinations 
go  all  out  after  it;  but  who,  in  the  rough  and  perplexed  places 
tlirough  which  he  has  to  travel,  or  from  the  false  information 
which  envy,  malice,  or  enmity,  may  suggest  to  him,  at  times, 
notwithstanding  all  his  caution  and  circumspection,  deviates 
into  by-paths  that  are  prohibited  and  unlawful  to  be  troddwi, 
but  who,  however,  deeply  laments  over  the  unhappy  situation 
into  which  he  has  fallen,  and  longs  to  be  recovered  to  the  right 
road  again.  Hence  says  the  royal  singer  of  Israel,  mine  iniqui- 
ties have  gone  over  mine  head  as  an  heavy  burden,  they  are 
too  heavy  for  me.  1  have  roared  by  reason  of  the  disquietness 
of  my  heart;  Lord  all  my  desire  is  before  thee,  and  my  groaij^f 


202  HE  WHO  19  BORN  OF  GOI> 

mg  is  not  hid  from  thee;  make  baste  to  help  me,  O  God,  mj 
salvation. 

But  while  we  feel  a  principle  of  life,  and  while  this  principle 
inspires  confidence,  and  prompts,  by  the  light  and  fervor  of  its 
operations,  to  the  adoption  of  the  language  in  our  text^  we  must 
remark,  ray  brethren,  that  this  new  creature  is  not  an  indepen- 
dent existence;  but  the  relation  it  daily  bears  to  its  authory 
and  the  connexion  in  which  it  stands  to  the  exalted  and 
glorious  head  of  the  new  creation  of  the  saints,  have  further 
to  bespeak  the  reasonableness  of  our  confidence.  Which  brings 
us  to  remark, 

Thirdly,  That  it  is  not  to  be  thought  that  the  believer  actuates 
bis  graces  without  the  immediate  agency  of  the  divine  Spirit, 
Man  is  not  more  dependent  upon  God  for  his  preservation  in  na- 
tural being,  or  for  the  physical  support  of  his  powers  in  any 
aetion,  than  is  the  believer  on  the  Holy  Ghost  for  the  exercise  of 
his  graces.  Though  he  may  say  with  Paul*  in  all  his  labors, "  It 
is  no  more  I  that  do  them;  but  grace  that  dwelleth  in  me;'* 
yet  the  Spirit  is  he  to  whom,  as  the  great  supplier  of  Christ's 
piesence,  he  must  add,  "  Without  thee  we  can  do  nothing." 

To  perform  this  the  Holy  Ghost  is  represented  in  scripture 
as-  dwelling  in  the  hearts  of  believers.  "  Know  ye  not  that  ye 
are  the  temple  of  God,  and  that  the  Holy  Ghost  dwelleth  in 
you  except  ye  be  reprobates."  The  Spirit  of  God  is  as  really, 
not  with  regard  to  what  we  have  termed  his  graces  only^^but 
with  regard  to  personal  operation  and  efficiency,  in  the  mind  of 
the  renewed  man,  aa  God  with  regard  to  operation  and  effi- 
ciency pervades  all  his  works.  We  do  not  say  that  the  essence 
of  Deity  is  any  way  more  peculiarly  in  the  saint,  tlian  in  any 
other  thing,  or  any  other  part  of  space.  This  is  infinite,  eter- 
nal, and  unchangeable,  and  can  never  undergo  the  least  altera- 
tion, whatever  eveiits  take  place  among  the  works  of  God 
without  him;  should  their  intrinsic  natures  be  changed, or  their 
qualities  either  for  the  worse  or  for  the  better.  But  we  say 
th^  there  are  peculiar  effects  which  take  place  in  the  mind  of 


SINNETH    NOT.  203 

the  saint,  by  the  Holy  Spirit  residing  in  it,  in  a  peculiar  maii- 
ner,  with  regard  to  power  and  efficiency;  as  a  person  of  the 
Trinity  employed  on  a  particular  work,  in  a  particular  econo- 
mical character. 

Now,  since  the  Holy  Spirit  dwells  in  tlie  saints,  and  since  it 
is  appointed  him  as  his  work,  (for  sanctiiication  is  the  work  of 
the  Spirit.)  to  operate  upon  them,  and  to  lead  forth  their  graces 
into  exercise,  is  it  to  be  supposed  that  he  will  fail  of  performing 
tliis  office?  Are  we  to  suppose  that  the  love  of  God  contem- 
plated salvation,  and  that  Christ  paid  a  full  price  of  redemption 
in  order  that  his  people  might  attain  it^-  but  that  the  Holy 
Ghost  failed  in  the  essential  work  of  sanctifieation^- — that  he 
resigned  some  to  the  sin  unto  death,  and  otliers  to  drink  iniquity 
Jike  waters?  Though  for  wise  ends  he  permits  at  times  the 
■man  in  whom  he  dwells  to  taste  of  iniquity,  yet  surely  he  allows 
not  thus  his  affections  to  be  altogether  alienated,  nor  his  inten- 
tions to  become  thoroughly  perverse .  That  all  the  graces  of 
sanctification  may  be  exercised,  in  the  mystery  of  his  opera- 
tions, he  permits,  at  tunes,  ground  for  the  exercise  of  repen- 
tance. By  this,  under  his  direction,  the  character  of  the 
christian,  while  it  forever  remains  sensible  of  the  necessity  of 
humility  in  its  own  estimation,  is  led  to  be  more  mild  and  gen- 
tle in  the  sight  of  others.  This  is  one  way  in  which  the  Spirit 
brings  good  out  of  evil,  and  makes  all  things  ultimately  to 
conduce  to  make  a  perfect  man  in  Cin-ist.  But  though  the 
Spirit  may  permit  the  christian  to  proceed  thus  far,  he  effica- 
ciously forbids  him  to  proceed  farther,  and  to  falsify  the 
language  contained  in  our  text.  The  renewed  son  of  God  is 
kept  bjr  the  Spirit,  even  in  his  worst  condition,  in  the  same 
state  in  which  the  spouse  of  Christ  was,  when  she  said,  I  sleep, 
but  my  heart  waketh.  Hence  the  true  reason  of  tliat  saying  in 
Isaiah,  "  I  the  Lord  do  keep  it,-  I  will  water  it  every  moment, 
lest  any  hurt  it;  I  will  keep  it  night  and  day."  The  flowers 
in  the  garden  of  Grod  fade,  in  some  seasons  greatly  languish ; 
but  they  never  diGc 


204  HE  WHO  IS  BORX  OF  GOD 

Bat  this  Spirit,  as  dwelling  in  us,  is  the  representative  only 
of  Jesus  Christ,  the  head  of  the  mystical  body  the  church. 
Hence  we  observe, 

Lastly,  That  the  intercession  of  our  great  head,  in  his  glori- 
fied state  in  heaven,  secures  the  realization  of  the  language  in 
our  text;  and  urges,  the  more  that  his  relation  to  us  is  surveyed, 
the  more  earnestly  upon  us  the  repetition  of  it.  To  the  office 
of  our  high  priest,  Jesus,  my  brethren,  was  appointed  by  these 
solemn  words:  "The  Lord  hath  sworn,  and  will  not  repent, 
thou  art  a  priest  for  ever,  after  the  order  of  Melchisedec." 
When  God  thus  addressed  his  Son,  what  immutable  promises, 
in  this  solemn  transaction,  must  have  been  made  by  the  Father 
respecting  them  who  stood  by  representation  in  Christ !  Under 
the  oath  are  surely  comprehended  all  qualifications  for  the  dis- 
charge of  the  mediatorial  office;  all  support  during  its  accom- 
plishment ;  and  all  adequate  rewards  of  his  meritorious  work. 
— When,  then,  Christ  our  head  pleads  thus  qualified,  and  on  tlie 
infinite  merits  too  of  his  satisfaction — satisfaction  estimated  and 
approved,  for  the  reward  that  is  due  to  him :  yea,  when  he  pre- 
sents, in  his  glorified  person,  that  right  which  all  his  followers 
have  to  the  inheritance  he  preoccupies  in  their  name,  must  it 
not  appear,  that  this  language,  and  this  alone,  can  convey  the 
truth :  "  This  is  the  Father's  will  which  hath  sent  me,  that  of  all 
which  he  hath  given  me,  I  should  lose  nothing,  but  should  raise 
it  up  again  at  the  last  day?"  When  God  shall  alter  the  word 
that  hath  gone  out  of  his  mouth ;  when  he  shall  alter  this  to 
his  own  Son ;  when  he  shall  alter  it  to  deny  him  his  reward 
promised  in  eternity ;  promised  with  his  oath ;  promised  as  an 
encouragement  to  him  to  submit  to  his  agony  and  accursed 
death ;  then  may  the  christian  desert  his  confidence,  and  seek 
a  new  key  to  many  passages  of  scripture ;  passages  which  pre- 
sent Jesus  standing  over  us,  and  pouring  into  our  minds  the 
water  of  life  which  issues  from  the  throne  of  God  and  of  the 
Lamb. — Jesus,  thou  Son  of  God,  this  is  thy  language,  and 
it  must  be  fulfilled.     "  Whosoever  drinketh  of  the  water  that  I 


SJ5^NETH  >fOT.  205 

Shall  give  him  shall  never  thirst;  but  the  water  that  1  snail 
give  him,  shall  be  in  him  a  well  of  water  springing  up  into 
everlasting  life,  I  am  confident  that  thou  who  hast  begun  a 
good  work  in  me,  wilt  carry  it  on  unto  the  day  of  perfection.'- 
Yes,  tlte  relation  of  thine  all-prevalent  intercession  to  my 
eternal  welfare:;  the  emotions  I  experience,  not  of  might,  nor 
power,  but  of  thy  Spirit,  taking  of  the  things  that  are  thine, 
and  giving  them  to  me;  the  glorious  views  which  this  grace 
creates,  and  the  affections  which  it  inspires;  the  peraianent 
nature  of  tlie  principle  of  life  and  action  which  the  Spirit 
keeps  for  ever  aliv«  and  growing  in  its  season — all — all  make 
me,  amidst  the  temptations  and  evils  of  this  trying  world, 
though  oppressed  with  weakness,  yet  breathe  this  paraphrase 
on  the  text.  "^  I  am  persuaded  tliat  neither  death,  nor  life, 
nor  angels,  nor  principalities,  nor  powers,  nor  things  pi-esent. 
iior  things  to  come,  nor  height,  nor  depth,  nor  any  other  crea- 
turre,  shall  be  able  to  separate  me  from  the  love  of  God,  whicti 
is  in  Christ  Jesus  my  Lord.'" 

My  brethren,  many  of  you  are  weak;  but  the  subjects 
throughout  ail  nature  swell  not  into  perfection  in  a  moment. 
On  the  other  hand,  they  grow  imperceptibly,  and  arrive  at 
p'erfection  under  the  operation  of  many  elements,  which  m 
their  changes  and  ultimate  settlement  are  never  perceived. 
So  says  the  language  of  scripture  respecting  you :  ^  1  will 
be  as  the  dew  unto  Israel;  he  shall  grow  as  the  corn,  and 
flourish  as  the  vine,  and  cast  forth  his  roots  as  Lebanon," 
— And  is  any  of  you  at  present  mourning?  Hear  these 
words.  "For  a  small  moment  have  I  forsaken  thee;  but  m. 
great  mercies  will  I  gather  thee;  in  a  Kttle  wratli  1  hid 
myself  from  thee  for  a  moment ;  but  with  everlasting  kind- 
nesses will  I  have  mercy  upon  thee;  I  am  the  Lord,  thy 
Redeemer.'^  Yes,  christians,  you  are  the  sons  of  God;  and 
ii  sons,  then  heirs;  heirs  of  God,  and  joint  heirs  with  Jesus 

Christ-— of  heaven  and  of  glory.    Amen^ 

18* 


DISCOURSE  IX* 


THE  SIGNS  OF  THE  TIMES. 


Matthew  16: 3.     Oh,  ye  hypocrites,  ye  can  discern  the  face 
of  the  sky,  but  can  ye  discern  the  signs  of  the  times? 

It  has  been  the  common  topic  of  declamation  amongst 
those  more  zealous  for  the  welfare  of  mankind,  than  they  are 
observant  of  their  principles  and  informed  of  their  history,  that 
their  own  generation  is  the  deepest  sunk  in  depravity.  The 
world,  however,  has  been  on  the  whole  nearly  equally  depraved 
in  every  age;  though  sometimes  it  has  been  more  veiled  by  the 
similitudes  of  virtue  than  on  other  occasions,  Nevef  were 
men  better  pleased  with  themselves,  nor  had  they  ground  to 
be  so,  where  likeness  passed  for  reality,  than  that  generation 
whose  era  was  denominated  the  fulness  of  time,-  and  which 
our  Saviour  addressed  in  these  severe  words :  "  Wo  unto  you 
hypocrites,  for  you  are  like  unto  whited  sepulchres,  which 
appear  beautiful  outwards,  but  within  are  full  of  dead  men's 
bones  and  of  all  uncleanness."  These  Pharisees,  with  whom 
the  Sadducees  at  times  associated  against  our  Saviour,  were 
particularly  careful  to  make  clean  the  outside  of  the  cup  and 
platter,  and  to  maintain,  according  to  the  letter  of  long  esta- 
blished and  venerable  institutions,  the  fairest  characters.  Had 
a  disinclination  to  innovation,  and  a  scrupulous  regard  exter- 
nally to  what  God  had  once  instituted,  been  the  criterion  of 
man's  duty  in  their  days,  little  ground  for  blame  would 
have  been  found  amongst  them. 


THE  SIGNS  OF  THE  TIMES.  207 

But  whilst  the  world,  under  varioils  attempts  to  cover  wick- 
edness, is  nearly  the  same  in  all  ages  in  the  substance  of  her 
character,  the  scheme  of  God's  grace  has  actually  been  advan- 
cing, by  the  operations  of  his  providence,  with  a  steady  and 
frequently  an  imperceptible  pace,  to  its  final  accomplishment. 
From  the  beginning  of  the  world  each  age  has  been  distin- 
guished by  its  own  peculiar  marks.  From  the  obscure  and 
twilight  view  of  it  in  the  first  promise,  it  advanced,  distinctly 
marking  on  the  great  dial  of  time  every  degree,  until  it  arrived 
at  the  fulness  of  it;  and  every  intelligent  and  attentive  observer 
could  be  at  no  loss  to  calculate  the  precise  character  of  his 
own  days,  and  the  relations  they  bore  to  a  hopeful  futurity. 

This  scheme  is  still  opening ;  and  its  particular  character, 
were  it  not  for  the  prevalence  of  a  pharisaical  disposition,  might, 
in  our  own  age,  if  not  accurately  estimated,  admit  of  an  approxi- 
mation. Our  Lord,  we  apprehend,  does  not,  in  these  words  of 
the  preceding  context,  "  When  it  is  evening  ye  say  it  will 
be  fair  weather;  for  the  sky  is  red:  and  in  the  morning,  it 
will  be  foul  weather  to-day;  for  the  sky  is  red  and  lowering," 
purely  have  a  regard  to  the  innocent  observation  of  the  com- 
plexion of  the  heavens,  which,  indeed,  is  at  times  even  the  use- 
ful director  of  the  husbandman.  But  it  is  his  intention  to 
apply  it  to  that  discommendable  disposition  which,  in  the  ad- 
vancing kingdom  of  God's  grace,  would  forget  its  improving 
tendency,  and  consider  it,  in  the  very  midst  of  its  progress,  as 
if  it  had  settled  down  into  that  unvarying  aspect  which  marks 
the  usual  appearances  of  nature. 

The  sky ,  my  brethren,  exhibits  the  same  appearances  in  all 
^ges ;  but  the  times,  in  a  moral  point  of  view,  have  a  varying 
and  an  advancing  stamp  upon  them ;  and  particularly  as  they 
respect  the  great  scheme  of  salvation.  How  many,  in  every 
age,  fall  into  that  reprehensible  state  in  which  our  Saviour  here 
reproves  the  Pharisees !  Many  sincere  and  pious  shepherds  of 
Israel  will  read  the  history  of  the  church,  and  consider  the  signs 
of  other  times;  but  the  criterions  of  their  own,  they  appear,  at 


208  THE  SIGNS  OP  THE  TIMES. 

least,  in  the  sense  in  which  our  text  requires  us  to  consider 
them,  afraid  to  state  in  their  own  colors. 

Our  text  presents  before  us  the  glorious  period  of  the  arrival 
of  the  long  promised  Messiah,  and  calls  us  to  mark  it,  not  so 
much  by  the  signs  of  depravity,  as  by  the  wonderful  develop- 
ment of  the  glorious  means  of  salvation.  Perhaps  a  fear  of 
not  being  severe  enough  on  the  prevalent  sins  of  the  age,  or  a 
tenderness  in  interpreting  too  forwardly  the  great  lines  of  pro- 
vidence that  are  bearing  on  their  wings  the  coming  of  Christ's 
kino-dom,  may  be  assigned  as  part  at  least  of  the  reasons  why 
the  watchmen  upon  the  towers  of  Zion  have  been  more  forward 
to  record  and  proclaim  her  dangers  than  to  hail  her  brightening 
prospects.  Had  we,  however,  lived  in  the  days  of  our  Saviour, 
as  far  as  our  fears  were  influenced  by  Pharisaical  mistakes,  and 
our  tenderness  helped  on  by  our  indifference,  the  language  of 
that  merciful  and  just  one  to  us  would  have  been,  "  0,ye  hypo- 
crites, ye  can  discern  the  face  of  the  sky,  but  can  ye  discern  the 
signs  of  the  times?" 

To  mark  the  signs  of  the  present  times,  in  their  cheering  as- 
pects, would  require  a  judgment  matured  for  drawing  general 
results  from  a  detail  of  particulars  in  the  history  of  past  years, 
and  which  bear  a  comparative  relation  to  the  present  day;  a 
conception  stored  with  all  the  facts  that  are  living  in  the  system 
of  providence,  and  operating  with  much  probability  to  the  ad- 
vancement of  Christ's  kingdom;  and  a  perception  into  the 
departments  of  prophecy  that  will  seize  the  line  of  termination 
to  which  the  progress  of  the  kingdom  of  grace  will  at  last 
arrive.  It  is  comparatively  easy  to  mark  the  face  of  the  clouded 
and  lowering  sky  of  usual  errors  and  common  vices;  to  tell,  as 
has  been  done  of  old,  that  socinian,  arminian,  pelagian,  and 
latitudinarian.  errors,  are  prevailing. — The  draught  of  the  state 
of  the  present  age  which  we  will  attempt  to  offer,  will  be  some 
very  general  and  imperfect  outlines;  from  which  the  attentive 
may  form  some  just  idea  of  the  character  of  his  own  times; 
and  which,  we  hope,  the  better  informed  will  clothe  with  his 


THE  SIGNS  or  THE  TIMES.  209 

own  reflections  and  remarks,  to  approach  as  near  as  possible  to 
what  is  his  incumbent  duty. 

From  the  nature  of  Christ's  kingdom,  we  must  expect  that, 
in  our  age,  very  forward  advances  are  made  to  its  ultimate  per- 
fection. A  tree  that  is  perpetually  growing,  however  imper- 
ceptible its  progress  in  barren  seasons  may  be,  yet,  in  the 
accumulation  of  ages,  exhibits  a  trunk  and  boughs  that  bespeak 
firmness  and  strength,  and  show  the  marks  of  the  long  and 
steady  influences  of  heaven.  The  traveller  who  has  been  long 
on  his  journey,  though  he  may  have  many  an  impassable 
mountain  around  which  to  form  a  vastly  retarding  circuit,  yet  is 
considerably  advanced  towards  the  grand  object  of  it,  although 
at  the  moment  of  reckoning,  his  face,  in  his  winding  way,  may 
be  partly  turned  backwards.  The  river  is  considerably  ad- 
vanced, even  in  one  of  those  great  doublings  which  send  some 
of  the  greatest  rivers  on  our  globe,  at  hundreds  of  miles  from 
their  source,  much  farther  from  the  spot  of  the  earth  where  they 
disembogue  their  waters  into  the  ocean,  than  when  they  started. 
— The  church  has  had  a  stream  of  vast  length  in  our  w^orld ; 
and  by  this  time  it  must  have  gathered  much  strength,  and  be 
considerably  advanced  on  its  course  to  its  highest  attainable 
perfection.  The  vine  which  our  heavenly  Father  hath  planted, 
must  be  supposed  spreading  forth  now  many  a  promising  limb 
of  undoubted  fertility. 

This  church  had  its  origin  in  that  promise  which  secured 
her  privileges  and  foreboded  her  future  prosperity :  "  The  seed 
of  the  woman  shall  bruise  the  head  of  the  serpent.*"  In  after 
ages,  she  kept  a  steady  pace  of  that  mysterious  advancing, 
which,  whilst  her  changes  afforded  occasions  of  laying  the  most 
solid  foundation,  had  evidently  striking  marks  of  a  rapid  pro- 
gress. When  the  world  was  swept  of  its  wicked  inhabitants 
by  the  deluge,  though  the  numbers  of  the  church  were  neces- 
sarily restricted  to  a  very  few,  yet  there  was  a  character,  in  the 
brightness  of  typical  representation,  given  to  the  church,  which, 
in  no  previous  age,  had  she  at  any  time  displayed.     A  cloud 


210  THE  SIGNSOr  TH3S  TIltXES. 

covered  her  countenance  in  Egypt  j  but  whilst  her  character  lay 
in  a  manner  buried  in  that  oppressive  and  idolatrous  empire, 
there  were  the  most  rapid  preparations  making,  under  the  hand 
of  a  mysterious  providence,  for  bringing  her  forth  in  a  far  more 
advanced  stage  of  her  existence,  than  that  in  which  she  had 
ever  before  appeared,  and  of  clothing  her  with  a  brightness, 
fair  as  the  moon,  clear  as  the  sun,  and  terrible  as  an  army  with 
banners.  It  has  been  remarked  by  some  zealous  and  candid 
defenders  of  the  truth,  that  their  ingenious  opponents,  by  the 
edge  of  their  opposition,  did  more  to  lead  to  the  genuine  re- 
sults of  things  than  they  themselves  did^-  and  while  this  was 
far  from  an  encomium  on  their  depravity,  it  may  tend  to  illus- 
trate the  mysterious  ways  in  which  the  church  of  Christ  has 
been  advancing  to  the  highest  possible  perfection  of  her  cha- 
racter, whether  she  has  been  among  the  hands  of  her  enemies 
or  those  of  her  friends.  The  destruction  of  the  temple  of  Jeru- 
salem, and  the  desolation  of  the  land  of  Juda  at  the  Babylonian 
captivity,  were  events  vyhich  equally  reflected  condemnation  on 
the  ambition  of  the  Babylonians,  executed  vengeance  on  the 
guilty  Israelites,  and  advanced  the  interests  ultimately  of  that 
society  around  wliich  the  wheels  of  providence  continually 
play.  An  era  was  now  marked  for  the  commencement  of  the 
glory  of  the  second  temple,  and  for  fixing,  under  arithmetical 
numbers,  the  period  when  the  long  promised  Messiah  was  to 
be  cut  off,  but  not  for  himself;  for  arranging  the  rise  and  fall 
of  empires,  to  introduce  among  their  own  peculiar  circum- 
stances the  last  times  of  the  world;  and  for  summoning  the 
expectation  of  mankind  to  look  for  the  arrival  of  the  desire  of 
all  nations.  The  appearance  of  Christ  himself  was  at  a  period 
when  great  darkness  seemed  to  cover  the  church ;  but  this  was 
nothing  more  than  another  of  those  mysterious  steps,  which, 
while  man's  wickedness  appeared  enormous,  was  to  mark  the 
steady  development  of  God's  well  ordered  covenant  of  grace; 
and  hence,  by  the  adjustment  of  the  previous  courses,  and  this 
rich  flow,  the  river  of  life  now  stretched  over  its  former  banks, 


THE  SIGXS  OP  THE  TIMES.  211 

and  blessed  the  fields  of  the  gentiles,  as  well  as  those  of  the 
Jews.  Happy  indeed  was  the  state  of  a  great  part  of  the  world 
in  consequence  of  this  great  and  mysterious  event;  an  event 
which  destroyed  the  wall  of  partition  between  Jew  and  gentile; 
an  event  which  gave  birth  to  the  most  striking  miracles  in 
confirmation  of  the  true  religion ;  an  event  which  interpreted 
the  great  chain  of  prophecy;  and  an  event  which  led  to  an 
immediate  effusion  of  the  Spirit  hitherto  unknown. 

Many  have  indeed  supposed,  that  in  the  dark  ages  of  popery 
which  succeeded  the  primitive  and  pure  times  of  the  New 
Testament  dispensation,  the  progressive  scheme  of  salvation 
received  a  wonderful  check. — That  it  was  then  workingr  its 
way  under  a  cloud,  raised  too  in  the  most  discommendable 
manner,  by  its  professed  friends,  cannot  be  denied.  Yea,  the 
mystery  of  iniquity  was  then  in  the  power  of  its  operations. 
But  to  conclude  from  these  appearances  that  there  really  was  a 
retardation  of  the  operation  of  causes,  which,  on  the  whole, 
were  best  calculated  to  subserve  the  ultimate  designs  of  the 
church,  and  which,  though  concealed  in  mystery  from  the  eye 
of  humanity  at  the  time,  were  clearing  their  way  to  break  forth, 
like  a  powerful  torrent  that  has  been  obstructed  in  its  course, 
into  immediately  happy  effects,  would  be  no  less  rash  and  un- 
advised, than  injurious  to  infinite  wisdom,  and  unobservant  of 
its  results.  Was  it  not  the  occasion  of  the  awful  degeneracy 
of  the  church  of  Rome  that  the  Spirit  of  God  made  the  motive 
of  determined  opposition  to  her  on  purely  scriptural  principles 
only  ?  And  will  not  the  corruptions  of  the  mother  of  harlots 
be  beacons  which,  on  many  critical  points,  will  have  settled,  to 
every  future  age,  the  safe  course  which  inquiring  men  are  to 
take? 

But  to  ascertain  the  character  of  our  times,  it  is  not  sufKcient 
to  consult  the  history  of  the  churc?i,  and  to  show  how  God  has 
uniformly  brought  good  out  of  evil — making  all  things  to  work 
together  for  her  advantage;  we  must  contemplate  the  actual 
victories  which  she  has  obtained.     "VVIien  there  is  a  powerful 


212  THE  SIGNS  OF  THE  TIMES. 

resource  of  new  armies  which  may  be  still  brought  forward 
with  some  hopes  of  success,  the  state  of  any  cause  is  yet  far 
from  the  enjoyment  of  perfect  tranquillity.  The  armies  of 
errors,  to  be  sure,  that  could  at  any  time  be  mustered  against 
the  truths  of  the  gospel,  were  feeble  compared  to  the  divine 
omnipotence  of  these  truths;  but  where  men  are  engaged  in 
the  contest,  to  produce  victory,  it  is  usually  necessary  that  a 
conspicuous  display  of  principle  be  actually  made. 

Many  an  advocate,  my  brethren,  has  pleaded  with  tenacity 
and  zeal  that  either  the  whole  gospel,  or  some  of  its  radical 
tenets,  should  be  given  up;  and  the  way  in  which  the  sovereign 
providence  of  God  has  been  permitting  these  errors  to  be  mar- 
shalled against  the  truth,  and  has  always  been  overturning 
them,  together  with  a  statement  of  an  approximation  to  the 
condition  of  the  controversy  at  present,  must  be  brought  for- 
ward, to  discern  in  any  accurate  view  the  particular  signs  of 
our  own  times. 

The  gospel,  my  brethren,  has  completely  sapped  the  founda- 
tions of  the  pagan  temples;  and  no  man,  who  is  in  the  least  ac- 
acquainted  with  the  principles  of  the  religion  of  Christ,  will  now 
venture  the  reputation  of  his  understanding,  by  attempting  to 
prove  any  system  of  ancient  or  modern  heathen  worship  equal  to 
that  of  Jesus. — A  system,  however,  which  boasts  that  it  could 
procure  the  glory  of  the  victory  which  the  gospel  itself,  and  that 
alone,  did  obtain  over  the  polytheism  of  the  heathens,  but  which 
would  rob  the  gospel  of  this  honor,  and  then  dismiss  it  as  un- 
worthy of  the  wisdom  of  the  human  intellect,  was  made,  not 
long  ago,  to  dispute  the  field  with  our  holy  religion.  The 
evidence  of  our  religion  is  of  itself  divine,  and  of  itself  it  pro- 
duces the  highest  moral  certainty .  In  this  state  of  it,  Christ 
and  his  apostles  left  the  world  possessed  of  the  greatest  treasure 
it  could  receive.  But  there  was  still  a  possibility  that  wicked 
minds  would  exert  their  ingenuity  to  enlist  plausible  pretences, 
founded  in  sophistry  or  the  varying  manners  of  mankind,  to 
combat  the  sovereign  truths  of  the  gospel.     Accordingly  evexy 


THE  SIGKS  OF  THE  TIMES.  213 

age  has  had  its  free-thinkers  and  its  opposers  of  revelation; 
and  particularly  since  the  happy    period  of  the  reformation. 
In  opposition  to  these  Deists,  however,  men  of  genuine  abili- 
ties and   patient  investigation  have,  by  providence,  been  uni- 
formly raised  up;  so  that,  in  our  day,  demonstration  is  almost 
joined  to  moral  certainty  in  support  of  the  religion  of  Christ  ; 
and  so  feeble  have  their  suppositions  and  surmises  become 
among  their  hands,  that  these  opposers  of  revelation  scarce 
ever  now  openly  and  boldly  take  the  field.     Above  all  others 
does  the  following  circumstance  afford   an  evidence,  that  the 
most  profound  schemes  of  its  enemies  tend  only  to  advance  the 
reputation  of  Christianity.     A  number  of  men  of  great   and 
distinguished  talents  united  their  activity  to  their  cunning, 
and  their  reputation  as  men  of  letters  to  the  impudency  of 
their  promises  of  success,  and  flattered   themselves  tliat  they 
were  now  much  more  powerful  than  the  first  propagators  of 
Christianity,   and  it  was  detennined  thai   they  should  subvert 
the  whole  of  our  religion!     They  were  enthusiasts  in  the  be- 
lief of  the  truth  of  their  philosophical  systems,  and  they  bound 
themselves  by  the  most  solemn  oaths,  that  they  should  efface 
the  object  of  their  dislike  from  the  earth;  but  the  fabric  of  our 
religion  was  too  powerful  to  be  shaken.     Their  complete  fail- 
ure, and  their  utter  denial  of  their  principles  when  exposed  to 
trial  on  account  of  them,  only  add  new  evidence  to  it,  by  the 
contrast  which  their  pusillanimity  bears  to  the  undaunted  car- 
riage of  the  apostles,  and  by  the  utter  abortion  of  their  deep- 
est and  best  laid  schemes.     Many  had  before  talked  of  their 
enmity  to  Christianity ;  but  till  the  time  referred  to,  there  never 
was  an  actual  practical  attempt  most  seriously  made  to  imi- 
tate by  co-operating  powers,  the  propagators  of  our  religion 
with  a  view  to  destroy  it.     This  evidence  in  its  favor  in  the 
awful  light  of  contrast,  God,  however,  did  at  last  permit;  and 
this  where  the  most  powerful  geniuses  of  human  nature  were 
united,  and  where  circumstances,  as  it  was  supposed,  flattered 
still  more  the  hopes  of  success.     Hence  while  philosophy  Wus 
19 


214-  THE  SIGNS  OP  THE  TIBIES, 

purifying  unintentionally  the  doctrine  of  miracles,  by  showing 
the  unifcrmitY  of  the  laws  of  naturej  and  consequently  the  im- 
possibility cf  an  agent  inferior  to  the  great  creator  altering 
them :  and  while  she  was  separating  testimony  to  the  dignity 
of  keeping  the  great  post  office  of  all  past  ages,  and  showing  us 
that  experience  is  a  little  runner  among  the  lanes  of  our  own 
observation  and  experiments  only;  v/e  see,  that  the  proud  and 
bitterest  enmity  of  her  most  gigantic  opponents  h  made  to  con- 
tribute Its  share  to  the  overflowing  stream  of  evidence,  enrich- 
ed from  so  many  sources,  in  favor  of  our  holy  religion. 

The  same  holds  good  with  respect   to  those  malicious  at- 
tempts that  have  been  made  against  parts  of  our  holy  religion 
by  men  who  are  otherwise  its  professed  friends,.    Arianism  had 
once  a  general  currency  of  which  the  christian  world  at  large 
have  not  now  even  an  historical   acquaintance;  but  they  have 
been  pursued  out  of  every  lurking  place  of  false  criticism,  and 
for  shame  they  will  be  afraid  ever  afterwards  to  show  such  a 
barefaced  audacity.     Socinianism  has  been  followed  so  hotly, 
and  plied  with  such  steeled  weapons,  that  it  has  been  driven  to 
make  so  many  scriptural  criticisms,  and  all  almost  equally 
unsatisfactory  to  itself,  it  appears  now  to  plead  the  basis  of 
philosophy  only;  and  to  own  that  perfect  inconsistence  between 
a  belief  of  revelation  on  the  whole,  and  a  denial  of  it  by  detail, 
that  wiir  lead  its  professors  to  deliver  up  their  churches  to  the 
moles  and  to  the  bats:  for,  in  fact,  a  consciencious  preaching 
of  the  gospel,  and  a  keeping  of  the  Sabbath  day,  may  be  ob- 
serv^ed  while  th^y  are  stimulated  and  kept  warm  by  controvert- 
sial  zeal ;  but  when  this  cools  off,  all  that  seems  to  be  gained 
by  the  sounds  of  words  which  in  themselves  always  seem  more 
favorable  to  an  opposite  creed  than  to  their  own,  cannot,  in 
these  days  of  common  sense  m  philosophy,  long  please  their 
continually  increasing  philosophical  taste.     Arminianism,  ac^ 
knov;ledging  the  great  principles  of  revelation,  and  supporting 
itself  by  allowing  of  a  part  of  each  topic  for  the  whole,  requires 
a  greater  acumen  of  distinction  and  nicety  of  investigatiojQ 


THE  SIGNS  OP  THE  TIMES.  215 

than  almost  any  other  controversy;  and  while  it  has  many 
abettors  all  must  own  that  much  is  done  in  our  day  to  settle 
this  controversy,  above  what  was  before  the  public  some  cen- 
turies ago.  Yes,  my  brethren,  it  may  not  be  observed  by  the 
careless  who  look  at  their  immediate  neighbors  in  their  own 
day  only;  but  it  is  a  glorious  and  a  momentous  truth,  that  the 
society  of  the  church,  which  was  weak  at  first  and  is  advancing 
to  perfection,  has  a  steady  and  progressive  increase;  an  in- 
crease precisely  such  as  her  character  would  require— remov- 
mg  every  error  that  can  spring  up,  that  at  last  she  may  sit 
down,  on  the  glorious  seat  of  her  most  eminent  attamment,  as 
that  sword  of  the  Spirit,  which  has  slain  every  enemy,  and  is  to 
possess  the  brightness  of  tlie  glory  of  the  last  days  amongst 
intelligent  beings,  by  giving  them  the  pure  results  of  truth 
tried  on  every  possible  touchstone,  and  universally  found  gen- 
uine. It  is  astonishing  that  so  many  please  their  indolence 
and  want  of  reflection,  by  considering  every  opposition  to  the 
gospel  as  a  means  of  postponing  the  most  glorious  state  of  the 
church,  and  expect  that  this  state  is  just  to  arrive  as  a  great 
and  dictating  prince  among  men.  No,  all  things  that  we  see 
and  hear,  however  wicked  many  of  them  are  from  men,  are  yet 
preparations,  from  her  own  wise  and  mysterious  economy,  for 
the  last  and  most  glorious  days  of  the  church:— the  thunders 
of  her  enemies  tend  only  to  purify  her  atmosphere  that  the  day 
may  afterwards  shine  more  brightly. 

But  to  obtain  the  object  of  our  research,  we  must  add  to 
these  promises  from  her  character  and  history,  and  these  evi- 
dences from  the  removal  of  all  rubbish  that  would  weaken  or 
conceal  her  foundations,  a  slight  review  of  the  present  relations 
of  the  church.— At  the  Reformation  the  doctrine  of  the  scripture 
was  most  clearly  stated,  and  the  means  of  the  salvation  of  the 
soul  presented  in  their  unadulterated  purity.  But  the  econo- 
my of  grace  advances  gradually,  and  at  that  time,  whilst  the 
mdividuai  possessed  ail  that  he  could  wish  for  his  edification 
and  comfort,  there  were  most  heavy  burdens  that  were  oppress- 


216  THE  SIGNS  OF  THE  TIMES, 

ing  and  bearing  down  the  facility  of  the  progress  of  the  church 
to  her  last  and  most  perfect  state  on  earth.  There  is  a  great 
difference  between  the  privileges  of  church  members,  and  that 
pregnant  crisis  of  circumstances  which  is  to  produce  the  most 
distinguished  events  in  behalf  of  Zion.  The  progress  of  the 
economy  of  salvation  is  from  the  beginning  to  the  end  of  time, 
and  in  the  mystery  of  providence,  God  sometimes  makes  the 
greatest  dearth  of  spiritual  provisions  to  the  individual,  the 
most  fertile  source  of  operation  to  push  forward  the  progress 
of  the  society  to  which  he  belongs. 
A  powerful  principle  on  which  to  predicate  the  dissemina- 
■*  tion  of  christian  knowledge  and  privilege  in  our  day,  and  which 
had  not  come  into  operation  in  the  first  periods  of  the  reforma- 
tion clearly  among  the  reformers  themselves,  and  not  at  all 
among  their  opponents,  is  a  recognition  of  the  rights  of  con- 
science. The  manner  in  which  this  seems  now  to  be  adopted, 
and  the  endeavors  that  are  made  to  interweave  it  with  the  very 
manners  of  the  people,  augur  prosperously  for  the  interests  of 
religion  far  above  what  the  unreflecting  are  apt  to  imagine,  and 
deserves  particularly  to  be  considered  as  a  striking  sign  of  our 
times.  This  principle  never  before  was  embraced  by  the  ene- 
mies of  the  reformation,  and  when  many  of  its  principles  were 
actually  living  among  them  to  aid  the  purification  of  their  for- 
mer corruptions.  But  the  providence  of  God  seems  now  to  put 
into  the  heart  of  every  one  some  degree  of  the  benevolence  and 
philanthropy  of  this  principle,  and  to  open  a  door  at  which  the 
righteous  may  enter.  The  way  in  which  God  hath  in  many  pla- 
ces of  the  world  established  it,  is  truly  wonderful ;  this  bright 
sun  of  the  most  hopeful  encouragement  to  the  prosperity  of  the 
religious  world  having  arisen  out  of  indiSerence  to  all  religion. 
But  his  wisdom  chose  this  state  of  the  manners  of  mankind, 
that  the  benign  light  itself  might  first  break  forth  unimpeded 
by  opposition ;  and  then  the  seeds  of  the  truth  would  grow  up 
under  the  open  and  propitious  day.  Truth  has  a  peculiar  and 
a  commanding  character,  and  when  a  free  inquiry  after  it  is 


TUB  SIGNS  OF  THE  TIMES.  ^17 

pennitted,  though  some  may  wander  from  its  path  by  the  vani- 
ty and  waywardness  of  their  minds,  yet,  through  the  divine 
blessing,  the  multitude  are  disposed  tt)  receive  it^ — and  how 
hopeful  nov7  is  the  prospect,  in  those  regions  of  tlie  globe, 
where  the  inquisition  and  implacable  persecution  suppressed 
once  the  most  promising  buds  of  the  reformation !     To  be 
sure,  in  several  parts  of  the  continent  of  Europe  where  even 
tyrannical  and  persecuting  courts   themselves  thought  that 
they   had   exterminated   the  seeds   of  the    refonnation   en 
tirely,  there  were  thousands  who  met  in  the  darkness  of  the 
night  to  worship,  under  the  sweets  of  an  approving  conscipnce, 
the  one  God   by  the  one  Mediator  between  God  and  jnen. 
This  was  a  plant  which  Jehovah  was  covering  in  the  ItoIRjw  of 
his  hand,  till  the  day  of  liberty  should  arrive;  and  hence  the 
multitudes  of  protestants  who  are  now  found,  daily  increasing. 
m  those  countries,  where,  a  few  years  ago,  it  was  believed  tiiai 
superstition  universally  reigned.     When  the  arm  of  man  is 
long  stretched,  its  tension  naturally  begins   to  relax  and  its 
grasp  to  become  feeble,  if  there  b^  little  to  rewai'd  by  the 
gratification  of  passion;  and  hence  the  inquisition  was  m  a 
great  measure  of  itself  failing  to  operate  before  it  received  any 
formal  an-d  legal  check;  but  what  an  alteration  m  tli«  pros- 
pects of  the  reformed  world  have  we  now  by  the  revolutions, 
which,  by  the  mysterious  hand  of  God,  have  taken  piace 
throughout  the  extent  of  our  continent!     Previous  to  tfeese 
revolutions  the  diabolical  spirit  of  the  inquisition  througit- 
out  those  extensive  regions  was  indeed  dying  away;  and 
books  by  some  of  the  natives  were  written  with  impunity 
against  it;  but  now  it  appears  consigned  to  oblivion  and  free 
inquiry  after  truth  invited  to  assume  its  place.     This  inquiry 
in  many  parti  prevails,  and  we  must  hope  that  its  results,  m 
many  instances,  will  be  highly  favorable  to  the  pure  re!ig4on 
of  Christ. 

The  forms  of  religion,  ray  bretferwi,  which  have  obtii4ied 
among  men  have  been  either  vast  fkbrics  of  superstitioii,  or 
19* 


218  THB  SIGNS  oy  THB  TIMES, 

bodies  clothed  with  some  of  the  more  refined  coverings  of  it; 
and  all  nations,  fond  to  protect  what  they  enjoyed,  have  con- 
ferred dignity  on  certain  tenets  by  a  national  establishment 
of  them,  and  have  thus  given  them,  among  the  people  at  large, 
an  adventitious  aspect,  as  privileges  which  the  fathers  confer 
upon  their  children.  People  who  are  so  eager  to  bequeath,  un- 
der the  sanction  of  law,  their  earthly  possessions  to  their  off- 
spring, think,  under  the  influence  of  their  religious  feelings, 
that  they  cannot  consult  their  affections  for  future  generations, 
without,  under  the  laws  which  possess  physical  force  in  their 
execution,  transferring  also  their  tenets  of  religion  to  them; 
and  hence  those  establishments. 

The  christian  religion  asks  not,  however,  this  aid;  and  is  dis- 
tinguished from  all  others,  by  its  being  the  only  system  that 
ever  ventured  into  a  nation  with  the  scrip  and  sandal  only  to 
adventure  its  hopes.  If  it  be  divine,  this  was  noble,  and  a 
fair  method  of  making,  on  such  a  momentous  inquiry  as  the 
means  of  preparation  for  the  eternal  world,  proposals  to  the 
sons  of  men.  Every  man  has  to  learn  for  himself,  and  to  de- 
cide, as  in  the  presence  of  God,  on  that  to  which  his  con- 
science is  to  submit,  and  the  christian  religion  being  divine, 
assumes,  in  the  last  and  most  perfect  dispensation,  an  emin- 
ence of  fair  and  spiritual  teaching  which  sanctifies  and  separ- 
ates it,  like  the  temple  of  Jerusalem,  from  all  which  would 
aspire  afler  the  name  of  religion.  It  is  mighty  to  the  pulling 
down  of  strong  holds;  but  the  weapons  of  its  warfare  are  not 
carnal  but  spiritual. 

Ever,  my  brethren,  since  the  period  of  the  reformation  this 
primitive  principle  of  Christianity,  which  makes  God  alone, 
the  Lord  of  the  conscience,  has  been  working  keenly  after  an 
ascendency  among  men ;  but  these  after  days,  on  which  provi- 
dence has  bestowed  so  many  favors,  have  the  pre-eminent 
honor  of  loosing  from  the  shackles  of  confinement  the  hea- 
venly o^spring.  The  recognition  of  the  rights  of  conscience 
so  extensively  in  several  porta  of  the  civilized  world,  is  not 


!rHE  SIGNS  OF  THE  TIMES.  219 

an  attainment  of  speculative  inquiry ;  but  the  result  of  the  neces- 
sary progress  of  human  improvement,  under  that  rapid  current, 
which,  for  a  century  and  a  half,  in  science,  arts,  and  govern, 
ment,  has  taken  place.  Nor  .will  it  be  overthrown  or  weaken- 
ed,  as  speculative  opinions  receiv-e  currency  for  a  time,  and  are 
afterwards  altered  or  abandoned.  The  right  of  conscience,  in 
modern  christian  society,  is  like  Newton's  discovery,  of  the 
principle  of  gravitation ;  which  by  honesty  and  ingenuity  waa 
opposed  for  a  time,  but  which  was  afterwards  universally 
adopted  to  account  for  all  the  harmonious  movements  in  the 
universe.  The  rights  of  conscience,  from  the  supposed  dignity 
of  ancient  systems,  will,  in  different  parts  of  the  world,  meet 
with  obstacles  various  and  powerful,-  but  the  voice  of  the  im- 
provements of  mankind  in  every  sense  in  which  they  can  be 
considered,  is,  that  they  are  an  element  which,  accompanying 
originally  the  infant  progress  of  Christianity,  now,  when  she 
verges  towards  her  ultimate  perfection,  cannot  but  appear  as  a 
leader  and  divine  vindicator  of  the  progressive  improvement  of 
the  human  race. 

Every  nation  indeed  in  modern  times,  when  they  established 
what  they  believed  to  be  the  true  religion,  professed  also  to 
establish  the  rights  of  conscience;  but  their  definition  of  these 
rights  accords  ill  with  the  free  air  of  primitive  Christianity,  which 
boasted  of  living  peaceably  with  every  kind  of  idolatry  that 
might  be  without;  and,  before  the  present  progress  of  human 
society,  these  views  seem  sophistical,  and  the  practice  of  them, 
in  every  protestant  nation,  is  almost  entirely  set  aside. 

There  is  a  holy  guile  in  the  rights  of  conscience ;  for  while 
beloved  establishments  of  false  religions  would  never  surrender 
tlieir  fortifications  to  a  direct  attack,  the  claims  and  arguments 
of  these  rights,  finding  no  fault  with  existing  errors,  obtain  the 
free  discussion  of  every  important  principle;  and  in  a  little 
truth  alone  is  found  to  stand  the  severe  trial  to  which  every 
topic  is  subjected ;  and  ever  afterwards  what  has  been  found  to 
triamph  on  the  fair  field  of  inquiry  stands  erect  and  immove- 


220  tTIE  SIGNS  OF  THE  TIMES. 

able.  The  principle  of  the  rights  of  conscience  will  sap  the 
foundations  of  popery;  will  overthrow  the  fabric  of  mahome^ 
tanism;  and  will  level  with  the  dust  the  altars  yet  remaining  of 
heatlien  idolatry.  These  things  are  certain ;  else  the  current  of 
human  improvement  must  forever  run  in  a  narrow  channel,  or 
its  streams  must  be  absorbed  in  a  desert  which  neither  our  phi- 
losophy nor  religion  can  believe  to  be  before  us. 

But  not  only  are  the  rights  of  conscience  in  the  most  influ> 
ential  parts  of  the  world  now  recognized ;  the  rights  of  man 
appear  to  be  beginning  to  be  universally  respected.  While  one 
part  of  men  professing  the  true  religion,  continue  to  plunder 
the  other  of  the  most  valuable  of  the  blessings  of  heaven, 
liberty  and  all  its  train  of  indescribable  advantages,  it  may 
well  be  said,  that  it  is  impossible  for  the  former  to  make  many 
religious  proselytes  among  the  latter.  It  is  a  deduction  from 
the  most  simple  principles  of  our  nature,  that  that  religion 
cannot  be  from  God  which  destroys  man.  But  of  late  years 
wonderful  are  the  efforts  of  providence  to  put  a  final  and  an 
universal  termination  to  the  iniquitous  traffic  in  human  kind, 
and  to  remove  one  great  obstacle  to  the  general  spread  of  the 
gospel.  Effectually  to  accomplish  the  grand  object,  it  would 
be  necessary  that  providence  put  into  the  heart  of  some  great 
power,  able  to  accomplish  the  design,  the  determination  that 
emancipation  shall  be  effected.  This  has  been  done.  With 
more  spirit  and  with  more  unanimity  than  is  usual  in  that  great 
body,  has  the  Parliament  of  Britain  decreed,  "  that  to  traffic 
in  human  flesh  is  contrary  to  the  law  of  nature  and  nations, 
and  that  slave  vessels,  to  whatever  nation  Ihey  may  belong,  or 
in  whatever  latitudes  of  the  ocean  they  may  be  found,  shall  be 
captured  as  pirates  and  treated  accordingly."  This  law  and 
others  of  a  similar  nature,  which  in  that  and  other  nations  have 
since  the  passing  of  it  followed,  are  in  the  true  spirit  of  out 
reliction,  and  will  still  lead  to  further  enactments — all  of  which 
measures  will  excite  an  inquiry  among  the  formerly  oppressed, 
and  bereave  them  of  every  antipathy  to  that  religion  which  has 


THE  SIGNS  OP  THE  TIMES.  221 

effected  such  an  universal  change  in  behalf  of  oppressed  huma- 
nity. The  results  of  these  regulations  will  necessarily  operate, 
together  with  other  circumstances,  to  stimulate  prudence  to 
provide,  by  some  means  or  other,  for  those  who  are  already 
domesticated  in  bondage.  When  the  light  of  the  sun,  as 
Isaiah  says,  becomes  seven-fold,  and  the  glory  of  the  Lord 
appears  to  all  nations,  not  only  will  the  images  of  superstition 
be  melted  down,  but  the  chains  of  the  oppressed  will  be  dis- 
solved. 

But  the  horizon  of  the  present  age  is  brightened  by  other 
views  than  these  we  have  presented  before  you.  To  the  recog- 
nition of  the  rights  of  conscience  and  the  rights  of  men,  there 
are  in  our  day  made  the  most  particular  active  exertions  to  dis- 
seminate the  gospel.  Providence,  for  some  centuries  past,  has 
been  insensibly,  by  the  ambition  of  princes  and  the  interest  of 
the  commercial  world,  making  the  whole  regions  of  the  globe 
subject  to  the  knowledge,  and  in  some  respects  familiar  to  the 
manners,  of  christian  European  nations  and  our  own.  This 
was  an  admirably  preparatory  and  singular  step,  far  preferable 
to  all  the  ignorant  crusades  of  men;  though  of  itself  it  might 
have  been  too  feeble  to  attain  the  grand  object  of  ultimately 
making  the  kingdoms  of  this  world  the  kingdoms  of  our  Lord 
and  of  his  Christ.  Hence,  at  the  proper  crisis,  when  manners 
were  becoming  somewhat  common  between  us  and  these  once 
entire  strangers,  and  when  a  commanding  commercial  inter- 
course might  have  threatened  to  decline,  God  put  it  into  the 
heart  of  men  to  prepare  a  translation  of  his  holy  word  into  its 
vernacular  language,  and  to  have  it  left  as  a  legacy  with  every 
tribe  and  nation  almost  on  the  face  of  the  earth.  There  may 
be  some  things  respecting  these  bible  societies  we  would  desire 
altered;  but  certainly  when  we  consider  their  assiduity  and 
their  success  in  making  translations,  the  light  which  their  en- 
deavors throw  on  the  christian  world's  prospects ,  and  the  ends 
to  which  God  will  ultimately  make  their  endeavors  subservient, 
compel  us  to  record  such  peculiar  traits  of  them,  as  a  striking 


222  THE  SIGNS  OF  THE  TIMES. 

feature  of  the  christian  world  in  our  days.  Long  has  the 
church  prayed  for  the  knowledge  of  the  Lord  covering  the 
earth  as  the  waters  do  the  sea ;  and  these  means  appear  in  some 
respects  to  grasp  at  the  whole  of  the  great  circle  which  the 
faithful  predictions  of  Code's  word  have  described.  Many  ages 
may  elapse  before  the  plants  which  are  thus  sent  abroad  into 
all  parts  of  the  earth  grow  up  unto  perfection ;  but  as  the  book 
of  the  law  found  among  the  Israelites,  produced,  after  a  long 
oblivion,  a  wonderful  revival  of  religion ;  and  as  the  scriptures 
presented  among  the  papists,  but  almost  forgotten  in  the  dark 
ages,  gave  birth  to  the  reformation;  so  may  the  holy  word  of 
God  ornament,  for  many  days,  a  library,  as  a  monument  of 
curiosity  only,  and  then  afterwards,  by  the  blessing  of  God,  be 
turned  into  its  native  utility.  Yea,  we  may  verily  believe  that 
these  scriptures  will  make  some  converts  wherever  they  are 
sent,  and  these  living,  as  the  first  fruits  in  all  lands,  will  secure 
the  ensuing  harvest. 

But  another  sign  of  our  times,  favorable  to  the  interests  of 
religion,  is  the  introduction  and  the  establishment  among  men 
of  the  proper  method  of  philosophising.  In  almost  all  ages  of 
the  world  theory  has  prevailed,  and  that  knowledge  which  is 
founded  in  facts  was  disregarded.  In  all  the  sciences,  how- 
ever, it  is  the  method  of  reasoning  from  facts  that  is  now 
established.  No  inquirer  after  truth  in  any  department  of 
knowledge  considers  theory  as  a  sure  foundation  on  which  to 
rest;  and  till  he  is  satisfied,  nature  herself  must  be  interrogated, 
and  her  voice  distinctly  marked,  in  instances  of  proof  which 
are  permanent  as  the  laws  of  the  universe. 

This  general  method  of  inquiry  is  highly  favorable  to  Chris- 
tianity ;  for  all  its  evidence  resolves  itself  into  facts,  and  all  its 
doctrines  refer  through  enlightened  and  candid  criticism  to  the 
authority  of  its  inspiration.  Some  men,  indeed,  have  imagined 
that  the  facts  which  form  the  external  evidences  of  Christianity 
are  not  the  pillars  on  which  our  belief  of  its  truth  is  to  rest, 
but  weapons  which  are  put  into  our  hand  to  overthrow  its 


THE  SIGNS  OF  THE  TIMES.  223 

enemies.  But  we  are  rational  beings,  and  it  is  in  this  character 
only  that  God  deals  with  usj  and  the  external  evidences  of 
revelation  are  as  much  arrangements  of  divine  wisdom  ftjr  the 
attainment  of  a  particular  end,  as  the  supernatural  system  of 
divine  truth  itself  is  an  arrangement  of  it  for  the  accomplish- 
ment of  its  important  designs.  The  rational  evidences  of 
Christianity  are  as  really  divine,  viewed  as  they  ought,  as 
the  scriptures  themselves  are.  They  are  not  accidental  traits 
or  vague  traditions,  but  marks  placed  by  the  great  Architect  in 
the  very  building  itself,  or  growing  out  of  it,  in  such  a  manner 
as  to  be  inseparable  from  ii;  and  they  have  as  evident  charac- 
ters of  divinity  upon  them  as  any  of  the  works  of  God;  and 
this  too  in  relation  to  the  very  end  for  which  they  were  intend- 
ed. We  might,  in  reference  to  our  belief  of  a  Creator,  equally 
exclude  the  wisdom  and  signatures  of  power  in  the  universe 
from  having  any  legitimate  influence  in  regulating  our  faith  on 
this  point,  as  we  can  exclude  the  wisdom  of  prophecy  and  the 
omnipotence  of  the  miracles  wrought  in  confirmation  of  out 
holy  religion,  from  having  any  just  influence  in  producing  our 
assent  to  its  truth. 

There  are  on  which  to  depend,  the  fact  of  its  obvious  supe- 
riority to  all  others ;  the  fact  of  many  prophecies  contained  tn 
it,  and  many  of  these  undoubtedly  fulfilled ;  and  the  fact  of 
miracles.  The  passage  of  the  Red  Sea,  and  the  manna  enjoyed 
for  forty  years,  are  evidences  of  God's  presence  and  operation  j 
an  account  of  whicli,  we  may  remark,  we  have  in  the  very  midst 
of  the  laws  which  regulated  the  politics  and  justice  of  a  nation 
that  was  singularly  separated  from  all  others,  and  which  had 
used  the  same  laws  ever  since  that  very  age  which  witnessed 
these  miracles,  and  which  could  not  therefore  be  mistaken  re- 
specting them. — The  miracles  of  Christ,  too,  and  of  his  apostles, 
are  extraordinary  facts  which  were  not  denied  in  the  age  in 
which  they  took  place,  and  in  respect  to  which  the  first  propa- 
gators  of  our  holy  religion  could  not  be  mistaken — they  were 


224  THE  SIGNS  OF  THE  TIMES. 

facts  for  which  we  have  more  testimony,  and  this  better  tried, 
than  respecting  any  thing  else  found  in  history. 

In  a  word,  my  brethren,  there  is  in  the  back  ground  of  the 
cheering  picture  of  our  times  the  images  of  decay  which  repre- 
sent all  false  systems  of  religion,  and  onwards  to  which  these 
powerful  principles  which  we  have  presented  are  moving,  effec- 
tually to  overturn  them.  The  knowledge  of  the  Lord,  it  is 
said,  shall  cover  the  earth  as  the  waters  do  the  bed  of  the 
ocean.  Tlie  waters  of  the  sea  roll  irresistibly ;  so  the  advancing 
progress  of  the  church,  and  the  improvements  of  human  society, 
in  the  arts  of  government,  in  science,  and  in  civilization,  will 
roll  on,  refluent  only  in  some  parts,  and  for  a  little  time,  under 
a  powerfully  adverse  wind ;  but  at  last  they  will  overpower  all 
opposition,  in  every  bay  and  channel  of  the  world,  and  will 
settle  over  the  face  of  the  earth  in  tranquillity.  And  provi- 
dence, as  presumed  throughout  our  discourse,  is  prominently 
making  way  at  present  for  this  happy  period.  For  while  the 
religion  of  Christ  always  proffers  peace  on  earth  and  good  will 
towards  men,  it  has  in  our  day  a  vigor  and  a  nerve  in  its  arm, 
which  show  that  it  will  flourish  in  perennial  youth.  Heathen- 
ism is  mouldering  to  the  extremities  of  the  earth  into  dust ; 
and  imagination,  in  the  present  state  of  improvement,  cannot 
devise  a  prop  to  promise  aid.  Mahometanism  was  originally 
built  on  the  successes  of  the  sword;  but  the  glorious  days  of 
the  reformation,  and  the  light  shed  throughout  Europe  for 
three  centuries  past,  have  already,  around  all  the  borders  of 
the  prophet,  palsied  enterprise,  and  shown  us  how,  even  at  a 
distance,  the  light  of  knowledge,  the  prerogatives  of  conscience, 
and  the  rights  of  humanity,  will  intimidate  and  destroy  that 
power  which  is  actuated  by  a  consciousness  of  its  own  weak- 
ness and  decay.  And  notwithstanding  popery,  by  learning 
from  the  principles  of  the  protestants,  has  silenced  the  inqui- 
sition; has  guarantied  in  many  places,  in  some  degree,  the 
rights  of  conscience,  and  has  promised  to  keep  faith  with 


THE  SIGNS  OF  THE  TIMES.  225 

heretics;  yet.  while  she,  in  these  enlightened  times,  withholds 
the  word  of  God  from  the  people  and  pleads  the  authority  of 
tradition,  she  must  meet  with  that  fate,  which  a  dislike  in 
very  distant  nations  to  submit  to  an  authority  in  a  moulder- 
ing city  among  the  ruins  of  an  ancient  empire,  cannot  but 
hasten  more  and  more  in  every  age.  The  very  extent  of  the 
geography  of  our  earth  as  at  present  known,  and  the  elevation 
mto  independence  of  the  minds  of  men,  proclaim  a  certam 
and  an  entire  overthrow  to  every  system  which  is  not  suited 
with  facility  to  that  geographical  extent,  and  which  does  not 
rejoice  to  go  hand  in  hand  with  this  manly  spirit  of  men's  in- 
dependence. ••  For  the  weapons  of  our  warfare  are  not  carnal, 
but  mighty  through  God  to  the  pulling  down  of  strong  holds; 
casting  down  imaginations  and  every  high  thing  that  exalteth 
itself  against  the  knowledge  of  God,  and  bringing  into  cap- 
tivity every  thought  to  the  obedience  of  Christ." 

But  while  the  signs  of  our  times  are  on  the  whole,  as  ar- 
ranged by  the  providence  of  God,  very  encouraging;  there  are 
some  amongst  them  which,  in  defining  their  character,  will 
lead  us  to  consider  the  economy  of  God's  church,  as  requiring 
many  great  changes  of  providence  to  display  her  ultimate  per- 
fection. Indeed  much  of  her  jQattering  character  at  present 
consists  of  ripening  prospects  only;  and  these  may  have  many 
a  storm  to  shake  some  of  them  altogether  from  the  tree  on 
whicli  we  nov/  see  them,  and  there  may  be  many  a  cold  night 
to  retard  the  mellowing  into  perfect  ripeness  the  rest. 

In  the  first  place,  there  are  stiil  in  the  christian  world  many 
grievous  errors  fixed  by  a  tenacious  hold  in  the  minds  of  men. 
We  have  intimated  the  wonderful  ways  of  infinite  wisdom,  by 
which  victory  over  error  is  in  the  christian  world  obtained ; 
and  both  from  the  very  nature  of  the  christian  dispensation, 
and  tlie  gradual  steps  by  which  the  human  mind  will  part 
with  its  prejudices,  we  are  yet  to  suspect  many  grievous  errors 
oppressing  the  church.  Before  these  can  be  banished,  every 
'20 


226  THE  SIGNS  OF  THE  TIMES, 

hold  of  false  criticism  throughout  the  field  of  revelation  must 
be  completely  broken ;  and  to  accomplish  this  many  years  are 
indeed  required.  And  oh!  that  the  Lord  would  pour  out 
his  Spirit  as  a  Spirit  of  guidance  into  the  truth ;  for  our  gener- 
ation is  particularly  disgraced  by  talent  and  inquiry  being 
discouraged  in  the  great  concerns  of  religion ;  and  a  striking 
sign  of  our  time  is  the  lamentable  difficulty  of  reconciling 
this  indifference  about  investigation,  with  the  cold  tenacity 
with  which  many  move  on  in  their  former  and  unfounded  sen- 
timents. The  scismatics  of  old  were  not  more  erroneous 
than  their  endeavors  were  active  to  defend  by  resemblances 
of  proof  the  tenets  they  espoused ;  but  their  followers  present 
little  more  in  support  of  their  schemes,  than  that  they  are  so, 
and  every  thing  else  is  absurd.  This  is  a  speck  in  our  pros- 
pects of  such  an  inveterate  hue,  that  it  is  calculated  to  shun 
the  common  weapons  of  attack,  and  demands  our  warmest 
supplications  to  heaven,  that  the  Lord  himself  would  revive 
his  work. 

This  indifference  it  is  indeed  not  difficult  to  account  fbr^ 
even  in  respect  to  the  most  fundamental  of  religious  opinions. 
Whilst  the  church,  my  brethren,  is  so  greatly  divided  as  it  is  at 
present,  many  of  the  tenets  maintained  by  the  respective  di- 
visions as  characteristic  of  their  distinct  existence,  are,  in  the 
general  view  of  the  religious  world,  held  in  very  small  estima- 
tion ;  and  the  carelessness  of  inquiry  which  is  directed  to- 
wards these  points,  aided  by  a  dislike  to  that  bitternesss  of 
dispute  which  they  see  so  prevalent,  leads  insensibly  those 
who  dijBer  on  the  most  fundamental  questions  to  consider 
th  ir  subjects  of  controversy  as  only  the  common  occurren- 
ces respecting  religious  opinions.  It  is  a  masim  in  logic  that 
what  proves  too  much  is  good  for  nothing;  and  the  profusion 
of  trivial  disputes,  among  the  few  zealots  who  are  to  be  found 
in  almost  all  societies,  tends  to  introduce  into  the  general 
mind,  the  sentiment  that  religious  truths  are  not  subjects  of 


THE  SIGNS  OF  THE  TIMES.  227 

investigation  but  gifts  of  birthright  or  accident,  and  men  gen- 
■erally  submit  to  what  is  so  easy  and  cheap  a  possession.  In 
our  own  happy  country,  where  the  protestant  phalanx  is  so 
completely  broken  up,  popery  in  many  places  is  viewed  as  on- 
ly a  common  division  among  the  ditferent  denominations  of 
the  christian  world;  andsocinianism  claims  a  brotherhood,  be- 
cause the  most  orthodox  churches  are  as  bitter  against  one 
another,  as  they  can  be  against  it;  and  it  is  to  be  feared  that 
many  an  honest  mind  embraces  it  as  little  more  at  any  rate, 
than  one  of  the  common  sections  of  Christianity,  Which  brings 
me  to  remark. 

That  another  uncomfortable  sign  of  our  times  are  the  divi- 
sions which  prevail  among  christians.  The  devious  errors 
into  which  many  wauder  occasion  the  consciencious  to  shield 
himself  under  the  arm  of  the  Lord,— by  assuming  a  singular 
but  necessary  station  from  the  fundamentally  erroneous;  and 
by  preferring  the  character  of  a  sincere  and  faithful  follower  of 
Christ,  to  that  of  having  the  general  approbation  of  men.  But 
a  spirit  of  division,  my  brethren,  is  contrary  to  the  unity  of  the 
church ;  and  that  not  only  the  beauteous  graft  appears  separated 
from  the  corrupted  stock,  but  that  among  the  trees  of  God's  own 
vineyjtrd  there  should  be  a  withering  influence  universally  dis- 
played from  day  to  day,  is  certainly  a  great  grievance  in  our 
time,  and  what  both  hinders  the  spread  of  the  gospel  in  other 
parts  of  the  world,  and  weakens  its  influence  where  it  is  pro- 
fessed. God's  church  will  advance  to  her  greatest  attainable 
perfection;  but  surely,  while  every  infidel  can  tell  us  that 
christians  are  endlessly  divided  among  themselves,  the  state  of 
their  society  is  not  of  itself  calculated  to  aid  much  in  forward- 
ing God's  designs.  It  is  a  truth  that  the  principles  ofnata- 
ral  religion  of  late  years  have  been  as  much  questioned,  as 
those  of  supernatural  revelation;  that  difference  of  sentiment 
on  the  very  first  principles  of  morals  has  abounded;  and  that 
an  univei^sal  agreement  of  men  in  the  principles  of  our  holy 
jeiigion  in  the  present  stage  of  the  church's  progress  cannot 


228  THE  SIGNS  OF  THE  TIMES, 

be  expected :  but  whilst  we  can  plead  the  difference  of  men^s 
views  on  all  subjects,  as  an  apology  for  our  difference  in  mat- 
ters of  religion,  it  certainly  is  our   duty,  not  to  run  the  race   j 
of  division  unsent  by  necessity,  nor  to  widen  the  gap  of  separ- 
ation by  adding  dislike  and  invective  against  those  who  may 
differ  from  us.     Were  the  character  of  the  true  church  left  to 
be  formed   by  men,  each  would  make  his  own  opinions  the    , 
standard ;  but  the  pattern  of  the  temple  of  the  Lord  is  delinea-    ' 
ted  in  his  word,  and  to  it  we  are  to  conform;  but  self-love, an 
overweening  conceit  of  one's  own  views  of  controverted  pas- 
sages of  scripture,  and  a  zeal  unbridled  by  charity,  may  possibly 
urge  this  one  to  embrace  an  extreme  of  inflexibility,  which  but 
ill  corresponds  with  the  weak  nature  of  man  and  his  opportu-^ 
nities  in  many  classes  of  society  of  impi:ovement,  the  general ' ) 
tenor  of  scripture  towards  weak  brethren,  and  the  examples  of  | 
the  great  in  the  purest  periods  of  the  church  towards  their 
brethren  in  Christ.     A  love  properly  manifested  towards  our    ! 
christian  brethren  in  other  societies,  and  reciprocated  general- 
ly, would  be  an  antidote,  in  the  spirit  of  our  religion,  to  the 
cavils  of  its  opponents,  who  differ  more  in  their  own  systems,     ■ 
than  christians  in  the  interpretation  of  theirs,  and  it  would  be  i 
an  effectually  preparatory  step  to  that  future  harmony  and  uni-  "" 
ty  which  must  prevail.     Loving  friends  soon  see  with  the  same 
eye  and  come  to  a  unity  of  conviction  respecting  the  truth;  but 
enmity  clothes  itself  in  its  own  robes,  and  nurses  an  opposition    I 
where  the  very  spider  could  scarce  fix  a  line  to  effect  her  murder-^    I 
ous  intent.     Our  divisions  then  are  another  sign  which  make  as    ] 
yet  very  great  deductions  from  the  felicity  of  the  prospects, 
which,  in  other  respects,  promise  so  fairly;  and   while  these 
exhibit  often  a  bitterness  of  party  feeling  which  tosses  with  in- 
fidel  disdain  to  a  useless  distance  the  new  commandment  of 
our  Saviour,  "  Love  one  another,"  our  only  comfort  is,  that  God 
may  bring  good  out  of  evil,  and  that  this  will  ultimately  be  the 
case. — For  the  time  must  come  when  there  will  be  one  Lord,, 
one  faith,  and  one  baptism. 


THE  SIGXS  OF  THE  TOIES,  ^  229 

• 

My  brethren,  I  may  just  remark  here,  that  some  great  men 
ftave  thought,  that  though  the  churches  may  have  something  of 
«xtemaily  different  forms,  and   different  churches  may  have 
■different  degrees  of  purity;  yet,  as  long  as  any  symptoms  of 
life  remain,  and  as  long  as  our  conscience  dictates  to  us  that 
they  are  x^hurches  of  Christ,  there  should  be,  at  all  times,  some 
practical  circulation  of  christian   offices   and    duties   taking 
place.     There  is  one  passage  in  Durham  on  the  Revelation, 
which,  in  feeling  and  sincerity  of  expression,  excels  all  the  rest 
of  his  admirable  dissertations  in  that  excellent  work.     The 
words  {low  so  sweetly  and  the  candor  appears  so  triumphant, 
that  one  would  think  an  angel  had  been  a  ministering  spirit  to 
hira,  and  had  suggested  some  of  his  thoughts.     The  disserta- 
tion is  entitled,  "The  unity  of  the  catholic  visible  church;'' 
and  in  it  he  proclaims  that  ther«  is  one  heaven^  and  one  earth, 
and  one  Jerusalem  the  mother  of  us  all ;  and  this,  taken  in 
connexion  with  these  words  upon  the  same  subject  in  another 
place,  ^*'  there  is  an  union  and  communion  in  the  catholic  visi- 
ble church,  which  is  one  body,  one  city  and  house,  one  com- 
monwealth, one  bride  and  spouse,''  shows  us  that  we  might,  in 
his  view,  as  well  stop  some  of  the  blood  in  our  veins  from  vis- 
iting every  member  of  the  body,  as  absolutely  break  up  all  fel- 
lowship with   the  parts  of  the  visible  church  which  the  great 
head  hath  thrown  around  us.     This   man  lived  in  the  very 
brightest  period  of  Scotland's  ecclesiastical  purity;  and  as  her 
greatest  ornament  was  promoted  to  the  most  sacred  station 
which  her  wisdom  and  piety  had  to  bestow:  and  he  and  sever- 
al others  inspired  into  their  own  age  a  terror  of  separating,  in 
the  house  of  God,  chamber  absolutely  from  chamber,  by  hold- 
ing up  the  seamless  coat  of  Christ,  and  the  breast  of  the  one 
woman  who,  in  the  Revelation, 'gives  milk  to  us  all 

But  another  sign  of  an  uncomfortable  aspect  in  our  time,  is, 
many  of  the  most  influential  characters  of  the  world  are  indif 
ferent  about  the  concerns  of  religion  or  enemies  lo  them.  The 
latter  day  glory  is  to  be  distinguished  by  the  kings  and  queens 

20* 


230  THE  SIGNS  OF  THE  TIMES. 

of  the  earth  becoming  iiursing  fathers  and  mothers  to  the  church; 
and  while  in  the  ages  that  are  past  the  irreligion  of  many  of  these 
and  other  great  ones  has  been  obviously  administering  an  evi- 
dence  to  the  truth  of  that  religion,  which  infallibly  predicts  that 
not  many  mighty  are  chosen ;  the  fact  tliat  this  is  still  the  case 
with  them  is  a  proof  that  the  church  is  only  advancing,  through  >• 
very  powerful  difficulties,  towards  her  ultimate  perfection.  I 

The  causes  which  have  to  account  to  us  for  this  prevalency  I 
of  irreligion  among  the  most  influential  men  in  society  are,  " 
principally,  the  deceitfulness  of  riches,  and  the  allurements  of 
the  world  which  they  can  easily  command ;  but  perhaps  the 
present  guardians  of  the  church  are  not  altogether  blameless .  jj 
It  is  our  duty  to  be  careful  to  keep  our  garments  clean,  and  not  * 
to  be  partakers  in  any  respect  of  other  men's  sins :  but  since 
the  youthful  education  of  the  eminent  members  of  society  cul- 
tivates the  taste,  and  enlarges  the  mind  with  scientifical  know- 
ledge, perhaps,  as  a  great  divine  remarks,  the  unnecessary 
homely  style  in  which  the  great  truths  of  salvation  are  often 
set  before  them  in  writing  and  speaking,  and  the  undigested 
effusions  of  sentiment  which  are  exhibited  to  them  as  their 
spiritual  fare,  are  great  part  of  the  occasion  of  their  irreligion 
and  indifference.  A  minister's  lips  should  keep  knowledge, 
not  only  of  the  generally  known  doctrines  of  religion,  but  of 
that  high  quality  that  will  make  him  appear  a  leader  in  every 
species  of  ornamental  or  useful  knowledge.  A  simplicity  of 
style  is  admired  in  all  compositions:  it  shines  in  the  best  histo- 
rians; it  is  the  very  dress  that  genuine  philosophy  will  wear; 
poetry  weeps  when  she  is  divested  of  it,  and  divinity  is  stripped  i 
of  her  indispensable  ornaments  when  she  is  otherwise  dressed  ; 
but  to  present  that  which  disgusts  in  style  and  confounds  in 
sentiment  for  simplicity,  is  a  disagreeable  usage,  no  less  incon- 
gruous in  tlie  christian  writer  than  hurtful  and  common.  That 
seriousness  alone  will  consecrate  ignorance,  and  childish  inno- 
cencies  fit  for  the  great  office  of  instructing  the  human  intellect, 
is  an  error  no  less  prevalently  adopted  in  some  departments  of 


THE  SIGNS  OF  THE  TIMES.  231 

the  christian  world,  than  mischievous  throughout  a  vast  series 
of  relations.  The  priest's  lips  should  keep  knowledge;  and 
they  should  seek  the  law  at  his  mouth;  for  he  is  the  messenger 
of  the  Lord  of  hosts. 

Thus,  without  looking  at  the  face  of  the  sky,  which  presents 
in  all  ages  the  same  indications  of  fair  weather  and  foul,  and 
which  stretches  behind  the  neighboring  hills  only,  we  have 
endeavored  to  catch  the  spirit  of  the  exhortation  of  the  great 
Redeemer  of  mankind ;  and  as  his  church  is  increasing  from 
small  beginnings  so  as  to  cover  the  earth,  we  have  attempted 
to  mark,  throughout  the  field  she  occupies,  the  signs  which  dis- 
tinguish her.  If  the  ideas  which  have  been  suggested  tend  to 
animate  the  prayer  of  a  heart  attached  to  the  welfare  of  Zion, 
or  to  direct  in  lines  which  before  were  not  contemplated,  your 
time  is  not  altogether  lost.  But  the  thoughts  have  been  pre- 
sented to  them  whose  observation  and  knowledge  can  supply 
my  deficiencies  and  correct  my  mistakes;  to  them  who  lead 
hundreds  every  Sabbath  day  to  the  throne  of  grace,  to  pray  for 
the  very  object,  the  marks  on  the  way  to  which  we  have  been 
endeavoring  to  ascertain;  and  to  tliem  who  are  particularly 
related  to  the  church  of  Christ  and  the  management  of  her 
concerns. 

My  fathers  and  brethren,  we  cannot  forget  to  lead  the  Lord's 
people  under  our  charge  into  the  knowledge  of  those  prospects 
for  the  interests  of  Zion  that  seem  to  break  upon  our  view,  and 
to  engage  them  to  plead  with  him  who  is  to  pour  out  his  spirit 
on  all  flesh,  that  he  would  hasten  the  period  of  his  appearance. 
Though  we  be  a  small  portion  of  the  christian  world,  our  exer- 
tions, if  marked  with  prudence  and  determination,  may  be 
attended  with  happy  results.  An  uniform  and  a  fair  vindica- 
tion of  injured  truth  is  the  province  of  every  disciple  of  Christ; 
and  an  exhibition  of  the  beauty  of  tlie  temple  of  the  Lord,  in  a 
pre-eminently  holy  life,  may  be  a  blessing  to  those  around  us 
and  to  future  generations.  Almighty  Saviour,  be  with  us 
always,  that  we  being  fellow  workers  with  God,  thy  church 


232  THE  SIGXS  OF  THE  TiaTES* 

may  be  presented,  in  the  ministry  of  thine  ordinances,  without 
spot  or  wrinkle,  or  any  such  thing,  before  thee  at  last. 

Brethren,  we  are  about  to  meet  as  the  supreme  ecclesiastical 
judicature  in  one  branch  of  the  divided  church  of  Christ,  in  a 
land  of  vast  extent,  and  in  a  period  of  the  world  pregnant  with 
hopes  to  the  cause  of  the  Redeemer;  and  each  one  of  us,  to  do 
his  duty,  should  single  himself  out,  under  the  dignity  of  the  light 
of  his  conscience,  from  all  accidental  habits  and  associations, 
and  ask,  before  God,  and  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  and  the  elect 
angels,  how  am  I  now  most  prosperously  to  promote  the  cause 
of  Christ;  This  is  not  to  be  done  to  break  up  our  association ; 
but  to  make  each  individual  appear,  as  before  himself  and  these 
heavenly  witnesses,  a  good  soldier  of  Jesus  Christ,  and  to  make 
him  remember  that  the  enemy  may  come  in  like  a  flood.  Yes, 
my  fathers  and  brethren,  and  he  comes  with  the  cunning  of  the 
serpent  and  the  stilness  of  the  pestilence.  Saul  could  mark  the 
enmity  of  the  Philistines,  and  Ahab  could  prepare  his  chariots 
and  his  horsemen  to  go  with  Jehoshaphat  to  the  battle  from  which 
he  was  not  to  return  in  peace;  but  it  needed  the  divine  know- 
ledge of  our  Saviour  himself  to  discern  the  torrent  which,  in 
his  day,  expended  itself  in  hypocrisy,  and  zeal  for  the  washing 
of  cups  and  platters.  "  Oh  ye  hypocrites,  ye  can  discern  the 
face  of  the  sky;  but  can  ye  discern  the  signs  of  the  times?" 

It  is  usual  with  us,  my  brethren,  to  appoint  a  day  of  humilia- 
tion and  fasting.  This  is  well;  but  with  us  here  it  is  the  dis- 
charge of  a  duty  which  only  prepares  a  fonu.  We  should 
endeavor  strictly  to  ascertain  what  is  the  knowledge  of  the 
word  of  God  which  is  among  our  people;  what  are  their  habits 
of  religion;  and  what  is  the  punctuality  of  their  morality. 

I  charge  you,  my  brethren,  as  stewards  of  the  mysteries  of 
God,  that  you  be  not  imposed  upon  by  the  hypocrisy  of  men. 
Your  people  may  look  at  the  horizon  that  is  immediately 
around  them,  and  they  may  tell  you  of  the  collected  clouds  of 
error  which  they  see,  and  of  the  boding  aspect  of  the  heavens  in 
this  and  the  other  quarter;  and  you  may  be  ready  to  accept  of 


THE  SIGNS  OF  THE  TI3IES.  233 

this  knowledge  of  external  things  for  that  religion  which  is 
pure,  peaceable,  gentle,  and  easy  to  be  entreated,  without  par- 
tiality and  without  hypocrisy;  which  denies  itself,  and  is  in  all 
meekness  and  humbleness  of  mind;  and  which  says,  be  ye 
kind  one  to  another,  tender-hearted,  forgiving  one  another,  even 
as  God  for  Christ's  sake  hath  forgiven  you. 

In  a  word,  my  fellow  laborers  in  the  vineyard  of  Christ, 
remember  that  we  ought  to  water  with  an  equally  tender  and 
an  attentive  hand  the  whole  garden  of  God; — we  should  water 
what  is  enclosed  within  our  own  apartment,  and  the  souls  that 
are  about  all  its  borders: — For  the  voice  of  Christ  is  to  them 
that  are  afar  off,  and  to  them  that  are  nigh,  "  Go  preach  the  gos- 
pel to  every  creature,  baptising  them  in  the  name  of  the  Father, 
and  of  the  Son,  and  of  the  Holy  Ghost,  and  lo  I  am  with 
you  always :" — a  saying  incorruptible  as  the  light  of  heaven, 
and  which  will  let  no  man,  that  is  a  minister  of  Christ,  think 
that  he  can  possibly  do  his  duty,  without  his  prayers  and  his 
exertions  being  directed  to  the  universal  spread  of  the  gospel. 
Amen. 


DISCOURSE  X. 


ON  THE  SABBATH. 


Exodus  20: 8.     Remember  the  sabbath  day,  to  keep  it  holy. 

When,  my  brethren,  there  is  any  ordinance  that  universally 
and  vitally  enters  into  the  movements  of  society,  it  is  a  delight- 
ful thing  to  be  able  to  trace  it  to  some  certain  origin.  Of  the 
religious  observances  on  which  men  have  attended,  few,  in  the 
greater  part  of  the  history  of  the  world,  are  traceable  to  any 
acknowledged  source.  The  mythology  of  the  heathen  fabri- 
cated a  genealogy  for  the  gods,  and  the  festivals  which  were 
kept  in  honor  of  them  were  ascribed  to  some  feat  in  their  life, 
which  had  as  gratuitous  an  origin,  often,  as  the  divinity  of  the 
character  in  honor  of  which  they  were  observed. 

But  the  Sabbath,  which  is  intended  to  maintain  a  station 
among  all  the  days  of  existence,  and  to  justify  its  origin  and 
obligation  by  the  relations  which  it  assumes,  and  by  the  duties 
which  it  enjoins,  presents  itself  as  putting  on  its  robes  of  sanc- 
tity in  the  very  morning  of  creation.  "  And  on  the  seventh 
day  God  ended  his  work  which  he  had  made ;  and  he  rested  on 
the  seventh  day  from  all  his  work  which  he  had  made.  And 
God  blessed  the  seventh  day  and  sanctified  it." 

This  is  the  first  precept  which  surveys  the  heaven  and  the 
earth  and  all  the  host  of  them,  and  which  connects  the  creature, 
through  the  wisdom  and  beauty  of  creation,  with  its  Maker. 
When  the  universe  was  formed,  God  could  not  consider  the 
fabric  as  suited  unto  the  residence  of  man,  until  after  he  had 


ON  THE  SABBATH.  235 

surveyed  all  the  steps  of  his  creative  energy,  saw  the  spheres 
movhig  in  their  order,  and  the  earth  stored  with  the  first  gene- 
ration of  organized  existences,  having  their  seed  in  themselves. 
Then,  however,  he  rested  on  that  day,  which  was  to  return  as 
regularly  as  time  is  measured  by  the  perfection  of  the  workman- 
ship of  his  hand,  and  which  to  its  end  is  to  proclaim  to  man 
how  solemnly  the  wisdom  of  Deity  retires,  on  the  concluding 
of  its  works,  into  its  rest. 

There  was  compassion  in  the  appointment  of  this  day  of  re- 
pose. For  all  things  had  been  put  under  the  dominion  of 
man ;  and  to  give  to  those  which  were  more  immediately  subject- 
ed to  the  labor  of  his  command,  a  period  of  rest,  which  by 
heaven's  command  is  their  own,  was  kind  in  itself,  and  showed 
that  even  the  lower  creation  have  rights  which  we  ought  not  to 
disregard.  There  is  something  that  is  pleasing  to  a  benevolent 
and  contemplative  mind  on  seeing  those  companions  of  our 
toil,  whose  strength  requires  only  our  wisdom  to  direct  them, 
in  order  to  accomplish  for  us  what  otherwise  could  not  be 
attained,  set  at  liberty  to  pluck  the  herbs  of  the  field,  and  to 
breathe  the  air  of  freedom,  untrammelled  by  our  arts  or  orna- 
ments. 

But  the  sanctification  of  the  Sabbath  respects  principally 
man  himself.  The  inanimate  creation  has  retired  into  the  rest 
of  forms  of  crystalizations,  or  organized  bodies  which  form 
their  seed  by  the  processes  of  vegetation ;  and  while  to  these  all 
days  are  alike,  yet  the  very  appendages  of  human  society  assume, 
as  we  have  just  seen,  an  attitude  which  bespeaks  the  voice  of 
this  day  to  man  On  it,  while  his  body  rests,  his  mind  is  to  pass 
over  all  that  he  can  direct  it  to  of  those  works  of  creation,  "  the 
heavens,  and  the  earth,  and  all  their  host,"  which  the  eyes  of 
Jehovah  surveyed,  and  with  which  the  Eternal  was  so  particu- 
larly pleased.  There  is  not  a  flower  of  the  field  but  on  that 
day  might  communicate  to  him  some  evidence  of  the  exquisite 
wisdom  which  had  been  exercised,  till  the  covering  of  our 
erith  was  mantled  over  so  as  to  satisfy  the  eye  of  its  Creator. 


236  ON  THE  SABBATH. 

Not  an  insect  which  he  sees  on  the  wing,  or  creeping  on  the 
ground,  but  has  members  which  he  perceives  can  be  fully  un- 
derstood by  their  Creator  only.  And  before  him  all  things 
flourish  to  bring  forth  food  for  man  and  beast,  so  richly  and 
abundantly,  that  he  is  lost  no  less  under  a  sense  of  amazing 
goodness,  than  in  the  contemplation  of  wisdom. — Yet  man 
cannot  be  satisfied  with  all  this.  His  mind  must  pierce  be- 
yond unto  the  original  cause  of  all  this  great  and  marvellous 
fabric.  Yes;  for  this  day  places  him  not  merely  in  the  building 
of  the  universe  to  survey  its  beauties,  its  riches,  the  lines  of  its 
order,  and  the  extent  of  its  dimensions;  but  it  places  him  in  it 
to  hear  the  voice  which  breaks  from  every  part, — the  voice  of 
the  Creator,  "Remember  the  sabbath  day,  to  keep  it  holy." 
On  this  day,  my  brethren,  the  mind  familiarizes  itself  with  the 
character  of  him  who  himself  dwells  in  light  which  is  inaccessi- 
ble and  full  of  glory.  It  reflects  on  his  eternity,  his  omnipre- 
sence, his  infinite  power,  his  wisdom,  and  his  majesty  of  com- 
mandment. 

But  the  Sabbath  soon  came  to  connect  itself  with  the  econo- 
my of  man's  restoration  from  sin.  The  sons  of  God,  indeed, 
in  the  patriarchal  ages,  were  so  few  in  number,  and  so  separated 
by  holy  habits  from  the  heathen  nations  among  whom  they 
lived,  that  the  seventh  day  is  not  prominently  presented  to  our 
view  as  a  holy  Sabbath,  till  after  a  whole  people  could  put  on 
its  covering,  could  write  its  history,  could  bow  to  its  sanctions, 
and  could  edify  us  by  their  examples  of  piety  on  the  one  hand, 
or  of  punishment  for  Sabbath  violation  on  the  other. 

When  Moses  led  the  children  of  Israel  out  of  Egypt,  God, 
who  had  originally  instituted  the  sanctification  of  the  seventh 
day,  filled  the  ^vhole  economy  of  Israel  with  memorials  of  the 
Sabbath.  The  manna  which  came  from  heaven  commenced 
the  high  veneration  which  God's  command  enjoins,  by  keeping 
within  its  chambers  on  that  day.  Their  fields  had  a  rest  spread 
over  them  every  seventh  year;  and  all  prison  doors  opened  to 
receive  the  refreshments  of  liberty  on  their  sabbatical  jubilee. 


ON    THE    SABBATH.  237 

There  is,  indeed,  no  boasting  about  their  primary  Sabbath, 
the  duties  of  which  were  inculcated  by  the  voice  of  crea- 
tion, and  interpreted  by  the  history  of  the  sanctification  of  the 
Jews ;  for  during  the  days  of  David,  Solomon,  and  others  of 
the  kings  of  Israel,  the  silence  of  patriarchal  times  descends 
again  upon  the  history  of  this  day ;  and  it  is  only  by  the  spirit 
of  praise  which  was  so  regular  in  its  courses ;  the  rearing  of 
the  temple  according  to  the  directions  of  Jehovah ;  and  some 
incidental  circumstances  connected  with  the  building  of  that 
sacred  fabric,  that  we  know  that  the  memorial  of  creation  was 
devoutly  remembered  by  them  who  so  fervently  served  the 
Creator  as  the  God  of  Israel.  The  odour  of  the  sweet  smell 
from  the  sacrifice  which  was  of  double  magnitude  on  the 
Sabbath,  must  indeed  have  ascended  in  these  times ;  because 
the  priesthood  was  regular  and  its  character  estimable:  but  it 
is  the  commandment  and  sanctification  of  the  Sabbath,  not 
its  histories,  that  revelation  particularly  regards;  and  also  the 
sanctions  and  punishments  of  this  day.  For,  my  brethren, 
though,  during  many  reigns,  God  says  little  about  how  men 
are  observing  his  Sabbath ;  yet,  he  comes  forth  at  last,  when 
Israel  are* in  a  miserable  situation,  and  tells  them,  in  anger, 
that  his  land  shall  enjoy  her  Sabbaths.  '^  And  them  that  had 
escaped  from  the  sword  carried  he  away  to  Babylon :  where 
they  were  servants  to  him  and  his  sons  until  the  reign  of  the 
kingdom  of  Persia.  To  fulfil  the  word  of  the  Lord  by  the 
mouth  of  Jeremiab,  until  the  land  had  enjoyed  her  Sabbaths; 
for  as  long  as  she  lay  desolate  she  kept  Sabbath,  to  fulfil 
threescore  and  ten  years."" 

It  was  a  comparatively  liglit  thing  for  other  nations  to  be 
conquered  and  led  into  captivity ;  but  for  the  Jews  who  had 
the  ordinances  of  the  true  religion,  and  the  protecting  favor 
of  the  omnipotent  God  pledged  to  preserve  them,  to  see  their 
city  destroyed,  their  temple  overturned,  its  sacred  furniture 
scattered  among  the  heathen,  and  themselves  made  the  sub- 
jects of  derision  and  bondage,  was  an  evidence  of  a  tempest 
21 


2.58  ON   THE   SABBATH. 

from  their  righteous  sovereign;  which,  though  many  other 
causes  are  detailed  in  their  history,  shows  how  deeply  God 
was  displeased  with  their  neglect  of  the  solemnization  of  crea- 
tion, and  of  the  most  remarkable  feature  in  their  own  privileges, 
when,  at  the  end  of  the  period  of  their  punishment,  he  seems 
to  forget  all  other  causes  of  his  displeasure,  and  fixes  on  this 
one  of  their  violation  of  his  Sabbaths.  People  and  nations 
may  think  that  God  is  as  careless  about  the  moments  of  sacred 
time,  as  their  minds  are  thoughtless  or  their  habits  are  regard- 
less; but  though  he  speak  little  of  the  history  of  national 
observances,  and  of  individual  duties,  yet  he  views  those  terms 
on  which  he  originally  entered  with  the  inhabitants  of  our 
world,  with  all  the  majesty  with  which  the  heavens  and  the 
earth  and  all  the  host  of  them  were  surveyed,  and, on  his  part, 
he  maintains,  with  all  this  solemnity,  the  covenant  that  was 
made  respecting  the  seventh  day.  It  may  be  late  before  he 
speak  to  nations  of  their  dereliction  of  duty ;  but  when  he  does 
speak  it  may  be  among  those  ruins  and  desolations  which 
were  little  anticipated ; — and  the  individual's  fate,,  at  last,  can- 
not be  light  or  easy.  When  Corah,  Dathan,  and  Abiram,  my 
brethren,  rebelled  against  Moses  and  against  Gody  he  gave 
them  a  summary  punishment,  and  his  own  hand  alone  pre- 
pared the  instruments  of  execution;  but  when  a  man  was 
found  gathering  sticks  on  the  sabbath  day,  he  was  taken  from 
the  camp  of  Israel,  he  was  followed  by  God's  commandment 
and  Israel's  vengeance,  and  stoned,  as  one  accursed,  till, 
rejected  by  heaven  and  earth,  he  perished.  "And  the  Lord 
said  unto  Moses,  the  man  shall  surely  be  put  to  death ;  all  the 
congregation  shall  stone  him  with  stones  without  the  camp. 
And  lA  the  congregation  brought  him  without  the  camp,  and 
stoned  him  with  stones,  and  he  died;  as  the  Lord  commanded 
Moses." 

But  while  the  Sabbath  connected  itself  with  the  introduc- 
tory dispensation  of  the  Jews,  it  was  at  the  commencement  of 
the  New  Testament  dispensation,  my  brethren,  that  it  became 


ON  THE  SABBATH.  239 

more  vitally  incorporated  with  the  economy  of  salvation,  and 
took  a  higher  stand  among  the  relations  of  the  kingdom  of 
grace,  and  to  benefit  the  world.  It  had,  indeed,  been  lending 
an  improving  hand  to  the  whole  economy  of  circumcision^  by 
it5  sacrifices,  by  bestowing  at  times  its  sacred  name  upon  its 
most  solemn  festivals,  by  subjecting  the  people  and  land  to 
civil  arrangements  which  its  influence  suggested,  and  by  the 
solemn  warnings  which  Nehemiah  and  Isaiah  presented  to 
the  heirs  of  the  promises ;  but  it  was  only  when  that  dispensa- 
tion commenced,  which  is  to  circulate  to  the  extremities  of  the 
earth,  and  to  continue  till  the  end  of  time,  that  it  condescended 
formally  to  modify  its  relations  to  creation,  and  to  command 
its  observances  on  the  first,  instead  of  the  seventh  day  of  the 
week. 

There  is  an  exquisite  beauty  in  this  change  of  the  sabbath 
day.  For  it  is  only  as  we  return  to  God  by  the  preparations  in 
tlie  covenant  of  redemption,  that  we  are  considered  God's 
acceptable  children;  that  we  can  consider  ourselves  among  the 
concerns  of  creation,  as  in  the  house  of  our  Father;  and  that 
we  can,  in  a  conformity  to  our  redeemed  character,  suitably 
employ  our  meditations  on  many  of  the  most  endearing  sub- 
jects which  revelation  presents.  On  this  day,  as  changed,  we 
look  back  to  the  redemption  of  Israel,  to  their  kw  as  given  at 
Rlount  Sinai,  to  their  Levitieal  priesthood,  to  their  sacrifices^ 
and  all  their  festivals;  and  we  see  thera  all  incorporated  with 
tlie  sabbath  day  si  because  while  their  God  is  the  author  of 
nature,  he  is  also  the  author  of  redemption;  and  while  they  adore 
him  as  the  origin  of  tiieir  being  and  of  all  things,  they  remem- 
ber that  their  ordinances  and  events  in  history  are  shadows  of 
good  things  to  come;  and  this  redemption  of  the  world  itself 
of  which  we  speak,  is  even  more  than  the  moving  of  the  spirit 
an  the  face  of  the  abyss;  it  is  the  renovation  of  spiritually 
d^d  men;  if  is  the  recovery  of  them  from  the  regions  of  death, 
that  they  might  enjoy  the  Creator  of  all,  and  the  heir  of  all,  in 
tJje  ^ame  moments  of  time.     By  ihe  New  Testament  Sabbath 


240  ON    THE    SABBATH. 

we  are  presented  to  ourselves  as  coming  forth  from  the  regions 
of  destruction ;  as  opening  our  eyes  upon  the  beneficent  Sa- 
viour who  leads  us  forth,  as  looking  into  all  the  relations  of  his 
character, — the  previous  figures  of  it,  the  great  redemption 
which  it  achieves,  the  wonderful  kingdom  which  under  his 
government  is  to  be  maintained,  and  the  glory  of  eternity  in 
which  at  last  it  issues;  and  thus  we  appear  again  in  the  holy 
temple  of  the  universe:  and  though  the  form  of  death  may  for 
a  time  cover  us,  yet  of  necessity  this  passes  away ;  and  we 
stand  with  God,  immaculate,  as  was  creation  on  the  day  of  his 
highest  satisfaction,  and  with  his  Son  who  is  on  his  right  hand 
forever  more. — Surely  men  think  little  of  the  annunciations  of 
the  Eternal ,-  else  when  attended  by  the  retinue  of  creation  and 
all  the  happiness  and  hopes  of  redemption,  he  speaks  of  a  day 
of  rest  to  us,  and  commands  our  enjoyments  upon  it,  men 
would  not  be  so  heedless  and  disobedient.  But  this  day,  which 
now  pays  such  an  homage  to  the  redemption  of  man,  has 
w^atched,  in  the  revelation  of  itself,  the  character  of  man; 
and  while  it  propounds  to  liim  such  great  things  in  the  land  of 
promise  which  for  the  present  is  afar  oflf,  it  has  never  viewed 
his  character  but  in  a  state  of  alienation  from  God,  and  diso- 
bedience to  his  will;  and  hence,  my  brethren,  while  in  the 
primitive  revelation  of  it,  there  was  a  simple  annunciation  on- 
ly, never  has  heaven  mentioned  it  in  subsequent  communica- 
tions, but  it  has  enjoined,  as  if  there  would  be  an  unwilling- 
ness to  obey,  and  commanded,  as  if  excuses  would  be  devised. 
Remember  the  sabbath  day  to  keep  it  holy.  They  shall  keep 
my  laws  and  hallow  my  Sabbaths.  Verily  my  Sabbaths  ye 
shall  keep,  for  it  is  a  sign  between  me  and  you  throughout 
your  generations;  that  ye  may  know  that  I  am  the  Lord  that 
doth  sanctify  you.  Ye  shall  keep  the  Sabbath  therefore;  for  it 
it  is  holy  unto  you.  Every  one  that  defileth  it  shall  surely  be 
put  to  death;  for  whosoever  doeth  any  work  in  the  Sabbath 
day  that  soul  shall  be  cut  oflf  from  among  his  people.  Six 
days  may  work  be  done;  but  in  the  seventh  is  the  Sabbath  of 


OJi  TTtt^B  SABSXT&.  ^41 

rest,  holy  to  the  Lord:  whosoever  doeth  any  work  on  the 
sabbath  day  he  shall  surely  be  put  to  death.  Oh!  my  breth- 
ren, man  being  in  honor  did  not  abide  in  it,  for  while  the  Sab- 
bath has  to  be  guarded  for  us  by  these  commandments,  warn- 
ings, and  threatenings:  while  our  worldly  spirit  cannot  be  sub- 
dued by  them ;  Adam  in  a  state  of  innocency  had  to  hear  the 
command  of  God  on  all  the  economy  of  his  worldly  concerns, 
"  be  fruitful,  and  multiply  and  replenish  the  earth;""  but  this 
holy  day,  which  elevated  him  above  all  created  things,  and 
which  led  him  to  the  wisdom  of  his  Creator,  and  communion 
with  him  as  the  Lord  of  all,  needed  only  to  be  announced  to 
him ;  and  he  embraces  it — favorably,  too,  as  his  heavenly  la- 
bored frame  did  the  breath  of  life  which  was  breathed  into 
his  nostrils.  "  And  God  blessed  the  seventh  day  and  sancti- 
fied it." 

Some,  under  the  influence  of  limited  views,  are  indeed  unwil- 
ling to  acknowledge  that  there  is  a  christian  Sabbath.  We  would 
not  dispute  about  the  meaning  of  a  term.  Our  Saviour  is  called 
the  Redeemer,  the  Mediator,  our  passover,  a  sacrifice,  an  atone- 
ment; and  these  terms  lead  us,  when  fully  unfolded,  to  the 
same  mental  conception;  and  so  the  first  day  of  the  week,  and 
the  Lord's  day,  when  unfolded  in  their  import  in  our  New 
Testament  Israel,  mean  precisely  what  is  signified  by  the  sab- 
bath day.  We  have,  and  must  have,  in  the  New  Testament 
church,  a  day  of  regular  occurrence  to  the  world,  when  men, 
who  are  all  descended  from  one  parent,  and  form  one  slock ; 
who  are  immortal  beings,  and  destined  toiramortahty,butwhosfe 
business  is  to  cultivate  the  earth  and  to  subdue  it,  siiall,  in  a 
body  united  as  is  their  lineage,  present  themselves  before  the 
K)lemn  aspect  of  heaven,  and  claim  that  they  have  an  interest  in 
the  institutions  of  the  universal  Creator,  This  duty  is  a 
standing  duty  to  mankind,  while  the  heavens  and  the  earth 
remain;  and  though  the  day,  for  reasons  of  vast  moment  in  the 
economy  of  our  world,  may  be  changed,  yet  the  seventh  part  of 
our  time  remains  sanctified  unto  God,  as  firmly  as  are  laid  the 

2J* 


242  ON  THE  SABBATH. 

foundations  of  the  everlasting  mountains,  or  as  the  sun  that 
endures  forever. 

And  the  wheels  of  Christianity,  my  brethren,  could  not  long 
turn  without  the  assistances  of  this  day.  Christianity  is  mighty 
when  you  set  it  forward  with  all  the  appointments  which  belong 
to  it;  and  though  the  world  be  depraved,  and  its  principles  are 
divine,  yet  it  will  gradually  remove  barbarity,  introduce  morality 
and  civilization,  dispel  superstition,  and  bring  forward  the 
Creator  of  this  universe  with  his  name  hallowed  among  his  crea- 
tures. Christianity  seemed  to  be  a  strange  religion  as  at  first 
propagated :  a  person  whom  his  nation  had  crucified  as  a  male- 
factor, is  presented  to  men  as  immediately  presiding  over  this 
universe. — The  world  nevei  could  have  received  this,  if,  as  some 
great  enemies  have  remarked,  it  had  come  forward  seconded  by 
no  other  means  of  propagation  than  the  ideas  of  immortality 
nfitural  to  men,  and  the  zeal  of  its  preachers.  No,  the  omnipo- 
tent truth  prevailed ;  because  it  was  accompanied  by  miracles, 
and  because  the  great  miracle  of  the  resurrection  of  Christ 
which  the  disciples  witnessed,  bound  their  consciences  to 
water  with  the  comforts  of  sincerity  every  step,  prosperous  or 
adverse,  they  took  in  this  great  cause.  And  the  Sabbath,  my 
brethren,  the  New  Testament  Sabbath,  is  to  Christianity  what 
the  reality  of  the  resurrection  was  to  the  consciences  of  the 
ajKJstles  and  evangelists.  Were  it  not  for  this  day,  how  could 
mfaa  meet  to  obtain  an  acquaintance  with  each  other  as  mem- 
bers of  a  common  profession?  How  could  a  ministry,  which  is 
so  often  and  so  emphatically  spoken  of  in  the  New  Testament, 
calculate  on  meeting  their  audience,  and  feeding  them  as  the 
iiock  of  Christ?  How  could  the  New  Testament  passover  be 
cffflerly  kept,  if  there  were  no  orderly  revolutions  of  christian 
time?  How,  in  a  word,  could  churches  be  formed,  or  remain, 
as  all  on  the  holy  hill  of  Zion,  if  there  were  not  a  particular  day 
appointed  for  people  to  come  together  as  into  the  immediate 
presence  of  God? 


ON  THE  SABBATH,  ©43 

Our  conceptions  are,  that  if  the  Sabbath  were  dropped  out  of 
christian  observance,  the  whole  fabric  of  the  charter  of  our 
illumination  and  immortality  would  soon  be  given  up  to  the 
moths  and  to  the  worms.  The  most  pious  parents  are  often 
too  negligent  of  their  children ;  the  children  when  young  are 
fond  of  any  excuses  which  can  free  them  from  the  task  of 
perusing  the  scriptures ;  and  if  we  have  not  a  taste  formed  for 
religious  knowledge  when  we  are  young,  it  is  seldom  of  strength 
sufficient  to  be  very  beneficial  to  the  world,  when  begun  to  be 
cultivated  in  riper  years. — But  were  it  not  that  the  Sabbath 
occurs,  reminding  ministers  of  their  station,  attacking  the  con- 
seiences  of  parents  by  the  appointed  duty  of  the  preaching  of 
the  gospel,  and  inculcating  upon  children  the  learning  of  that 
wisdom  which  is  from  above,  the  christian  world  would  soon 
relax  in  all  these  exertions,  and  the  consequence  would  be,  that 
the  scriptures  would  be  consigned  to  neglect.  Yea,  the  Sab- 
bath, like  Enoch,  and  Noah,  and  Abraham,  often  preserves, 
amidst  an  universal  corruption  of  principle  and  practice,  the 
knowledge  of  God  on  the  earth,  and  by  its  connexions  with 
public  society  is  used  for  the  spreading  of  reformation,  and 
watering,  like  the  river  of  Paradise,  the  garden  of  God.  In  the 
dark  ages,  men's  minds  were  in  general  as  destitute  of  the 
genuine  knowledge  of  the  religion  of  Christ,  as  the  trees  in 
winter  are  of  leaves  j  but  yet  people  could  not  bury  the  form  of 
the  sabbath  day ;  it  remained  a  pledge  that  the  clnistian  con> 
munity  might  be  easily  attacked,  and  carried  triumphantly 
back  f  like  the  ark  of  God  into  its  habitation  in  Israel.  Had  il 
not  been  for  this  day,  the  reformers  never  could  regularly  ha^e 
assembled  the  people,  to  tell  them  of  the  lights  of  humanity,  of 
the  arrogance  of  spiritual  power,  of  the  vengeance  of  God 
against  idolatry,  and  of  the  sacrifice  that  he  had  been  long  pre- 
paring to  have  offered  up,  to  satisfy  for  that  darkness  and 
idolatry  which  tarried  so  long,  like  an  eclipse  of  the  sun,  o^ 
our  world. 


244  ON  THE  SABBATH. 

The  Sabbath  comes,  my  brethren,  at  proper  intervals  of  time, 
tvhen  the  nature  of  man,  his  dispositions,  and  his  circumstances 
of  life,  are  considered.  Came  it  more  frequently,  the  urgen- 
cies of  labor  would  plead  their  cause  so  effectually,  that  arrange* 
ments  could  not  be  made;  and  the  refreshments  for  the  weary 
could  not  be  so  properly  relished.  And  were  the  time  much 
longer,  the  joy  at  the  meeting  of  friends  might,  in  process  of 
time,  degenerate  into  those  tumults  which  all  distant  and  regu- 
lar assemblings  of  men  create.  The  festivals  of  the  heathen 
gods,  which  brought  acquaintances  to  their  solemn  devotion, 
without  any  intermediate  preparation,  at  somewhat  distant 
intervals  of  time,  soon  wrought  them  into  an  effervescence  of 
carnality  and  religious  frenzy ;  by  which  reflection  may  proceed 
to  make  an  estimate  of  that  precautionary  wisdom  which  ana- 
lyzed the  circumstances  and  constitution  of  man,  and  left 
nothing  out  of  account  which  could  possibly  impair  the  bless- 
ings of  this  day  of  rest. 

Returning  as  it  does,  the  Sabbath  is  not  only  the  depository 
of  the  riches  of  our  religion  for  the  world,  but  it  is  the  principal 
spring  in  the  great  machinery  of  human  improvement.  Men 
are  ill  judges  of  events  and  divine  institutions.  Had  an  infidel 
been  present  when  Abraham  circumcised  himself  and  his  son 
Ishmael,  he  would  have  laughed  at  the  folly  of  connecting  that 
event  with  all  ages  of  the  world,  as  about  to  exert  a  powerful 
influence  over  them ;  but  he  cannot  now  deny,  that  it  was  the 
claim  of  Abraham  which  encouraged  his  children  to  put  tliem- 
selves  in  possession  of  the  land  of  Canaan;  that  Moses'  institu* 
lions  aspired  to  an  immediate  subserviency  to  the  accomplish- 
ment of  the  covenant  of  circumcision ;  that  the  attachment  of 
Israel  to  the  holy  land  arose  not  from  its  hills  and  mountains, 
but  was  a  holy  patriotism,  which,  under  the  forms  of  religion, 
descended  from  father  to  son ;  that  the  controversy  about  the 
Messiah,  who  was  expected  to  be  king  of  the  Jews,  issued  in 
the  death  of  Christ;  that,  somehow  or  other,  immediately  after 


ON  THE  SABBATH.  245 

this  event,aportionof  the  Jews  disseminated  a  new  religion,  and 
enclosed  in  it  circumcision  not  made  with  hands,  and  a  change 
of  the  sabbath  day;  that  this  religion  has  to  number  among  its 
professors  the  most  enlightened  nations  of  the  earth;  that  it 
seems  not  to  be  waxing  feebler,  but  to  be  gathering  strength; 
and  that  there  can  be  no  bounds  set  to  the  circulation  of  events 
which  can  be  all  traced,  as  connected  wdth  it,  to  Abraham's 
circumcision  of  his  son  and  of  himself.  So  the  Sabbath  inter- 
feres with  all  events,  ecclesiastical  and  political.  The  world  is 
filled  with  projects,  and  there  is  science  and  art  to  put  them  all 
in  execution.  The  family  of  mankind,  in  that  portion  of  their 
habitations  with  which  we  are  concerned,  have  elements  of 
power  and  arrangements  of  wisdom  which  are  truly  admirable. 
But  how  has  society  been  stimulated  to  all  this  successful  exer- 
tion? The  greater  part  of  human  society  are  what  seek  the 
comforts  and  necessaries  of  life,  and  never  aspire  after  the 
mean  spirit  of  the  miser.  The  Sabbath  visits  and  invites  them 
into  its  assemblies,  and  they  are  desirous  to  have  themselves 
waslied  and  dressed,  as  Abraham  had  the  angels  of  heaven's 
feet  washed  before  they  sat  down  at  his  table.  It  is  the  call 
throughout  Christendom  for  the  decencies  and  comeliness  of 
clothing  for  our  Sabbath's  assemblies,  that  brings  forth  and 
sustains  so  many  of  God's  poor  and  laborious  citizens  in  their 
workshops,  not  only  among  christian  nations  themselves,  but 
even  in  some  degree  among  mankind  to  the  extremities  of  the 
earth.  It  is  this  taste  which  principally  commands  navigation  to 
spread  her  sails,  and  to  go  from  nation  to  nation  in  quest  of 
what  art  has  prepared ;  and  bespeaking  new  flights  of  science, 
by  the  encouragements  of  which  the  arts  may  be  still  further 
improved.  The  sabbath  day  is  like  the  words  of  Moses,  who 
first  revealed  it,  to  the  poor  of  the  cities  and  villages  of  our 
earth:  these  dropped  as  the  rain,  and  distilled  as  the  dew;  as 
the  small  rain  upon  the  tender  herb,  and  as  the  showers  upon 
the  grass.  Where  the  Sabbath  has  not  been  known,  indeed, 
there  have  been  some  cities  apparently  very  rich  and  splendid ; 


246  ON   THE    SABBATH. 

such  as  Tyre,  Memphis,  Athens,  and  ancient  Rome.  There 
were,  however,  only  some  of  the  people  in  these  great  cities  that 
were  arrayed  like  princes;  the  multitude  were  mean  and  desti- 
tute; and  the  influence  of  the  riches  of  these  great  cities  could 
not  spread  itself  over  all  ranks  of  the  community,  reaching  to 
every  hamlet,  and  spreading  improvements  throughout  every 
cottage.  It  was  necessary  in  order  that  this  might  take  plr.ce, 
that  there  should  betimes  which  would  bring  people  regularly 
together,  where  solemnities  of  exercise  must  be  maintained, 
and  where  decencies  of  appearance  would  be  indispensable. 
The  hermit  may  live  in  superstition,  the  anchorite  may  place 
virtue  in  filthiness  and  in  rags;  but  it  was  not  without  a  pro- 
phetical import,  that  the  high  priest  of  the  Jews,  on  the  great 
passover  Sabbath  at  the  commencement  of  every  ecclesiastical 
year,  clothed  himself  in  all  the  comeliness  of  dress,  with  the 
urim  and  thummim  on  his  breast;  for  while  the  ornament  of  a 
meek  spirit  is  the  chief  thing  with  the  christian,  yet  this  ap» 
pearance  of  his,  was  an  emblem  of  what  the  world  would  put 
on,  in  after  ages,  through  its  improvements,  by  means  of  the 
eabbath  day. 

It  was  a  congenial  and  an  apparently  providential  arrange- 
ment, which  gave  origin  to  that  system  now  so  extensively  in 
operation  of  organized  sabbatical  instruction  of  youth,  in  a 
great  manufactory  of  the  most  manufacturing  city  which  our 
world  ever  beheld :  for  were  the  Sabbath  given  up  in  its  obser- 
vance among  mankind,  in  its  influence  over  society,  both  religious 
and  irreligious,  the  manufactories  might  have  a  few  supporters 
among  the  affluent  and  the  great,  but  the  multitude,  the  power- 
ful and  unbounded  family  of  consumers  which  now  support 
them  would  disappear.  You  manufacturers  who  happily  have 
almost  every  where  connected  with  your  institutions  a  sabbath 
day's  instruction  of  your  youth,  inculcate  particularly  on  them 
two  principles  of  belief;  that  the  Sabbath  is  of  perpetual  and 
immutable  obligtition,  and  that,  as  their  industry  is  so  regular 
and  mechanical  here,  so  there  is  a  free  and  an  intellectual  rest 


0!»    THE   SABBATH.  247 

for  them  in  a  better  life  than  this.  Instructers  of  youth  on  this 
day,  who  so  benevolently  assist  parents  and  guardians  of  child- 
ren in  tlieir  rearing  them  in  the  nurture  and  admonition  of  the 
Lord ;  recollect  that  you  have  the  most  difficult  prophecy  in 
all  revelation  to  aid  in  its  fulfihnent.  A  single  orator  can 
change  the  sentiments  of  a  whole  assembly,  and  a  single  re- 
former can  carry  after  him  a  nation ;  but  youth  must  be  indi- 
vidually led  into  knowledge,  and  it  will  require  great  perseve- 
rance and  care  to  clothe  them  with  those  principles  and  prac- 
tices, by  which,  according  to  the  scriptural  use  of  language,  it 
can  be  said  of  them,  that  they  know  the  Lord  from  the  least  to 
tlie  greatest. 

There  are  some  people  who  exclaim  against  the  ministers  of  the 
gospel,  as  idle  and  unproductive  members  of  the  community, 
and  who  live  to  consume  the  earnings  of  others.  But  this  is 
the  most  inconsiderate  and  superficial  of  views.  Without  the 
ministers  of  the  gospel  the  sabbath  day  could  not  be  observed 
with  its  improving  tendencies  and  relations.  The  ministers  of 
the  gospel  are,  among  other  designs,  an  especial  ordination  of 
providence  to  stimulate  to  the  cultivation  of  those  arts  of  life 
which  would  necessarily  languish  if  the  consumers  of  their 
products  w^ere  essentially  reduced.  An  army  might  as  well 
cast  off  its  recruiting  officers,  as  wisdom  in  modern  politics  can 
seek  to  cast  off  their  greatest  and  most  effectual  aids,  who  not 
only  promote  science  in  many  instances  themselves,  but  whose 
administrations  stimulate  every  art,  to  increase  population  and 
to  ornament  it,  so  that  the  lowest  of  the  christian  race  are  bet- 
ter educated,  better  fed,  better  clothed,  more  healthful  from  their 
activity,  and  more  moral  from  their  habits  of  industry,  than 
ever  the  poor  were,  or  can  be,  in  any  other  possible  situation. 
It  requires  reflection  indeed  to  see  this ;  a  comparison  of  ancient 
with  modern  times,  and  of  the  other  nations  of  the  earth  with 
christian  communities :  but  the  man  or  the  woman,  who  could 
make  these  comparisons,  and  would  then  wish  to  keep  uj)  an  op- 
position to  the  preachers  of  the  gospel,  has  never  considered  the 


248  ON  THE  SABBATH. 

springs  of  the  improvements  of  the  human  family,  and  is  an  indi- 
vidual who  might  deny  the  existence  of  mind  because  he  never 
sees  it  but  in  its  effects.  The  religion  of  Christ  as  administered 
by  his  servants  and  in  support  of  his  ordinances ,  is  carrying  for- 
ward the  human  family,  with  the  wheels  of  improvement  turn- 
ing in  every  chamber  where  utility  or  ornaments  can  be  pro- 
duced, to  the  highest  state  of  civilization  here,  and  prepares  for 
happiness  hereafter. 

Considering  that  the  sabbath  day  was  appointed  at  the  com- 
mencement of  time,  it  is  wonderful  in  its  adaptations  unto  the 
extent  and  character  of  revelation.  The  scriptures  are  what 
contain  many  histories;  a  wonderful  intricacy  of  divinely  ap- 
pointed ceremonies;  many  prophecies  about  individuals,  cities, 
and  nations;  many  duties,  spread  over  every  relation  of  life; 
many  doctrines  sublime  in  mystery,  or  elevating  by  their  imme- 
diate connexion  with  eternity ;  and  many  promises  to  infancy 
and  old  age,  to  us  here  and  hereafter ;  and  to  become  familiar- 
ly acquainted  with  all  these  requires  that  conscience  be  awed 
to  take  its  seat  for  the  business  of  education  very  frequently, 
and  without  much  distraction  from  the  urgencies  of  business,, 
or  the  impertinence  of  visitation. — The  heathen  world  in  its 
famous  schools  educated  a  few  individuals,  and  from  despair 
delivered  up  the  rest  to  comparative  neglect ;  and  the  modern 
world  in  relation  to  the  sciences  never  can  promise  itself  any 
thing  more;  but  the  religion  of  heaven,  the  most  benevolent  of 
all  systems,  takes  men  under  the  chair  of  its  wisdom,  to  train 
them  in  the  principles  of  morals  and  in  the  hopes  of  piety;  and 
to  obtain  this  grand  purpose,  the  sabbath  day,  particularly,  is 
set  apart  to  this  end.  The  bible  is  a  vast  volume  wilh  its 
treasures  rich  and  momentous  before  the  eye;  but  they  are  like 
the  stars  of  heaven  thrown  loosely  into  their  habitations;  and 
we  have  to  search  every  part,  and  gather  them  up  into  particu- 
lar arrangements  for  our  edification ;  and  to  enable  us  to  do 
this  there  is  thrown  around  us  the  stillness  and  peace  of  crea- 
tion, the  seventh  part  of  our  time.     Some  of  you,  my  brethren, 


ON   THE   SABBATH.  249 

have  had  ten  years  given  to  you  by  God  to  learn  his  will  from 
revelation, — ten  years  of  holy  Sabbaths ;  and  yet  with  many  of 
you  there  is  a  barrenness  like  the  borders  of  the  Dead  Sea ;  a 
sad  evidence  of  man's  depravity,  and  of  the  justice  of  God, 
when,  in  punishing  professing  nations,  he  forgets  all  other 
transgressions,  and  reckons  with  them  only  for  his  Sabbaths. 

The  busy  cannot,  from  the  nature  of  the  human  mind,  be 
very  apt  to  learn  those  spiritual  truths,  the  nature  of  which 
differs  so  immensely  from  the  objects  with  which  they  are 
usually  conversant;  but  the  Sabbath  is  to  them  a  benevolent 
and  most  wisely  adapted  appointment.  It  never  takes  them  at 
unawares,  and  it  consecrates  to  their  service  a  momentous  part 
of  their  time;  more  days  to  the  most  of  men  than  genius 
pleads  for  its  cultivation  in  seminaries  of  learning :  and  this  is 
granted  to  them  with  formal  expositions  of  scripture  and  expla- 
nations of  texts,  which,  in  the  preaching  of  the  gospel,  are 
always  applied  to  the  conscience: — to  make  them  appear,  while 
all  other  arrangements  among  men  seem  to  abandon  them,  the 
particular  children  of  their  heavenly  Father,  who  is  training 
them  up  for  himself.  Yes,  the  sabbath  day,  to  the  poor  and 
laborious,  comes  in  many  blessed  characters;  among  which 
this  is  not  the  least  remarkable,  that  it  is  to  them  like  God^s 
voice  to  Noah  when  it  commanded  him  to  enter  into  the  ark  of 
his  rest. — There,  my  brethren,  he  saw  the  justice  of  God,  the 
mercy  of  God,  the  majesty  of  the  divine  dispensations,  and 
hopes  which  were  beyond  the  surrounding  chaos,  in  a  school 
where  education  went  on  irresistibly ;  and  the  busiest  of  mortals 
and  dullest  of  mankind  have  such  a  concentration  of  privilege 
on  the  sabbath  day, — time  to  read  the  word  of  God,  and  to  hear 
it  preached;  that  whatever  may  be  the  personal  improvements 
which  may  be  made  in  it,  yet  this  much  is  clear,  that  it  enters 
into  the  economy  of  preparation  for  the  eternal  world,  like  the 
mysterious  principle  of  life,  which  leaves  not  uninfluenced  a 

single  part  of  the  whole  frame. 
22 


260  ON  THE  SABBATH. 

The  very  philosophers  are  elevated  by  this  day.  It,  as  we 
have  seen,  has  been  to  them  the  great  magneticai  polarity,  that, 
in  the  moral  world,  steered  through  the  dark  ages  the  vessel, 
which  ultimately  brought  to  be  easily  and  extensively  spread 
among  men,  the  treasures  of  knowledge  and  the  blessings  of 
free  inquiry.  And  when  they  have  wearied  their  intellect  in 
the  pursuit  of  science,  and  find  themselves  by  its  little  steps 
mounted  somewhat  above  the  multitude,  this  day  brings  them 
to  consider  themselves  and  the  virtuous  around  them,  as  raised, 
in  character  and  relations,  above  all  visible  things ;  and  con- 
templating, in  its  sanctification,  and  in  the  resurrection  of 
Christ,  with  which  it  is  immediately  connected,  the  general 
resurrection,  and  the  new  heavens  and  the  new  earth,  they  are 
placed  in  an  august  temple  of  wisdom,  where  infinite  perfection 
presides,  and  eternity  is  the  period  for  philosophy  to  sit  in 
humble  contemplation. — As  there  are  seven  planets  which 
appear  to  the  naked  eye,  and  the  sun  throws  his  light  over  the 
rest;  so  the  Sabbath  gives  light  to  all  the  rest  of  the  days  of 
the  week,  presenting  man,  whether  in  a  high  or  a  low  station, 
whether  learned  or  unlearned,  upon  these  as  still  an  immortal 
being, — who,  on  the  day  which  remembers  creation,  comme- 
morates redemption,  and  anticipates  a  glorious  repose  hereafter, 
puts  on  all  the  solemn  reflections  of  a  religious  being,  and 
advances  forward  to  immortality. 

This  is  a  day,  the  duties  of  which  are  not  easily  performed. 
When  it  returns,  the  busy  world  might  cast  their  tasks  from 
their  hands,  and  on  it  might  be  silent  as  the  assembly  of  Israel 
when  Solomon  prayed  at  the  dedication  of  the  temple ,  and  yet 
the  spirit  of  pious  awe  and  gratitude  which  this  day  inculcates 
not  appear  among  them.  The  meditation  of  this  day,  having 
glanced, through  the  heavens  and  the  earth,  and  all  the  host  of 
them,  as  was  remarked  in  the  beginning  of  the  discourse,  enters 
into  the  fields  of  what  is  emphatically  called  the  kingdom  of  hea- 
ven, and  there,  we  must  now  state  to  you,  the  understanding  re- 


ON  THE  SABBATH.  251 

poses  with  amazement  and  gratitude  upon  the  monuments  of 
divine  love,  God  is  heard  saying  to  his  Son, "  I  have  called  thee  in 
righteousness;  I  will  hold  thine  hand  and  will  keep  thee,  and 
give  thee  for  a  covenant  to  the  people  and  a  light  to  the  gen- 
tiles;" and  the  Son  replies,  "  Here  am  I,  send  me/'  This  Son 
appears  in  the  propliecies,  like  the  ascending  rays  of  the  sun, 
gilding  the  hemisphere,  and  diffusing  brightness  as  the  morning 
advances.  At  length  he  appears  in  the  full  resplendence  of  his 
power.  Every  prophecy  is  fulfilled,  miracles  are  performed, 
the  spirituality  of  the  law  is  interpreted,  justice  is  satisfied,  a 
resurrection  from  the  dead  takes  place,  the  ceremonies  of  the 
law  are  abolished,  the  spiritual  ordinances  of  the  New  Testa- 
ment are  established,  life  and  immortality  are  brought  to  light, 
the  resurrection  and  the  judgment  are  seen;  and  while  all 
these  things  are  attended  to,  it  is  as  in  the  immediate  presence 
of  God,  and  while  the  offer  of  life  and  death  is  made  imme- 
diately to  the  conscience.  That  man,  my  brethren,  keeps  not  the 
Sabbath,  who  sends  his  beasts  of  burden  to  the  pastures,  or  who 
closes  the  doors  of  his  workshop ;  who  is  displeased  and  mur- 
murs at  the  unhHllowed  steps  of  his  neighbor  in  pursuing  his 
profit  on  that  day :  the  Sabbath  is  kept  when  the  great  works 
of  creation  and  redemption  impress  our  mind  and  heart,  and 
when  our  affections  are  set,  not  upon  the  things  of  the  earth, 
but  upon  the  riches,  the  profits,  and  the  honors  of  immortality. 
We  are  not  opposed  to  national  laws  which  may  break  down 
the  folly  and  depravity  of  men,  in  their  interference  with  the 
rights  of  heaven  on  this  day:  this  day  is  the  world's  privilege, 
and  the  powers  of  the  world  have  a  right  to  protect  it;  but  they 
are  not  the  laws  of  man,  nor  the  laws  of  God  as  administered 
by  man,  that  can  give,  before  the  eye  of  heaven,  a  fairness  to 
the  face  of  this  day.  I  have  no  doubt  but  the  children  of  Israel 
had  some  fine  forms  of  observance,  and  little  more  interruption 
on  some  of  their  Sabbaths  than  the  lowing  of  their  herds  and 
the  bleating  of  their  flocks;  but  the  Lord  was  angry,  and  thu« 
remonstrated  with  them:  "  Who  hath  jequired  this  at  your 


252  ON  THE  SABBATH. 

hand  to  tread  my  courts?  Bring  no  more  vain  oblations; 
incense  is  an  abomination  unto  me;  the  new  moons* and  Sab- 
baths, the  calling  of  assemblies,  I  cannot  away  with;  it  is  an 
iniquity,  even  the  solemn  meeting."  The  majesty  of  heaven  de- 
scending upon  the  nations  of  the  earth,  the  nations  which  enjoy 
revelation,  and  have  the  relations  of  this  holy  day  explained  to 
them,  should  make  them,  by  their  rulers  and  magistrates,  try  to 
prevent,  around  the  whole  borders  of  their  habitations,  a  stick 
even  from  being  picked  up  by  an  unhallowed  hand : — but  sup- 
pose that  this  were  attained ;  the  holiness  of  this  day  would, 
after  all,  like  the  vision  of  the  prophet,  have  only  some  dry 
bones: — the  Spirit  of  God  must  breathe  upon  the  forms  of  rest 
which  the  nation  would  present;  must  give  life  to  them,  and 
make  them  stand  up  in  the  attitudes  of  acceptance. 

The  duties  of  this  day  are  suitably  performed  when  the  mind 
commences  it  with  meditation  on  the  works  of  God  and  the 
salvation  of  sinful  man;  when  it  proceeds  to  personal  acts  of 
devotion,  and  a  careful  consultation  of  some  part  of  revelation ; 
when  the  family  society  which  providence  keeps  together 
acknowledge  their  dependence  on  the  Almighty's  goodness 
and  grace,  and  express  their  gratitude  for  his  care  and  mercy ; 
when  men  go  to  the  temple  of  God  to  hear  of  his  greatness, 
his  holiness,  his  moral  government,  his  displeasure  at  sin,  his 
commands  to  repentance,  his  promises  of  assistance,  his  offers 
of  the  pardon  of  sin,  his  communication  of  holy  dispositions, 
his  diffusion  of  the  Spirit  as  the  spirit  of  perseverance,  his 
gathering  of  his  people  to  the  joy  of  immortality,  and  his 
placing  of  them  forever  at  his  own  right  hand;  when, 
on  their  return  home,  families  continue  their  devotion-r^ 
parents  meditate  on  the  various  changes  of  providence 
which  may  befall  members  of  their  family,  and  ask  the 
divine  blessing  on  all  such  that  have  passed,  or  may  yet 
pass  over  them;  and  strive  to  keep  the  whole  always  like 
the  patriarchs,  pilgrims  here,  and  still  seeking  after  a  better 
country . 


ON  THE   BABBATH,  l255 

How  elevated  is  a  christian  as  he  is  contemplated  on  the 
sabbath  day!  In  the  midst  of  his  relations,  he  thinks  of  the  uni- 
verse throughout  boundless  space,  and  with  every  part  of  it 
this  day  solemnly  connects  him .  He  is  redeem.ed  to  immor- 
tality, and  is  presented  to  him^lf  as  an  heir  of  the  enjoyments 
which  all  things  present ;  and  as  the  angels  of  heaven  ascend 
and  descend  quick  as  thought;  as  Christ  ascended  without 
being  impeded  by  gravitation  on  his  journey  any  more  than  is  a 
ray  of  light;  and  as  Moses  and  Elias,  at  the  transfiguration  of 
Christ,  appeared  and  disappeared,  as  common  visitants  make 
their  morning  calls^  so  in  the  ceaseless  ages  which  are  before 
him,  he  has  the  prospect,  in  the  immediate  presence  of  the 
universal  Creator,  of  visiting  all,  and  of  enjoying  all.  "All 
things,"  says  the  scripture, "  are  yours;  for  ye  are  Christ's,  and 
Christ  is  God's." 

Some,  indeed,  in  respedt  to  the  rest  which  remains  for  the 
people  of  God,  suppose  that  the  general  assembly  of  God's 
righteous  creatures  is  forever  to  sit,  in  our  acceptation  of  the 
term,  around  the  throne  of  the  Eternal.  We  do  not  deny 
that  in  the  highest  heavens,  of  which  the  scriptures  speak,  there 
is  a  more  immediate  display  of  the  divine  glory  than  any  where 
else,  and  that  as  the  children  of  Israel  returned  on  their  most 
solemn  festivals  to  the  tabernacle  in  which  was  the  divine 
presence,  so  the  saints  in  heaven  will  return  from  every  corner 
of  the  new  heavens  and  the  new  earth  to  this  most  glorious 
habitation:  but  as  the  word  "  heavens"  includes  the  creation  of 
God,  we  apprehend,  that  as  all  his  works  are  said  to  praise 
him,  so,  in  the  ceaseless  ages  of  eternity,  the  righteous  will 
visit  every  quarter,  increase  their  admiration  over  every  object, 
and  make  the  boundless  creation,  in  some  respects,  the  temple 
of  their  praise.  The  law  of  the  Sabbath,  indeed,  almost 
necessarily  connects  itself  with  this  boundless  field  of  the 
praises  of  the  glorified  saints.  It  was  enacted  by  tlie  divine 
majesty,  as  his  eye  surveys  the  heavens  and  the  earth,  and  all 

22* 


264  ON  THI  SABBATH. 

their  host,  and  it  descends  upon  all  the  concerns  of  life;  upon 
empires  and  upon  states,  upon  sons  and  upon  daughters,  upon 
man  servant  and  upon  maid  servant,  upon  cattle,  and  upon 
the  stranger  who  is  within  our  gates ;  and  it  collects  matter 
for  its  praise  from  the  throne  of  God  and  of  the  Lamb,  from 
the  ministry  of  angels,  and  all  the  mighty  acts  of  the  Lord, 
from  the  history  of  past  ages,  and  from  the  prospects  of  those 
which  are  to  come,  from  dragons  and  all  deeps,  from  fire  and 
hail,  snow  and  vapor,  and  stormy  wind  fulfilling  his  word,  from 
mountams  and  all  hills,  from  fruitful  trees  and  all  cedars; — 
but  if  the  child  of  a  day  goes  thus  round  creation  to  enrich 
his  melody  of  praise,  what  must  the  inhabitant  of  eternity  do 
with  all  the  glories  of  the  new  heavens  and  the  new  earth  in 
which  dwelleth  righteousness?  There  remains  a  rest  or  Sab- 
bath for  the  people  of  God;  but  it  is  an  eternal  Sabbath,  in 
which  they  will  praise  him  in  his  sanctuary,  and  from  every 
part  of  the  firmament  of  his  power. 

Some  have  supposed  that  it  is  not  necessary  to  keep  holy 
the  whole  of  the  Sabbath.  Some  divines  of  great  eminence 
have  written  in  support  of  this  view  of  the  subject;  and  no 
doubt  among  many  professors  of  religion  have  encouraged 
that  carelessness  which  is  so  prevalent.  But  the  views  of 
these  men,  though  gilded  by  specious  reasonings,  it  is  impos- 
sible to  reconcile  to  the  language  of  scripture :  "  Remember 
the  sabbath  day  to  keep  it  holy,  six  days  shalt  thou  labor  and 
do  all  thy  work;  but  the  seventh  day  is  the  Sabbath  of  the 
Lord  thy  God;  on  it  thou  shalt  not  do  any  work:"  and  it  is 
mconsistent  with  the  interminable  exercise  and  praise  of 
eternity.  Yet  I  would  grant  that  the  Sabbath  might  authorize 
;&ports,  recreations,  amusements,  and  theatrical  exhibitions,  if 
it  were  first  demonstrated  that  the  word  of  God,  with  all  the 
extent  of  which,  it  is  intended,  that  the  Sabbath  shall  afford 
an  opportunity  of  becoming  acquainted,  is  to  be  withheld 
from  our  perusal  and  from  the  perusal  of  our  children.     The 


ON    THE  SABBATH.  255 

Sabbah  would  be  a  most  incongruous  and  a  tyrannical  appoint- 
ment, if  to  the  multitude  of  mankind,  who  have  no  science  to 
engage  the  mind,  nor  any  turn  for  speculation,  the  authority  of 
it  enjoined  stillness  and  rest  only ;  for  the  mind  of  man  must  be 
employed  in  some  way  or  other:  it  cannot  remain  contented 
in  a  situation  of  stillness  any  more  than  a  prisoner  could  do  under 
the  galling  restrictions  of  his  chain.  No,  if  our  Sabbaths  are 
in  any  measure  to  be  kept  holy,  we  must  cast  into  the  arms  of 
the  illiterate,  and  also  of  the  learned,  the  sacred  scriptures,  and 
inculcate  upon  their  consciences  the  reading  and  study  of 
them.  We  must  tell  them  that  while  in  these  scriptures  they 
will  find  many  duties  prescribed  on  which  they  are  bound  to 
attend,  yet  they  are  not  to  occupy  themselves  in  these  duties 
only;  but  they  are  to  search  the  scriptures  themselves:  for  the 
Sabbath  and  they  are  necessarily  connected  together;  the  Sab- 
bath is  the  sacred  time  for  our  going  to  school,  and  the  scrip- 
tures are  the  lessons  which,  under  our  heavenly  Father's 
appointment,  we  are  to  learn  there. 

The  Jews  were  in  the  habit  of  dividing  the  scriptures  into 
portions  which  might  be  successively  read  on  their  sabbath 
days.  This  was  a  wise  arrangement,  suited  to  the  nature  of 
man,  and  to  their  circumstances  in  the  world.  The  primitive 
christians  made  selections  from  the  sacred  oracles,  and  appoint- 
ed them  to  be  read  in  their  assemblies  on  the  Lord's  day. 
Thus,  there  was  a  prudential  arrangement  also  to  employ  the 
Sabbath,  by  that  variety  of  instruction  which  might  keep  up  an 
awakened  attention,  and  which  would  occupy  those  houra 
which  God  had  commanded  to  be  devoted  to  himself.  Now, 
indeed,  that  the  art  of  printing  puts  the  scripture  into  every 
one's  hand,  the  gathering  of  the  people  around  us  to  hear  the 
scriptures  read,  or  a  particular  portion  of  them,  is  entirely 
superseded.  The  command  from  the  mouth  of  our  Saviour  ia 
to  every  one  who  hears  him,  "  Search  the  scriptures,  for  in 
them  ye  think  that  ye  have  eternal  life;  and  they  are  they  which 
testify  of  me."    And  it  is  to  bear  these  explained,  to  attend  to 


256  ON  THE  SABBATH. 

their  principles  as  inculcated  under  the  preaching  of  the  gos^ 
pel,  to  hold  communion  with  God,  and  to  look  for  his  blessing 
on  his  ordinances  of  the  preaching  of  the  word  and  the  break- 
ing of  the  bread  of  life,  that  is  the  end  for  which  we  are  still  to 
come  into  the  public  assemblies  of  Zion. 

And  why  should  any  refuse  to  attend  on  these  public  exer* 
(Jises?  The  Sabbath  is  publicly  proclaimed  to  the  universe; 
the  resurrection  of  Christ  is  the  great  sun  of  the  christian  sys- 
tem ;  the  preaching  of  the  gospel  is  to  every  creature,  and  the 
Sabbath,  with  all  its  variety  of  exercise,  holds  on  to  accommo- 
date us  in  the  solemn  regions  of  immortality.  Do  some  think 
that  they  need  not  to  attend  ?  that  they  are  already  wiser  than 
their  preachers?  All  this  may  be  granted;  but  good  men  must 
keep  up  communion  with  their  God,  and  with  the  heirs  of 
eternal  rest.  Is  it  said  that  they  can  read  the  scriptures  in 
private?  This  is  a  part  of  the  exercise  of  the  day:  but  it  is  not 
like  the  public  institution  of  the  Sabbath,  in  the  face  of  the 
universe;  it  is  not  like  the  salvation  of  men,  which  is  to  be 
proclaimed  to  the  ends  of  the  earth;  and  it  is  not  like  that 
public  employment  in  the  regions  of  immortality,  where  all 
perpetually,  and  as  in  one  assembly,  raise  the  voice  of  their 
adoration.  "For  as  the  new  heavens  and  the  new  earth, 
which  1  will  make,  shall  remain  before  me,  saith  the  Lord, 
so  shall  your  seed  and  your  name  remain.  And  it  shall  come 
to  pass  from  one  new  moon  to  another,  and  from  one  Sabbath 
to  another,  shall  all  flesh  come  to  worship  before  me,  saith  the 
Lord,"    Amen. 


DISCOURSE    XI. 


ON  BROTHERLY  LOVE. 


1  JoHX  4: 11.     Beloved,  if  God  so  loved  us,  we  ought  also 
to  love  one  another. 

My  brethren,  the  inspired  author  of  this  epistle  says  God  is 
love.  Of  the  truth  of  this  we  have  evidences  in  all  the  works 
of  God.  The  harmony  of  the  material  universe  is  admirable. 
The  planets  play  in  their  respective  orbits  with  amazing  friend- 
ship; the  sun  blesses  them  all  equally  with  light  and  heat, 
according  to  their  respective  neighborhood  to  himself;  the 
winds  blow  and  the  rain  descends,  that  the  air  may  preserve  its 
salubrity  for  animal  life,  and  that  the  whole  kingdom  of  vege- 
tation may  be  nourished  and  flourish  night  and  day.  In  the 
providential  dispensations  of  God  there  is  indeed  some  appa- 
rent mixture;  but  the  more  minutely  and  attentively  they  are 
surveyed,  the  features  of  love  and  benevolence  become  more 
conspicuous.  When  we  attend  to  the  laws  of  nature,  and  be- 
hold the  boundless  exactness  in  which  the  great  bodies  of  the 
universe  and  all  general  assortments  of  things  are  unremittedly 
conducted,  though  the  partial  disorders  and  evils,  which  we  see 
on  the  face  of  our  earth,  cannot  fail  to  lead  us  to  the  melancholy 
remembrance  of  its  degeneracy  from  its  original  perfection, 
yet  we  cannot  but  behold,  even  through  this  obscurity,  the 
well  marked  lines  of  benevolent  operations; — and  when  we 
add,  as  we  must  do  in  relation  to  our  earth,  a  view  of  the  dis- 
pensation of  mercy,  which  diffuses  rays  of  joy  over  the  whole 


258  ON   BROTHERLY  LOVE. 

plans  of  providence,  and  even  on  the  face  of  tremendous  judg- 
ments, our  language  must  still  be,  "  God  is  love." 

Of  this  attribute  of  Deity  some  of  his  intelligent  creatures 
seem  to  be  feelingly  sensible.  The  angels  in  heaven  adore  the 
fountain  of  their  life  and  beneficence,  by  singing,  "  holy,  holy, 
holy.  Lord  God  Almighty,  the  whole  earth  is  full  of  his  glory." 
The  saints  make  the  love  of  God  the  theme  of  their  warmest 
praises.  Paul  exclaims,  '^Oh!  the  height,  and  depth,  and 
breadth,  and  length,  of  the  love  of  God  to  sinners,  which  passeth 
knowledge."  And  this  apostle  John,  wherever  he  goes,  has 
his  way,  like  the  bottom  of  Solomon's  chariot,  paved  with  love. 
This  epistle  is  directed  to  christians  in  all  lands,  and  whilst  the 
writer  of  it  never  loses  sight  of  God  as  the  fountain  of  all  love, 
he  is  diffusing  the  rays  of  it  amongst  men  in  every  region  into 
which  the  epistle  can  travel.  Hence  in  particular  the  language 
of  this  chapter,  which  breathes  nothing  but  the  purest  love; 
and  two  regions  of  whose  most  happy  operations — the  one  our 
privilege,  the  other  our  duty — are  contained  in  the  words  of 
the  preceding  verse,  and  in  those  of  our  text:  "  Herein  is  love, 
not  that  we  loved  God,  but  that  he  loved  us,  and  sent  his  Son 
to  be  a  propitiation  for  our  sin.  Beloved,  if  God  so  loved  us, 
we  ought  also  to  love  one  another." 

This  epithet,  beloved,  which  in  our  text  John  bestows  upon 
tliose  to  whom  he  wrote,  is  no  doubt  dictated  in  some  measure 
from  a  sense  of  their  worthiness,  as  entitled  to  the  exercise  of  his 
most  amiable  affections ;  but  principally  from  that  fulness  of 
love  which  could  not  but  overflow  from  his  own  heart.  That 
stream  which  carried  the  Son  of  God  into  our  world,  a  propitia- 
tion for  sin,  has  just  laved  anew  this  aged  and  benevolent 
apostle;  and  as  these  waters  issue  from  the  fountain  of  free 
grace,  so,  washed  and  strengthened  by  their  influence,  he  can- 
not but  stand  arrayed  in  the  beauties,  and  elevated  by  the 
emotions  of  love :  and  as  an  eminent  instance  himself  of  the  un- 
merited and  efficacious  love  of  God  to  guilty  and  lost  sinners, 
this  messenger  of  the  good  news  could  not  fail  to  designate 


OJT  BROTHERLY   LOVE.  259 

those  who  make  the  same  profession  with  himself,  by  the  most 
endearing  epithet  amongst  men,  and  the  one  that  is  the  justest 
transcript  of  his  own  feelings. 

The  reason,  however,  I  must  remark,  of  writing  the  epistle 
obviously  reflects  upon  some  symptoms  of  those  dissocial  and 
discommendable  affections  which,  even  amongst  brethren,  are, 
in  this  frail  state  of  man's  existence,  found  frequently  gnawing 
the  vitals  of  social  felicity,  and  rendering  the  outward  charac- 
ter of  the  beautiful  fabric  of  the  church,  like  a  building  from 
the  walls  of  which  much  of  the  cement  at  least  has  been  washed 
away.  The  point  which  he  wishes  to  gain  amongst  them  is, 
that  as  ''God  so  loved  us,  we  ought  also  to  love  one  another," 
— an  emphatical  expression,  which  glances  at  a  contrary  state, 
which,  though  his  benevolence  would  willingly  cover  in  his 
affectionate  and  parental  address  to  them,  yet  his  sense  of  jus- 
tice cannot  but  broadly  insinuate  throughout  the  epistle. 

This  state,  presupposed  in  a  greater  or  less  degree  in  all 
societies  to  which  this  general  epistle  is  directed,  is  predicable, 
in  some  sense,  of  all  christian  societies  in  every  age.  It  needs 
but  a  slight  acquaintance  with  the  members  of  any  particular 
association  of  less  or  greater  numbers,  to  be  convinced  that  the 
law  in  the  members  warring  against  the  law  of  the  mind  justi- 
fies a  minister  of  the  gospel  in  endeavoring  to  awaken  his 
hearers,  by  explaining  and  inculcating  the  great  doctrines  of 
the  gospel,  so  as  to  promote  the  most  essential  and  fundamental 
views  of  morality.  In  no  place  could  the  minister  of  the  gos- 
pel, in  all  the  varied  circumstances  of  the  church,  have  erred 
far  from  the  dictates  of  his  situation  in  choosing  our  text :  but 
when  his  intercourse  for  months,  and  even  years,  has  led  him 
more  certainly  into  the  channels  where  their  affections  are 
either  verging  to  flow  or  actually  running,  he  sees  not  only  a 
suitableness  in  his  choice,  but  a  singular  propriety,  which  en- 
forces his  duty  upon  his  mind  with  all  the  precision  and 
pointedness  of  a  particular  command.— To-day,  therefore,  I 


260  ON   BROTHEKLY  LOVE. 

have  to  address  you,  my  brethren,  in  these  words :  "  Beloved, 
if  God  so  loved  us,  we  ought  also  to  love  one  another." 

This  text  cannot  be  fully  understood  without  explication, 
nor  felt  without  deep  reflection :  hence  our  method,  first,  to 
make  you  understand  it;  secondly,  to  make  you  feel  it. 

Our  text  infolds  a  comparison :  "  If  God  so  loved  us,  we 
ought  also  to  love  one  another."  This  love  of  God  is  operative  to- 
wards us — not  a  mere  affection ;  it  is  tlie  spring  whence  arose 
that  wonderful  scheme  of  beneficence  and  mercy  recorded  in 
the  preceding  verse.  Some  would  flatter  themselves  that  they 
discharge  the  duty  enjoined  in  the  subject  of  our  discourse,  if 
they  have  a  mere  affection  of  esteem  and  regard  for  those  who 
are  their  brethren  in  Christ ;  but  the  love  which  is  here  incul- 
cated resembles  the  love  of  God  towards  our  guilty  and  lost 
world;  a  love  which  gave  birth  to  the  most  illustrious  of  the 
divine  contrivances,  and  which  shines  throughout  every  part  of 
a  series  of  operations  that  are  the  most  astonishing.  Love,  as 
beautifully  exemplified  in  the  sovereign  love  of  God  in  the  pre- 
ceding verse,  prompteth  us  to  action,  and  breathes  nothing  but 
the  good  of  its  object;  and  as  well  might  we  think  that  the 
principle  of  vegetation  could  answer  its  end  by  lying  dormant 
in  the  root  of  the  tree;  as  well  indeed  might  we  suspect  to  see 
a  full  fountain  forget  to  send  forth  its  playful  streams,  as  we  can 
entertain  the  idea  that  love  can  be  genuine  amongst  men  and 
be  inoperative.  Whilst  a  man  is  alive  the  wheels  of  life  con- 
tinue to  play,  and  love  being  the  very  life  of  intellectual  society 
will,  where  it  is  unadulterated,  exert  its  influence  throughout 
the  whole  range  of  objects  contained  within  the  circle  of  its 
relations.  It  resembles  in  the  moral  world  that  mysterious 
principle  of  gravitation  in  the  natural,  by  which  all  objects  are 
continually  kept  in  motion ;  and  as  soon  should  we  expect  to 
see  the  sun  neglect  to  rise  and  set,  and  the  seasons  of  summer 
and  winter,  of  seed  time  and  harvest,  to  return,  as  we  can 
expect  to  see  genuine  love  defined  by  a  mere  affection  only. 


ON  BROTHEKLT  LOVE.  261 

No,  God  loved  us,  and  sent  his  Son  to  be  a  propitiation  for  our 
sins,  and  as  he  loved  us,  so  we  ought  also  to  love  one  another. 
To  mark  all  the  channels  through  which  this  love  flows,  and 
by  a  survey  of  which  we  will  learn  its  true  character,  would 
lead  into  an  endless  field ;  and  at  present  we  shall  direct  youf 
attention  to  a  few  only  of  the  most  copious  and  interesting.     Jt 
would  be  unnecessary  to  mention  the  concealed  but  all-power- 
ful channel  by  which  our  love  promotes  the  good  of  one  another 
by  our  most  fervent  devotions  at  the  throne  of  God.     Our 
Maker  is  the  primary  source  of  all  good,  and  as  the  blood  which 
is  sent  from  every  part  of  the  system  to  the  heart,  thence  de- 
parts with  new  life  and  vigor  throughout  every  part  again; 
so  our  love  for  one  another,  wliich  concentrates  in  the  fountain 
of  life,  is  sent  forth  in  such  purity  and  renewed  vigor,  as  emi- 
nently entitles  this  course  to  the  first  place,  and  supersedes  the 
necessity  of  our   insisting  much  upon  it.     Hence  says   the 
apostle  James,  the  effectual  fervent  prayer  of  a  righteous  man 
avails  much.     Hence,  too,  the  many  instances  in  which  judg- 
ments have  been  averted,  and  showers  of  unmerited  blessings 
have  fallen  in  their  stead.     Thus  when  Moses,  in  the  first  noted 
experiments  of  war  by  the  children  of  Israel,  held  up  his  hands 
in  adoration  of  the  God  of  armies,  the  Israelites  turned  the  tide  of 
victory.  Thus  Elias,  who  was  a  man  subject  to  like  passions  with 
ourselves,  prayed  earnestly  that  it  might  not  rain,  and  it  rained 
not  on  the  earth  by  the  space  of  three  years  and  six  months; 
and  he  prayed  again,  and  the  heaven  gave  rain,  and  the  earth 
brought  forth  her  fruit.     Well  does  Paul,  who  fervently  remem- 
bered the  churches  in  every  prayer  of  his,  exhort  us,  saying, 
"  Pray  'always,  with  all  prayer  and  supplication  in  the  spirit, 
and  watching  thereunto  with  all  perseverance  and  supplication 
for  all  saints :" — For  the  love  which  we  thus  bear  our  brethien 
ascends  to  the  God  of  love,  and  from  him  it  descends  to  fruc- 
tify and  render  fertile  the  w^hole  hill  of  Zion.     Yes,  as  the  rain 
is  first  collected  in  light  vapors  by  the  heat  of  the  sun  from  the 
waters  of  our  earth,  and  afterwards  falls  in  copious  showers  to 
23 


2j62  on  bkotherly  love, 

fertilize  it,  so  our  benevolence,  which  is  so  feeble  often  in  itself^ 
ascends  to  heaven  on  the  rays  of  supplication  and  prayer  j  and 
again  returns  in  drops  of  divine  mercy  till  the  wildernesses  of 
human  society  blossom  as  the  rose,  and  the  desert  becomes  a 
fruitful  field. 

But  whilst  we  are  not  to  forget  to  love  one  another  at  the 
throne  of  grace,  there  are  lines  of  intercourse  amongst  men 
where  this  love  immediately  and  visibly  operates.  The  first  we 
mention  is  in  that  benevolent  and  candid  disposition  which 
thinketh  no  evil.  Because  it  gratifies  our  self-love  to  possess 
estimable  qualities  which  others  do  not  wear,  or  at  least  with 
very  faint  colors,  no  passion  of  the  human  mind  is  more  apt  to 
betray  us,  than  a  disposition  to  allow,  in  the  fairest  of  charac- 
ters, some  secret  and  hidden  weakness,  which  is  more  indebted 
for  concealment  to  tranquillity  of  situation  than  to  real  virtue, 
and  which  we  may  expect  to  break  out  when  the  storms  of 
provocation  wax  high.  This  was  the  way  that  the  author  of 
malice  himself  reasoned  against  the  holy  patriarch  Job;  and 
there  are  in  the  hearts  of  many  some  concealed  but  active  drops 
of  that  poison  which  the  Spirit  of  God  here  indeed  represents 
m  the  mouth  of  Satan,  because  of  the  lamentable  prevalence  of 
the  fact  amongst  men  respecting  estimable  and  highly  favored 
characters.  Says  Satan,  "Does  Job  serve  God  for  nought?" 
and  we  are  apt  to  ask,  does  such  an  eminent  saint  maintain  his 
integrity  from  no  other  motives  than  what  feed  the  flame  of 
pure  religion  and  virtue? 

Owing  to  this  discommendable  disposition,  a  report  which 
the  slightest  breath  of  pure  candor  would  strike  to  the  ground, 
will  not  accidentally  arise,  without  lessening  greatly  our  esteem 
of  the  person  on  whom  it  hath  alighted ;  without  making  us  shy 
in  the  support  of  our  friendship  towards  him;  without  being 
circulated  to  every  opening  avenue  of  society,  and  without  being 
permitted  to  wander  at  pleasure,  and  sting  to  death  like  an  adder. 
Respecting  his  venerable  and  virtuous  father,  Absalom  insinu- 
ated the  most  groundless  and  wicked  report — presuming  him« 


ON  BROTHERLY  LOVE,  263 

«elf  more  fit  to  reign  than  he,  saying,  "Ohl  that  I  were  made 
judge  in  Israel:*"  and  the  covenanted  people,  actuated  by  prin- 
ciples too  common  in  human  nature,  unfurled  the  banners  of 
rebellion  against  their  aged  and  venerable  sovereign,  and  the 
Lord's  anointed. — This  disposition  is  at  the  deepest  enmity 
with  the  laws  of  love — it  wars  against  the  very  principles  of  it, 
and  endeavors  to  overthrow  them ; — and  hence  an  inadvertent 
expression  or  an  unguarded  action  frequently  blows  it  up  into 
that  flame  which  burns  through  life,  which  destroys  societies, 
and  effaces  nations  from  the  earth.  On  the  other  hand,  my 
brethren,  accompany  me  to  the  endearing  and  pleasing  field 
where  candor  and  liberality  reign.  All  the  malice  of  his  father, 
and  the  influence  of  his  splendid  court,  could  not  bias  Jena- 
thane's  mand  towards  his  beloved  and  innocent  friend. 
Jonathan  undoubtedly  was  one  of  the  most  spotless  characters 
among  mankind,  unlike  the  ambitious  and  ungracious  princes 
of  the  earth; — for  though  he  loved  his  father^  and  fought  and 
died  with  him,  yet  his  love  was  such  a  pure  diamond,  it  cut 
every  glass  which  the  furnace  of  malice  could  blow  and  tinge 
with  the  colors  of  deception,  and  then  looked  at  the  supposed 
enemy  of  his  father,  and  the  divinely  appointed  heir  of  all  his 
illustrious  possessions,  in  the  pure  and  direct  rays  of  the  sun  of 
love.  Thinking  no  evil,  his  conduct  shines  out  from  amonggt 
a  corrupted  and  prejudiced  court  and  family,  no  less  bright  an 
example  to  every  succeeding  age,  than  a  happy  instrument  of 
saving  at  present  the  anointed  of  the  Lord.  "  And  Jonathan 
said  unto  David,  come  and  let  us  go  out  into  the  field.  And 
they  went  out  both  of  them  into  the  field.  And  Jonathan  said 
unto  David,  O  Lord  God  of  Israel,  when  I  have  sounded  my 
father  about  to-morrow  any  time,  or  the  third  day,  and,  behold 
if  there  be  good  towards  David  and  1  send  not  unto  thee .  the 
Lord  do  so  and  much  more  to  Jonatliant  but  if  it  please  my 
father  to  do  thee  evil,  then  I  will  show  it  thee,  and  send  thee 
away  that  thou  mayest  go  in  peace;  and  the  Lord  be  with  thee 
as  he  hath  been  with  mj  father.    And  thou  shalt  not  only, 


264  ON  BROTHERLY  LOVE. 

while  yet  1  live,  show  me  the  kindness  of  the  Lord,  that  I  die 
not:  but  also  thou  shalt  not  cut  off  thy  kindness  from  my  house 
forever:  no,  not  when  the  Lord  haih  cut  off  the  enemies  of 
David,  every  one  from  the  face  of  the  earth.  So  Jonathan 
made  a  covenant  with  the  house  of  David,  saying,  let  the  Lord 
even  require  it  at  the  hands  of  David's  enemies.  And  Jona- 
than caused  David  to  swear  again,  because  he  loved  him :  for 
he  loved  him  as  he  loved  his  own  soul." 

But  I  observe,  secondly.  That  this  love  discovers  itself  in 
tlie  words  of  the  mouth.  Perhaps  there  never  was  on  moral 
subjects  an  expression  v/hich  conveyed  the  truth  only,  and  yet 
approached  apparently  so  near  to  exaggeration,  as  that  which  the 
spirit  of  inspiration  puts  into  the  page  of  the  Apostle  James, 
"  The  tongue  is  a  fire,  a  world  of  iniquity/'  To  govern  the 
tongue  according  to  the  circumstances  in  which  we  are  placed, 
in  such  a  manner  as  to  manifest  that  we  love  our  neighbor  as 
ourselves,  is  a  much  more  difficult  task  than  what  many  are  apt 
to  imagine.  This  requires  such  a  nice  discrimination  of  human 
character,  and  of  the  particular  humors  of  men,  as  few  attain  to; 
and  then  such  a  delicacy  of  our  words  themselves,  and  even  of 
our  manner  of  uttering  them,  as  still  fewer,  in  this  state  of 
turbulent  passions,  are  in  any  suitable  degree  able  to  enrol 
under  their  authority.  Yes,  reflecting  on  what  an  inconsiderate 
word,  or  an  unguarded  tone  even  of  voice,  will  occasion 
amongst  the  irritable  and  proud ;  reflecting  that  a  single  word 
dropped  among  the  influential  but  haughty  members  of  society 
will  loosen  and  tear  from  their  roots  the  most  populous  com- 
munities and  beneficial  institutions,  we  see  an  eminent  beauty 
and  force  in  the  inspired  proverb,  "  How  great  a  matter  a  little 
fire  kindleth."  To  do  our  duty  properly  here,  we  ought  to 
remember  that  our  love  towards  our  brethren  should  resemble 
that  forgiving  and  conquering  love  of  God,  by  which  he  loved 
us,  and  gave  his  Son  to  be  a  propitiation  for  our  sin : — a  love 
which  will  reign,  and  has  a  determination  not  to  be  offended, 
till  the  last  possible  means  of  communicating  its  treasures  and 


ON  BEOTHEBtt^  LOVE,  266 

riches  are  neglected  and  despised.  **I  am  not  willing  that 
'any  should  perish,  but  that  all  should  come  unto  repentance.'' 
My  brethren,  1  doubt  many  of  us  seldom  consider  how  diffi- 
cult a  matter  it  is  to  tame  that  unruly  member  of  which  the 
Spirit  says:  "So  is  the  tongue  among  our  members  that  it 
defileth  the  whole  body,  and  setteth  on  fire  the  course  of  jia- 
ture,  and  is  set  on  fire  of  helh  for  every  kind  of  beasts  and  of 
birds,  and  of  serpents,  and  of  things  in  the  sea,  is  tamed  and 
hath  been  tamed  of  mankind:  but  the  tongue  can  no  man 
tame;  it  is  an  unruly  evil,  full  of  deadly  poison."— I  say  1 
doubt  many  of  us  seldom  reflect  how  difficult  a  matter  it  is  to 
order  our  speech  aright,  else  the  ties  of  friendship  would  not 
so  often  appear  a  Tope  of  sand,— else  the  little  societies  of 
families  would  not  so  often  resemble  the  meetings  of  the  lion 
and  the  tiger,— else  the  sacred  associations  of  christian  com- 
munities and  congregations  would  not  so  often  bear  an  analogy 
to  a  bomb-shell  of  war,  which  destroys  itself  and  all  within  its 
influence. 

The  most  difficult  part  of  our  duty  here  is  where  we  conceive 
ourselves  to  have  been  previously  injured.  TJie  principles  of 
retaliation,  on  this  occasion,  are  apt  to  overcome  our  sense  of 
these  moral  obligations,  so  beautifully  illustrated  by  the  dis- 
pensation of  mercy:  '■'Love  your  enemies;  render  not  evil  for 
evil,  nor  railing  for  railing."  It  is  pitiful  to  see  the  boldness 
with  which  many  will  assume  a  right,  they  flatter  themselves 
lawfully  accrues  to  them,  to  indulge  rancorous  and  malicious 
dispositions,  and  spiteful  and  inimical  language,  when  thoy 
conceive  that  they  were  not  originally  in  the  fault.  In  such  a 
case,  they  think  that  justice  inspires  them  with  the  inclinations 
they  feel,  and  that  she  will  record  their  deeds  as  lier  objects 
of  protection ;  and  forget  that  our  religion  swears  us  to  render 
Ro  man  evil  for  evil,  but  contrarywise  blessing.  There  is 
perhaps  no  instance  in  which  the  frailty  of  human  nature  and 
its  depravity  hav€  such  irresistible  proofs,  as  in  tliat  trait  of 
23* 


266  ON  BROTHERLY  LOVE. 

human  character  by  which  individuals,  when  the  breath  of  an 
inadvertent  or  passionate  expression  touches  them,  turn  in- 
stantly off  from  the  paths  of  friendship,  and  stand  aloof  on 
the  narrow  pinnacle  of  their  resentment — a  source  of  grief  to 
the  reflecting,  and  an  object  of  pitiful  weakness  in  themselves. 

Is  it  asked  where  is  an  antidote  to  this  evil? — It  is  in  Love. 
Love  makes  us  consider  attentively  the  constitutional  weak- 
ness of  those  around  us,  and  will  inspire  us  with  charity  to 
cover  the  multitude  of  their  sins.  Whilst  it  will  neither 
encourage  a  wayward  inclination,  nor  surrender  the  real  rights 
of  man,  it  will  use  every  method  to  live  at  peace  with  all  men, 
and  to  go  and  be  reconciled  to  an  adversary  quickly.  Charity 
beareth  all  things,  believeth  all  things,  hopeth  all  things,  en- 
dureth  all  things;  charity  never  faileth. 

But,  thirdly.  This  love  displays  itself  in  our  practice. 
"  Do  to  others  as  ye  would  they  should  do  to  you,"  is  a  prin- 
ciple of  which  the  christian  feels  the  force,-  and  in  clothing  it 
with  his  practice,  there  are  added  to  the  pure  dictates  of  justice 
those  affections  by  which  it  appears  that  he  rejoices  not  in 
iniquity,  but  rejoices  in  the  truth.  We  see  this  character 
illustrated  in  the  instance  of  that  person  who  takes  up  the 
words  of  the  prophet :  "  He  hath  showed  thee,  O  man,  what 
is  good;  and  what  doth  the  Lord  require  of  thee,  but  to  do 
justly,  to  love  mercy,  and  to  walk  humbly  with  thy  God?" 
And  having  this  for  his  christian  coat  of  arms,  proceeds 
through  the  world,  meeting  the  objects  of  real  compassion, 
and  dispels  their  fears,  relieves  their  wants,  inspires  them  with 
hopes,  and  directs  them  to  the  goal  of  honor  and  virtue.  I 
see  this  character  in  the  compassionate  and  loving  father,  who 
says  of  his  profligate  and  repentant  son,  "  He  was  dead  and  is 
alive,  he  was  lost  and  is  found:  bring  forth  the  best  robe  and 
put  it  on  him."  J  see  it  in  the  pastor  who  says ,  "  My  brethren, 
dearly  beloved,  and  longed  for,  ray  joy  and  crown,  so  stand 
fast  in  the  Lord,  my  dearly  beloved."     I  see  it  in  the  friend 


ON  BROTHERLY   LOVE.  1^67 

who  knows  me  in  prosperity,  but  sticketh  closer  than  a  brother 
in  adversity.  J  see  it  in  the  husband  who  says  to  his  spouse, 
''  Thou  art  all  fair,  there  is  no  spot  in  thee."  f  hear  it  in  the 
spouse  who  exclaims,  "  My  beloved  is  mine,  and  I  am  his ."  I 
admire  it — for  it  receives  a  brightening  lustre  from  its  move- 
ments— towards  an  adversary.  The  heathens  of  old  tell  us 
that  he  was  a  great  example  who  would  give  every  one  his  own  • 
and  the  Arabian  hath  long  told  us,  trouble  no  man  unneces- 
sarily, there  are  enow  of  thorns  in  the  path  of  human  life ;  but 
the  christian  is  beheld  ambitious  to  answer  these  heavenlv  ex- 
hortations :  "  Love  your  enemies,  bless  them  that  curse  you,  do 
good  to  them  that  hate  you,  and  pray  for  them  that  despitefully 
use  you  and  persecute  you." — Infidelity,  you  err  egregiously  in 
ascribing  malice,  v;ar,  and  bloodshed,  to  our  holy  religion. 
What  a  happy  world  should  we  have,  Oh !  enemies,  Oh !  friends 
of  Christianity,  did  christian  prmciples  prevail  ?  Did  a  love 
any  way  proportioned  to  the  love  of  God  to  us,  pervade  as  the 
rays  of  the  sun  our  world? — Christianity  thou  art  well  calcu- 
lated to  bring  about  that  glorious  state  of  things  to  which  our 
faith,  with  great  clearness  from  the  prophecies  of  revelation 
looks  forward,  but  which  is  yet  a  dim  view  indeed  in  the  gene- 
ral practice  of  the  world — "  When  the  sucking  child  shall  play 
on  the  hole  of  the  asp,  and  the  weaned  child  shall  put  his  hand 
on  the  cockatrice  den,  and  they  shall  not  hurt  nor  destroy  in  all 
God's  holy  mountain ." 

My  brethren,  distant,  distant  indeed  is  this  happy  state  of 
things  from  the  present  frame  and  appearance  of  the  christian 
world.  Many,  instead  of  loving  one  another,  are  full  of  envy 
murder,  debate,  deceit,  malignity;  whisperers,  backbiters,  de- 
spiteful, proud,  boasters;  inventors  of  evil  things,  disobedient 
to  parents,  without  understanding,  covenant-breakers,  without 
natural  affection,  implacable,  unmerciful.  The  works  of  the 
Spiiit,  I  remember,  are  these:  love,  joy,  peace,  long-suffering, 
gentleness,  goodness,  faith,  meekness,  temperance;  but  many 
do  I  see  wallow  in  the  lusts  of  the  flesh,  envyings,  murderg^ 


$68        ,  ON    BROTHERLY  LOVE. 

drunkenness,  revellings,  and  such  like. — Little  indeed  is 
christians'  love  towards  one  another;  for  they  make  no 
suitable  exertions  to  instruct  the  ignorant,  to  help  the  weak, 
to  reclaim  the  vicious,  to  console  the  wounded  spirit,  to  relieve 
the  distressed;  to  cement  human  societies,  to  open  the  sources 
which  contain  their  strength,  or  to  arrange  the  circumstances 
and  conveniencies  which  enrobe  them  with  happiness  and  sta- 
bility.— In  concluding  this  head  of  my  method,  I  must  ask, 
where  are  the  prayers  of  christians  for  one  another? — where 
is  their  meek  and  self-denied  conversation? — where  is  their 
practice  of  love? — where,  in  a  word,  is  that  delicate,  that  ten- 
der remembrance  of  the  words  of  our  Saviour,  "  Whosoever 
shall  give  a  cup  of  cold  water  to  drink  to  one  of  these  little 
ones  only  in  the  name  of  a  disciple?" — for  in  our  days  a  single 
word  will  alienate  the  heart,  will  embitter  the  tongue,  and  will 
purchase  years  of  distant  coldness  and  dislike.  We  have 
reversed  this  brightest  gem  in  the  crown  of  the  apostle,  and 
presented  its  dark  coating  to  the  world. — "  Let  each  esteem 
other  better  than  themselves." 

But,  my  brethren,  I  would  be  persuaded  better  things  of  you, 
and  things  that  accompany  and  adorn  the  salvation  procured 
for  your  souls.  I  would  be  persuaded  that  henceforth  at  least 
you  will  have  a  work  and  labor  of  love  which  God  will  not 
forget.  And  to  induce  you  to  this,  I  proceed  to  our  second 
head  of  method,  which  was  to  make  you  feel  the  truth, "  that 
if  God  so  loved  us,  we  ought  also  to  love  one  another." 

First.  Can  we  reflect  upon  the  love  of  God  to  us,  and  not 
feel  ourselves  constrained  to  love  one  another?  We  read  in 
profane  authors  of  a  friend  at  times  laying  down  his  life  for  his 
friend ;  we  read  of  sons  interposing  their  own  breasts  between 
their  fathers  and  the  spear  of  the  enemy ;  but  though  for  good 
men  some  have  even  dared  to  die,  the  spirit  and  dimensions  of 
love  here  are  nothing  in  comparison  to  the  height,  the  depth, 
the  breadth,  and  the  length,  of  the  lov«  of  God  to  us.  I  wonder 
not  that  all  heathen  antiquity  should  admire  the  Grecian  youths, 


ON  BROTHERLY  LOVE.  269 

whose  confidence  and  friendship  were  so  pure  and  unalloyed,  that 
the  one  should  propose,  after  the  other  was  unjustly  condemned  to 
death,  to  guarantee  his  absence  to  see  his  friends,  by  submitting 
ihis  own  person  to  the  chams  of  a  prison,  and  to  death  itself, 
should  the  other  not  return  before  the  period  appointed  for  his 
execution;  and  that  this  other  should  hasten  over  sea  and  land 
his  return,  to  save  his  beloved  friend  from  death  by  interposing 
his  own  neck  to  the  hand  of  the  executioner;  and  that,  arriving 
at  the  very  moment  when  the  fatal  blow  was  to  be  struck  upon 
the  substitute,  he  should  cry  out,  "  I  am  the  man,"  and  flee  to 
sacrifice  himself  to  leputed  and  inexorable  justice,  to  save  a  life 
dear  to  him  as  his  own  soul.  But  pure  as  this  ray  of  love 
appears,  it  is  like  tlie  sickly  beam  of  the  smallest  star  to  the 
radiance  of  the  sun  himself,  compared  to  the  love  which  we 
contemplate.  When  we  were  enemies,  followers  of  the  prince 
of  darkness,  clothed  with  his  uniform,  guilt  and  depravity,  and 
marching  with  a  front  of  rebellion  against  the  throne  of  heaven, 
we  were  reconciled  to  God  by  the  death  of  his  Son; — a  Son 
sacrificed  for  strangers  and  enemies  by  wicked  works;  an  only 
begotten  Son;  a  Son  who  dwelt  in  God's  bosom  from  everlast- 
ing; who  rejoiced  always  before  him,  and  was  daily  his  delight; 
a  Son  who  was  the  brightness  of  his  Father's  glory,  and  the 
express  image  of  his  person :  this  Son  was  wounded  for  our 
transgressions,  was  bruised  for  our  iniquities,  the  chastisement 
of  our  peace  was  laid  upon  him,  and  by  his  stripes  we  are 
healed :  this  Son  was  cut  ofl^,  but  not  for  himself;  this  Son 
was  made  a  curse  for  us,  and  evidenced  it  wlien  he  hung  upon 
the  accursed  tree.  Oh !  Jesus,  thou  hast  shown  us  an  example 
of  love; — thou  who  art  the  Creator  of  all  things,  who  upholdest 
them  by  the  word  of  thy  power,  whom  the  angels  adore  and 
worship;  for  thou  madest  thyself  of  no  reputation,  and  tookest 
upon  thee  the  form  of  a  servant,  and  wast  found  in  the  fashion 
of  a  man,  and  humblest  thyself,  and  becamest  obedient  unto 
death,  even  the  death  of  the  cross.  This  is  love,  divine,  trans- 
cendent love ;  love  which  never  can  be  paralleled ;  but  which 


270  ON  BROTHERLY  LOVE. 

certainly  ought  to  make  us  feel  the  force  of  this  language: 
"Beloved,  if  God  so  loved  us,  we  ought  also  to  love  one  an- 
other."— We  should  feel  the  force  of  these  words :  "  The  love  of 
Christ  constraineth  us;  because  we  thus  judge,  that  if  one  died 
for  all,  then  were  all  dead;  that  henceforth  we  should  not  live 
unto  ourselves,  but  unto  God  that  loved  us  and  gave  himself 
for  us." — Well  surely,  my  brethren,  does  the  apostle  command 
us  to  "  put  on  as  the  elect  of  God,  holy  and  beloved,  bowels  of 
mercies,  kindness,  humbleness  of  mind,  meekness,  long  suffer- 
ing: forbearing  one  another,  and  forgiving  one  another,  even 
as  Christ  forgave  us."  Divinely  does  John  reason,  "  Herein 
is  love,  not  that  we  loved  God,  but  that  he  first  loved  us,  and 
sent  his  son  to  be  a  propitiation  for  our  sins.  Beloved,  if  God 
so  loved  us,  we  ought  also  to  love  one  another." — It  is  lament- 
able that  christians,  who  have  such  a  transcendent  example, 
feel  so  little  the  force  of  it;  and  that  the  river  of  this  love  flow- 
ing into  the  church  of  Christ  does  not  diffuse  itself  over  every 
object  in  it,  till  she  appear  altogether  lovely. 

But,  secondly,  Youmust  feel  the  force  and  life  of  this  text  as 
you  mingle  amongst  its  advantages.  There  is  so  much  selfishness 
prevailing  amongst  professors  of  religion,  that,  in  general,  they 
stand  aloof  from  the  works  of  brotherly  love;  and  so  catch  not 
the  flame  which  warms  and  animates  the  society  of  the  church 
in  its  purest  character  and  liveliest  colors.  But,  my  brethren, 
what  will  not  love  effect?  and  are  not  all  its  objects  sources  of 
felicity?  Attend  to  this  principle  as  it  prevailed  in  the  minds 
of  Christ's  apostles.  Great  and  momentous  was  the  cause  in 
which  they  were  engaged,  and  feeble  was  their  strength  for  its 
accomplishment;  but  they  were  a  band  of  brothers,  and  the 
love  which  they  bore  to  their  cause  and  to  one  another,  whilst 
it  distilled  a  sweetness  out  of  their  sufferings,  made  them  glori- 
ously triumphant.  Often  I  reflect  on  the  divine  society  of 
primitive  christians,  with  all  things  common,  the  same  cause, 
the  same  affections,  the  same  providential  sustenance  of  life, 
and  admire  its  suitableness  to  the  prospects  before  it,  and  its 


ON   BROTHERLY   LOVE.  271 

resemblance  to  the  general  assembly  and  church  of  the  first 
born  in  heaven,  of  which  it  was  an  emblem;  and  contrast  this 
state  of  the  christian  society  with  its  less  happy  condition  in 
after  ages.  I  behold  that  the  primitive  christians  and  apostles 
knew  what  it  was  to  love  one  another;  that  they  stood  not  at  a 
listless  distance  from  that  scene  which  animates,  which  grows, 
and  which  consolidates  into  that  unity  of  life,  whose  voice  is, 
"  We  are  members  one  of  another;"  whose  exertions  may  be 
persecuted,  but  not  destroyed ;  and  whose  blessed  endeavors 
will  fill  empires  with  their  most  joyful  fruits.  I  hear  one  saying 
to  another,  ''  1  bear  you  record  how  greatly  I  long  after  you  in 
the  bowels  of  Christ;  I  will  very  gladly  spend  and  be  spent  for 
you ;  and  we  are  ready  to  impart  to  you,  not  the  gospel  of  Christ 
only,  but  our  own  souls  also."  1  see  all  waving  the  banner 
which  angels  bequeathed,  and  their  affections  unfurl,  and  bear 
along  this  vale  of  tears,  "  Glory  to  God  in  the  highest,  peace  on 
earth,  and  good  will  towards  men." 

But,  christians,  how  has  our  gold  become  dim,  our  most  fine 
gold  changed?  The  building  of  living  stones  is  rent  and  scat- 
tered in  ruins,  and  daily  there  are  some  new  stones  falling  off 
from  their  former  connexions.  The  field  of  our  Zion  does  not 
wave  in  that  golden  harvest  where  every  ear  is  ripe,  and  vies 
with  every  other  in  its  richness  for  the  honor  of  their  common 
soil.  We  have  need  to  pray,  "  raise  up  the  fallen  down  taber- 
nacle of  David,  and  build  it  up  as  in  the  days  of  old;  pour  out 
thy  spirit  upon  us  as  the  rain  upon  the  mown  grass,  and  as  the 
showers  that  water  the  earth." — Let  me  lead  you,  my  friends, 
into  the  great  city  where  there  are  many  active  men,  and  only  this 
one  principle  of  love  reigning,  that  you  may  behold  its  opera- 
tions, and  catch  its  flame.  Jerusalem  lying  in  ruins,  with  the 
holy  sepulchres  of  their  fathers  profaned,  is  visited  by  the  sons 
of  Judah,  and  whilst  their  enemies  daily  attack  them,  and 
would  demolish  their  works,  they  build  with  the  one  hand,  and 
defend  themselves  with  the  other,  and  Jerusalem  thus  arises 
out  of  its  ashes,  beautiful  and  girded  with  strength.     Let  me 


272  ON   BROTHERLY  LOVE. 

lead  you  into  the  army  whose  banner  over  them  is  love:  how 
determined  is  their  bravery,  how  lively  are  their  evolutions, 
how  impenetrable  is  their  line,  how  sure  is  their  victory !  Let 
me  lead  you  among  the  great  wheels  of  this  universe  itself.  This 
vast  machine  is  the  offspring  of  love;  and  except  where  a  few 
have  left  their  axle  by  divine  permission,  all  you  see  is  harmony 
— all  is  life — the  most  glorious  issues  forever  appear,  and  shine 
the  parents  of  new  results. — But  this  sight  may  be  too  amazing. 
— 1  descend  to  make  you  feel  the  truth  of  our  text  by  the  ope- 
rations of  love  in  your  own  hearts.  You  feel  the  love  ye  have 
for  yourselves, — your  life,  your  reputation,  your  favorable  cir- 
cumstances, are  all  so  dear  to  you,  the  world  could  not  purchase 
them.  What  activity  does  not  self-love  inspire?  what  watch- 
fulness over  character,  what  jealousy  of  honor?  What  would 
a  man  give  in  exchange  for  his  soul?  What  would  he  give  for 
his  good  name,  better  than  precious  ointment? — Is  it  thought 
that  what  is  so  advantageous  to  ourselves,  and  which  we  most 
certainly  feel  to  be  so,  must  sink  into  indifference  in  regard  to 
our  fellow  men?  No;  those  views  and  truths  which  form  the 
basis  of  our  intellectual  worth,  are  common  to  us  and  them ; 
that  end  which  our  individual  existence  is  to  promote,  is  the 
very  end  for  which  they  were  created ;  and  this  principle,  the 
happy  advantages  of  which  we  so  much  feel,  and  so  necessarily 
feel,  in  our  own  instance,  we  should  carry  into  operation  in  all 
human  societies;  particularly  in  the  society  of  the  church  of 
Christ;  that  we  may  stand  and  act  amidst  the  claims  of  our 
common  nature,  and  of  our  common  christian  privileges. 
Whether,  saith  the  apostle,  one  member  suffer  all  the  members 
suffer  with  it,  or  one  member  be  honored  all  the  members 
rejoice  with  it. — Love,  my  brethren,  inspired  to  sow  the  seeds 
of  our  holy  religion  among  the  nations  of  the  earth;  love  pro- 
tects cities  and  nations ;  love  shines  throughout  God's  universe, 
and  love  clothes  Zion  fair  as  the  moon,  clear  as  the  sun, 
and  terrible  as  an  army  with  banners;  and  I  feel  that  he  who 
is  destitute  of  this  principle  can  neither  be  a  follower  of  the 


ON  BROTHERLY  LOVE.  273 

example  of  the  saints,  nor  a  warm  and  genuine  patriot  of 
his  nation,  nor  a  reflector  of  a  beam  of  the  glory  of  this 
universe,  nor  that  tender  hand,  that,  in  the  desert  of  extreme 
poverty  where  the  christian  is  often  placed,  will  bear  a 
cup  of  cold  water,  and  show  himself  his  disciple  by  crying, 
"I  give  this  for  the  sake  of  Christ."  Oh!  my  brethren, 
are  we  wells  without  water,  clouds  that  are  carried  with  a 
tempest ;  to  whom  the  mist  of  darkness  may  be  reserved  forever? 
But,  thirdly.  The  force  of  our  text  must  be  felt  by  contem- 
plating the  miserable  wildernesses  of  human  nature  where  love 
does  not  reign.  I  visit  the  family  of  the  poor  and  needy,  where 
love  and  nmtual  kindness  might  be  balm  to  every  wound,  and 
medicine  to  every  disease;  and  the  wretched  creatures  are 
effectually  drying  up  the  few  remaining  sources  that  might 
still  keep  some  spots  green  in  the  great  field  of  human  expe- 
dients and  expectations.  Love  having  departed,  they  chide, 
they  rail,  they  accuse,  they  criminate,  till  they  weary  them- 
selves into  the  silence  of  melancholy,  which  continues  till 
exhausted  nature  is  refreshed  on  its  own  peevish  indulgences, 
to  renew  in  endless  revolutions  the  same  most  miserable  con- 
duct. I  enter  into  the  families  of  the  great,  where  affluence 
purchases  the  most  desirable  objects  that  are  wafted  over  everv 
sea,  and  where  honor  receives  the  homage  of  thousands  of 
attendants;  and  all  appears  splendor  except  the  countenances 
of  the  proprietors  and  heirs,  who  are  stung  with  furies,  and 
tear  each  other  in  their  rage.  But  I  would  particularly  direct 
you  here  to  the  fruits  of  want  of  brotherly  love  in  the  church 
of  Christ.  Who  would.not  weep  over  that  blood  of  Abel  that 
still  crieth  for  vengeance?  Who  does  not  feel  when  Canaan's 
disrespect  draws  forth  from  his  aged  father  (he  bitter  curse,  ■ '  a 
servant  of  servants  shall  he  be  to  his  brethren?"  Who  would 
not  join  the  lamentations  of  Jeremiah  when  Jerusalem  that 
was  full  of  people  sat  solitary,  and  weepeth  sore  in  the  night, 
and  her  tears  are  on  her  cheek;  among  all  her  lovers  she  hath 
none  to  comfort  her;  all  her  friends  have  dealt  treacherously 
with  her,  they  are  become  her  enemies?  Who  does  not  de- 
24 


274  ON  BROTHERLY  LOVE. 

^iote  the  bitter  enmity  that  so  early  shook  the  New  Testament 
church,  and  like  a  mighty  earthquake  cleft  it  into  sundry 
pieces?  Who  does  not  bewail  the  baleful  effects  of  this  prin- 
ciple as  yet  prostrating  the  unity  of  the  church  of  Christ? — I 
need  not  call  your  attention  unto  •  the  acrimony  and  violence 
that  in  general  prevail  among  different  denominations  of  chris- 
tians towards  one  another,  to  illustrate  the  subject.  While  the 
'Operations  of  an  enlightened  conscience  has  every  encomium 
from  me,  the  violent  animosities  which  are  handed  down  from 
father  to  son,  and  which  usurp  the  place  of  our  prayers  and 
exertions  for  the  return  of  those  who  differ  from  us,  I  cannot 
but  deplore  and  reprobate. — 1  direct  you  to  a  single  congrega- 
tion. I  shall  suppose  it  flourishing,  and  its  prospects  still 
increasing;  I  shall  suppose  the  blessing  of  God  eminently 
resting  upon  it — sinners  converted,  the  saints  edified  and  com- 
forted. This  congregation  is  visited  with  a  blast  of  ill-will 
and  contention  among  its  members.  At  first  it  touches  slightly 
a  few  of  the  more  prominent  branches  only;  but  in  a  little  time 
it  diffuseth  itself  over  the  whole,  till  all  is  withered  and  dead. 
Jn  that  place  no  praises  of  God  are  heard,  no  accents  from  the 
tongue  of  his  servant,  the  pulpit  is  forsaken,  the  pews  are 
empty.  The  Sabbath  returns  over  God's  world ;  but  it  is  not 
here  the  day  of  joy  and  gladness.  All  that  pass  by  clap  their 
liands  at  thee ;  they  hiss  and  wag  their  heads  at  the  daughter 
of  Jerusalem,  saying,  "  Ts  this  the  city  that  men  call  the  per- 
fection of  beauty,  the  joy  of  the  whole  earth?" — My  brethren, 
is  it  not  an  unjust  procedure  to  sell  our  petty  passions,  and  the 
overflowings  of  ill  humor,  at  the  great  expense  of  God's  glory, 
and  of  the  salvation  of  generations  that  are  yet  unborn?  Where 
are  the  seven  condlesticks  emblematical  of  the  seven  Asiatic 
churches? — Their  lamps  are  gone  out,  and  these  lands  are  in 
darkness. 

Christians,  I  look  into  the  word  of  God,  and  I  see  the  church 
delineated  in  perfection ;  I  raise  my  view  to  the  present  aspect 
of  the  horizon  of  the  christian  world,  and  I  see  prospects  open- 
ing for  the  kingdom  of  Christ:  I  meditate  on  the  glory  of  the 


ON  BKOTHERLY  LOVE,  275 

latter  days,  and  find  that  the  Prince  of  peace  shall  reign  upon 
earth ; — and  1  ask  how  shall  1,  and  those  that  J  should  feed  like 
a  flock,  rise  above  the  rust  that  eats  and  consumes  the  beauty 
of  the  temple  of  God,  and  that  threatens  now  to  corrupt  and  gan- 
grene this  congregation,  and  the  answer  is — add  to  our  obser- 
vations the  impression  of  the  following  passages  from  the  mouth 
of  the  Holy  Ghost.  "Lord  who  shall  abide  in  thy  tabernacle? 
Who  shall  dwell  in  thy  holy  hill?  He  that  walketh  uprightly 
and  worketh  righteousness,  and  speaketh  the  truth  in  his  heart; 
he  that  backbiteth  not  with  his  tongue,  nor  doeth  evil  to  his 
neighbor,  nor  taketh  up  a  report  against  his  neighbor,  and  in 
whose  eyes  a  vile  person  is  contemned.  Ye  have  heard  it 
said  of  old  time  thou  shalt  not  kill,  and  whosoever  shall  kdl 
shall  be  in  danger  of  the  judgment:  but  1  say  unto  you,  that 
whosoever  is  angry  with  his  brother  without  a  cause  shall  be  in 
danger  of  the  judgment,  and- whosoever  shall  say  to  his  brother, 
Raca,  shall  be  in  danger  of  the  council;  but  whosoever  shall 
say,  thou  fool,  shall  be  in  danger  of  iiell  fire.  This  is  a  new 
commandment  that  I  give  unto  you,  that  you  love  one  another. 
Be  of  the  same  mind  one  towards  another.  ^Mind  not  hiirh 
things,  but  condescend  to  men  of  low  estate;  be  not  wise  in 
your  own  conceits.  Recompense  to  no  man  evil  for  evil. 
Provide  things  honest  in  the  sight  of  all  men.  If  it  be 
possible,  as  much  as  lieth  in  you,  live  peaceably  with  all  men. 
Dearly  beloved,  avenge  not  yourselves,  but  rather  give  place 
unto  wrath:  for  it  is  written,  vengeance  is«iine,  I  will  repay 
saith  the  Lord.  Therefore  if  thine  enemy  hunger  feed  him,  if 
he  thirst  give  him  drink ;  for  in  so  doing  thou  shalt  heap  coals 
of  fire  upon  his  head.  Be  not  overcome  of  evil,  but  overcome 
evil  with  good.  Let  all  bitterness,  and  wrath,  and  angej,  and 
clamor,  and  evil-speaking,  be  put  away  from  you,  with  all 
malice;  and  be  ye  kind  one  to  another,  tender-hearted,  forgiv- 
ing one  another,  even  as  God  for  Christ's  sake  hath  forgiven 
you.  If  there  be  therefore  any  consolation  in  Christ,  if  any 
comfort  of  love^  if  any  fellowship  of  the  Spirit,  if  any  bowels 


276  Olf   BROTHERLY  LOVE. 

and  mercies,  fulfil  ye  my  joy,  that  ye  be  like-minded,  having 
the  same  love,  being  of  one  accord,  of  one  mind.  Let  nothing 
be  done  through  strife  or  vainglory ;  but  in  lowliness  of  mind 
let  each  esteem  other  better  than  themselves. — Now  we  exhort 
you,  brethren,  warn  them  that  are  unruly,  comfort  the  feeble 
minded,  support  the  weak,  be  patient  toward  all  men.  See 
that  none  render  evil  for  evil  unto  any  man;  but  ever  follow 
that  which  is  good,  both  among  yourselves  and  to  all  men. — 
Again,  a  new  commandment  I  write  unto  you,  which  thing  is 
true  in  him  and  in  you :  because  the  darkness  is  past  and  the 
true  light  now  shineth.  He  that  saith  he  is  in  the  light  and 
hateth  his  brother  is  in  darknesF  even  until  now.  He  that 
loveth  his  brother  abideth  in  the  light,  and  there  is  none  occa- 
sion of  stumbling  in  him;  but  he  that  hateth  his  brother  is  in 
darkness,  and  walketh  in  darkness,  and  knoweth  not  whither 
he  goeth,  because  that  darkness  hath  blinded  his  eyes. — And 
whatsoever  ye  do  in  word  or  deed,  do  all  in  the  name  of  the 
Lord  Jesus,  giving  thanks  to  God  and  the  Father  by  him. 
Wives  submit  yourselves  to  your  own  husbands,  as  it  is  fit  in 
the  Lord.  Husbands  love  your  wives,  and  be  not  bitter 
against  them.  Children,  obey  your  parents  in  all  things; 
for  this  is  well-pleasing  unto  the  Lord.  Fathers,  provoke 
not  your  children  to  anger  lest  they  be  discouraged.  Ser- 
vants, obey  in  all  things  your  masters  according  to  the  flesh. 
Finally,  be  all  of  one  mind,  having  compassion  one  of  another: 
love  as  brethren, •be  pitiful,  be  courteous;  not  rendering  evil 
for  evil,  or  railing  for  railing;  but  contrariwise  blessing; 
knowing  that  ye  are  thereunto  called,  that  ye  should  inherit 
a  blessing.  For  he  that  will  love  life  and  see  good  days,  let 
him  refrain  his  tongue  from  evil,  and  his  lips  that  they 
speak  no  guile:  let  him  eschew  evil,  and  do  good;  let  him  seek 
peace  and  ensue  it.  For  the  eyes  of  the  Lord  are  over  the 
righteous,  and  his  ears  are  open  unto  their  prayers :  but  the 
face  of  the  Lord  is  against  them  that  do  evil."    Amen. 


mSCOURSE  Xllt 


THE  DUTY  OF  PARENTS  TO  THEIR  CHILDREN. 


Peov.  22: 6.     Train  up  a  child  in  the  vmy  he  should  go;  and 
when  he  is  old  he  icill  not  depart  from  it. 

My  brethren,  every  man  wishes  to  lay  a  solid  foundation  for 
the  structure  he  is  desirous  to  raise,  for  his  honor,  his  interest, 
and  his  permanent  satisfaction.  The  builder  removes  from  the 
foundation  the  unstable  and  deceptious  earth,  that  would  en- 
danger the  safety  of  the  superstructure,  and  rears  on  a  chosen 
basis  the  fabric  that  proclaims  his  name  and  secures  his  accom- 
modations. The  monarch  who  forms  designs  of  extensive 
empire  assiduously  studies  the  art  of  war,  and  diffuses  it 
through  the  immense  numbers  of  his  army,  on  which  he  builds 
his  hopes  of  success.  The  sage  patriot  spends  his  days  in 
devising  systems  of  political  law,  that  are  to  conduct  liie 
nations  of  the  world  to  the  palace  of  peace  and  impartial  jus- 
tice. And  the  vast  system  of  the  material  universe  shows  us 
with  what  infinite  wisdom  its  omnipotent  Creator  hath  com- 
bined its  elementary  principles,  so  as  to  effect  that  liarmony  of 
operation,  and  that  unison  of  design,  which  bespeak  so  iire- 
sistibly  the  character  of  the  great  Parent  of  all. 

No  earthly  parent  can  object,  that  his  child  is  an  object  of 
less  moment  than  any  of  these  we  have  presented  in  the  analogy 
before  his  view.     An  infant,  to  be  sure,  in  many  respects  has, 

before  the  natural  eye  of  curiosity,  little  on  which  to  support 

24* 


278  THE  DUTY  OF  PARENTS 

its  prospects  of  celebrity,  like  the  far-famed  buildings  and 
palaces  of  the  monarchs  of  the  world ;  like  the  armies  of  vast 
kingdoms;  like  the  more  peaceful  operations  of  systems  that 
would  plant  tranquillity  and  prosperity,  not  amongst  a  few,  but 
amongst  the  nations  of  the  human  race;  and  like  the  vast 
works  of  nature,  the  sun,  moon,  and  stars,  the  world,  and  all 
that  dwelleth  in  it:  but  to  the  view  of  reason  and  reflection 
the  child  of  man  is  a  more  noble  object  than  any  of  these. 
On  his  nurse's  knee,  with  a  smile  towards  her  countenance 
and  a  toy  in  his  hand,  he  is  the  bud  of  an  opening  character 
that  will  immensely  outstrip  every  object  we  have  brought  into 
the  comparison.  Properly  instructed,  it  is  himself  who  com- 
mands the  noblest  expressions  of  art  to  rise;  who  forms  and 
commands  empires;  who  digests  and  applies  the  instruments  of 
their  felicity  and  prosperity; — and  when  the  great  fabric  of 
nature  shall  have  waxed  old  and  vanished  away,  he  will  be 
beginning  to  expand  in  his  strength,  and  to  display  fully  his 
powers.  The  tender  blossom  of  the  tree  in  the  early  spring 
is  subject  to  ruin  by  the  breath  of  the  wind,  and  the  grasp  of 
the  smallest  particle  that  floats  in  the  frozen  air ;  but  it  is  train- 
ed up  by  the  providential  hand  of  the  great  Father  of  life,  till  it 
becomes  a  large  tree,  loaded  with  a  profusion  of  fruit;  which 
again  springs  up  into  other  trees,  till  the  eflfects  of  the  tender 
bud  cover  immense  regions  of  the  earth :  And  in  a  far  higher 
sense  does  the  delicate  scion  of  human  nature  spring  up  from 
insignificance  unto  incalculably  glorious  eflJects  and  iramea* 
surable  relations. 

That  the  wisest  of  men  and  most  glorious  of  kings,  there- 
fore; yea,  that  the  Creator  of  all,  should  pass  over  directions 
necessary  for  the  infancy  of  other  concerns,  and  yet  enjoin  the 
duty  in  our  text,  is  the  most  reasonable  of  choices.  Says  the 
inspired  Solomon,  who  spake  from  the  cedars  of  Lebanon  to 
the  ivy  that  begirts  the  wall,  "  Train  up  a  child  in  the  way  he 
should  go,  and  when  he  is  old  he  will  not  depart  from  it." 


TO  TnEIR  CHILDREN.  279 

Every  command  given  by  infinite  wisdom  has  a  reason  for 
its  promulgation,  and  the  duty  directed  by  it  motives  highly 
calculated  to  produce  a  compliance.  The  reason  arranges 
the  circumstances  of  the  case,  and  would  reprove  and  expel 
the  unhappy  occasions  which  required  and  warranted  the 
present  command:  the  motives  again  lead  into  view  the 
smiling  advantages  which  primary  integrity  would  have  ob- 
tained, and  which  amendment  alone  can  now  possess. — Our 
thoughts,  then,  are  principally  to  be  directed  to  the  reasons 
which  have  occasioned  this  divine  particular  revelation  of 
duty,  and  to  the  encouragements  which  may  create  and  pre- 
serve its  discharge. 

Parents  are  addressed ;  and  however  much  they  may  flatter 
themselves  of  their  love  for  their  children;  though  they  should 
think  that  they  count  their  welfare  dear  to  them  as  their  own 
life;  yet  in  their  sinful  negligence,  or  misapplication  of  tte 
means  of  instruction,  are  we  to  look  for  the  reasons  of  this 
precept.  Parents,  remember  the  charge  which  is  committed  to 
you;  its  qualities  have  no  objects  of  comparison;  the  sun, 
that  bright  luminary  in  heaven,  darts  its  vivid  and  indestructi- 
ble rays  through  a  vast  expansion;  but  immense  as  the  region 
which  he  enlightens  is,  there  is  a  darkness  in  boundless  space 
beyond;  but  the  candle  you  are  now  called  to  light  will  emit 
his  radiance  bounded  by  no  space,  and  darting  into  eternity. 
Little,  surely,  do  tlie  guardians  of  youth  reflect  upon  the  trust 
which  is  committed  to  them;  else  in  the  parlor  immediately 
under  the  parental  eye,  and  in  the  streets,  where  parents' 
negligence  speaks  through  the  voice  of  their  children,  so 
much  immorality  and  impiety  would  not  prevail.  What  do 
you  think,  for  instance,  of  the  name  of  God  being  blasphemed, 
his  attributes  tarnished,  and  his  holy  Sabbath  profaned,  by 
children  pressed  into  the  awful  service  by  the  tyranny  of 
ignorance,  and  the  woful  blank  in  the  book  of  their  instruc- 
tion? As  sure  as  the  word  of  God  is  true,  as  certain  as  the 
practice  is  unamiable  and  unprofitable,  the  idle  blasphemer, 
and  the  impertinent  transgressor  of  God's  holy  Sabbath,  will, 


SSQ  THE  DUTY   OF  PAREXT9 

if  grace  prevent  not,  find  prepared  for  him  a  doleful  retribtK 
tion, — which  will  bear  hard  upon  parents  in  the  case  of  chiU 
dren;  for  the  former  are  more  properly  accountable  than  the 
latter.  In  the  mismanagement  of  an  estate  which  is  under 
guardians,  the  loss  is  sustained,  not  by  those  in  whose  effects 
the  injury  has  immediately  appeared ,  but  by  the  administrator; 
and  God,  who  is  impartially  just,  will  require,  at  the  hands  of 
thje  guardians  of  children,  the  vast  estate  of  privileges  and  ad- 
vantages which  he  had  provided  for  them,  but  which  is  squan- 
dered away.  "  And  the  Lord  said  to  Samuel,  behold  I  will 
do  a  thing  in  Israel,  at  which  both  the  ears  of  every  one  that 
beareth  it  shall  tingle.  In  that  day  I  will  perform  against  Eli 
all  things  which  I  have  spoken  against  his  house ;  when  I  begin 
I  will  make  an  end.  For  I  have  told  him  that  I  will  judge  his 
house  forever,  for  the  iniquity  which  he  knoweth ;  because 
his  sons  made  themselves  vile,  and  he  restrained  them  not; 
and  therefore  I  have  sworn  unto  the  house  of  Eli,  that  tlie 
iniquity  of  Eli's  house  shall  not  be  purged  with  sacrifice  nOr 
offering  forever." — 1  Sam.  3: 11 — 15. 

But  methinks  I  hear  some  parents,  whose  children  are  a 
heaviness  and  grief  to  them,  plead  that  the  refractoriness  of 
youth  has  overcome  them.  The  truth  that  man  is  bent  to 
go  astray  from  the  womb,  embitters  in  some  degree  the  cup  of 
delight  in  the  hand  of  every  parent ;  and  in  that  of  some  much 
more  than  of  others;  but  before  this  can  be  pled  by  any 
with  success^  it  must  be  obvious,  that  he  has  used  all  the 
means  which  are  provided  for  the  attainment  of  this  end. 
The  means  of  accomplishing  it  are  as  diversified,  as  it  is  fre- 
quent to  divide  and  neglect  great  part  of  them.  Were  the 
different  dispositions  of  children  carefully  studied ;  were  there 
but  half  of  the  ingenuity  employed  in  ascertaining  the  parti- 
cular springs  of  action  in  each  that  is  often  employed  in 
forming  an  adaptation  of  instruments  for  the  accomplishment 
of  a  trivial  affair,  and  then  a  steady  and  vigorous  application 
of  tliem  made,  success  could  scarce  fail  to  be  secured.  But 
kmentable  to  contemplate,  the  particular  turn  of  the  child 


TO  THEIH  CHILDREN.  281 

scarce  ever  has  a  thought  steadily  directed  towards  it;  whilst 
of  the  combination  of  means  to  be  employed,  there  is  bestowed 
one  scanty  portion  only.  Some  flatter  themselves  that  they 
are  exerting  their  powers  to  the  utmost  for  the  formation  of  the 
characters  of  their  children,  when  they  invest  them  with  the 
thin  garment  of  a  common  education,  which  is  only  the 
groundwork  of  a  temporal  honorable  subsistence,  or  when  they 
have  superadded  to  this  a  knowledge  of  some  of  the  most 
obvious  principles  of  religion.  Attending  to  the  relation  of 
parents  in  general  upon  this  subject,  you  hear  them  exultingly 
declare  that  such  has  been  the  education  of  their  children;  and 
then  either  exclaiming  against  their  abuse  of  their  instructions, 
or  applauding  their  improvements  on  them.  We  would  not 
condemn  any  part  of  useful  education,  much  less  when  under 
tlie  eye  of  this  inspired  text  of  religious  education :  but,  ray 
brethren,  all  this  may  be  attended  to,  and  yet  small  proficiency 
made  in  the  great  art  of  training  up  a  child  in  the  way  he 
should  go.  Can  you  expect  to  find  the  various  subordinate 
parts  of  a  machine  turning  regularly,  when  the  principal  wheel 
stands  still;  or  perhaps  when  through  some  malign  power  it  is 
inclined  to  move  backwards?  Well,  in  proportion  to  the  wide 
em.brace  of  the  road  of  the  child,  comprehending  both  moral 
and  religious  principles,  the  parent  should  walk  before  and 
show  the  way.  They  are  lame  views  of  the  education  of  an 
immortal  and  dependent  soul,  that  will  not  endeavor  to  build 
the  practice,  the  most  estimable  feature  of  the  character  of  man, 
on  every  religious  principle  the  knowledge  of  which  is  attained. 
But  instead  of  this,  how  many  parents  are  loose  in  their  own 
morals,  and  profane  in  the  circle  of  the  other  table  of  God's  holy 
law,  instead  of  pious  and  godly?  Such  monsters  of  absurdity 
meet  us  as  pride  themselves  on  communicating  lessons  of  reli- 
gion and  probity  to  their  offspring,  while  they  are  found  blas- 
pheming the  name  of  God  themselves,  and  ridiculing  in  their 
pestiferous  mirth  every  thing  that  is  sacred.     But  a  man  might 


582  THE  &UTY  (9F  parents 

as  well  spread  poison,  like  the  diseases  from  Pandora^s  box,  on 
every  walk  of  his  garden,  and  scatter  it  over  the  blanches  of 
every  tree,  to  be  carried  around  in  deadly  effluvia  by  the  wind  ; 
and  ask  his  friends  to  take  an  airing  amongst  its  bowers,  and 
flatter  himself  that  he  was  actually  thus  to  promote  their 
health,  as  calculate  on  this  method  of  education  succeeding. 
Man  in  his  infancy  is  like  the  tender  flower,-  it  will  rear  its 
head  even  in  a  barren  soil,  if  frosty  winds  do  not  shrivel  its 
leaves,  nor  pestilential  seasons  wither  its  stem :  but  if  these 
visit  it,  all  the  care  of  art  and  spirit  of  vegetation  cannot  sup- 
port and  preserve  it. — A  hint  of  comfort  to  the  weak  and  helpless. 
— A  child,  through  the  blessing  of  God,  is  often  marvellously 
trained  up  amidst  almost  a  famine  of  the  common  means  of  edu 
cation;  but  with  the  pestilential  breath  of  a  profane  conversation, 
or  an  immoral  practice,  all,  all  the  instructions  which  wisdom 
can  devise,  or  precept  can  enjoin,  will  be  of  no  avail.  "  Do  men 
gather  grapes  of  thorns  or  figs  of  thistles  V 

But  from  this  inapplicable  and  wicked  character,  I  know 
many  assure  themselves  they  are  entirely  free;  and  I  will  say 
it  with  confidence,  that  I  am  persuaded  many  are  so :  but  be- 
ware, my  brethren,  of  the  general  principle  from  which  we  have 
shown  you  the  pernicious  influence  of  the  practice  you  are  sa 
forward  to  condemn.  Our  general  principle  is,  that  example 
must  go  hand  in  hand  with  precept.  Now,  though  you  are  not 
wicked,  yet  in  one  respect  are  not  many  of  you  negligent? 
If  you  do  not  put  a  scorpion  alive  into  the  hand  of  your  chil- 
dren to  bite  them,  yet  do  not  ye,  instead  of  bread,  give  them 
the  cold  stone  of  neglect?  A  principal  part  of  the  great  sys- 
tem to  which  children  are  to  be  trained,  is  religious  practice: — 
the  adoration  and  worship  of  God;  the  habitual  inclinations  for 
regular  returns  to  duty;  and  the  lively  spirit  of  true  piety  in 
them.  It  is  not  known  what  numbers  of  you  may  be  deficient 
here;  but  the  fact  we  have  mentioned  as  of  the  most  ruinous 
consequence  in  the  education  of  youth,  with  respect  to  piety 


TO  THEIR  CHILIXREN.  283 

and  religion,  cannot  be  too  earnestly  recommended  to  your 
consciences  for  a  personal  application.  Suppose,  you  who 
wish  to  teach  your  children  the  principles  of  religion,  and  this 
for  the  purpose  that  henceforth  they  should  not  serve  sin,  that 
you  had  prepared  the  fields  and  sown  your  seeds  by  the  strictest 
rules  of  agriculture;  but  that  the  providence  of  God  blesses 
the  earth  with  no  dew  nor  rain ;  what  would  be  the  harvest  you 
promise  yourselves  ?  Suppose  that  lectures  for  years,  by  the 
greatest  master,  were  given  on  the  most  useful  and  noble  arts; 
but  that  the  teacher  never  took  into  his  own  hand,  nor  put  into 
that  of  his  students,  the  instruments  of  their  operation;  what 
sort  of  practical  mechanics  would  such  a  seminary  produce? 
In  the  same  manner,  it  is  equally  absurd  to  look  for  the  field  of 
youth,  with  the  seed  only,  without  the  enlivening  dews  and 
rains  of  religious  communion  seasonably  and  frequently  be- 
stowed, bringing  forth  a  ripe  and  matured  character.  It  is 
equally  absurd  to  look  for  a  trained  christian  in  the  greatest 
and  noblest  art  of  living  to  God,  without  initiation  into  the 
practice  of  the  art,  as  to  look  for  the  approved  workman  where 
we  have  directed  you. — Consult  the  history  of  the  human  race, 
its  impiety,  its  malice,  and  its  revenge,  and  ask  yourselves  then 
if  there  were  not  great  reasons  for  God,  by  the  wisest  of  men, 
addressing  parents  in  the  language  of  our  text ,  and  for  us  still, 
from  time  to  time,  thus  most  seriously  to  review  it. 

But  as  children,  we  plead,  are  more  obedient  to  example 
than  precept,  we  will  not  lead  you,  as  some  would,  into  the 
regions  of  terror,  by  supposing  their  upbraidings  of  you  in  a 
state  of  misery  from  which  there  is  no  release,  in  order  to  com- 
mand you  to  your  duty :  we  will,  in  the  spirit  of  that  religion 
which  says,  "  Suflfer  little  children  to  come  unto  me,  and  for- 
bid them  not,  for  of  such  is  the  kingdom  of  heaven,"  now,  in 
the  second  place,  turn  your  attention  to  the  motives  which 
should  lead  you  to  this  desirable  and  honorable  employment. 

First.  This  is  the  means  that  will  obtain  your  parental  desires 
in  regard  to  them.     That  children  should  be  respected,  happy, 


284  THE  DTTTY  OF  PARENTS 

and  even  good,  is  a  wish  which  is  unalienable  from  the  heart  of 
a  parent.  The  heads  of  the  family  may  be  abandoned  to  every 
vice  themselves,  and  may  appear  the  offscourings  of  mankind ; 
but  except  where  their  own  glaring  iniquities  will  not  permit 
them  to  speak  their  secret  desires,  or  where  the  habits  of  the 
children  have  grown  inveterate,  under  their  too  irresolute  dis- 
cipline, parents  will  weep  over  the  absence  of  the  welfare  and 
respect  of  their  offspring,  where  they  would  find  a  thousand  pert 
excuses  for  their  own  misdemeanors. — Good  men  consider 
themselves  as  either  undone  or  comforted  in  this  life,  by  the 
untoward  or  obedient  conduct  of  their  children.  Hence  sayg 
Solomon,  "  A  wise  son  maketh  a  glad  father,  but  a  froward 
son  is  the  sadness  of  his  mother.  A  foolish  son  is  a  grief  to 
his  father,  and  bitterness  to  her  that  bare  him."  The  agonies 
of  David  with  his  rebellious  and  wicked  family,  are  a  lively 
picture  of  the  grief  which  preys  upon  the  bowels  of  a  parent. 
Well,  would  you  desire  your  children  to  reflect  an  honor  upon 
the  name  they  bear,  and  to  cheer  your  declining  years  with 
filial  kindness  and  independent  worth,  consider  that  the  mate- 
rials are  in  your  hand,  and  that  the  attainment,  through  the 
promise  and  blessing  of  God,  depends  upon  your  care  and 
endeavors.  To  see  a  son  growing  into  manhood,  not  in  bodily 
dimensions  only,  but  in  the  talents  of  the  mind ;  for  a  father  to 
contemplate  him  as  prepared  for  useful  employment,  in  the 
state  and  in  the  church,  scenes  where  the  interest  of  man  and 
the  glory  of  God  are  strikingly  promoted ;  and  above  all,  to 
behold  him  a  star  of  benign  influence  in  the  domestic  circle 
where  he  resides,  and  daily  treading  himself  and  endeavoring 
to  lead  others  to  eternal  enjoyments,  must  be  one  of  the  live- 
liest and  brightest  of  this  world's  possessions.  A  parent 
invested  with  these  riches  might  challenge  the  treasures  of 
kingdoms,  however  destitute  of  gold  and  silver,  of  food  and 
raiment,  he  himself  was,  to  produce  such  stores  of  wealth, 
either  for  the  admiration  of  Others  or  the  felicity  of  himself. 
But  on  the  other  hand,   to   behold  children   wasting  their 


TO  THEIR  CHILDREN.  ^QJJ 

Strength,  and  substance  provided  for  them  through  years  of 
hardship  and  toil;  to  see  them  Sink  the  honor  of  their  family 
in  disgrace,  and  entail  perpetual  ignominy  upon  their  own 
ckaracters;  to  augur  their  eternal  destruction  from  the  fore- 
bodings of  a  uniform  vileness,  must  wring  the  hearts  of 
parents  with  agonies  which  they  alone  can  describe.  For  their 
own  sakes,  then,  they  should  be  abundantly  careful,  to  train  up 
a  child  in  the  way  he  should  go,  that  when  he  is  old  he  may  not 
depart  from  it. 

But  secondly.  They  are  to  do  this  duty  because  of  the  great 
honor  of  such  an  employment.     God  their  Creator  could  have 
formed  children  independent,  for  the  obtainment  of  knowledge, 
of  their  parents;  and  could   have   invested   them   with  other 
means  as  the  only  ones  for  the  direction  of  their  practice:  but 
as  they  bear  the  most  intimate  natural  relation  to  them  here,  he 
did  not  deprive  parents  of  what  would  be  so  truly  lionorable 
exercises  for  them.     To  the  memory  of  those  who  have  acliieved 
great  conquests,  or  acted  in  the  hour  of  danger  as  the  fathers  of 
their  country,  there  have  been  monuments  raised,  and  marked 
with  every  expression  of  gratitude  and  every  encomium.     But 
as  no  enemies  are  so  numerous,  subtle,  and  powerful,  as  the 
temptations  and  passions  of  youth,  the  trophy  which  is  erected 
for  the  memory  of  him  who  has  subdued  and  foiled  these,  though 
in  the  eye  of  the  world  at  large  less  brilliant,  is  yet  both  bettcF 
founded  and  more  substantial,  than  the  laurels  which  crown  the 
brow  of  the  successful  patriot  and  conqueror.     In  truth,  more 
assiduity,  and  even  ingenuity  of  such  a  kind  indeed  as  is  more 
common  amongst  men,  are  necessary  to  rear  children  in   the 
empire  of  virtue  erected  upon  the  ruins  of  prevalent  vices  aini 
immoralities,  than  are  required  to  plant  the  standard  of  conqnest 
and  victory  on  the  walls  of  an  enemy.     Never  was  a  more  suo- 
cessful  warrior  than  David,  King  of  Israel,  in  every  engagement- 
but   he   who   could  rout  the  Philistines   and   Jebusites    and 
every  enemy  of  the  people  of  God,  yet  found  himself  weak  and 
unsuccessful  in  vanquishing  the  temptations  which  surrounded 
them,  and  the  passions  which  impelled  his  own  family  to  t]:ei: 
ruin  an<3  disgrace.— Bui  though  difficult,  a  diligent  apphcation 
S5 


285  THE  D?JTY  OF    PARENTS 

of  the  means  cannot  fail  to  attain  the  end.  David,  it  is  suspect- 
ed, was  a  more  watchful  shepherd  over  the  floek  of  Israel,  and  a 
more  attentive  general  to  array  their  ranks,  than  a  leader  to  the 
members  of  his  own  family. — Innumerable  parents  have  beheld 
a  living  image  of  all  their  pious  desires,  liberal  instructions, 
candid  advices,  and  commendable  examples,  shining  in  their 
trained  and  tutored  children.  Except  where  there  are  dangers 
to  brave  G.nQ.  difficulties  to  overcome,  there  is  little  glory  to  reap  • 
and  God,  who  knows  what  joy  it  must  communicate  to  a  parent 
to  have  been  the  principal  instrument  of  rearing  his  son  to  all 
the  ends  of  r-As  existence,  hath  allotted  to  him,  in  this  endearing 
connexion,  opportunities  for  those  endeavors  that  will  procure 
such  a  revenue  of  honor  to  his  success.  What  incalculable 
happiness  in  the  state  of  estimation  and  reward  hereafter,  for 
parents  to  reflect,  that  though  their  children  fell  into  their  arms 
Vt/ith  inclinations  to  every  vanity;  that  although  the  sparks  of 
knowledge  and  piety  they  endeavored  to  kindle  in  them  were 
likely  to  be  extinguished  by  the  floods  of  temptation;  yet  their 
perseverance,  by  the  blessing  of  God,  brought  them,  througli 
these  seas  of  danger,  and  landed  them  their  honorable  and  joyful 
companions  in  the  land  of  everlasting  life.  You  whose  cir- 
cumstances are  straitened,  and  whose  qualifications  make  you 
timid,  reccilect  what  glory  a  conquest  of  your  difficulties  will 
diffuse  over  your  character,  and  what  a  happiness  your  feeble 
exertions  here  will  provide  for  you  hereafter.  Jn  every  other, 
but  especially  in  this,  can  you  say  with  truth,  "  For  our  light 
afHiction.  which  is  but  for  a  momeni,  worketh  for  us  a  far  more 
exceeding  and  eternal  weight  of  glory.*"  Oh,  what  a  gracious 
God,  to  make  the  most  indispensable  duty  of  man,  and  the  most 
difficult  to  be  properly  performed,  the  most  rich  reward  and 
most  copious  source  of  enjoyment,  both  in  this  world  and  that 
v/hich  is  to  come. 

But  thirdly.  This  command  is  given,  because  children  look 
up  to  parents  for  their  information  and  instruction.  We  have 
classed  this  idea  amongst  the  motives,  because  the  helplessness 
of  infancy  draws  forth  the  deepest  care  under  the  attire  of 
parental  aflfection  and  sym.pathy.     The  pleasure  which  the  parent 


TO  TIIEIR  CHILDREN.  287 

has  in  rescuing  his  chiidren  from  the  devouring  flames,  must  be 
equal  to  the  solicitude  into  which  his  mind  was  plunged  by  the 
magnitude  and  imminent  nature  of  the  danger  which  threatened 
them.  Well,  the  consideration  of  children  being  so  destitute  of 
genuine  principles  of  religious  and  moral  conduct,  and  so 
devoid  of  inclinations  for  commendable  practice,  certainly  will 
engage  the  thoughtful  parent  to  very  strenuous  exertions.  You 
may  imagine  what  would  be  your  feelings,  did  you  see  these 
pledges  of  your  love  and  affection  secluded  fiom  every  earthly 
happiness  in  the  miseries  of  n  dungeon,  or  under  ihe  slavei7  of 
a  cruel  tyrant.  Tears  would  speak  emphatically  the  affection 
you  bear  them,  and  the  desire  you  have  to  relieve  them.  But  is 
there  any  prison  so  truly  deplorable,  any  tyranny  so  bitterly  un- 
mixed, as  that  prison  of  ignorance,  and  that  tyranny  of  unsub- 
dued, unruly  passions,  where  are  beheld  the  babes  of  the  careless 
and  the  profane?  No;  if  there  is  a  principle  implanted  in  the 
breast  of  man,  that  would  prompt  him  to  interpose  in  behalf  of 
his  son  perishing  in  the  devouring  whirlpool,  standing  unsus- 
pected on  the  tottering  precipice,  or  assailed  by  the  poniard  of 
the  assassin,  here  is  an  opportunity  for  him  to  give  full  play  to 
his  sympathy.  The  child  of  his  affections,  unless  properly 
trained,  is,  in  the  glory  of  his  being,  his  morality,  and  his  reli- 
gion, more  apt  to  perish,  than  is  any  earthly  danger  to  issue  in 
its  fatal  effects.  The  bent  of  his  own  soul  is  to  evil,  and  amid 
the  innumerable  snares  which  are  laid  for  him,  he  is  ready  to  fall 
a  prey  to  the  evil  one.  The  imaginations  of  the  heart  of  man 
are  only  evil,  and  that  continually;  and  if  the  <:ompass  of  this 
heart  be  not  under  the  attractions  of  mild,  generous,  pointed, 
and  prudent  direction,  it  is  not  to  be  expected  that  the 
voyage  of  life  v/ill  be  happily  made,  or  his  landing  felicitous 
hereafter. 

But  fourthly  and  lastly.  VVe  would  engage  you  to  this  duty, 
because  of  the  confidence  with  which  you  may  expect  success. 
It  is  the  Spirit  of  inspiration  who  here  declares,  that  if  a  child 
be  trained  up  in  his  youth  in  the  way  he  should  go,  he  will  not 
when  old  depart  from  it^  and  whilst  it  is  obvious  that  this  pro- 
verb is  founded  on  the  general  experience  of  mankind,  and 
admits  of  some  dishonorable  exceptions,  the  certainty  that  it  is 


268  THE  DUTY  OP  PARENTS 

founded,  like  every  other  proverb,  on  the  general  results  in  life, 
places  before  our  view  the  most  distinctly  marked  encourage- 
ment. In  many  instances,  the  most  hazardous  experiments  and 
the  most  expensive  are  made  by  individuals,  and  the  most  labo- 
rious and  daring  expeditions  are  undertaken  by  states  and 
nations,  wrhere  the  permanency  of  the  advantages  to  be  secured 
rests  upon  the  most  suspicious  basis:  but  the  stream  of  the 
child's  life  which  is  properly  conducted,  gathering  strength  as 
it  iiows,  bears  down  every  opposition,  and  will  not  be  diverted 
from  its  course.  No ;  guided  by  the  light  which  has  been  infused 
into  his  mind,  and  guarded  by  the  holiness  of  the  character  he 
has  been  ever  accustomed  to  wear,  the  vices  which  prevail 
around  him,  and  the  irreligion  which  marks  the  most  of  the  age 
he  lives  in,  instead  of  surprising  or  beguiling  him,  as  they  do 
the  unprepared  and  the  defenceless,  only  stimulate  and  fan  his 
virtues.  "The  path  of  the  just  is  as  the  shining  light,  which 
shineth  more  and  more  unto  the  perfect  day."  To  be  sure,  the 
infirmities  of  human  nature  will  discover  themselves  in  all 
men;  and  there  may,  in  many  instances,  be  in  the  conduct  of 
manhood  a  lamentable  desertion  of  the  principles  of  youth ;  but 
at  a  later  period  there  may  be  a  happy  returning ;  a  declaration  of 
repentance  in  these  mournful  words:  "Father,  I  have  sinned 
against  heaven  and  in  thy  sight,  and  am  no  more  worthy  to  be 
called  thy  son ;  make  me  as  one  of  thy  hired  servants."  In  many 
instances  has  there  been  an  imitation  of  that  example,  which  is 
so  much  to  our  present  purpose,  and  which  is  so  generally 
known,  of  a  great  man  that  was  stung  through  every  scene  of  a 
loose  life,  by  the  maternal  instructions  and  lessons  of  piety, 
which,  in  very  early  infancy,  he  had  received,  and  who,  at  last, 
through  the  grace  of  God,  has  presented  us  with  the  example 
from  which  we  must  insist  so  much  upon  the  efficacy  of  the 
doctrine  taught  in  our  text.  Yes,  the  formation  of  an  estimable 
character  will  weather  the  storms  of  temptation  in  general ;  and 
when  at  any  time  the  violence  of  them  may  carry  him  far  out  of 
his  course,  it  will  recover  the  distressed  and  miserable  mariner 
to  the  latitudes  along  which  he  should  bear.  "  Train  up  a  child 
in  the  way  he  should  go,  and  ^hen  he  is  old  he  will  not  depart 
from  it." 


•no  TBienR  CHILDREN.  289 

Terrible  must  be  the  wickedness  of  some  individuals;  for 
though  they  have  got  the  most  eligible  education,  yet  they  hav€ 
contemned  its  blessings,  and  live  devoted  to  every  kind  of  evil. 
They  are  the  exceptions  from  the  general  truth  mentioned  in 
our  text,-  and  as  they  are  wandering  stars  of  such  irregular 
orbits,  the  reprobation  of  mankind  is  fixed  upon  them,  and 
their  end  can  scarce  fail  to  be  the  blackness  of  darkness  for 
ever.  How  low  human  nature  sinks,  when  the  son  of  a  respecta- 
ble and  religious  father,  who  lias  been  the  centro  of  his  care  and 
hopes,  withers  in  the  bloom  of  life,  and  languishes  out  a  de- 
graded existence,  low  as  that  of  the  brutes  which  perish;  whose 
breaili.  by  his  sensual  indulgences,  taints  the  air,  and  whose 
words,  by  his  profanity,  pollute  the  walk  on  which  piety  may 
meet  him.  Such  reminds  us  of  the  reprobate  Cain,  of  Esau,  and 
Judas,  the  wandering  star  from  tlie  divine  instructions  of  the 
great  parent  and  teacher  of  mankind,  and  who  perished  to  go 
to  his  place.  On  the  other  hand,  what  happiness  does  a  youth 
properly  educated,  and  remaining  under  the  blessings  of  this 
education,  enjoy?  The  sweets  of  knowledge,  which  are  pure 
as  the  light  of  heaven,  are  his  possession;  and  when  this 
knowledge  is  clothed  with  piety,  he  is  fitted  for  every  dispen- 
■  sation  of  providence  and  every  station  of  life  here,  and  for  the 
eternal  house  itself  of  his  heavenly  Fatlier.  When  I  attend 
the  remains  of  a  holy  youth  to  tliO  bed  of  his  long  repose, 
there  is  a  swell  of  thought  runs  in  my  mind,  and  spreads  itself, 
iike  the  circles  on  the  tranquil  lake,  tilMostin  the  indefinable 
distance — a  presage  to  me  that  he  has  died  as  if  an  Iiundred 
years  old,  and  that  mortality  is  about,  undoubtedly,  in  his  in- 
stance, to  be  swallowed  up  of  life.  I  return  and  repeat  to  the 
pious  parents,  that  tiie  Lord  God  orimiiX)tent  roigneth,  and  that 
this  day  he  hath  rewarded  them  for  all  their  toil  and  labor  about 
•the  little  plant  in  his  nneyard,  which  he  hath  now  taken  to 
grow  on  the  borders  of  the  river  of  life  which  issues  out  of 
the  throne  of  God  and  of  the  Lamb. — The  parents  are  tender, 
and  their  aifections  are  moved  by  that  cold  earth  which  covers 
him. — I  leave  them  with  uttering,  "  This  corruptible  mnst  put  on 
incorruption,  and  this  mortal  must  put  on  immortality,"    Amen, 

25* 


DISCOURSE  XIII. 


ON  LIGHT. 


OzN.  1:3.     God  said,  let  there  be  light:  and  there  was  light. 

The  beauty  of  scripture  composition,  my  brethren,  is  seldom 
seen  at  first  sight.  Indeed,  where  there  is  order,  it  seems,  to  a 
superficial  review,  that  there  is  confusion.  This  apparent  con- 
fusion never  appears  greater  than  when  light,  the  ornament  of 
all  the  works  of  God,  is  the  subject.  "  And  the  life,"  says 
^ohn,  "was  the  light  of  men."  What  life?  That  which, 
according  to  him,  existed  long  before  it  appeared. — For  tliis 
evangelist  presents  us  with  a  beautiful  gradation  which  the 
Spirit  of  God  maintains  in  expressing  the  wisdom  of  his 
arrangements.  Matthew,  the  first  of  the  evangelists,  rehearses 
the  record  of  God  respecting  his  Son,  in  whom  is  eternal  life, 
as  it  traces  the  genealogy  of  Christ  according  to  the  flesh  to 
David,  King  of  Israel;  Luke  carries  it  up  to  Adam,  who  was 
the  son  of  God;  and  John,  who  wrote  the  last  of  the  evange- 
lists, passes  on  with  the  genealogy  of  the  Messiah  into  eternity. 
**  In  the  beginning  was  the  word,  and  the  word  was  with  God, 
and  the  word  was  God."  And  then  as  the  joy  of  all  the  patri- 
archs and  holy  men  of  God,  as  Zacharias  said,  came  to  his 
temple,  John,  wrapt  in  the  robe  of  the  visions  of  the  prophets, 
exclaimed,  ^'  the  life,"  which  was  "in  the  beginning,  is  the  light 
ofmen." 

The  expression  in  our  text  is  uncommonly  sublime.  It  is, 
indeed,  not  like  the  roaring  of  thunder,  nor  the  noise  of  the 
whirlvvind:  it  is  not  like  the  earthquake,  nor  the  foaming  of  the 


ON    LIGHT.  291 

cataract;  it  is  not  like  the  moving  of  the  mountains  from  their 
places,  nor  the  laying  bare  the  foundations  of  the  deep:  but  it 
is  something  far  more  grand.  These  are  the  sublime  objects  of 
untutored  minds;  sublime  to  the  herdsman  and  shepherd,  to  the 
husbandman,  and  hunter  with  his  bow  and  arrow  in  the  forest: 
but  light  is  the  object  of  admiration  and  astonishment  to  all  the 
inhabitants  of  the  universe.  When  the  young  man,  Elisha's 
companion,  had  his  eyes  opened,  and  saw  all  the  mountain  full 
of  horses  and  chariots  of  fire,  he  saw  a  sight  that  was  wonder- 
fully sublime;  and  were  JohnVnew  Jerusalem,  with  its  walls 
and  streets  of  pure  gold,  and  its  gates  of  pearl,  really  to  appear, 
it  would  be  the  grandest  of  objects  made  out  of  the  most  pre- 
cious materials  which  our  earth  affords:  but  it  would  be  grand  in 
a  small  chamber  in  the  house  of  creation,  and  would  not  be  the 
ornament  and  life  of  the  whole. 

This  light  is  first  said,  in  this  chapter,  to  have  been  created; 
and  then  several  days  afterwards,  says  Moses,  "  God  made  two 
great  lights  and  placed  them  in  the  heavens;  the  greater  light 
to  rule  the  day,  and  the  lesser  light  to  rule  the  night."     This  is 
by  many  supposed  an  inconsistent  account.     But  it  is  simple 
and  beautiful.     In  the  materials  of  the  very  stones  of  our  earth 
there  is  combined  light,  many  of  its  strata  yield  it  in  the  great- 
est splendor,  and  water  when  inflamed  is  a  lamp  of  sparkling 
brightness.     The  air  which  we  breathe  in  the  darkest  night  has, 
asleep  in  its  bosom,  a  vast  possession  of  it,  which,  when  the  air  is 
suddenly  condensed,  escapes  from  it  like  the  lightning  of  heaven. 
Our  earth  then  has  the  matter  of  light,  like  the  matter  of  heat, 
diffused  through  all  that  abyss  on  which  the  Spirit  of  God  was 
moving,  when  God  said,  "Let   there  be  light,  and  it  was." 
Besides,  light  disdains  the   humble  abode   of  one  particular 
habitation.     The  sun  was  formed  and  clothed  with  his  robe  of 
radiant  light,  and  the  moon  on   her  surface,  like  our  earth, 
received  illumination  from  him;  but  tliere  are  millions  of  suns 
which  had  each  to  get  their  portion;  ai.d  as  light,  not  for  our 
little  world,  nor  for  our  solar  system,  was,  as  we  must  believe, 
created  by  these  words,  "let  there  be  light,"  but  for  the  uni- 
verse;  it   must   have   been  first   formed,   siid   then  collected 


292  ON    LIGHT^ 

afterwards  to  the  various  stations  where  in  majesty  it  w.as  to 
shine. 

I  intend  to  show  you,  to-day,  that  light  by  its  properties  ele- 
vates the  understanding  of  man,  guides  him  in  all  the  practice 
of  life,  illustrates  the  moral  relations  of  the  universe,  and  insi- 
nuates to  man  that  in  soul  and  body,  as  a  creature  of  God,  he 
is  an  immortal  being. 

First.  Light  improves  the  understanding  of  man.  The  gar- 
den of  Eden,  had  it  not  been  for  the  light  of  the  sun,  would 
have  been  a  poor  habitation  fdV  man;  to  illuminate  which  even 
the  flaming  sword  of  the  avenging  angel  might  have  been 
adopted  in  preference  to  the  darkness  which  hung  over  it. 
There  was  not  a  flower  in  Eden  but  which  was  painted  into  every 
tint  of  beauty  by  the  light  of  day.  They  are  the  rays  of  light 
which  to  our  eye  form  the  blue  sky  and  arch  the  heavens;  which 
gild  over  the  clouds,  and  give  them  comeliness  to  variegate  at 
times  the  face  of  the  firmament;  that  the  heavens  may  declare 
the  glory  of  God,  and  the  sky  show  forth  his  handy  works.  In 
the  morning  they  are  the  rays  of  light  that  sit  in  ornaments  of  gold 
upon  the  mountain's  brow,  and  fire  the  youthful  imagination  with 
those  sensations  which  teach  patriotism,  and  begin  the  attempts 
of  poetry,  ^'  Come  with  me  from  Lebanon,  my  spouse,  with  me 
from  Lebanon;  look  from  the  top  of  Amana,  from  the  top  of 
Shenir  and  Hevmon,  from  the  lions'  dens  and  mountains  of  the 
leopards."  Light  is  airy,  and  seemingly  very  unsubstantial,  as 
in  the  rainbow;  but  it  stretches  itself  in  that  sublime  arch  of 
heaven,  that  it  may  appear  alone,  and  away  from  all  gross  earthly 
objects  which  we  think  have  colors  in  themselves;  and  that  it 
may  teach  us  that  all  the  beauties  which  are  spread  over  nature 
are  from  these  rays  that  thus,  in  the  covenant  of  God,  are  a 
pledge  of  his  mercy  that  he  will  destroy  our  earth  no  more  by 
water. 

It  is  light  which  enables  us  to  command,  with  the  greatest 
ease,  the  most  extensive  prospects  on  the  surface  of  our  earth; 
that  presents  to  us,  in  an  instant  of  time,  the  extensive  range  of 
distant  mountains,  the  valleys  with  their  winding  streams,  their 
cities,  their  villages,  and  fertile  fields.     It  is  light  which  enables 


ON    LIGHT.  t93 

US  to  stretch  our  eye  over  the  ocean,  and  qualifies  the  mariner, 
by  a  single  glance,  to  return  with  the  picture  of  an  unknown 
country  which  accident  may  have  cast  within  some  miles  of  his 
course.  It  is  light,  in  a  word,  which  makes  man  an  inhabitant 
of  this  world,  and  identifies  him  with  its  fields,  its  forests,  its 
valleys,  its  hills,  its  seas,  its  islands,  its  continents;  for,  were  not 
this  element  of  our  accommodation  provided  for  us,  our  condition 
in  this  world,  as  respects  itself,  might  justly  be  compared  to  the 
oyster  in  its  shell,  or  the  passion  flower,  which  feels  but  has  no 
range  of  enjoyment  beyond  itself. 

But  light  guides  the  eye  of  research  in  all  the  attainments  of 
knowledge.  Light  not  only  touches  the  leaves  of  the  flowers 
with  their  inimitable  colorings,  so  that  Solomon  in  all  his  glory 
was  not  arrayed  like  one  of  them ;  but  it  leads  the  eye  of  the 
pliilosopher  to  these  gentle  offspring  of  nature,  and  enables  him 
to  observe  the  wisdom  which  is  contained  in  the  cup  of  every 
flower;  and  thus,  while  it  makes  him  devout,  it  fills  his  pages 
with  descriptions  of  the  works  of  nature.  But  it  guides  him 
further;  it  enables  him  to  assort  the  fruits  of  creation,  and  to 
observe  what  his  experience  teaches  him  is  useful  upon  the  soil, 
and  to  reject  what  encumbers  it  only.  But  it  goes  farther;  it 
qualifies  him  to  lay  open  the  interior  of  the  productions  of  nature, 
and  apply  to  all  the  uses  and  ornaments  of  life  the  pine  and  the 
cedar  wood,  the  oak,  and  every  tree  of  the  forest.  But  this  is 
by  no  means  the  highest  attainment  of  vision.  Light  submits  to 
accommodate  us,  so  that  by  a  little  artifice  we  may  behold  mil- 
lions of  creatures  in  the  family  of  our  heavenly  Father,  which 
even  our  natural  sight  cannot  perceive.  Indeed,  it  is  the  eye  of 
man  that  peoples  creation  with  all  the  most  delicate  and  gentle 
of  the  objects  in  the  vegetable  creation,  and  with  those  myriads 
of  animal  existences,  the  properties  of  which  blindness  could 
never  ascertain,  but  which  are  such  amazing  evidences  of  the 
wisdom  and  beneficence  of  the  glorious  Creator. 

Connecting  us  with  the  myriads  of  living  and  organized  exis- 
tences which  here  have  members  of  the  most  beautiful  symmetry 
and  color,  and  are  totally  unknown  to  darkness;  it  is  light,  too, 
which  enables  us  to  walk  through  the  vast  regions  of  the  fixed 


294  ON   LIGHT, 

Stars,  and  to  consider  ourselves  as  inhabitants  of  the  universe. 
How  enlarged  we  feel  ourselves,  when  by  light  aided  by  a  little 
artificial  contrivance,  we  examine  the  environs  of  the  most  dis» 
tant  planets,  see  their  retinue  of  magnificent  attendants,  and  then 
pass  on  to  observe  those  stars  which,  appearing  to  the  naked  eye 
as  one  body  only,  divide  into  brilliant  companions  at  immeasura- 
ble distances  from  one  another.  How  vast  is  the  capacity  of 
man  when  it  is  thus  stretched ;  and  still  he  is  conscious  of  a 
power  to  continue  his  observations  at  much  greater  removes 
from  his  little  home. 

Well  may  it  be  said,  God  made  man  in  his  own  image;  for 
while  this  image,  under  the  freshest  appearance  of  its  coloring, 
was  indescribably  faint;  yet  man  is  not  like  any  of  the  lower 
species  of  creation.  Light  is,  indeed,  useful  to  them;  but  it 
cannot  conduct  them,  by  the  beauties  which  it  spreads  before  them, 
to  seek  entertainment  from  kindred  beauties  in  other  parts  of  our 
earth.  Some  things  which  they  have  seen  they  remember;  but 
tliey  cannot  picture  to  themselves  the  beauties  of  the  valleys  and 
mountains  of  the  world,  nor  travel  over  its  surface  to  reap  the 
pleasure  of  actual  enjoyment.  Their  eye  is,  indeed,  in  some 
instances,  better  formed  than  that  of  man;  but  their  instincts 
are  narrow  and  circumscribed;  whereas  man  opens  his  eye  and 
feeds  on  the  prospect  which  is  immediately  before  it,  receives 
descriptions  of  other  visible  scenes  from  other  men,  is  delighted 
with  meditation  upon  them,  leaves  the  earth,  and  pursues  new 
enjoyments  in  the  distant  regions  of  unbounded  space.  God 
said  let  there  be  light;  and  man,  by  means  of  it,  connects  him- 
self with  the  life  that  sports  in  the  summer's  ray,  and  with  the 
furniture  of  the  creation  through  an  amazing  chamber  of  her 
works. 

But  secondly.  Light  directs  the  practice.  Nothing  through 
perhaps  creation  can  be  done  without  it.  This  may  be  the  rea- 
son why  it  is  so  universally  spread,  and  why  no  place  is  left  abso- 
lutely without  it.  The  stars  are  delicate  lamps  which  perpetu- 
ally shine,  and  enclose  us  on  all  hands.  Some  creatures, 
indeed,  are  overpowered  by  the  effulgence  of  day;  but  the  night 
has  beams  sufficient  for  them.     This  arrangement  of  the  Creator 


ON    LIGHT.  295 

may  be  intended  to  point  out  to  the  least  observant  of  man- 
kind, how  easily  God  can  suit,  in  the  most  remote  corners  of 
a  solar  system,  his  creatures  to  the  condition  of  their  habitation. 
— Yes,  some  creatures  can  live  only  in  the  purest  emission  of  the 
summer's  rays,— indicative  to  us  of  the  happy  regions  of  those 
globes  which  move  near  to  the  sun;  and  others  retire  into  the 
cool  shade  and    the  caves    of  the  earth  till  the  chill    of  our 

evenings,  when  they  can  enter  on  the  fatigues  of  their  labor 

a  proof  how  delightful  may  be  those  habitations  which  lie  far 
beyond  us. 

Indeed,  the  economy  of  our  world,  as  connected  with  light, 
illustrates  in  some  respects  to  us  the  expedients  which  must 
render  delightful  the  most  apparently  dreary  suburbs  of  any 
system.  As  light  is  absolutely  necessary  to  the  business  of 
life,  so  many  creatures  here  have  the  power  of  laying  up  a  trea- 
sure of  it,  and  of  drawing  it  forth  only  when  it  is  in  demand. 
Indeed  the  depths  of  the  plans  of  providence  in  this  respect  are 
astonishing.  We  are  delighted  with  the  green  color  of  the  sea  ■ 
but  we  little  think  that  the  rest  of  the  rays  are  absorbed  by  those 
invisible  animalculsB,  which  fill  every  drop  of  the  water  where  it 
has  this  color,  and  that  support  the  larger  inhabitants  of  the  deep, 
and  supply  them  with  that  light  which  those  that  live  at  the 
bottom  of  the  abyss  can  bring  to  play  around  their  path  at  their 
pleasure.  The  very  vegetable  creation  cannot  carry  on  any  pro- 
cess to  advantage,  without  both  the  heat  and  the  light  of  the  sun. 
Throughout  all  existences  that  grow  on  our  earth,  light  seems 
tlie  source  of  their  joy.  It  gives  health  and  vigor  to  every  flower 
and  plant,  and  even  the  very  shells  of  the  fish  of  the  sea  seem 
greedily  to  absorb  it;  as  if  without  it  no  enjoyment  could 
t^ke  place.  When  the  heathen  philosopher  passed  a  high 
encomium  on  Moses  for  the  sublime  conception  in  our  text  he 
knew  little  of  the  reasons  which  might  have  been  assianed  for 
his  observation;  but  modern  science  has  supplied  the  deficiency; 
and  it  may  be  truly  said,  that  as  God  dwells  in  light  inacce^ 
sible  and  full  of  glory;  so  all  creatures  that  have  the  life 
even  of  organization  are,  for  their  joy,  absolutely  dependeat 
upon  it. 


296  ON    LIGHT. 

I  cannot  run  over  the  departments  of  the  business  of  human 
life  to  exemplify  its  utility  to  man .  Look  at  his  eye  and  his 
implements,  and  you  will  at  once  see  how  necessarily,  in  ail 
instances,  these  are  connected  together.  Life  itself  is  not  more 
necessary  in  the  agent  than  vision  in  the  eye.  I  direct  you  to 
the  confidence  which  every  step  betokens,  and  the  ease  and 
expedition  with  which  it  is  taken ;  and  I  direct  you  to  the  diffi- 
culties of  darkness.  "  Come  near  me,  my  son,  that  I  may  feel 
whether  you  are  my  very  son  Esau:  and  he  said,  the  voice  is 
the  voice  of  Jacob,  but  the  hands  are  the  hands  of  Esau. — 
Arise,  my  father,  and  eat  of  my  venison.  Who  art  thou  ?  I 
tim  thy  son  Esau.  And  he  trembled  with  an  exceeding  great 
trembling,  and  he  said,  who  is  he,  where  is  he,  who  hath  come, 
and  with  subtlety  hath  taken  away  thy  blessing?"  1  direct  you 
to  the  joy  of  the  business  of  life.  The  morning  sun  gladdens 
creation;  the  firmament  is  filled  with  music;  the  labor  of  the 
day  increases;  but  man  wipes  from  his  brow  the  sweat,  and 
throws  a  glance,  forgotten  indeed  the  next  moment,  over  the 
Burrounding  scenes  of  nature,  and  gathers  a  refreshment 
sweeter  than  a  mere  imagination  bred  in  darkness  could  ever 
present. 

But  light  would  have  availed  nothing  to  the  business  of  life, 
separated  from  the  end  for  which  here  it  was  prepared.  Beforo 
the  divine  mind,  when  God  said,  "  let  there  be  light,*"  the  sub- 
stance and  forms  of  all  eyes,  for  air,  earth,  and  water,  stood  in- 
fallibly connected  with  the  realities  to  be  prepared.  How  admi- 
rahle  an  organ  is  the  eye  of  man!  There  may  be  as  much 
wisdom  indeed  in  the  construction  of  the  ear,  and  of  the  organ 
of  taste  or  smell ;  yea,  in  the  formation  of  a  hair  of  the  head ; 
but  the  eye  expresses  its  wisdom  more  openly  to  our  capacity,. 
Our  eye  is  the  most  delicate  of  all  our  members,  and  yet  the  rays 
of  light  never  injure  nor  weary  it;  and  with  a  rapidity  little  infe- 
rior to  the  velocity  of  light  itself,  it  changes  its  form  for  every 
new  point  of  the  scene  which  it  wishes  to  survey.  Above  all 
things  in  our  constitution  that  is  inexpressibly  wonderful,  this  of 
the  accommodation  of  our  vision  according  to  the  distance  of 
mety  object  proclaims,  to  the  few  people  who  have  adverted  to 


ON    LIGHT.  297 

it,  the  delicacy  of  the  divine  wisdom,  and  the  minuteness  of  ifs 
attention  to  our  happiness  in  our  situation.  The  labor  of  the 
eye,  too,  in  turning  in  its  socket,  is  always  gone  through  with 
so  much  ease,  that  though  it  traverses  with  its  axis  a  loncrer 
journey  every  day,  than  would  weary  any  other  member  of  our 
frame,  it  never  since  creation  uttered  a  complaint. 

ft  is  with  propriety,  my  christian  brethren,  that  the  heathen, 
who  lost  sight  of  the  intellectual  and  moral  beauties  of  creation, 
are  represented  as  a  people  who  sit  in  darkness  and  have  no 
light;  and  that  revelation,  the  word  of  divine  knowledge,  is 
always  presented  to  us  as   the  light  of  the  world.     Where 
there  is  no  vision,  the  people  and  all  the  business  of  life  perish, 
even  in  a  literal  point  of  view.     It  is  often  by  critics  quoted  as 
a   remarkably  heroic  and  courageous  expression  of  one  of 
Homer's  heroes,  who,  when  stopped  in  the  heat  of  the  fight  by 
impracticable  darkness,  prayed  to  Jupiter  to  give  light,  if  he 
should  then  slay  him  when  it  would  direct  his  steps.     Milton'? 
lamentation  over  the  loss  of  his  sight  is  by  all  admired  as  one  of 
the  most   natural  and  pathetic  passages   to  be  found  in  any 
composition;  but  to  a  philosophical  mind  the  inimitably  fine 
scenes  in  "  Paradise  Lost"  show  that  the  writer  of  them,  after 
blindness  had  seized  him,  could  find  no  enjoyments  but  in  re- 
calling and  contemplating  those  beauties,  the  elements  of  which 
had  entered  by  the  eye.      Of  all  productions  in  poetry,  those 
which  have  proceeded  from  men  who  by  age  have  lost  their 
sight,  are  the  most  admirable:  but  the  reason  of  this  is  very 
obvious;  present  objects  of  interest  are  very  scantily  presented 
to  them;  and  the  past  objects  of  delight  are  pursued,  caught, 
aew  moulded,  and  formed  into  the  brightest  attitudes.  Some  of 
these  productions  are,  therefore,  airy  and  i)right;  the  fancy  of 
youth  having  clothed  the  knowledge  of  experience  and  of  age: 
but  when  they  touch  on  their  present  feelings  and  their  rela- 
tions to  the  universe,  their  strains  are  like  the  sound  of  the 
birds  that  sing  by  night,  melancholy  and  doleful;  and  thougli 

some  of  the  strains  may  be  sweet,  these  are  like  the  notes"./ 
26 


298  ON    LIGHT. 

the  nighTingale,  that  seem  to  spring  from  a  perpetual  foimtaixy 
of  sorrow. 

But  thirdly.  Light  is  indicative  of  the  character  of  the  moral 
government  of  the  universe.  We  have^  from  a  minute  exami- 
nation of  them,  many  evidences,  from  other  things,  of  the  cha- 
racter of  the  divine  government  in  our  world.  The  fact  that 
the  proportion  of  original  elements  in  all  compound  substances 
of  the  same  nature,  are  always  invariably  the  same;  that  the 
air  never  varies  in  the  proportion  of  the  elements  which  com- 
pose it ;  that  water  never  in  its  composition  will  admit  one 
particle  more  or  less  at  one  time  than  at  another;  that  crystali- 
zations  of  the  same  substance  are  invariably  under  the  same 
angle,  and  in  the  same  proportions;  that  the  forms  of  the 
organs  of  plants  never  deviated  from  their  order  since  creation^ 
nor  is  even  a  color  of  their  leaf  changed;  that  every  thing 
brings  forth  i^s  kind  in  perfection  of  parts  and  organs— these 
things  clearly  show  that  there  is  a  plan  of  perfection  connected 
with  the  natural  government  of  the  world;  and  also  that  if  any 
of  God's  creatures  here  be  under  a  moral  law  proceeding  from 
tlie  same  origin,  it  must  have  a  definite  perfection,  as  well  as 
all  other  emanations  from  the  divine  councils.  This  is  the 
very  truth  which  the  sense  of  religion  in  all  men  appears 
weakly  to  have  laid  hold  of;  for  sacrifices  of  expiation  have 
been  offered  in  ail  places  and  ages;  but  the  view  of  it  waSy 
like  the  rest  of  their  knowledge  of  divine  things,  extremely 
imperfect  among  the  heathen  nations.  But  these  words,  "  the 
Judge  of  ail  the  earth  will  do  right,"  receive  from  the  light  of 
modern  science  a  strictness  and  an  inflexibility  of  interpretation 
which  are  grand  and  majestic.  Science  has  passed  into  every 
chamber  of  the  divine  works;  and  all  things  are  definite  and 
unchangeable  in  the  principles  which  form  their  nature  and 
regulate  their  character.  There  is  one  common  law  to  every 
existence  of  the  same  species;  and  this  is  as  permanent  as  the 
order  of  the  universe,  and  cannot  be  altered  without  the  anni 
hilation  of  a  species  of  being. 


ON    LIGHT.  299 

It  may  make  man  stand  amazed  at  the  accumulation  of 
guilt  which  thus  the  order  of  the  universe  brings  against  him 
for  his  transgressions;  but  it  is  the  very  view  of  the  subject  the 
scriptures  present.  To  a  christian,  whose  faith  is  founded  oh 
the  immediate  communications  of  revelation^  the  view  we  have 
exhibited  has  nothing  alarming.  Re  may  not  have  so  minutely 
analyzed  the  mind  of  the  great  and  universal  Governor  as  1 
have  attempted  to  do;  but  his  belief  is  not  in  the  least  differ- 
ent.— Is  it  said  that  we  know  nothing  of  the  perfection  of  the 
divine  works,  unkss  in  this  small  corner  of  them  where  we 
reside?  .  The  rays  of  light,  ray  brethren,  convey  a  knowledge 
to  us  of  the  order  of  the  heavens.  The  stars  all  shine  invari- 
ably brightly^  or  change  by  some  know-n  law  wliich  adds  only 
to  the  wisdom  of  the  economy  by  which  they  are  governed. 
There  is  the  power  of  attraction  which  binds  our  solar  system 
into  an  order,  which  in  some  degree  we  can  estimate ;  and  this 
order  is  nover  disturbed,  any  more  than  the  wisdom  of  the 
Maker  of  all  could  find  any  diiSculty  in  adjusting  that  admi^ 
rably  perfect  plan  which  from  his  will  the  system  exemplifies. 

But  it  is  light  itself  that  is  the  universal  herald  of  the  abso- 
lute ])erfection  of  the  creation.  It  travels  through  all  space, 
and  it  has  no  variety  in  any  portion  of  its  journey  different  from 
what  it  had  in  any  other.  It  moves  universally  in  the  same 
straight  lines  when  left  to  itself,  and  with  the  same  velocity. 
And  the  rays  which  come  from  the  most  distant  stars  are 
affected,  in  all  instances,  precisely  in  the  same  manner  as  is  the 
light  of  our  sun.  The  light  of  a  star  which  is  invisible  entirely 
to  the  naked  eye,  on  entering  our  atmosphere,  pays  an  equal 
duty  of  refraction  with  a  ray  from  the  moon  or  sun,  or  any 
other  heavenly  body.  Its  progress,  as  learn-ed  from  its  aber- 
ration, is  precisely  with  the  same  rapidity;  and  it  disdains 
equally  to  be  a  messenger  to  us  of  any  thing  but  brightness  on 
iQvery  beam,  and  order  in  every  movement.  When  the  moon 
rises  from  the  bosom  of  the  ocean,  her  li^ht  plays  on  the  siw- 


5^  0I«    LIGHT. 

face  of  every  wave,  and  so  does  the  light  of  the  most  distant 
and  smallest  star,  to  show  that  this  inhabitant  of  the  universe 
has  unchangeable  laws  of  order,  to  make  known  every  where  to 
his  intelligent  creatures.  That  he  who  dwells  in  light  inaccessi- 
ble and  full  of  glory,  is  absolutely  perfect;  and  this,  too,  as  his 
authority  stands  over  those  rational  existences  who  were  origi- 
nally created  with  powers  to  examine  and  estimate  this  universal 
state  of  things. — My  God,  I  thank  thee  that  Christ  said,  •'  I 
am  (he  light  of  the  world :"  for  wdth  this  night  of  sin,  there  is  a 
horror  and  a  darkness  which,  from  all  the  images  of  divine 
perfection  in  heaven  and  in  earth,  bear  in  upon  the  sinner  j  and 
how  awful  must  be  the  naked  arm  of  justice,  when  it  strikes  to 
realize  the  truth  which  is  thus  sketched  before  us  in  all  the 
works  of  God. 

In  the  plan  of  salvation,  my  brethren,  by  Christ,  the  law  of 
God  may  be  supposed  as  perfect  as  are  the  laws  which  he  has 
assigned  to  light,  not  a  particle  of  which  since  creation  ever 
erred;  yet  we  are  safe.  Yea,  were  not  the  moral  law  of  God 
equally  inflexible  in  its  majesty,  as  the  laws  of  nature  are  in 
their  order,  the  v/hole  of  our  religion  would  be  a  fabric  without 
a  principle  to  cement  its  parts.  But  they  are  in  an  error,  deeply 
in  an  error,  who  illustrate  the  beauty  of  the  crown  of  heaven, 
and  the  original  lines  of  order  among  the  intelligences  ,of  this 
universe,  by  sometimes  one  vague  view,  and  sometimes  another; 
and  who  think  that  the  sinner  returns  back  to  his  God,  like  a 
child  who  is  wearied  of  its  waywardness  to  his  father.  No,  the 
angels  might  desire  to  look  into  the  plan  of  our  restoration ; 
for  they  have  some  knowledge  of  the  perfection  of  this  building 
of  creation;  and  they  will  see,  that  high  as  its  order  is,  there 
IS  no  infringement  of  it  as  we  return  to  God.  The  wages  of 
sin  is  death:  its  cold  hand  was  felt;  justice  spared  not;  but 
out  of  the  state  of  the  dead,  came  life  and  immortality  to  light. 
Christ,  the  Lamb  of  God,  that  takes  away  the  sin  of  the  world, 
had  his  countenance  like  the  sun,  and  his  raiment  like  the  light 


■OS   XlfiHT.  aOl 

*dt  the  sun ;  and  a  voice  eomes  to  us  from  heaven,  as  Moses  and 
Eiias  talked  about  his  decease,  saying,  ^«  This  is  my  beloved 
Son  in  whom  I  am  well  pleased,'" 

But  lastly.  Light  insinuates  to  man  that  in  soul  and  body 
he  is  an  immortal  being.  When  we  look  at  the  lower  species 
of  the  creation,  they  are  as  devoid  as  the  rocks  of  the  mountam 
of  any  turn  for  speculation  on  any  object  which  they  see.  Thej 
often  exhibit  considerable  talent  and  address  in  arranging  thieii 
habitations,  in  providing  their  food,  in  attarcking  their  enemies, 
and  in  lying  in  ambush  to  make  them  their  prey.  Never,  how- 
ever, has  an  individual  of  them  brought  forward  the  ieact 
feature  of  that  philosophy  which  we  recognize  in  the  eye  of  ' 
-every  infant;  and  which^  while  ail  appetite  and  selfishness  are 
at  a  distance,  commences  an  inquiry  into  the  nature  of  sur- 
rounding objects,  and  the  relations  of  their  component  parts. 
Every  creature  of  the  lower  species  of  creation  has  the  bounds 
of  its  habitation  circumscribed  by  a  line  on  the  earth  which  is 
never  far  distant  from  it;  and  beyond  this  all  the  objects  which  " 
the  Creator  could  make  and  ornament  have  no  relations  whicls 
interest  it.  The  natures  of  these  creatures  never  identify  them 
with  the  universe,  and  fill  their  souls  with  the  images  of  beauty 
-and  order  from  every  thing  that  is  great  or  small  Their  eye 
IS  an  organ  of  utility  indispensable  to  their  existence;  but  y^hea 
It  guides  them  to  the  pasture,  or  to  the  stream,  to  the  prey,  or 
to  the  danger  which  threatens  existence,  it  ha@  accomplished  ' 
its  highest  attainments. 

But  man  never  appears  before  the  door  of  his  habitation  b«S  • 
you  perceive  that,  by  means  of  the  rays  of  lightj  his  mind  is  ' 
travelling  over  scenes,  which,  though  often  viewed,  may  yet  he 
supposed  to  have  something  to  please  his  curiosity.     When  tlie  - 
fields  have  any  thing  uncommon  on  them,  every  man ^ould  • 
make  the  whole  prospect  his  own,  by  the  eager  curiosity  winch 
he  summons  up  upon  it,  and  by  the  examination  to  which  he 
subjects  it.     Should  the  heavens  put  on  a  new  array,  towards 
them  he  directs  an  equal  interest.     The  contemplation  of  eves 

26* 


362  ON    LI&HT. 

the  azure  canopy  of  the  sky  often  begets  in  him  a  tranquillity 
as  indefinable  as  is  the  boundary  of  our  vision,  and  as  rich  in 
eEijoyment  as  imagination  can  provide.  Man  by  the  proper- 
ties of  his  mind,  and  the  faculty  of  vision,  is  not  a  local  insu- 
lated existence;  but  connects  himself  with  all  God's  works > 
that  are  around  him,  and  cultivates  an  acquaintance,  intimate 
and  deep,  v/ith  the  most  transitory  or  permanent  on  the  earth  or 
in  the  heavens  over  it.  Yea,  he  starts  off  to  the  most  distant 
of  the  visible  works  of  God,  and  cultivates  with  more  joy  an 
acquaintance  with  them,  than  he  does  with  the  familiar  envi- 
rons of  his  habitation.  Man  is  an  inhabitant  even  here  of  a 
¥ast  part  of  the  possessions  of  the  universe. 

Now,  my  brethren,  while  not  a  particle  of  matter,  as  far  as 
we  know,  is  annihilated,  while  the  rays  of  light,  feeble  as  they 
are,  all  yet  play  throughout  boundless  space,  are  we  to  sup- 
pose that  the  mind  of  man,  that  existence  which  travels 
throughout  a  great  part  of  tiie  works  of  God,  and  examines 
them  as  it  passes  along,  is  just  as  the  leaf  of  the  grass,  or  that 
creature  which  can  think  of  nothing  but  feeding  upon  it?  No, 
I  hold  that  the  human  mind  has  a  testimony  from  every  star, 
and  the  more  distant  the  clearer,  that  it  is  an  heir  to  the  enjoy- 
raents  which  the  permanency  of  tlie  heavenly  luminaries  pre- 
sents. God  could  have  given  us  more  light  by  situating  one  of 
the  stare  a  little  nearer  to  us,  and  making  it  move  so  as  to  rise 
fcSvhen  the  sun  set,  and  thus  hide  as  the  sun  does  all  the  rest 
^  from  our  view;  but  he  has  hung  out  to  us  the  splendors  of  crea- 
tion, and  arranged  them  so  as  to  invite  our  intelligence  and 
numbers  among  them. 

But  it  may  be  said  we  leave  every  thing  here  by  death;  and 
why  not  all  things  every  where  else? — When  the  building  is 
great  and  full  of  chambers,  the  members  of  the  family  are  not 
kept  eternally  in  one  little  corner.  They  walk  throughout  the 
hdib  and  apartments,  and  occupy  what  they  see  to  be  all  suita- 
ble cKid  delightful. 


ON    LIGHT.  303 

But  it  may  be  said,  my  brethren,  that  this  reasoning  though 
splendid  and  specious,  is  yet  overturned  by  one  consideration, 
level  to  our  capacity,  and  easily  estimated.  Men,  it  may  be 
said,  cannot  be  immortal,  else  these  vast  views  to  whichlhey  are 
heirs,  the  works  of  God,  and  all  which  he  has  provided  for 
us  of  a  still  more  exalted  character  nearer  to  himself,  would 
not  be  put  out  of  view  by  indifference,  or  be  trodden  upon  by 
that  madness  of  impiety  which  we  see  every  where  so  preva- 
lent.— I  am  not  attempting  to  prove  the  immortality  of  man 
from  his  conduct.  I  grant  that  the  gold  of  his  creation  has  be- 
come dim;  I  am  proving  it  from  the  creation  of  God,  and  from 
that  relation  to  it,  which  his  intellectual  nature  still  yet  pre- 
sold ts. 

Were  I  to  prove  it  any  way  connected  with  his  moral  habits 
I  w^ould  first  recall  the  truth  that  the  idea  of  morality  connects 
immediately  with  the  throne  of  heaven;  and  then  1  w^ould  di- 
rect to  the  judgments  where  a  fire  goeth  before  God  and  burn- 
eth  up  round  about  him.  Yes,  1  would  direct  to  the  flaming 
sword,  that,  in  respect  to  the  sinner,  guards  the  tree  of  life;  I 
would  direct  to  the  top  of  Sinai  and  the  terror  of  its  flames;  I 
would  direct  to  the  fire  which  men  kept  perpetually  burning 
as  an  emblem  of  justice  to  consume  the  sacrifice;  and  1  would 
repeat  the  prophecy,  that  the  Lord  shcdl  be  revealed  from  hea- 
ven, in  flammg  fire,  to  take  vengeance  on  them  who  know  not 
(jod,  and  who  believe  not  the  gospel  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ, 
who  shall  be  punished  w^ith  everlasting  destruction  from  the 
presence  of  the  Lord,  and  from  the  glory  of  his  power. 

Bat  light  affords  us  also  an  evidence  for  the  resurrection  of 
the  body.  The  ancients  thought  meanly  of  matter,  and  spake 
of  it  as  the  prison  of  the  soul.  But  the  light  of  modern  science 
?hows  infinite  space  filled  with  it,  and  the  wisdom  of  Deity 
unfolded  in  ail  its  forms.  The  book  of  creation  is  written  on 
material  leaves;  and  no  creature  which  we  see,  can  perceive 
any  thing  out  of  himself  but  by  the  intervention  of  it.  It  is 
the  soul  which  perceives;  but  the  consciousness  of  its  own 


304  ON    LIGHT, 

operations  is  not  more  certain,  than  are  the  intimations  of  the 
senses. — We  do  not  say  that  the  angels  have  bodies.  On  the 
other  hand,  their  spiritual  nature  is  an  evidence  that  our  souls 
may  exist  by  themselves  with  powers  of  enjoyment,  before  the 
resurrection.  But  we  say,  that  the  angels  never  visit  our 
world  without  putting  on  a  form  like  to  a  friend  or  a  foe. 
They  eat  with  Abraham;  Manoah  sees  their  wonderful  opera- 
tions ;  they  speak  to  Zacharias ;  they  roll  back  the  stone  from 
the  sepulchre  of  our  Saviour  and  sit  upon  it;  and  they  say,  ye 
men  of  Galilee  why  stand  ye  here  gazing  into  heaven,  this 
same  Jesus  which  is  taken  up  from  you  into  heaven,  shall  so 
come  in  like  manner  as  ye  have  seen  him  go  into  heaven. — 
These  angels  no  doubt  visit  other  parts  of  the  creation,  and 
accommodate  themselves  to  the  material  forms  and  organs  of 
iheir  inhabitants. — Spiritual  existences  as  they  are,  we  do  not 
suppose,  that  it  is  for  their  own  enjoyment,  that  tliey  put  on 
the  material  forms  in  which  they  appear.  This  is  to  befriend 
those  to  whom  they  are  sent. — But,  my  brethren,  since  crea- 
tion in  its  material  parts  is  so  vast  and  magnificent,  since  the 
ansels  of  heaven  robe  themselves  at  times  in  material  cover- 
ings,  and  since  we  can  form  no  conception  how  matter  can  be 
|)erceived,  and  its  magnitude  and  beauties  be  properly  estima- 
ted, but  by  material  organs; — if  our  souls  be  immortal,  the 
union  of  them  to  what  is  a  constituent  part  of  our  nature  here, 
would  only  prepare  us  for  being  companions  to  the  works  of 
our  creator  as  we  see  them  at  present  existing,  and  as  in  the 
new  heavens  and  the  new  earth  they  will  continue  for  ever  to 
exist.  The  works  of  God  are  spirit  and  matter;  the  one  is 
powerful  to  examine  and  comprehend ;  and  the  other  is  spread 
every  where  throughout  boundless  space  with  its  beauties  and 
marks  of  divine  wisdom  to  employ  us  by  endless  variety 
through  an  endless  duration. 

There  may  be  some  tie  which  our  Maker  will  have  to  break 
to  set  us  loose  from  our  present  abode.  But  it  is  easy  to  ima- 
gine this.     Light  is  incident  upon  the  earth,  but  it  is  not  at- 


ON    LIGHT,  30« 

traded  by  it;  nor  is  it  by  a  single  body  of  the  universe.  It 
leaves  the  sun,  and  steps  off  to  the  most  distant  of  the  planets; 
but  it  returns  to  us  with  the  utmost  ease,  and  with  the  same 
velocity.  The  Creator,  to  the  glorious  bodies  of  the  saints, 
has  only  to  communicate  the  independence  which  light  pos- 
sesses in  respect  to  attraction,  its  incorruptibility  in  all  situa- 
tions, and  its  speed  on  its  journey,  to  prepare  them  for  occupy- 
ing the  whole  building  of  creation,  and  throughout  eternity  for 
making  all  his  works  to  praise  him. 

What  a  beautiful  passage  is  that  in  the  nineteenth  chapter 
of  Job!  Job  says  that  God  hung  our  earth  upon  nothing; 
tliat  he  bringeth  forth  Arcturus  with  his  sons,  and  he  speaks 
of  Orion  and  Pleiades  and  the  chambers  of  the  south. — Having 
exclaimed,  Oh!  that  my  words  were  now  written  in  a  book, 
tliat  they  were  engraven  with  an  iron  pen  and  lead  in  the  rock 
for  ever,  he  adds,  in  the  passage  referred  to,  For  I  know  that 
my  Redeemer  liveth,  and  though  after  my  skin  worms  destroy 
this  my  body,  yet  in  my  flesh  shall  I  see  God,  whom  mine  eyes 
shall  behold  and  not  another.  Job's  deep  distress  was  like  the 
picture  of  our  sinful  world,  and  his  body  that  was  scraped  with 
a  potsherd,  was  a  fit  emblem  of  the  realization  of  these  words 
of  his,  "I  have  said  to  corruption  thou  art  my  father,  and  to 
the  worm  thou  art  my  sister  and  my  mother;"  but  this  sigh  of 
faith,  is  like  the  light  of  God's  creation ;— this  may  be  absorb- 
ed by  all  substances,  but  it  has  in  itself  a  principle  of  inde- 
structive  purity,  and  always  clears  off  from  them  in  its  original 
brightness;  so  Job  shakes  off  from  him  in  these  words,  every 
thing  that  is  vile  and  corrupting,  and  stands  arrayed,  as  on  the 
last  day,  ready  to  meet  that  Judge  who  in  his  character  pre- 
sents that  absolute  perfection  which  is  the  intellectual  light  of 
the  whole  creation. 

That  which  thou  sowest,  says  Paul,  is  not  quickened  except 
it  die.— Parents  you  may  sow  in  death  your  children,  children 
you  may  sow  to  corruption  your  parents:  but  why  those  tears? 
Look  at  the  field.     The  seed  cannot  be  barren.     The  blessing 


306  ON   LIGHT. 

of  heaven  is  upon  it.  That  which  is  sown  in  weakness  shall 
be  raised  in  power;  that  which  is  sown  a  natural  body  shall  be 
raised  a  spiritual  body;  that  which  is  sown  in  corruption  shall 
be  raised  in  incorruption ;  and  that  which  is  sown  in  dishonor 
shall  be  raised  in  glory. 

My  brethren,  what  hopes  the  religion  of  Christ  gives!  Man 
comes  forth  as  a  flower  and  is  cut  down ;  but  all  things  change ; 
the  light  was  a  while  without  a  permanent  abode;  but  was 
then  gathered  into  a  glorious  habitation;  so  man,  redeemed  to 
his  orignal  perfection,  may  wander  about  for  a  little  among  the 
toils  and  the  tombs  of  this  earth;  but  at  last  he  will  be  gathered 
to  an  eternal  home,  to  shine  as  those  stars  in  the  firmament  for 
ever  and  ever. — For  this  corruptible  must  put  on  incorruption ; 
and  this  mortal  must  put  on  immortality.  Ohl  infidels  why 
rob  us  of  these  hopes?  Does  not  the  Creator  of  the  universe 
connect  us  with  it  far  and  wide;  and  is  he,  as  soon  as  we  begin 
to  open  the  eye  of  enjoyment,  to  dash  his  children  from  the 
breast  which  he  has  hung  out  so  rich  and  so  desirable?  Chris- 
tian this  cannot  be.  For  we  have  instructions  beyond  the 
beauties  of  creation.- — When  this  corruptible  shall  have  put  on 
incorruption,  and  this  mortal  shall  have  put  on  immortality,  then 
shall  be  brought  to  pass,  the  saying  that  is  written,  Death  is  swal- 
lowed up  in  victory. — Oh'  deatii  where  is  thy  sting,  ohl  grave 
where  is  thy  victory  I  Thanks  be  to  God  who  giveth  us  the 
victory  through  Jesus  Christ  our  Lord. — The  day  spring  from 
on  high  hath  visited  us — the  light  of  the  new  creation  shines.— 
Amen. 


i 


DISCOURSE  XIV* 


THE  CONVERSION  OF  THE  ETHIOPIAN  EUNUCH. 


Acts  8:39.     And  he  went  on  his  way  rejoicing. 

There  are,  my  brethren,  particular  providential  occurrences 
in  one's  life  which,  though  not  in  the  least  anticipated,  are  the 
sole  spring  of  his  power,  aggrandizement,  or  happiness.  Saul 
had  not  the  slenderest  expectation,  when  in  rural  simplicity,  he 
went  in  search  of  his  father's  asses,  that  before  his  return  a 
prophet  of  the  Lord  should  anoint  him  king  of  Israel.  Joseph, 
persecuted  by  his  brethren,  and  sold  into  Egypt  where  he  ex- 
perienced treachery  and  imprisonment,  had  not  himself  any 
knowledge  or  belief,  that  the  Lord  was  doing  these  things,  that 
he  might  preserve  Jacob  a  posterity  upon  the  earth,  and  save 
lives  by  a  great  deliverancTe.  The  disciples  of  our  Saviour  said 
in  despair  of  its  being  the  case,  we  thought  that  this  was  he  who 
j5hould  have  redeemed  Israel,  and  it  was  the  very  event  which 
interpreted  to  them  the  whole  of  the  sacred  oracles,  and  started 
them  in  that  honorable  cause  for  which  they  took  joyfully  the 
spoiling  of  their  goods. 

The  Ethiopian  eunuch,  whose  exultation  is  the  subject  of  our 
discourse,  met  with  an  equally  unexpected  but  happy  providen- 
tial occurrence  in  his  behalf.  This  minister  of  Candace,  queen 
of  Ethiopia,  went  to  Jerusalem  for  to  worship.  The  light  how- 
ever which  he  received  from  the  interpreters  of  the  Jewish  law 
and  prophets,  threw  but  little  information  upon  the  true  nature 
of  the  ordinances  on  which  he  attended,  or  the  scriptures,  which 


308  THE  CONVERSION  OP  THE 

to  the  Jews  themselves,  as  well  as  all  their  proselytes,  were  the 
rule  and  spirit  of  true  and  undefiled  religion.     Returning  from 
his  religious  performances  this  man  read  Isaiah  the  prophet,  and 
in  that  particular  place  of  him  too,  which  more  clearly  tlian  all 
the  rest  explained  the  intention  and  spirit  of  the  Jewish  institu- 
tions, and  yet  he  understood  not  what  he  read.     Verse  29.     And 
the  spirit  said  unto  Philip,  go  near  and  join  thyself  to  this  cha- 
riot, and  Philip  ran  thither  to  him,  and  heard  him  read  the  pro- 
phet  Isaiah,  and  said,  understandest  thou  what  thou  readest? 
and  he  said  how  can  I  except  some  man  guide  me.     Poor  had 
been  the  instructions  of  the  Jewish  teachers,  else  this  man  who 
was  of  those  distinguished  talents   that  advanced  him  to  the 
charge  of  all  the  affairs  of  his  mistress'    kingdom,   and   who 
peruses  the  sacred  scriptures  as  he  journeys  along  in  his  chariot, 
would  have  had  some  conjectures  at  least  about  the  true  import 
of  this  peculiar  and   striking  passage  of  Isaiah.     But  his  lines 
are  falling  to  him  in   pleasant  places  above  his  expectation. 
That  unanticipated  and  striking  occurrence  to  which  we  allu- 
ded, and  which  was  the  great  spring  of  joy  to  all  his  future  life, 
now  takes  place. — It  is  added,  "and  he  desired  Philip  that' he 
would  come  up,  and  sit  with  him."     And  Philip,  it  is  said, 
verse  35,  "  opened  his  mouth  and  began  at  the  same  scripture, 
and  preached  unto  him  Jesus:" — Jesus  whom  this  prophetical 
passage  led  as  a  lamb  to  the  slaughter,  and  as   a  sheep  before 
her  shearers  is  dumb,  so  opened  he  not  his  mouth;  who  was 
wounded  for  our  transgressions,  was  bruised  for  our  iniquities, 
the  chastisement  of  our  peace  was  laid  upon  him,  and  by  his 
stripes  we  are  healed. — The  light  which  was  cast  upon  the  sub- 
ject was  irresistible :  the  eunuch  is  converted ;  the  greatest  and 
most  blessed  change  that  can  happen  to  mortal  man.     Verse  36. 
"  And  as  they  went  on  their  way  they  came  unto  a  certain  wa- 
ter, and  the  eunuch  said,  see,  here  is  water,  what  doth  hinder 
me  to  be  baptised?  and  Philip  said,  if  thou  believest  with  all 
thine  heart,  thou  may  est;  and  he  answered  and   said,  I  believe 
that  Jesus  Christ  is  the  Son   of  God.     And  he    commanded 
the   chariot  to  stand  still;  and  they  went  down  into  the  water, 
both  Philip  and  the  eunuch,  and  he  baptised  him.     And  when 


ETHIOPIAN    EUNUCH.  3Q9 

they  were  come  up  out  of  the  water,  the  spirit  caught  away 
Philip,  and  the  eunuch  saw  him  no  more.  And  he  went  on  his 
way  rejoicing." 

What  we  intend,  in  the  further  prosecution  of  this  discourse, 
shall  be,  in  the  first  place,  to  present  before  you  the  causes  of 
the  rejoicing  of  this  convert;  secondly,  we  will  inquire  how 
such  an  effect  could  be  so  suddenly  produced  on  him,-  and 
thirdly,  we  will  ascertain  why  this  event  is  so  particularly  men- 
tioned. 

And  no  wonder  that  the  eunuch  went  on  his  way  rejoicing; 
for,  in  the  first  place,  he  now  received  a  key  to  the  prophecies 
contained  in  what  he  esteemed  the  word  of  God.  When  an 
honest  man  believes  that  God  is  speaking  to  him,  if  he  cannot 
understand  what  has  been  communicated,  he  is  filled  with  deep 
anxiety;  and  his  relief  from  it  must  fill  his  mind  with  a  propor- 
tional joy.  But  we  see  from  a  preceding  part  of  this  chapter, 
tliat  the  eunuch  was  equally  ignorant  of  as  desirous  to  know  the 
true  import  of  one  of  the  most  remarkable  and  singular  predic- 
tions of  revelation.  The  Jews  had  sought  the  fulfilment  of  this 
prophecy  in  the  character  of  Jeremiah,  and  several  other  illustri- 
ous sufferers:  yea,  they  had  feigned  two  Messiahs  in  order  to 
answer  to  the  description  of  power  and  distress;  but  at  the  pe- 
riod of  the  commencement  of  the  New  Testament  worship,  they 
appear  to  have  lost  its  true  and  legitimate  import.  And  of  many 
of  the  rest  of  the  predictions  of  revelation  were  they,  and  all  their 
disciples,  equally  ignorant :  in  particular  of  all  those  which  delinea  • 
ted  the  person  and  work  of  the  great  Mystery  of  Godliness,  God 
manifested  in  the  flesh.  To  find  a  meaning  to  these  passages, "  he 
shall  make  his  grave  with  the  wicked,  and  with  the  rich  in  his 
death ;  his  flesh  shall  rest  in  hope,  and  his  soul  shall  not  be  left 
in  hell;  unto  us  a  son  is  given,  and  a  child  is  born, and  the  gov- 
ernment shall  be  upon  his  shoulders,  and  his  name  shall  be  call- 
ed Wonderful,  Counsellor,  the  mighty  God,  the  everlasting 
Father,  and  the  Prince  of  Peace;  Messiah  shall  be  cut  ofl",  but 
not  for  himself;"  necessitates  an  interpreter  to  believe  in  Jesus 
of  Nazareth,  and  to  bring  him  to  the  explication  of  what  other- 
Tyise  cannot  be  resolved.  Indeed  to  him  gave  all  the  law  and 
27 


310  THE    CONVERSION    OF 

the  prophets  witness.  What  is  the  meaning  of  all  those  illustri' 
Qus  predictions  which  describe  the  typical  nature  of  the  land  of 
Canaan,  and  promise  it  to  the  seed  of  Jacob;  of  those  which 
define  and  bewail  the  captivity  of  Judah,  and  secure  her  subse- 
quent restoration ;  of  those  which  tell  us  of  the  rise  and  fall  of 
empires ;  if  they  derive  not  to  themselves  an  importance  from 
the  great  event  of  the  redemption  of  mankind ;  for  which  any  other 
events  could  become  worthy  of  a  particular  divine  record  ?  The 
Saviour  of  the  world  is  the  true  key  to  the  prophecies.  In  his 
incarnation,  miraculous  birth,  mean  life,  accursed  death,  and 
glorious  resurrection  from  the  dead,  many  of  them  have  met 
with  their  literal  and  only  interpretation:  and  even  the  more 
distant  and  scattered  among  the  affairs  of  the  world,  receive 
their  great  value,  for  which  they  must  be  recorded  by  God,  from 
him  in  whom  all  the  promises  and  predictions  of  revelation  are 
yea  and  amen.  No  wonder  then,  when  the  genuine  key  was 
put  into  his  hand,  that  the  Ethiopian,  the  eunuch  of  great  au- 
thority, should  proceed  on  his  way  rejoicing.  Having  the 
charge  of  all  her  treasures  this  minister  of  queen  Candace  could 
no  doubt  open  many  a  door,  and  unlock  many  a  bolt  that  admitted 
to  the  most  valuable  of  earthly  concerns,  of  precious  jewels  and 
gold  with  which  that  court  abounded.  But  this  key  lets  him 
into  secrets  which  the  topaz  of  Ethiopia  could  not  equal,  neither 
could  they  be  valued  with  pure  gold.  He  saw  here  that  pearl  of 
great  price,  in  order  to  buy  which,  a  man  would  with  advantage, 
yea  even  a  king,  sell  every  other  concern. 

But  we  observe,  secondly.  That  he  went  on  his  way  rejoicing, 
because  he  had  found  a  rational  interpretation  to  all  the  institu- 
tions of  that  religion  on  which  he  attended.  The  supporters  of 
superstition  flatter  themselves  that  every  part  of  their  ritual  has 
a  significancy,  and  every  feature  of  their  practice  a  religious 
meaning :  otherwise  they  could  not  content  themselves  in  sup- 
porting often  a  burdensome  and  an  expensive  system  of  ceremo- 
nies. There  was  in  all  the  heathen  devotees  an  imagination 
which  pleased  them  with  their  external  forms  of  worship,  and 
which  was  equally  rooted  and  easy  of  furious  agitation,  with  that 
which  stimulated  the  Ephesians  to  cry  out  "great  is  Diana  of 


THE  ETHIOPIAN    ET7NT7CH.  311 

the  Epbesians.''''  The  Jews'  religious  institutions  were  of  divine 
origin,  and  had  actually  the  most  pointed  import;  every  type 
might  find  a  principal,  every  ceremony  a  substance,  and  every 
figure  a  reality;  but  at  the  commencement  of  the  christian  dis- 
pensation, the  most  of  that  people  had  lost  sight  of  the  real  im- 
port of  those  institutions  that  were  so  truly  significant.  They 
made  clean  the  outside  of  the  cup  and  platter,  and  neglected 
the  weightier  matters  of  the  law.  They  thought  that  he  was  a 
Jew  that  was  one  outwardly,  and  that  that  was  circumcision, 
which  was  outward  in  the  flesh.  It  was  the  certainty  that  their 
ordinances  had  been  instituted  by  God,  and  the  backwardness 
which  every  one  feels  to  condemn  himself,  that  led  them  to  feel 
such  satisfaction  with  the  external  appearance  without  the  ra- 
tional and  necessary  substance.  For  the  law,  says  truth,  hath  a 
shadow  of  good  things  to  come,  and  not  the  very  image  of  the 
things. 

This  fond  flattery  of  themselves  in  the  utility  of  that  which 
they  presently  professed,  did  not  however,  either  among  the 
Jews  or  gentiles,  give  satisfaction  unto  the  impartial  and  the 
reflecting.  The  intelligent  and  learned  in  the  pagan  world  re- 
jected, as  below  the  reasonableness  of  things,  the  superstition 
which  had  overrun  their  respective  regions,  and  longed  in  deep 
anxiety  for  a  revelation  to  direct  them:  and  the  wise  of  the 
Jews  were  waiting,  as  is  instanced  in  good  old  Simeon,  for  the 
consolation  of  Israeb  It  was  impossible  for  them  to  be  com- 
j^-etely  satisfied,  and  each  of  them  nmst  have  desired  like  this 
eimuch  with  regard  to  the  portion  of  scripture  he  was  reading, 
to  have  some  one  to  guide  him.  Generation  after  generation, 
however,  in  the  heatheji  world,  had  passed  away  without  seeing 
the  light  of  revelation  arising  upon  them.;  and  few  of  the  Jews 
were  directed  to  the  genuine  sight  of  divine  doctrine.  The  one 
remained  enveloped  in  the  clouds  of  their  impenetrable  ignorance, 
and  the  other  might  be  asked  and  reproved  by,  ^'  To  what  pur- 
pose is  the  mutitude  of  your  sacrifices?  will  the  Lord  he  pleased 
with  the  blood  of  bullocks,  or  of  rams,  or  of  lambs,  or  of  he- 
goats?''  But  that  ignorance  which  had  involved  all  nations  of 
the  gentiles,  and  that  perversion  of  divinely  instituted  ordi- 


521  l-HE  CONVERSION  OP 

Ranees  among  the  Jews,  which  might  expose  them  to  the  ridi- 
cule of  the  more  reflecting,  are  now  completely  overturned. 
Jesus  the  Saviour  of  the  world,  whose  death  appeases  the  jus- 
tice of  God,  and  reconciles  the  obstinate  sinner;  in  regard  to 
the  sacrifice  of  whom  all  expiations  througliout  the  world  must 
have  been  instituted;  and  whose  death  gives  so  full  an  account 
of  the  reasonableness  of  the  Jewish  rites  and  ceremonies,  is  pro- 
claimed in  the  preaching  of  the  gospel.  The  great  difficulties 
of  the  light  of  nature,  how  a  sinner  is  to  appear  before  a  holy 
God,  and  on  what  evidences  the  souPs  immortality  rests,  are 
now  resolved.  The  divine  Mediator  makes  a  real  atonement, 
and  presents  us  without  spot  or  blemish  before  the  Holy  One; 
whilst  his  resurrection  brings  life  and  immortality  to  light;  and 
whilst  thus  all  oblations  throughout  the  world  may  be  traced  to 
their  origin,  sacrificing  amongst  the  Jews  in  particular  is  explain- 
ed, by  this  one  offering  of  him  who  hath  for  ever  perfected  them 
that  are  sanctified.  Yes,  the  ignorance  which  involved  his 
fathers  is  now  dispersed ;  and  his  religion,  to  the  ceremonies  of 
wliich,  he  has  travelled  so  l\r,  he  can  clearly  show  to  all  the 
world,  is  worthy  of  his  long  journey.  Hence  the  eunuch  goes  on 
his  way  rejoicing. 

But  we  observe,  thirdly,  That  he  went  on  his  way  rejoicing, 
because  that  great  personage,  expected  over  all  the  nations,  had 
actually  arrived.  Not  only  v/as  there  an  anticipation  among 
the  Jews  who  were  immediately  directed  by  the  piophecies  and 
ordinances  of  the  Old  Testament,  that  at  the  time  of  Christ's 
appearance  in  our  world,  a  mighty  personage  should  show  him- 
self on  the  stage  of  time;  but  there  was  a  general  expectation  of 
him  throughout  almost  all  nations.  Tlie  woman  of  Samaria 
said,  that  she  knew  that  the  Messiah  who  is  called  Christ  should 
come;  and  even  Virgil  and  Julius  Marathus  spake  of  a  great, 
personage  to  appear;  which  idea  could  not  be  supposed  to  occur 
to  them,  but  by  some  adulterated  and  faint  tradition  of  the  ex- 
pected Messiah.  And  the  very  manner  in  which  the  latter 
speaks  of  him,  is  particularly  to  be  observed.  He  says  that 
nature  was  about  to  bring  forth  a  Son  that  should  be  king  of 
the  nations.     Tacitus    and  Suetonius,   Roman    historians  of 


THE   ETHIOPIAN  ifeTT^^CH.  313 

^reat  celebrity,  mention  too  this  general  expectation  of  man- 
kind, and  even  say  that  he  is  to  arise  out  of  Judea.     In  the  east, 
in  Persia  and  Babylon,  they  were  so  vigilant  in  their  outlook  for 
this  adrnirahle  person,  that  they  believed,  even  before  it  happen- 
ed, that  men  were  to  be  directed  to  him  by  a  supernatural  star; 
— the  reason,  no  doubt,  why  the  wise  men  came  to  our  Saviou?, 
saying,  -'^  Lo!  we  have  seen  his  star  in  the  east."     The  dispersion 
of  the  Jews  among  the  rest  of  the  nations  of  the  earth,  as  well 
as  the  prophecies  of  Balaam,  Daniel,  and  others,  we  may  jusl 
remark,  no  doubt  occasioned  this  general  expectation.     Now  a 
knowledge  that  this  general  expectation  of  all  nations  was  fully 
gratified,  could  not  but  infuse  joy  unspeakable  into  the  breast  of 
the  Ethiopian  eunuch.     He  would  say  to  himself,  it  has  been  no 
unfounded  fancy  of  which  poets  have  sung  and  philosophers 
have  conjectured,  and  by  which  distressed  nations  have  consoled 
themselves   with  the  prospects  of  deliverance.     Greatly  have 
they  been  mistaken  about  the  real  manner  and  design  of  his 
-appearance.     The  Jews  calcidated  on  a  great  king,  and  tem- 
poral Redeemer  only,  to  rodeem  from  Roman  bondage  the  disho- 
norably mortgaged  inheritance  of  tlieir  peculiarly  promised  land ; 
and  the  rest  of  the  nations  looked  to  him,  some  with  joy,  and 
some  with  fear;  the  oppressed  that  perhaps  he  would  break  the 
chains  of  their  oppression,  and  the  oppressors  that  perhaps  their 
instruments  of  power  would  be  broken.     But  he  is  a  deliverer 
most  glorious  indeed:  not  as  either  Jew  or  gentile  were  expect- 
ing him  to  be;  not  a  temporal  Saviour,  to  place  justice  among 
the  nations;  but  a  spiritual  Redeemer,  to  deliver  both  the  victor 
and  vanquished  from  the  most  disgraceful  and  miserable  of  all 
conditions,  bondage  to  sin,  and  tlie  displeasure  of  an  angry  God. 
Which  brings  us  to  remark,  fourthly.  That  he  went  on  his 
way  rejoicing,  because  he  saw  the  salvation  of  mankind  accom- 
plished.    It  appears  that  this  eunuch  was  truly  a  man  desirous 
of  religious  attainments,  and   not  satisfied  with  every  form  of 
worship,  else  he  would  not  have  travelled  from  the  court  of 
Ethiopia  to  Jerusalem,  to  the  temple  of  God,  for  his  devotions. 
But  whilst  his  religious  affections  were  warm,  and  he  sought  the 
end  of  religion,  the  salvation  of  his  immortal  soul,  many  doubts, 

27* 


314  THE    COA'VERSION   OP 

even  at  the  altars  of  the  Jews,  must  have  arisen  in  his  mind. 
The  superstition  of  all  nations  around  him,  he  saw,  was  gross 
and  abhorrent,  and  even  the  most  systematic  and  rational  under 
the  wings  of  the  temple  of  God  had  many  infirmities.  Can 
reason  believe  that  the  blood  of  bulls  or  of  goats  expiates  sin? 
No;  the  sinful  world,  for  all  this  good  man  can  yet  see  of  its 
redemption,  may  be  lost  for  ever.  His  religion  is  only  the  best 
with  which  he  can  obtain  an  acquaintance,  in  an  age  universally 
sunk  in  superstition  or  deceived  with  mere  obseivances.  But 
the  hopes  of  the  human  race  he  sees  are  now  established;  their 
salvation  on  the  most  firm  grounds  is  come  to  pass.  The  only 
begotten  Son  of  God  could  not  be  crucified  and  raised  from  the 
dead,  without  our  being  saved.  No;  when  the  Creator  of  the 
world  makes  an  effort  to  destroy  death  in  his  own  territories,  the 
world  must  be  redeemed.  It  is  impossible  that  the  source  of  all 
life  should  pass  through  the  regions  of  death,  and  not  sweep 
them  of  every  mortal  seed  and  mean  of  destruction,  as  far  as  his 
omniscience  saw  was  for  his  glory.  Hence  the  inspired  inter- 
pretation which  Philip  gave  him  of  the  prophecy  of  sufferings 
and  punishment,  which  he  was  reading,  could  not  but  show  to 
his  understanding  the  real  redemption  of  the  world,  and  fill  his 
heart  with  joy  proportioned  to  this  great  achievement.  When  a 
kingdom  is  emancipated  from  the  successful  tyranny  that  for  years 
has  oppressed  it,  joy  beams  on  every  countenance  within  the 
realm,  and  friendly  nations  light  the  torch  of  sympathetic 
rejoicings ;  but  how  much  more  genume,  as  well  as  deep,  must 
have  been  the  gladness  of  this  pious  and  sincere  eunuch,  when 
he,  in  light  clearer  than  noonday,  saw  the  world  through  to  the 
latest  age  delivered  from  the  worst  of  all  thraldoms,  condemna- 
tion and  eternal  death. 

But  we  observe,  fifthly,  That  he  went  on  his  way  rejoicing, 
because  he  had  received  in  his  own  instance  this  salvation  which 
was  provided  for  all  nations.  The  welfare  of  our  own  immortal 
souls  is  of  such  vast  moment,  that  whilst  great  and  beneficent 
objects  draw  forth  our  exultation,  the  security  of  our  own  eternal 
existence  amongst  the  intellectual  natures  that  are  to  live  for 
ever,  cannot  but  form  a  copious  source  of  it.     Our  immortal 


THE    ETHIOPIAN  EUNUCH.  Sl8 

souls  look  into  the  awful  pit  of  ignominy  and  disgrace  from 
which  they  are  saved,  and  to  the  eternal  inheritance  to  which 
they  are  destined;  and  a  sense  of  rescue  from  the  former,  and 
preparation  for  the  latter,  is  a  perpetual  spring  of  vivid  enjoy- 
ment. Hence  the  language  of  the  jailer,  "  What  shall  1  do  to 
be  saved?"  hence  the  commendation  of  our  Saviour  to  Mary, 
for  attending  to  the  one  thing  needful;  hence  the  propriety  of 
the  precept  to  lay  up  treasures  where  neither  moth  nor  rust  can 
corrupt,  nor  thieves  break  through  to  steal;  and  hence  the  true 
emphasis  of  that  language  from  the  mouth  of  an  apostle,  "  Wo 
is  m.e  if  I  preach  not  the  gospel ;"  hence,  indeed,  the  very  end 
of  Christ^s  death,  the  reason  of  the  revelation  of  all  the  doc- 
trines of  salvation,  and  the  whole  meaning  of  religious  exercises. 
—The  value  of  an  immortal  soul  is  seldom  duly  estimated.  But 
the  worth  of  the  whole  world  is  nothing  to  it;  yea,  of  a  thousand 
worlds,  which  are  only  transitory  connexions.  "  What  is  a  man 
profited  if  he  should  gain  the  whole  world,  and  lose  his  own 
soul;  or  what  shall  a  man  give  in  exchange  for  his  soul?" 
Could  we  read  the  countless  objects  that  would  define  its  value, 
as  it  appears  to  the  eye  of  Jehovah,  who  hath  redeemed  it  by  the 
blood  of  his  Son,  we  would  see  that  worlds,  countless  as  the 
leaves  of  the  forest,  the  drops  of  water  which  roll  in  the  ocean, 
the  stars  of  night,  which  are  innumerable,  could  not  make  the 
most  distant  approximation  to  its  surpassing  excellence.  What- 
ever a  person  possesses  and  enjoys  may  be  considered  his 
subservient  and  ministering  property;  and  worlds  more  numerous 
than  the  sand  on  the  sea  shore  may,  in  the  ceaseless  ages  of  exis- 
tence, be  surveyed  by  the  saints,  in  the  glorious  character  too  of 
the  new  heavens  and  the  new  earth.  "  And  he  that  overcometb 
shall  inherit  all  things."  Sensible  of  this  great  value  and  these 
prospects  of  his  own  immortal  spirit,  he  goes  on  his  way 
rejoicing. 

But  we  observe,  sixthly,  That  he  went  on  his  way  rejoicing, 
because  he  had  the  most  joyful  news  to  carry  home  to  his  coun- 
trymen. No  doubt  although  his  talents  must  have  procured 
him  very  great  respect,  and  his  high  and  dignified  office  hushed 
to  silence  the  malicious  whispers  of  the  interested,  yet  thin 


316  THE  CONVERSION    OF 

eunuch  had  many  in  the  Ethiopian  nation,  and  strangers  at 
Queen  Candace's  court,  who  must  have  suspected  him  as  under 
the  influence  of  it,  and  putting  himself  to  great  hardships  in 
order  to  support  a  grievous  superstition.  Apt  would  many  of 
the  wits  of  court  and  many  of  the  profane  of  the  country  be,  to 
ask  him  many  questions  about  the  great  advantages  he  certainly 
had  from  his  long  and  rugged  journey,  under  a  burning  sun, 
and  through  a  barren  country,  to  the  temple  of  a  mean  and 
despised  people.  But  this  day  a  field  of  thought  and  argument 
has  indeed  burst  upon  his  view.  Every  prophecy  has  found  a 
meaning,  every  divinely  instituted  ordinance  a  solid  substance, 
every  obscure  doctrine  a  heavenly  light,  God's  temple  a  real 
inhabitant,  and  his  altar  an  effectual  sacrifice.  The  eunuch 
could  tell  them  that  those  prophecies  which  he  always  expected 
to  be  divine,  that  those  ordinances  which  had  been  established 
by  the  evidence  of  such  miracles,  and  that  those  doctrines  which 
appeared  to  be  so  sublimely  expressed,  were  really  to  a  demon- 
stration what  he  believed  them  to  be.  Attend,  he  would  say, 
to  the  prophecies  of  Jacob  which  promised  the  Messiah  at  the 
departure  of  the  sceptre  from  Juda  and  the  lawgiver  from  between 
her  feet;  and  see  how  well  this  prediction,  though  delivered 
many  ages  ago,  answers  to  the  period  of  the  manifestation  of  the 
Son  of  God.  Consider  Balaam's  star  out  of  Jacob,  and  hig 
sceptre  of  righteousness  out  of  Israel;  and  see  how  fully  the 
one  beams  in  the  all-powerful  light,  and  the  other  rules  in  tlie 
dominion,  of  the  Redeemer  of  mankind.  Turn  over  to  the  pro- 
phecies of  Daniel,  where  his  seventy  weeks  are  determined  to 
build  the  city  of  Jerusalem  and  its  walls  in  troublous  times,  be- 
fore Messiah  the  Prince  be  cutoff  but  not  for  himself;  and  see  how 
admirably  the  time  answers  to  this  era  of  the  redemption  of  our 
world.  In  a  word,  consider  that  portion  of  Isaiah,  that  portion 
which  I  was  reading,  when  an  apostle,  divinely  directed,  ran  to 
me  and  asked  me,  "  Understandest  thou  what  thou  readest?" 
— that  portion  which  admits  of  no  application  but  to  the  promised 
Messiah,  and  which  from  him  receives  such  a  divine  light;  and 
you  will  behold  what  reason  I  have  had  to  attend  upon  the 
passover  and  feast  of  unleavened  bread  at  Jerusalem.     At  the 


THE    ETHIOPIAN  ETTNUCH.  317 

temple  of  Jerusalem  there  was  appointed  the  sacrifices  which 
typified  the  Lamb  of  God  that  taketh  away  the  sin  of  the 
world;  there  was  ordained,  in  every  preceding  age,  the  means  of 
the  salvation  of  mankind.  Oh !  Ethiopians,  I  have  to  tell  you  of 
the  Saviour  of  sinners,  who,  in  the  fulness  of  time,  when  all 
things,  by  predictions,  and  types,  and  revolutions  of  kingdoms, 
had  prepared  his  way,  actually  in  a  correspondence  to  these, 
and  indeed  a  general  expectation  of  mankind,  died  in  our  world 
to  redeem  it,  and  hath  really  saved  it  from  its  sin.  You,  Ethio- 
pians, cannot  change  your  skin,  nor  the  leopard  his  spots;  but 
to  you  now  will  be  administered  the  laver  in  which,  black  as  yoa 
are  in  a  moral  point  of  view,  you  may  wash  yourselves  whiter 
than  the  snow.  The  middle  wall  of  partition  which  till  now 
has  separated  the  Jew  from  the  gentile  is  broken  down,  and  the 
religion  of  the  Saviour  of  the  world  will  be  preached  at  your 
gates.  The  apostles  of  the  Lord  of  glury,  invested  with  the 
power  of  working  miracles,  are  sent  out  to  all  nations,  and  their 
signs,  and  their  wonders,  and  the  life,  the  life  and  immortality  of 
their  doctrines,  will  now  appear  amongst  you.  Contemplating 
these  things  he  went  on  his  way  rejoicing. 

But  we  observe,  lastly.  That  he  went  on  his  way  rejoicing, 
because  he  saw  that  dispensation  of  mercy  which  was  to  visit  all 
lands  established  and  unfolding  its  principles.  It  was  impossi- 
ble to  have  been  baptised  in  the  name  of  Jesus,  and  to  have  had 
all  the  scriptures  which  respected  him  unfolded,  and  not  see  the 
advantageous  nature  of  that  dispensation  of  mercy  under  which 
be  now  lived .  Following  the  streams  of  the  prophecies  which 
must  have  been  discovered  to  him,  he  could  not  but  be  greatly 
delighted  as  he  rode  along,  with  the  belief  that  the  barren  wil- 
dernesses must  become  fertile  lands,  and  that  streams  of  living 
water  are  to  break  out  in  every  desert.  His  imagination  musl 
have  wandered  into  the  distant  periods  of  time,  as  well  as  tlia 
distant  regions  of  the  world,  and  must  have  felt  a  joyful  enthu^ 
fiiasm  from  the  prospect  of  the  true  religion  to  be  disseminated 
fi-om  sea  to  sea,  and  from  the  rivers  to  the  ends  of  the  earth. 
I  am  baptised,  he  would  say,  in  the  name  of  Jesus;  and  tha 
water  with  which  I  have  been  baptised  will  he  consecrated  £bj 


318  THE   CONVERSION  OP 

thJ3  blessed  purpose  to  the  ends  of  the  earth.  Yes,  hail  ye 
streams  and  ye  sacred  Ibuntains;  ye  have  been  often  celebrated 
in  the  song  of  the  muses,  and  been  highly  useful  in  refreshing 
our  weak  and  exhausted  natures;  but  ever  after,  you  may  con- 
tain some  drops  that  represent  the  blood  of  the  Son  of  God,  and 
may  be  employed  in  washing  an  immortal  soul  from  its  sins; 
you  are  now  the  ordained  symbols  which  on  the  earth  are  to 
purify  the  church  of  God.  Hail  ye  many  nations  who  will  drink 
your  sacred  fountains;  and  as  you  drink  may  you  always  recol- 
lect that  these  streams  may  be  a  mean  of  sealing  your  rescue 
from  the  burning  flame  of  divine  wrath.  Thus  looking  forward 
among  the  ages  to  come,  he  would  sing  at  every  stream  the 
remembrance  of  the  Lord,  and  go  on  his  way  rejoicing. 

The  second  thing  we  proposed  to  investigate  was,  how  could 
such  an  effect  be  so  suddenly  and  so  effectually  produced  on  his 
mind?  This  is  a  most  important  inquiry;  differing  immensely 
from  that  inquiry  which  the  divine  institutes  in  respect  to  those 
instances  of  conversion  which  take  place  under  an  acknowledged 
and  professed  system  of  religion.  Our  present  inquiry  cannot 
be  rationally  satisfied,  till  we  analyze  the  whole  of  the  circum- 
stances attending  the  life  of  the  convert,  and  the  time  and  place 
of  his  conversion. 

The  history  of  the  Ethiopian  eunuch  is  known  as  far  as  we 
can  desire.  He  was  a  minister  employed  in  a  political  office; 
which  both  requires  talent  and  is  disposed  to  remain  contented 
with  existing  institutions.  He  is  particularly  connected  with 
the  Jewish  nation,  and  travels  far  to  do  honor  to  the  institutions 
of  the  Jewish  people.  His  conduct  is  the  very  opposite  of 
levity,  and  his  mind  is  not  distracted  by  any  terrors  of  con- 
science. Indeed  he  starts  into  view  most  respectable,  and  lie 
seems  to  act  from  the  deepest  conviction.  With  the  time  and 
place  of  his  conversion  we  are  equally  acquainted.  It  was  not 
far  off  from  the  city  of  Jerusalem,  and  in  the  midst  of  that 
ground  which  was  tearing  up  and  changing  its  appearance,  by 
a  whirlwind  which  made  every  spot  feel  its  influence,  and  which 
left  no  one  without  exciting  his  feelings  to  the  highest  degree. 
A^  immense  number  of  men  have  been  driven  off  from  the  city 


THE  ETHIOPIAN  EPNUCH.  319 

of  Jerusalem;  but  wherever  they  appear  they  have  a  sternness 
in  their  look,  and  a  determination  in  their  step,  which  clearly 
show  that  whether  they  be  managing  their  cause  in  their  metro- 
polis or  any  where  else,  it  is  their  resolution  that  it  shall  prevail. 
It  was,  indeed  a  peculiar  cause.     An  illustrious  master  had  be- 
gun it;  had  given  it  renown  by  the  reputation  of  miracles;  had 
been  arrested,  however,  in  his  progress  by  an  ignominious  death; 
and  yet  had  started  it  anew  by  an  astonishing  fact,  his  own 
resurrection  from  the  dead.     If  the  whole  Jewish  nation  had 
become  converts  to  this  extraordinary  cause,  it  might  have  been 
suspected  that  the  people,  who  had  so  many  miracles  in  their 
national  records,  were  determined  that  they  should  crown  the 
history  of  the  whole,  by  the  resurrection  and  ascension  into 
heaven  of  their  Messiah;  and  it  might  have  been  suspected  that 
the  Ethiopian  eunuch  could  not,  when  he  came  to  the  city  of 
Jerusalem,  withstand  an  impulse  which  was  so  irresistible.    But 
the  resurrection  and  ascension  of  Christ  were  observed  by  some 
particular  witnesses,  who  could  not  possibly  be  mistaken  about 
the  identity  of  his  person;  and  the  rest  were  left  with  the  un- 
doubted absence  of  Christ's  body  from  the  tomb;  the  continu- 
ance of  the  train  of  miracles  which  they  thought  to  stop  by  the 
crucifixion  of  Christ;  and  the  zeal  and  sincerity  of  the  apostles 
and  disciples.     By  these  means  a  part  of  the  Jewish  nation 
underwent  a  most  astonishing  revolution  of  sentiment.     Many 
who  had  before  his  crucifixion  continued  incredulous  in  respect  to 
Christ's  pretensions,  became,  after  his  death,  not  only  converts 
to  his  cause,  but  attached  to  it  above  the  love  of  life  itself. 
Eight  thousand  at  the  city  of  Jerusalem  were  proselyted  by  the 
address  of  Peter  on  the  day  of  Pentecost,  and  of  the  apostles 
on  a  subsequent  occasion;  and  the  cause  gathered  an  increase 
daily. 

When  the  Ethiopian  eunuch,  therefore,  came  to  Jerusalem, 
the  national  agitation  could  not  possibly  have  concealed  itself 
from  him.  Indeed  it  is  implied  in  the  history  of  his  conversion 
that  he  was  acquainted  with  it.  Had  he  not  known  of  the  gene- 
ral and  interesting  topics  of  the  day,  when  Philip  approached 
him,  and  when  he  preached  to  him  Jesus,  he  would  have  replied 


S20  THE    CONVERSION  OF 

to  him,  these  things  cannot  be  as  you  state  them:  a  man  so 
famous  in  his  life,  so  remarkable  in  his  death,  and  who  rose 
again  from  the  dead ;  who  has  produced  such  a  deep  sensation 
as  you  say  on  the  minds  of  the  Jews,  and  even  on  surrounding 
nations,  cannot  have  been  in  this  place  else  1  would  have  heard 
of  it.  What,  do  you  require  me  to  believe,  as  a  great  and  mira- 
culous fact,  that  which  is  even  more  extraordinary  than  the 
passing  of  the  Red  Sea,  and  which,  however,  instead  of  being 
the  national  song  of  the  Israelites,  is  not  attracting  the  least 
attention,  nor  exciting  the  least  inquiry?  It  is  surely'a  sublime 
dream  that  you  are  introducing  to  interpret  this  passage  of  our 
prophets. 

But,  my  brethren,  if  this  minister  of  Queen  Candace, 
when  at  the  city  of  Jerusalem,  heard  any  narration  of  the  cir- 
cumstances of  the  times;  if  he  heard  what  the  high  priest  and 
the  rulers  had  lately  done,  and  what  a  new  party  were  deter- 
mined to  establish;  if  he  heard  that  both  parties  appealed 
to  facts  and  to  scripture,  he  could  scarce  fail,  if  met  near  the 
city  of  Jerusalem,  to  be  either  thinking  on  these  things,  or  to  be 
reading  the  predictions  respecting  them. 

The  celebrated  historian  of  '•  the  decline  and  fall  of  the 
Roman  empire,"  in  his  enmity  to  the  christian  religion,  states, 
that  he  will  pass  over  the  supernatural  evidences  of  it,  and  attend 
to  the  human  causes  which  operated  to  its  rapid  diffusion  and 
establishment  among  men.  But  though  it  may  be  granted  that 
in  general,  in  our  day,  converts  are  made  to  a  religious  life 
without  particularly  fixing  their  minds  on  the  miracles  of  Christ, 
especially  that  of  his  resurrection ;  yet  this  could  not  be  the 
case  in  the  first  instances  of  its  triumph  in  the  world.  After 
converts  became  numerous  in  any  country,  and  their  manners 
exerted  an  influence  over  neighbors,  inducing  them  to  put  on 
the  same  habits,  we  grant  that  those  principles  in  liuman  nature 
which  copy  generally  the  religion  which  is  prevailing,  would  not 
be,  in  respect  to  the  christian  religion,  without  their  effect;  and 
that  even  in  the  first  century  many  might  be  brought  to  embrace 
the  religion  of  Ciirist  from  the  holy  lives  and  doctrines  of  the 
apostles,  and   the    professedly  pious   habits   of  its  converts. 


THE  ETHIOPIAN  EtJNUCH.  32  1 

But  Still  we  do  not  think  that  any  man  of  judgment  in  our  own 
time  embraces  our  religion  without  a  respect  to  its  miraculous 
origin ;  and  far  less  that  any  man  of  reflection  could,  in  the 
first  age  of  Christianity,  cast  off  his  former  religious  sentiments, 
and  become  a  disciple  of  the  new  religion,  without  adopting 
those  miraculous  traits  which  were  the  most  prominent  points 
of  its  history,  and  which,  by  men  of  judgment  and  feeling, 
could  never,  when  the  subject  came  to  be  mentioned,  but  sum- 
mon upon  themselves  all  their  powers  of  reflection.  When 
Peter  and  the  rest  of  the  apostles,  on  the  day  of  Pentecost, 
stood  arrayed  under  the  miraculous  appearance  which  de»- 
scended  from  heaven  upon  them,  and  when  they  spake  of  the 
death  and  resurrection  of  Christ,  had  the  converts,  so  numerous 
among  their  hearers,  no  respect  to  any  thing  but  the  zeal  of 
the  apostles,  the  sublime  doctrine  of  immortality,  the  resurrec- 
tion from  the  dead,  and  the  promise  of  the  forgiveness  of  all 
their  sins  ?  As  Jews,  the  doctrine  of  immortality,  of  the  resur- 
rection, of  the  pardon  of  sin  by  the  promises  of  God,  had  been 
a  subject  of  perpetual  exultation  to  them;  and  nothing  but 
the  naked  miracle  which  addressed  their  eyes  and  ears,  and 
the  resurrection  of  Christ  and  his  ascension  into  heaven,  could 
operate  to  prick  them  to  the  heart,  and  to  make  them  cry  out, 
"  What  shall  we  do  to  be  saved?"  Infidels  may  suppose  what 
they  please  about  the  truth  of  the  history  of  the  propagation  of 
Christianity;  but  if  the  facts  respecting  the  conversion  of  men 
are  not  to  be  denied,  from  the  very  principles  of  human  nature, 
they  were  not  human  arts  and  arguments  that  succeeded  in 
making  proselytes:  but,  howsoever  we  are  to  account  for  it,  it 
was  a  belief  in  divine  evidences  which  no  man  nor  assemblage 
of  men  could  of  themselves  promise  to  aflbrd. — For  let  us  draw 
near  to  this  one  man,  this  Ethiopian  eunuch  of  intelligence 
and  of  enterprise. — The  whole  country  where  he  has  been,  and 
through  which  he  is  passing,  is  convulsed  by  the  events  of  the 
times;  and  after  the  explication  of  the  passage  which  he  is 
found  reading,  and  the  statement  of  tlie  events  of  Jesug' 
28 


322  THE   CONVERSION    OF 

history,  he  believes  with  all  his  heart.  What  does  he  believe? 
The  zeal  of  his  teacher^  and  the  common  doctrines  of  his  reli- 
gion? No,  he  believes  that  the  Messiah  was  cut  off  out  of  the 
land  of  the  living,  and  that  yet  he  sees  his  seed  and  prolongs 
his  days.  They  are  the  miracles,  the  death,  the  resurrection, 
and  ascension  of  Christ  that  he  believes;  and  had  not  he 
believed  all  these,  his  heart,  at  the  sight  of  the  water,  never 
would  have  suggested  to  him  to  make  the  solemn  change  m 
his  religious  profession  which,  in  our  text,  is  stated  to  be  the 
source  of  his  joy. 

Indeed,  the  conduct  of  infidels  never  will  permit  us  to  be- 
lieve, that  any  thing  else  than  the  deepest  conviction  of  the 
truth  of  the  miracles,  in  the  history  of  Christ  and  of  his  apos- 
tles, could,  in  the  first  age  of  Christianity,  induce  any  man 
however  little  he  might  reflect,  to  enrol  his  name  with  sincerity 
among  the  followers  of  Christ.     The  infidels  are  continually 
talking  against  the  miracles  of  our  holy  religion ,  insisting  on 
the  uniformity  of  the  laws  of  nature;  and  the  impossibility  of 
a  real  interruption  of  these  laws.     And  the  enemies  of  this 
religion  among  the  Jews  and  among  the  Gentiles  could  find 
no  successful  means  of  attacking  it,  but  prejudices  in  favor  of 
the  ancient  systems  of  their  fathers,  and  the  falsehood  of  the 
doctrine  of  Christ's  resurrection.     This  point  of  his  resurrection 
was  the  great  bone  of  contention :  a  miraculous  evidence  which 
its  friends  could  never  leave  behind  them,  could  never  put  out 
of  sight,  on  which  alone  they  must  risk  the  prosperity  of  their 
cause,  and  which  with  every  opponent  they  must  dispute.     If 
they  could  have  shut  it  up  in  neutrality;  then  men  might 
speak  about  the  mere  human  means  that  were  in  operation, 
but  the  disciples  could  no  more  do  this,  than  they  could  tear 
the  sun  from  the  firmament;  nor  at  that  time  could  any  man, 
even  of  the  most  moderate  capacity,  have  turned,  under  the 
banners  of  his  conscience,  to  the  new  religion,  but  as  a  sincere 
believer  in  all  its  miraculous  history,  and  this  as  in  opposition 
to  those  who  were  around  him  still  of  a  different  sentiment. 


THE  ETHIOPIAN  EUNXJCH.  323 

All  disciples  went  on  their  way  rejoicing;  but  it  was  from  the 
deepest  convictions  of  the  miraculous  fact  of  Christ's  resurrec- 
tion. 

But,  in  the  last  place.  We  ask  why  is  this  occurrence  so  par- 
ticularly noticed?  This  is  for  the  most  important  ends.  The 
names  of  hidividuals  mentioned  throughout  the  Acts  of  the 
Apostles,  and  in  some  other  parts  of  revelation,  present  to  us  a 
view  of  the  vast  fabric  of  the  church  as  she  existed  in  the  days 
of  the  apostles;  for  we  see  the  extent  of  the  society,  in  the 
number  of  those  who  managed  her  concerns.  When  the  Euro- 
peans first  sailed  round  Africa  they  were  astonished  to  find  the 
vast  nation  of  Ethiopia  possessed  of  the  religion  of  Christ;  but 
while  indeed  they  might  have  received  it  from  Egypt,  it  is  highly 
probable  that  they  date  the  entrance  of  the  waters  of  life  from 
the  time  of  the  return  of  this  eunuch.  Of  the  introduction  of 
Christianity  into  Africa  we  in  scripture  have  no  account.  Yet 
Ethiopia  must  stretch  out  her  hand  to  God;  and  when  this 
eunuch  passes  through  the  messengers  of  the  new  covenant,  th^ 
spirit  hails  him,  and  sends  forward  for  her  acceptance  wisdom 
which  the  topaz  of  Ethiopia  cannot  equal.  Egypt  is  tavow  a 
vow  and  swear  to  the  Lord  of  hosts;  but  one  would  be  apt  to 
think,  that  the  apostles  designed  to  let  the  prophecies  adjust 
their  own  concerns;  for  they  tread  where  the  prophecies  had 
scarcely  ventured  to  prepare  their  way,  Egypt  is  just  once  allu- 
ded to;  but  the  allusion  is  like  the  prophet's  cruise  of  oil  to  one 
who  reflects  upon  it:  we  cannot  exhaust  it, — Apollos  is  stated 
to  have  come  from  Alexandria,  the  capital  of  Egypt.  This 
man  was  mighty  in  the  scriptures;  and  although  he  needed 
some  little  information  about  some  of  the  concomitant  parts 
which  attended  the  main  concerns  in  the  history  of  Christ  and 
of  his  apostles,  yet  he  is  esteemed  by  many  superior  to  Paul 
himself.  Why  did  he  leave  Africa,  the  place  of  his  nativity, 
and  the  school  of  his  education?  Was  the  ministry  of  Christ 
so  flourishing  and  abundant  there,  that  they  could  spare  with 
ease  one  of  their  most  protoising  students?     It  would 


324  THE    CONVERSION    OF 

that  this  was  the  case;  for  the  christian  history  of  Egypt  and 
of  the  adjoining  regions,  soon  comes  forward  in  maturity  of 
attainments,  and  rivals,  if  not  excels,  the  triumphs  of  our  reli- 
gion in  the  most  favored  spots  of  the  world. 

The  historian  we  alluded  to,  does  more  justice  to  the  gene- 
ral and  rapid  spread  of  the  gospel,  than  many  of  the  warmest 
friends  of  Christianity.  He  was  too  well  acquainted  with  an- 
cient history  to  err  in  respect  to  the  facts  on  this  head;  but 
many  individuals  will  make  the  apostles  travel  with  innumera- 
ble assistants  into  the  most  populous  cities  of  the  world,  where 
in  many  places  a  hundred  numerous  congregations  might  have 
been  collected ;  and  yet  they  will  not  concede  that  we  ought 
to  persuade  ourselves  that  they  gathered  together  in  the  ut- 
most tide  of  their  success  more  tlian  one  congregation.  Even 
in  the  alarm  excited  at  Ephesus  for  the  general  overthrow  of 
idolatry  in  that  uncommonly  populous  city  and  throughout 
Asia  by  the  success  of  the  apostles;  yet  it  is  believed,  that  not 
more  than  can  be  edified  in  one  congregation  had  left  idola- 
try and  enrolled  their  names  under  the  banners  of  the  gospel. 
But  the  word  church,  in  scripture,  though  sometimes  applied  to 
to  a  single  congregation,  is  not  equivalent  to  it,  and  generally 
means  the  whole  converts  to  Christianity  in  the  region  in  ques- 
tion, however  numerous  they  might  be;  because  they  had  all 
one  faith  and  one  profession.  Hence  the  word  church,  as  in 
this  passage,  "  he  is  head  over  all  things  to  his  church  which  is 
his  body,"  at  times  comprehends  the  whole  New  Testament 
congregation  of  the  Lord,  dispersed  far  and  wide  as  they  were, 
and  clustered  in  immense  multitudes  as  in  some  cities  took 
place. 

There  are  two  or  three  things  which  bring  the  religion  of 
Christ  before  us  as  most  extensively  spread,  and  in  many  places 
closely  planted  in  the  days  of  the  apostles.  Paul,  after  he  had 
been  long  in  the  ministry,  and  had  had  on  his  mind  the  care  of 
the  whole  churches,  yet  does  not  seem,  throughout  all  the  lines 
of  his  intercourse,   to  have  learned  the  christian  settlements. 


THiE  ETHIOPIAN  iitrfucH.  325 

wliich  were  making  and  gathering  strength.  Tyre,  which  now 
answers  in  its  desolation  wonderfully  to  the  dress  of  the  fish- 
erman's nets  which  Isaiah  put  upon  it,  was  however  to  be  pre- 
served till  after  the  diffusion  of  the  gospel,  and  with  Rahab 
and  Babylon,  Philistia  and  Ethiopia,  was  to  present  sons  to 
God ;  but  when  Paul  came  to  it,  he  was  unexpectedly  greeted 
by  the  brethren  whom  he  found  there.  It  was  especially  pro- 
phetical ground,  and  for  any  thing  that  we  can  see,  was  left, 
like  other  such  portions  of  the  earth,  to  present  to  us  the  fact 
only  of  a  rich  harvest  of  converts  to  Christ.— Paul  says  that 
when  he  would  take  his  journey  into  Spain,  he  would  visit  the 
disciples  in  Italy  and  in  Rome;  but  why  leave  the  populons 
regions  of  Asia,  of  Greece,  and  pay  only  a  passing  visit  to  the 
metropolis  of  the  world?  Why  leave  Egypt  behind,  the  cradle 
of  the  sciences,  and  the  scene  of  ancient  renown?  It  is  impos- 
sible to  account  for  these  things  on  any  other  supposition  than 
that  he  saw  a  solid  and  permanent  foundation  for  the  prosperity 
of  the  religion  of  Christ  already  laid  in  all  these  countries, 
and  that  therefore  he  might  leave  them  safely  to  others  to 
water,  whilst  he  himself  passed  on  to  a  region  in  which  he 
would  be  building  on  no  other  man^s  foundation. — But  Rome, 
containing  three  millions  of  people,  has  it  only  one  little 
society,  which  a  single  voice  might  edify  and  command?  We 
see  the  flourishing  state  of  the  Italian  churches  in  Paul's  salu- 
tations to  his  fellow  lalDorers  in  that  country,  in  the  sixteenth 
chapter  of  his  epistle  to  the  Romans.  That  chapter  seems  to 
have  been  written  to  proclaim  to  the  world,  at  tljat  lime  and  in 
every  future  age,  the  wisdom  of  an  intended  journey  into  a 
distant  and  partly  savage  colony,  by  leaving  every  renowned 
and  populous  region,  where  there  had  been  already  plantings 
xind  waterings  with  wonderful  success. 

Yes,  my  brethren,  wherever  Ham's  children  were,  they  were 
gathered  by  the  prophecies  among  the  fulness  of  the  gentiles; 
but  as  our  Saviour  was  sent  to  the  lost  sheep  of  the  house  of 

Israel^  so  his  apostles  seemed,  under  the  providence  of  God, 

28* 


326  THE    CONVERSION   OF 

to  direct  all  their  energies  to  the  fulfilment  in  its  order  of  the 
declaration,  that  Japheth  should  dwell  in  the  tents  of  Shem. 
Hence  as  many  colonies  in  Spain  were  from  Africa,  Paul  can 
only  speak  of  his  journey  thither;  Egypt  is  only  once  alluded  to  ,• 
and  Ethiopia  has  in  revelation  no  more  provision  made  for  it, 
than  this  eunuch  on  whom  a  few  moments  of  Christ's  ministry 
has  been  bestowed,  and  then  his  Spirit  calls  off  the  minister. 
"  And  the  Spirit  caught  away  Philip,  and  he  went  on  his  way 
rejoicing." — This  conversion,  however,  is  an  instance  of  the 
small  mustard  seed  beginning  to  take  root,  and  which,  belong- 
ing to  the  kingdom  of  heaven,  is,  under  the  watering  of  Christ's 
prediction,  to  spread  into  a  great  tree.  In  it  we  see  Ethiopia's 
ancient  promise  fulfilled  for  a  rich  and  powerful  increase. 
The  expression  is  incidental  j  but  it  is  connected  with  the  illu- 
mination of  a  quarter  of  the  world. 

For  while  among  the  Jews  and  among  the  gentiles  so  many 
converts  were  made,  in  the  very  earliest  periods  of  the  propaga- 
tion of  our  holy  religion,  to  convince  every  future  ^ge  that  a 
conviction  of  the  truth  of  the  miracles  and  resurrection  of 
Christ  and  the  miracles  of  the  apostles  produced  on  human 
nature  such  a  total  change  in  so  many  thousands  of  indivi- 
duals ;  we  must  state  to  you  that  this  very  nation  to  which  the 
eunuch  belonged  comes  to  occupy  afterwards  a  very  important 
feature  in  the  history  of  our  world.  Ethiopia  and  many  other 
churches,  scattered  in  the  providence  of  God  over  the  face  of 
the  earth,  are  evidences,  and  will  be  to  the  end  of  time,  that 
God  hath  never  acknowledged,  in  the  actual  state  of  things,  for 
one  moment,  that  there  shall  be,  visible  or  invisible,  any  uni- 
versal head  of  the  church  but  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ  alone. 
And  when  that  spirit  of  joy  in  spreading  the  religion  of 
Christ  which  now  operates  on  the  north,  south,  east,  and 
west  of  Ethiopia,  shall  enter  among  that  people,  as  in  some 
degree  it  can  scarcely  fail  to  do,  they  may  bear  the  scriptures 
to  many  surrounding  nations  of  kindred  languages;  and  remem- 
bering what  was  done  of  old,  they  may  long  keep  on  their  way 


THE  ETHIOPIAN  EUNUCH.  327 

rejoicing. — For  these  things  are  certain,  that  in  the  first  age  of 
Christianity  the  ministers  of  Christ  were  flocking  in  every  quar- 
ter; convinced,  of  the  wonders  of  their  religion,  men  of 
the  most  respectable  characters  and  estimable  judgment; 
attacked  cities,  countries,  and  individuals,  and  shook  off  the 
dust  of  their  feet  against  only  a  very  few;  in  the  issue,  by  the 
belief  of  miracles,  they  turned  the  world  upside  down ;  and  what 
they  so  successfully  began,  under  God,  and  the  Lord  Jesus 
Christ,  and  the  Holy  Spirit,  their  successors,  in  every  nation, 
should  endeavor  to  carry,  by  the  means  in  their  hands,  to  the 
extremities  of  the  earth.  The  word  of  God  is  called  "  glad 
tidings;''  and  its  converts  should  always  send  it  on  its  way 
rejoicing;  while  for  themselves,  each  individual,  in  looking  after 
the  risen  Saviour,  should  utter  this  beautiful  language: 
"Whom  having  not  seen  we  love;  in  whom,  though  now  we 
see  him  not,  yet  believing,  we  rejoice  with  joy  unspeakable  and 
full  of  glory."     Amen 


DISCOURSE  XV. 


GOD'S  BLESSING  TO  HIS  PEOPLE. 


Revelation  22:21.     The  grace  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ 
he  icith  you  all.     Amen. 

There  are,  my  brethren,  as  respecting  the  lives  of  individual 
persons,  so  particular  periods  in  every  important  transaction, 
peculiarly  impressive.  The  solemnity  which  marks  the  com- 
mencement of  any  great  city  which  it  is  intended  to  build,  or 
of  any  kingdom  which  is  projected  to  be  raised ;  the  inscrip- 
tions which  are  engraven  upon  the  first  laid  stone  of  the  foun- 
dation of  the  first  house  of  that  city,  and  the  royal  ensigns 
which  are  first  dedicated  to  the  promised  empire,  fill  the  be- 
holders with  emotions  that  are  deep  and  awful.  We  see  in 
history  the  grandees  of  the  nation  assembled  to  behold  the 
foundation  of  their  capitol  laid,  and  to  bestow  an  august 
solemnity  on  the  deed ;  and  we  see,  with  bended  knee,  the 
victorious  army,  or  the  strangers  in  the  infant  colony,  kneeling 
around  the  regalia  of  their  infant  nation,  and  laying  them  up  in 
custody  as  the  pledges  of  their  mutual  fidelity,  union,  and 
independence.  The  end  of  great  achievements  kindles  still 
more  lively  emotions.  The  palaces  of  kings  are  finished  with 
shouts  of  exultation,  wars  are  terminated  by  universal  testi- 
monies of  joy,  and  the  great  designs  of  good  men  are  finished  i 
like  that  of  the  temple  of  Jerusalem,  with  shoutings,  crying 
grace,  grace,  unto  it. 


329 

This  certainly  proceeds  from  some  principles  in  our  nature- 
inclined  to  produce  such  a  conduct.  For  the  Saviour  of  the 
world  himself,  when  finishing  the  arduous  and  magnificent 
work  of  our  salvation  in  regard  to  the  procurement  of  the 
blessings  which  compose  it,  said,  with  solemn  emotion,  "  It 
is  finished;"  the  sun  withdrew  his  shining,  and  the  dead  arose. 

The  relations  of  our  text  have  led  us  into  these  reflections. 
These  are  the  last  words  God  will  ever  reveal  to  men ;  these 
are  the  copestone  of  the  great  building  of  Zion,  as  it  is  reared 
in  perfection  in  revelation;  these  stop  the  mouths  of  the  pro- 
phets of  the  living  God ;  and  these  impress  our  minds  with 
emotions  of  sublimity  from  the  lapse  of  time,  and  the  abun- 
dance of  benediction  which  they  contain. — "  The  grace  of  our 
Lord  Jesus  Christ  be  with  you  all.     Amen." 

What,  in  the  further  prosecution  of  the  discourse,  we  intend 
is,  in  the  first  place,  to  illustrate  the  solemn  relations  of  this 
verse;  secondly,  to  unfold  the  abundance  of  benediction  which 
it  contains;  and,  lastly,  to  conclude  by  an  application. 

We  are  first  to  illustrate  the  solemn  relations  of  this  verse. 
We  observe,  first,  That  these  are  the  last  words  ever  God  will 
speak  to  men.  When  men  were  few,  God  frequently  uttered 
his  voice  among  them;  and  the  divine  instructions  were  com- 
mitted as  a  treasury  to  man  for  the  use  of  future  ages.  Men 
under  the  immediate  guidance  of  the  Holy  Ghost  illumed,  in 
every  age,  the  stage  of  human  life,  and  corrected,  with  the 
authority  of  divine  ambassadors,  the  abuses  that  prevailed; 
instructed  how  difficulties  were  to  be  overcome;  and  pointed 
out  the  path  of  duty  to  individuals,  states,  and  nations.  God's 
voice  was  always  to  be  heard  either  immediately  from  the 
clouds,  or  where  the  divine  communications  could  not  be 
doubted,  from  the  venerable  lips  of  commissioned  seers  and 
prophets,  accredited  by  miracles.  But  God  had  the  full  sys- 
tem of  truth  which  unfolds  the  contents  of  the  covenant  of 
grace  only  to  reveal;  and  while  he  displayed  his  sovereignty  in 
selecting  the  state  of  human  society  -to  which  to  manifest  his 


330  god's  blessing  to  his  people. 

will,  and  his  wisdom  in  the  choice  of  the  early  time  when  to 
reveal  it,  he  hath  impressed  our  minds  with  solemnity  in  read- 
ing this  verse,  which  concludes  the  whole  of  the  revelation  of 
it,  by  the  reflection — that  God's  voice  shall  never  more  be 
heard. 

Individuals  may  be  placed  in  situations  where  nothing  but  a 
heavenly  voice  could  resolve  their  doubts  and  direct  their 
course;  nations  may  be  so  shaken  and  agitated,  convulsed  by 
internal  divisions  or  terrified  by  external  enemies,  that  a  gleam 
of  heavenly  light  to  bestow  direction  would  be  a  blessing  lo  be 
obtained  from  no  other  quarter:  but  the  visions  and  the  prophe- 
cies are  over.  The  command,  benign  and  merciful,  which  led 
Noah  to  build  the  ark  of  his  preservation  from  the  deluge  of 
waters  that  overwhelmed  the  whole  world  besides;  the  intima- 
tion which  was  no  less  mercifully  given  to  Abraham  than  sub- 
missively received,  to  leave  the  idolatrous  and  destructive  land 
of  his  nativity;  the  words  which  taught  Isaac  and  Jacob  and 
conducted  the  retreat  of  Lot;  the  divine  communications  made 
known  to  Moses,  when  God  spake  face  to  face  with  him;  the 
knowledge  from  the  urim  and  thummim  on  the  breast  of  the 
high  priest  of  the  Jews;  and  God's  instructing  mankind  in 
dreams,  trances,  and  visions  of  the  night,  meet  no  longer  the 
deluded  or  ignorant,  the  harrassed  or  afflicted  individual,  or  the 
convulsed  and  expiring  nation.  We  may  throw  our  eye  over 
the  millions  that  now  people  our  globe;  we  may  survey  the 
innumerable  kingdoms  of  the  heathen  world,  whose  regions 
live  with  inhabitants;  and  we  may  imagine  what  superstition 
might  be  expelled,  and  what  souls  might  be  saved,  by  the  erec- 
tion of  divine  oracles  and  the  immediate  utterance  of  Jehovah's 
voice  among  them; — but  the  idea  only  heightens  the  solemnity 
of  these  words,  which  prevent  the  opening  of  such  gates  of 
divine  instruction,  at  the  same  time  that  they  seal  up  the  very 
treasure  of  divine  knowledge  which,  at  its  appointed  period,  is 
to  accomplish  this  happy  end. — Reflect  upon  the  relations  of 
this  verse  in  regard  to  God's  speaking  to  our  world.     It  marks 


god's  blessing  to  his  people.  331 

the  precise  point  when  God,  who  spake  for  many  ages  to  man- 
kind, stops  his  voice;  it  hushes  into  silence  the  expectations  of 
all  men  in  all  nations  respecting  further  communications  of 
knowledge  from  heaven ;  and  it  seals  the  very  book  which  con- 
tains all  that  is  necessary  to  be  known  for  the  present  and 
eternal  welfare  of  all  men;  and  that  very  book  too,  which,  at 
their  respective  times  when  it  was  ordained  by  God  that 
they  should  receive  it,  will  be  delivered  into  their  possession. 

God  has  always,  my  brethren,  hastened  to  have  his  works 
transferred  to  the  ends  for  which  they  are  destined,  finished  and 
consummated  in  every  part.  What  wisdom  in  the  arrangements 
of  nature  for  the  support,  conveniency,  and  happiness  of  his 
sentient  and  intelligent  creatures!  But  God  hastened  over  the 
hours  of  the  economy  of  creation ;  and  interesting  as  it  might 
be  to  see  new  species  of  plants  springing  from  the  soil,  or  new 
animals  arising  from  the  clay,  the  period  of  all  such  operations 
is  past.  So  revelation  was  not  deferred  in  its  origin  beyond  the 
earliest  period  of  a  proper  commencement,  and  in  its  consum- 
mation beyond  the  formation  and  arrangement  of  the  materials 
which  had  to  enter  into  the  great  building  which  he  was  con- 
structing. God  made  all  mines  of  gold  and  silver,  of  iron  and 
copper,  and  of  the  minerals  which  support  the  useful  arts  in  all 
their  departments;  but  these  were  laid  up  in  treasures  in  the 
very  morning  of  creation;  and  just  as  the  whole  process  was 
finishing,  with  the  most  of  them  in  the  crust  of  the  globe;  and 
so  revelation,  as  soon  as  its  elements  were  all  prepared,  tarried 
not,  but  came  to  a  definite  and  joyful  conclusion  in  the  mellow 
and  rich  language  of  the  subject  of  our  discourse. 

But  we  observe,  secondly.  That  this  verse  completes  revela- 
tion as  a  perfect  system.  Jehovah,  who  had  a  grand  design  of 
mercy  to  display,  did  not  stop  short,  at  these  words,  from  the 
revelation  of  any  truth  that  was  necessary  to  be  known  in  order 
to  perfect  the  magnificent  fabric  of  the  revelation  of  his  will. 
Some  would  detract  from  the  merits  of  the  grand  building  of 
revelation,  and  the  distinguished  impressions  made  by  this 
verse,  by  uncharitable  and  impious  surmises,  that  there  are  defi- 
ciencies in  the  interior  of  the  noble  work,  and  that  these  words 


332  god's  blessing  to  his  people. 

do  not  finish  a  perfect  performance,  but  mark  where  the  hand  of 
the  workman  slopped.  But  where  is  there  a  want  or  a  flaw  in 
that  structure,  which,  like  the  works  of  nature,  is  not  indeed 
reared  by  the  rules  of  human  composition  and  art,  but  with  a 
divine  magnificence  which  is  at  once  inimitable  in  stately  gran- 
deur and  appearance,  and  in  a  singular  adaptation  to  the  needs 
and  wants  of  all  who  will  accept  the  benefit  of  it?  They  who 
have  seen  it  may  consider  the  lofty  palace,  which,  when  viewed 
at  a  distance,  appears  a  confusion  of  broken  casements,  roofs, 
and  turrets,  but  which,  on  a  near  approach,  bespeaks  itself  finish- 
ed by  the  hand  of  a  master,  and  accommodated  to  enter- 
tain the  state  and  to  please  the  taste  of  a  sovereign ;  and  he  will 
see  a  faint  emblem  of  the  sacred  temple  of  divine  truth,  as  it  is 
designed  and  built,  in  perfection  and  magnificence,  in  the  volume 
of  inspiration;  and  reflecting  on  the  shouts  of  joy  which  the 
sight  of  a  fabric  as  incomparably  more  grand  than  any  reared  on 
earth,  as  the  glorious  and  eternal  truths  of  the  gospel  surpass 
cement  and  stones,  he  may  thus  acquire  some  idea  of  the  solemn 
and  impressive  relations  of  our  text. 

Yes,  God,  in  his  eternal  councils  which  arranged  all  events, 
great  and  sniall,  that  will  ever  take  place,  appointed  the  whole 
of  the  matter,  instituted  its  order,  and  circumscribed  the  extent 
of  revelation;  and  every  part  of  the  great  whole  made,  like  the 
successive  steps  of  creation,  its  appearance  at  the  appointed 
time,  among  its  appropriate  circumstances,  and  adjusted  to  its 
own  peculiar  relations,  till  the  magnificent  structure  appeared 
completed,  without  a  word  wanting  or  a  syllable  to  be  added, 
by  the  words  of  this  verse.  The  ignorance  of  sinners  could  not 
require  another  doctrine  to  be  revealed ,  or  the  same  to  be  pre- 
sented in  a  more  diversified  aspect;  their  misery  could  not  justify 
the  wisdom  of  proclaiming  another  promise,  or  presenting  with  a 
more  pointed  edge  the  abundance  of  them  that  are  promulgated ; 
and  their  obedience  could  not  desire  to  be  set  on  a  more  sure 
foundation,  or  directed  to  a  more  glorious  end,  than  what  the 
explained  connexion  between  the  gospel  and  God's  perfect  law, 
written  and  defined  in  every  point,  and  enforced  by  example, 
affords.     The  dead  spring  up  anew  by  the  incorruptible  seed  of 


god's  blessing  to  his  people.  333 

this  word  of  life;  the  tender  offspring  are  fed  by  the  milk  which 
it  bestows,  and  are  fostered  by  the  nursing  care  which  it  exer- 
cises. "  Can  a  woman  forget  her  sucking  child,  that  she  should 
not  have  compassion  on  the  son  of  her  womb?  Yea,  they  may 
forget,  but  I  will  not  forget  thee;  I  have  engraven  thee  on  the 
palms  of  my  hands,  and  thy  walls  are  continually  before  me." 
The  child  of  the  new  birth  is  reared  to  all  the  duties  that  are 
required  from  him,  and  to  all  the  dignity  of  character  which  he 
should  support.  Difficulties  are  presented,  but  he  overcomes 
their  embarrassment  and  opposition.  "  I  can  do  all  things  through 
him  that  strengtheneth  me."  Temptations  assail  him,  but  he 
sets  at  defiance  their  disguised  allurements  and  their  bewitching 
enticements.  "With  the  temptation  he  will  aftbrd  a  way  to 
escape.'"  Enemies  surround  him,  but  he  foils  their  power.  "  The 
Lord  is  on  our  side."  The  man  advanced  to  full  age  stands  the 
centre  of  approved  goodness,  and  difiuses  his  uprightness  in 
every  direction  where  the  light  of  his  duty  prescribes.  He  is 
humbloj  in  the  abgdes  of  humility;  patient,  where  this  grace 
should  particularly  shine;  and  active,  where  there  starts  up  a 
good  cause;  zealous  in  religion,  and  warm  in  his  friendship  to 
men.  "The  fruit  of  the  Spirit  is  in  all  goodness,  righteousness, 
and  truth."  But  mark  this  man  at  the  end  of  his  days:  he  re- 
treats from  the  world,  like  the  setting  sun  in  a  cloudless  sky 
and  serene  evening,  clear  and  enlarged  to  our  view,  and  shedding 
abroad  over  the  face  of  nature,  streams  of  light  in  all  directions; 
— an  evidence  to  the  most  inattentive,  that  he  retires  only  from 
the  view  of  men,  and  does  not  lose  a  single  ray  of  his  vigorous 
brightness,  "  Blessed  are  the  dead  which  die  in  the  Lord  from 
henceforth  and  forever;  yea,  saith  the  Spirit,  for  they  shall  rest 
from  their  labors,  and  their  works  shall  follow  them."  But 
truth  enjoins  us  to  tell  it;  this  new  creature  which  the  scripture 
thus  forms,  rears,  establishes,  and  leads  into  the  eternal  world, 
enlarging  in  life  and  glory,  may  be  multiplied  into  all  the  indi- 
viduals that  ever  were,  are,  or  shall  be,  true  members  of  the 
church;  and  placing  them  in  this  united  capacity,  every  siflo^le 
instance,  and  the  whole  built  together,  are  prepared,  cemejited, 
and  sent  off  the  stage  of  time,  with  this  question  from  God  him^ 
29 


534  GOD  S  BLESSDCG  TO  HIS  PEOPLE. 

self,  to  every  plant  in  it,  and  to  the  whole  sacred  inclosure, 
'♦  What  could  1  have  done  more  to  my  vineyard  that  I  have  not 
done?*'  The  individual  is  formed,  reared,  and  led  into  eternal 
glory,  and  the  church  of  God  is  established,  filled,  and  perfected, 
by  the  volume  of  inspiration  exactly  adapted,  and  no  more,  to 
the  promotion  of  the  glory  of  God,  in  the  accomplishment  of 
these  two  illustrious  ends;  and  the  solemn  and  concluding 
words  of  this  exactly  adapted  and  perfect  system  of  revelation 
are,  "  The  grace  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  be  with  you  all. 
Amen ." 

But  thirdly,  we  observe,  with  a  view  to  illustrate  the  solemn 
relations  of  this  verse,  That  this  verse  forever  stops  the  mouths 
of  the  prophets  of  the  living  God .  When  a  society  of  men  is  about 
to  be  abolished,  and  never  more  is  that  character  which  they  have 
long  supported  to  utter  another  syllable  in  our  world,  the  last 
words  which  are  spoken  by  the  last  man  in  it  derive  peculiar  solem- 
nity from  the  occasion  of  their  utterance.  All  connexions  which- 
have  arisen  before,  and  all  events  which  the  existence  of  their 
order  may  in  the  least  influence  among  men  to  the  end  of  time, 
rush  in  forcible  remembrance  or  anticipation  upon  the  mind. 
With  a  peculiar  increase  of  emotions  is  this  the  case,  when  the 
order  has  been  instituted  by  Jehovah  himself;  when  it  has  lived 
for  many  generations ;  when  it  has  been  the  conveyance  of  all 
the  knowledge  and  felicity  among  men, — light  to  them  here 
and  glory  to  them  hereafter.  We  cannot  approach  in  our  imagi- 
nation the  land  where  the  prophets  of  the  living  God  consulted 
his  oracles,  saw  his  visions,  disclosed  his  secrets,  and  acted  with 
a  divinely  delegated  character  on  earth,  without  feeling  a  reve- 
rence, and  having  our  minds  impressed  with  the  august  and 
sacred  character  of  the  scenery  amid  which  we  are  placed.  On 
John's  mind  was  impressed  the  solemnity  which  the  consecrated 
scene  of  the  prophets  retiring  with  all  the  robes  of  their  order, 
the  form  of  their  amazed  countenances,  and  the  power  which 
executed  in  miraculous  achievements  God's  will  upon  earth, 
could  produce;  on  John's  mind  was  impressed  the  solemnity 
which  the  anticipation  of  all  events  predicted  by  himself  and 
preceding  prophets  could  occasion,  or  which  might  fail  out  bj 


3S6 

the  influential  relations  of  their  words  among  unborn  genera- 
tions; and  on  Johns's  mind  was  impressed  the  solemnity  of 
standing  in  the  eventful  crisis  between  the  states  of  the  world, 
when  all  divine  inspiration  and  inspired  men  retired  from  the 
face  of  the  earth,  and  a  new  scene  of  things  appeared — mea 
left  to  themselves  with  the  book  of  revelation  consummated  in 
their  hand ;— when  he  held  his  pen  to  transcribe  this  last  portion 
of  heaven^'s  discoveries  for  the  salvation  of  sinful  men.  The 
prophets,  where  are  they  now?  Holy  men  of  God  of  old  spake 
as  they  were  moved  by  the  Holy  Ghost;  but  is  there  a. voice 
from  such  now  ever  to  be  heard?  The  vision  and  the  prophecy 
are  sealed. 

Yes,  my  brethren,  God  never  demonstrates  his  wisdom  and 
his  power  by  new  acts  of  creative  energy.  Men  must  learn  the 
invisible  things  of  God  by  what  is  already  made  and  fixed  under 
laws  which  alter  not  So  the  prophecies  of  revelation  are  pre- 
pared for  the  observation  of  men,  and  no  power  is  permitted  to 
interfere  with  them;  they  spread  themselves  over  the  face  of  tlie 
earth,  and  collect  matter  from  particular  nations,  and  by  the  rise 
and  overthrow  of  particular  societies,  as  well  as  the  most  cheer- 
ing prospects  in  the  faith  and  improvemets  of  mankind;  but 
whether  all  these  things  shall  be  realized  to  do  honor  to  the 
scriptures,  and  those  holy  men  who  wrote  them  and  sprinkled 
them  with  so  many  predictions,  is  left  as  nakedly  to  the  liaeft- 
ments  of  truth  in  these  declarations  themselves,  as  the  voice  of 
nature  is  left  to  utter  God''s  existence  by  marks  which  have  con- 
tinued since  the  morning  of  creation,  as  unvaryingly  as  is  the 
cloudless  countenance  of  the  stars.  Whosoever  addeth  to  this 
book,  to  him  shall  be  added  the  plagues  which  it  contains. 

Nor  does  this  view  of  the  subject  hinder  our  utmost  activity 
in  the  discharge  of  our  christian  duties  for  the  purpose  of 
spreading  the  gospel,  any  more  than  the  intense  application  of 
philosophical  research,  which  has  in  modern  times  been  crowned 
with  such  wonderful  success,  interferes  improperly  with  the  les- 
sons taught  in  the  school  of  nature.  If  the  prophecies  of  scrip- 
ture be  not  trees  of  God''s  planting,  they  would  soon  wither, 
notwithstanding  the  waterings  pf  men;  hut  if  he  has  planted 


336 

them,  as  christians  we  ought  to  copy  something  of  the  spirit  of 
primitive  innocency ;— While  Adam  could  not  make  a  single 
ti-ee  of  Paradise  grow,  he  could  be  busy  pruning  and  dressing  it ; 
and  so,  though  our  feeble  hands  can  do  nothing  to  make  even  a 
limb  spring  forth  where  God  has  not  prepared  a  bud  for  it,  we 
are  yet  to  be  active  and  assiduous  for  the  very  end  of  making  the 
garden  of  God  prosper.  "  For  God  hath  established  a  testimony 
in  Jacob,  and  appointed  .a  law  in  Israel,  which  he  commanded 
our  fathers,  that  they  should  make  them  known  to  their  children, 
tliat  the  generations  to  come  might  know  them,  even  the  child- 
ren who  should  be  born,  who  should  arise  and  declare  them  to 
their  children."  The  prophets  and  seers  have  withdrawn;  but 
we  have  their  visions  and  prophecies,  sealed,  like  the  work  of 
creation  by  the  sabbath  day,  in  these  most  solemn  and  suitable 
words:  "  The  grace  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  be  with  you  all. 
Amen." 

Lastly,  we  observe,  That  these  words  impress  our  minds  with 
emotions  of  solemnity,  from  the  lapse  of  time  and  the  abun- 
d  nee  of  appropriate  benediction  which  they  contain.  Vast  and 
jjloriGus  is  the  stupendous  fabric  of  nature,  and  six  days  com- 
pleted it;  but  the  structure  of  revelation,  having  to  adopt  itself 
to  the  various  v/ants  and  circumstances  of  successive  genera- 
tions, had  to  rise  gradually,  and  was  completed  only  at  the  ter- 
mination of  more  than  four  thousnnd  years  after  its  foundation 
h-id  been  laid.  The  rude  and  beggarly  elements  appearing  at 
first  in  the  uncompounded  substance  of  a  single  promise,  in- 
creased and  multiplied  afterwards  into  the  various  forms  of  an 
imperfect 'dispensation,  with  the  light,  as  in  the  original  state  of 
material  nature,  scattered  through  the  whole,  but  affording 
an  imperfect  vision;  and  this  continued  to  be  the  case  till  the 
sun  of  righteousness  himself  shone  upon  our  world,  and  all  the 
light  being  concentrated  in  him,  the  day  broke  forth  in  perfection 
.  after  the  revolution  of  many  ages.  "  God  who  at  sundry  times  and 
in  divers  manners  spake  in  times  past  to  the  fathers  by  the  pro- 
phets, hath  in  these  last  days  spoken  to  us  by  his  Son."  Vast, 
however,  as  was  the  time  which  the  manifestation  of  God's  will, 
in  the  wisdom  of  its  adaptations,  occupied ;  long  as  his  oracles 


god's  BLESSlJfG  TO  HIS  PBOl»LE.  337 

continued  to  speak,  and  his  prophets  to  awe  men  by  the  immc- 
diafe  revelation  of  his  will,  the  period  is  long  since  past.  Many 
multitudinous  generations  of  those  unborn  ages  to  vvhich  the 
prophet  looked  forward,  and  by  the  sight  of  which  his  mind  was 
filled  with  benevolence,  and  to  which  he  bequeathed  his  parting 
benediction,  "  The  grace  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  be  with  you 
all,  Amen,^  have  appeared  upon  the  current  of  time,  sailed 
down  the  stream,  and  are  gone  on  the  ocean  of  eternity, — And 
our  days  are  equally  rapidly  passing  away. 

Oh!  my  brethren,  do  you  measure  your  time  hy  the  solemn 
relations  of  this  verse?  How  long  is  it  since  the  last  time  yoa 
read  through  the  scriptures,  and  stopped,  pausing,  and  praying, 
and  blessing,  all  nations  and  ages  of  mankind  that  are  yet  to 
come,  from  a  heart  full  and  engaged  in  their  interest,  in  the 
language  of  this  appropriate  benediction  ?  Were  not  too  many 
of  your  days  spent  in  the  time  which  was  occupied  in  perusing 
from  the  beginning  Ihe  sacred  records,  till  you  came  to  thesfe 
concluding  words?  Consider,  my  young  friends,  what  a  flock 
of  your  sportive  days  have  fallen  behind,  in  the  time  which  is 
necessarily  employed  in  attending  to  that  indispensable  duty, 
which  will  not  leave  you,  nor  can  be  transferred  from  you,  of 
reading  through  the  sacred  records ;  and  while  you  mark  your 
days  by  the  lapse  of  your  time,  and  learn  to  number  them  so  ^ 
to  apply  your  hearts  to  wisdom,  double  your  vigor  of  application : 
For  these  words,  while  you  read  through  the  preceding  pages, 
can  never  be  too  often  made  a  resting  place,  and  a  point  of  solemn 
reflection;  whether  we  consider  the  instruction  you  will  have 
received,  the  view  of  the  transitoriness  of  time  that  the  reflection 
will  present  before  you,  or  the  divine  sensations  and  wishes  with 
which  these  last  words  themselves  will  fill  you. — My  aged  parents, 
how  often  have  you  paused  and  reflected  on  your  concluding  the 
perusal  of  the  contents  of  revelation?  The  more  often  you  have 
done  it,  the  more  solemn  does  this  verse,  by  its  relations  to  your 
time  and  the  abundance  of  blessing  which  it  contains,  become 
before  you.  Telling  you  that  the  more  of  your  days  are  num- 
bered, and  that  you  are  the  nearer  to  the  eternal  world,  I  hope  it 
has  found  you  conscious  of  the  character  of  the^aint,  whio«  • 

23* 


338  god's  blessing  to  his  people. 

path  is  as  the  shining  light,  which  shines  more  and  more  unto 
the  perfect  day;  and  that  you  are  now,  suppose  this  to  be  even 
the  last  time  that  you  are  to  hear  them,  walking  in  those  antici- 
pations of  blessedness  which  are  thus  expressed :  "  I  have  fought 
a  good  fight,  1  have  finished  my  course,  I  have  kept  the  faith; 
henceforth  there  is  laid  up  for  me  a  crown  of  righteousness, 
which  the  Lord  the  righteous  Judge  shall  give  unto  me;  and 
not  to  me  only,  but  to  all  them  who  love  his  glorious  appearing.'" 
— We  grow  up,  my  brethren,  like  the  seeds  of  the  trees  which 
the  wind,  after  a  little,  scatters  over  the  face  of  the  earth,  some 
here,  some  there:  but  it  matters  not;  the  dews  and  the  rain  are 
the  blessings  of  every  region  and  of  every  clime.  Which  brings 
me  to  the  second  head  of  my  method,  which  was, 

Secondly,  To  unfold  the  abundance  of  benediction  which 
my  text  contains.  Surely  there  is  something  very  full  and  very 
substantial  in  these  words,  with  which  the  great  God  stops  his 
mouth  from  speaking  any  more  to  the  sons  of  men ;  with  which 
he  would  finish  his  great  system  of  evangelical  communications; 
with  which  he  would  dismiss  from  our  world  the  only  rank  of 
men  to  whom  he  had  condescended  to  manifest  himself;  and 
with  which  he  would  mark  such  an  important  era  of  time.  In 
tlie  material  creation  we  see  him  rising  in  each  successive  day's 
work  to  more  and  more  exquisite  displays  of  his  omnipotent 
power  and  infinite  wisdom.  Chaos,  a  rude  and  undigested 
mass,  first  appears;  forms  afterwards  assume  their  organization, 
life  moving  but  irrational  follows,  and  then  last  of  all  man, 
bearing  the  image  of  his  Maker,  erect  in  stature,  comely  in  fea- 
tures, and  endowed  with  rational  faculties,  crowns  the  whole 
work.  Something  very  grand,  then,  must  surely  be  comprised 
in  these  words,  which  are  the  last  of  the  whole  structure,  and 
mark  the  perfection  of  revelation. 

This  verse  comprises,  like  man,  who  is  a  compend  of  God's 
creation,  organized  matter  and  intelligent  spirit,  the  whole  of 
the  substance  of  inspiration. 

In  the  first  place.  This  benediction  reaches  to  all  men  to  whom 
the  scriptures  come.  The  scriptures  were  revealed  with  the 
intent  of  offering  life  and  salvation  to  all  who  receive  them;  and 


GOD  S  BLESSING  TO  HIS  PEOPLE.  339 

correspondently  to  this  design  of  theirs,  these  concluding  words 
pour  forth  their  blessing  upon  every  one  who  is  so  happy  as  to 
lay  hold  upon  them.  We  are  not  to  consider  these  words  as 
containing  the  fervent  prayer  and  wishes  of  the  last  penman  of 
revelation  for  the  people  alone  who  professed  Christianity  in  his 
own  time,  and  on  whom  their  blessing  primarily  rested;  but  we 
ought  to  contemplate  this  sacred  penman  walking  among  all  the 
generations  of  mankind  that  have  received  the  gospel  since  his 
day;  yea,  visiting  in  their  respective  nations  all  races  of  his  chris- 
tian brethren,  that  have  been,  are,  or  will  be,  to  the  end  of  time; 
and  saymg,  with  the  proffered  system  of  perfected  revelation  in 
his  hand,  "  The  grace  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  be  with  you  all. 
Amen."  He  follows  the  streams  of  the  prophecies  which  break 
out  in  the  wildernesses  of  the  gentiles,  and  goes  from  sea  to 
eea,  and  from  the  rivers  unto  the  ends  of  the  earth ;  and  he 
gathers  their  sons  from  far,  and  their  daughters  to  be  nursed  at 
his  side.  He  pours  out  his  benediction  among  their  kingdoms, 
till  a  little  one  becomes  a  thousand,  and  a  strong  one  a  great 
aation.  He  turns  also  to  God's  ancient  people,  who  have  been 
deserted  of  God  and  scattered  among  the  nations;  and  seeing 
them  visited  after  many  days,  he  encourages  them,  as  well  as 
the  gentiles,  by  the  appropriate  benediction  of  our  text.  To 
this  view  he  is  influenced,  not  by  his  own  affections  merely  as 
gathered  upon  the  prospect,  but  by  the  light  of  the  Spirit  which 
shines  around  him  from  the  innumerable  passages  of  the  Old 
Testament  which  present  Christ  a  covenant  of  the  people  and  a 
light  to  the  gentiles.  For  his  heart  swells  with  the  thought, 
that  though  the  Jews  crucified  the  Prince  of  life,  and  exclaimed, 
«  We  liave  Abraham  to  our  Father,  and  we  are  Moses'  children," 
yet  the  world  are  never  to  put  on  the  circumcision  of  Abraham, 
nor  the  ceremonies  of  Moses.  It  is  the  grace  of  our  Lord  Jesus 
Christ  that  suits  to  the  future  improvements  of  mankind ;  which 
aspires  after  universal  dominion,  and  which  will  ultimately  com- 
mand it.  Laying  hold  upon  the  borders,  then,  of  the  universal 
empire  of  his  exalted  master,  and  remembering  that  his  kingdom 
is  an  everlasting  kingdom,  he  looks  on  the  high  and  the  low,  on 
the  rich  and  the  poor,  in  their  successive  generations ;  and  as  he 


340 

looks  he  pours,  like  Aaron's  oil  that  flowed  to  the  skirts  of  his 
garments,  his  benediction  over  all  of  them. 

But  we  observe  here,  in  the  second  place.  That  as  this  bene» 
diction  reaches  to  all  christians,  in  all  ages  and  nations,  so  it 
bestows  all  the  blessings  which  the  supernatural  scheme  of 
God's  salvation  of  sinful  man  infolds.  Who  can  lay  open 
the  import  of  the  word  grace  here?  God  himself  began  the 
work,  and  he  was  four  thousand  years  before  he  finished  it. 
Suiely  the  matter  of  this  benediction  is  surpassing  human  cal- 
culation or  expression.  Moses,  their  lawgiver,  and  David,  the 
king  of  Israel,  Isaiah,  the  evangelical  prophet,  and  each  of  the 
apostles  of  our  Saviour,  may  present  portions  of  it;  but  since 
God  himself  spent  age  upon  age  in  telling  us  of  the  substance 
of  it,  must  we  not  ask,  in  unfolding  this  concluding  and  alU 
comprehensive  benediction,  who  is  sufficient  for  these  things? 
Let  a  guilty  sinner,  who  has  defiled  his  way  through  life  by  a 
mournful  course  of  impiety  and  profanity,  of  immorality  and 
licentiousness,  seek  for  an  atonement  for  his  sins,  he  will  find 
it  prepared  and  perfected  in  the  grace  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ. 
Let  the  polluted  heart,  whose  affections,  like  as  a  foul  and 
flooded  fountain  wells  out  impure  waters,  discharge  every  hate- 
ful abomination,  pride,  malice,  envy,  revenge,  blasphemy,  and 
every  evil  thing,  ask  for  a  laver  in  which  to  wash  itself  from  all 
its  defilement,  the  purifying  fountain  is  opened,  and  will  forever 
flow,  in  the  grace  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ.  Such,  says  the 
apostle,  were  some  of  you,  but  ye  are  washed,  but  ye  are  sancti- 
fied, but  ye  are  justified,  in  the  name  of  the  Lord  Jesus,  and  by 
the  Spirit  of  our  God. 

But  it  may  be  asked,  in  order  to  perceive  the  abundance  of 
the  blessing  contained  in  this  benediction,  what  is  the  demerit 
of  a  single  instance  of  that  iniquity,  all  the  guilt  of  which  it 
til  us  cancels ;  and  how  hateful  to  the  eye  of  holiness  is  a  single 
stain  of  that  corruption,  the  whole  soul  polluted  with  which  it 
cleanses?  That  act  of  transgression  which  is  the  most  naked  of 
aggravations  incorporates  in  its  frame  this  perversion — a  denial 
that  God  is  just  and  righteous,  and  that  he  has  a  supreme  prero- 
gative over  his  creatures.     Sin  is  not  only  virtually,  but  it  is 


god's  blessing  to  his  people.  341 

explicitly  a  denial  that  God's  glorious  plans,  by  which  he 
governs  the  universe,  are  equitable  plans;  a  bold  and  daring 
assertion  in  the  very  face  of  Jehovah  shining  on  his  laws  by  his 
authority,  that  we  will  not  be  directed  by  them;  that  better  rules 
of  conduct  than  his  law  might  be  adopted;  that  we  will  assume 
opposite  and  independent  methods  of  practice;  and  that  we  will 
act,  in  spite  of  him,  just  according  to  our  own  inclinations. 
Multiply  this  iniquitous  deed,  this  impious  and  impotent  attempt 
to  set  aside  the  governmeat  of  the  Almighty,  into  all  the  iniqui- 
tous thoughts  which  you  have  devised,  the  words  of  evil  you 
have  spoken,  and  the  actions  your  hands  have  unhappily  per- 
formed; and  add  to  the  sum  the  innumerable  aggravations 
which  attend  many  of  the  more  enormous  of  your  offences;  and 
laying  this  mass  of  guilt  .te*de  that  &ink  of  corruption  whichls 
in  the  heart,  learn  heiTfTe'lhe  abundance  of  that  grace  which 
washes  an  individual  whiter  than  the  snow.  And  multiply  this 
individual  into  all  the  tongues,  people,  and  nations,  upon  whom 
tlie  last  prophet  of  God  has  here  his  eye,  in  all  generations  to 
the  end  of  time;  and  you  will  perceive  in  some  faint  view  the 
abundance  of  this  concluding  benediction  of  God's  word,  as  it 
happily  discovers  itself  in  these  two  primary  and  distinguishing 
characters  of  it — the  justification  and  sanctification  of  sinners. 

But  the  plenitude  of  its  benedictions  has  relations  far  more 
extended  than  these.  That  not  an  arrangement  of  circumstances 
c-an  injure  our  state,  that  not  an  enemy  can  overcome  us,  and 
that  no  less  than  an  entrance  into  the  heavenly  stale  is  provided 
for  us,  are  blessings  which  are  comprehended  in  this  valedictory 
benediction  of  revelation.  Let  the  kingdoms  of  this  world,  with 
all  the  iron  chains  of  persecution,  and  the  deadly  axe  and  block, 
unite  with  the  tempf^itions  of  Satan  to  stop  the  man  who  is 
under  the  influence  of  that  grace  which  is  the  matter  of  this 
benediction;  still  we  may  as  soon  expect  to  see  the  waters  return 
to  their  fountains,  and  the  rain  stopped  in  mid-air,  and  returning 
to  the  clouds,  as  we  can  expect  that  we  can  witness  the  man 
whose  guilt  is  washed  away  by  this  grace,  and  who  is  under  its 
sanctifying  influences,  endangered  in  his  hapjiy  condition,  op 
prevented   from  the  attainment  of  his   celestial   possessions 


342 

"  For  I  am  persuaded,"  says  Paul,  "  that  neither  death,  nor  life, 
nor  angels,  nor  principalities,  nor  powers,  nor  things  present,  nor 
things  to  come,  nor  height,  nor  depth,  nor  any  other  creature, 
is  able  to  separate  us  from  the  love  of  God  which  is  in  Christ 
Jesus  our  Lord."  By  the  ultimate  eiFects  of  this  grace,  judg- 
ments issue  in  mercies,  diseases  in  salutary  medicines,  hardships 
in  opportunities  of  zeal  and  holiness,  the  bravery  of  numerous 
and  powerful  enemies  in  occasions  of  splendid  victories,  life 
possesses  glorious  enjoyments,  and  death  is  the  gate  into  ever- 
lasting rest.  "For  which  cause  we  faint  not;  but  though 
our  outward  man  perish,  our  inward  man  is  renewed  day  by  day. 
For  our  light  affliction,  which  is  but  for  a  moment,  worketh  for 
us  a  far  more  exceeding  and  an  eternal  weight  of  glory,  while  we 
look  not  at  the  things  which  are  seen,  but  at  the  things  which 
are  not  seen ;  for  the  things  which  are  seen  are  temporal,  but 
the  things  which  are  not  seen  are  eternal ;  for  we  know  that  if 
the  earthly  house  of  this  tabernacle  were  dissolved,  we  have  a 
building  of  God,  an  house  not  made  with  hands,  eternal  in  the 
heavens."  The  latter  end  of  Job  was  better  than  when  he  was 
the  greatest  man  of  the  east;  it  was  the  furnace  heated  seven 
times  hot,  their  steps  in  the  midst  of  it  with  one  like  to  the  Son 
of  Man,  and  the  smell  of  fire  not  marking  their  garments,  that 
gave  renown  to  the  three  children;  and  we  never  feel  more  true 
amazement  at  the  early  disciples  of  Christ,  than  when  we  read 
that  they  rejoiced  that  they  were  counted  worthy  to  suffer  shame 
for  his  sake.  Said  a  virgin,  whose  beauty  was  inferior  only  to 
her  piety,  and  her  modesty  to  her  faith,  and  who,  in  the  time  of 
the  heathen  persecutions,  had  been  silent  beside  the  scene  of  the 
execution  of  many  of  her  brethren,  but  broke  silence  as  she  was 
called  to  the  block,  and  waved  then  her  white  hand  to  the  multi- 
cude,  <*  This  is  a  day  of  receiving  crowns,  and  my  head  is  about 
to  be  encircled  with  mine." 

But  we  observe,  lastly,  with  a  view  to  unfold  the  abundanc6 
of  benediction  which  this  verse  contains.  That  all  this  grace  is 
bestowed  with  a  reiterated  affection.  "  The  grace  of  our  Lord 
Jesus  Christ  be  with  you  all.  Amen."  This  last  word  of  inspi- 
ration always  returns  upon  the  thoughts  preceding,  and  repeats 


god's  blessing  to  his  people.  343 

in  a  single  annunciation  the  whole  mental  reflections  to  which  it 
relates,— so  let  them  be.  In  all  occurrences  this  is  its  import; 
but  where  has  it  such  an  emphasis  as  here?  Here,  as  it  is  a 
word  from  God,  it  reviews  and  seals  the  whole  of  that  revelation 
which  unfolds  the  supernatural  dispensation  of  his  grace.  As 
it  is  a  word  from  the  last  of  his  prophets,  it  cements  together 
and  brings  into  one  blessed  possession  the  whole  of  the  laboi-s  of 
his  acknowledged  brethren.  And  as  it  is  a  word  from  God's 
Spirit,  influencing  with  groanings  which  cannot  be  uttered,  a 
man,  a  christian,  and  a  prophet,  it  desires  with  a  twofold  desire 
that  the  whole  of  the  contents  of  God's  everlasting  covenant  of 
grace,  in  the  application  of  the  very  means  which  are  appointed 
for  the  end,  may  be  ours.— What  a  word  is  this  Amen !  This  is 
a  word  which  takes  the  manlle  of  the  prophets,  and  spreads  it 
with  a  double  portion  of  aflTection  over  us,  as  the  eye  is  turned 
to  the  last  sight  of  inspired  men,  ascending  in  a  whole  cluster 
the  chariots  of  Israel  and  the  horsemen  thereof. 

I  chose  these  words,  my  brethren,  for  our  text  to-day,  the  last 
of  Revelation,  because  this  is  the  last  time  that  I  am  to  address 
you ;  and  because,  as  a  minister  of  the  sanctuary,  I  was  unwilling 
that  the  word  of  God  should  not  be  presented  by  me,  both  as 
perfect,  and  as  rich  in  its  gracious  communications. 

The  word  of  God,  my  brethren,  is  so  perfect,  in  its  adaptation 
to  the  great  end  for  which  it  was  revealed,  that  the  Eternal,  who 
continued  for  so  many  ages  to  aid  it  by  miracles,  and  guard  it 
by  the  hands  of  a  particularly  chosen  people,  might  well  throw 
it  naked  and  alone  upon  the  theatre  of  our  world,  like  the  globe 
which  we  inhabit,  transferred  from  creating  energy  to  the 
management  of  common  providence.  The  sacred  oracles  are 
designed  to  be  read  by  all;  by  the  young  and  by  the  busy,  by 
the  illiterate,  and  by  the  rude  of  understanding,  in  the  urgencies 
of  life,  and  in  the  hours  of  distress;  and  they  contain  all  the 
rules  of  duty,  and  all  the  blessings  of  privileges,  so  prepared  and 
immediately  adapted  that  they  are  nourishment  to  the  very  babes 
in  Christ.  But  it  was  intended  by  the  author  of  this  revelation, 
that  as  our  nature  was  pleased  with  variety  and  delighted  with 
research,  so  an  extensive  field  should  be  prepared  for  our  labors; 


344  god's  blessing  to  his  people. 

and  some  parts  should  contain  mines  of  precious  materials  which 
we  should  have  patiently  to  open  and  dig,  to  arrive  at  our  de- 
sired object.  It  was,  moreover,  contemplated  that  it  should 
adapt  itself  to  times,  and  seasons,  and  fellowships,  when  those 
ministers  whom  Jesus  sends  to  preach  the  gospel  to  every  crea- 
ture will  come  to  bless  the  sacrifice;  and  hence  it  contains" 
depths  which  require  a  general  knowledge  of  the  history  of  the 
world  in  order  to  successfully  sound  them,  intricacies  of  thought 
and  language  which  enlightened  criticism  only  can  unfold,  and 
mysteries  which  knowledge  and  science  alone  can  adequately 
defend. 

It  is  a  puerile  taste  that  finds  fault  with  revelation  because 
it  borrows  not,  in  the  general  form  of  its  whole  fi'ame,  and  in  its 
particular  members,  the  exact  symmetry  which  particular  pro- 
vincial compositions  adopt ;  for  the  production  that  is  to  suit  to 
all  climes,  and  continents,  and  ages  of  the  world,  had  at  first  to 
put  on  that  perfection  which,  in  the  highest  speculations  of  intel- 
lectual science,  is  absolutely  supposed  to  be  the  most  perfect  in 
its  kind — the  form  which  is  the  most  general  in  its  application. 
The  outside  of  the  great  works  of  God  are  never  extremely 
comely.  The  whale  is  shapeless  compared  with  many  of  the 
inhabitants  of  the  deep;  the  elephant  is  far  from  excelling  in 
proportions  many  of  the  quadrupeds ;  our  beautiful  cities,  and 
the  inclosures  of  civilization,  are  laid  out  by  rules;  but  the 
world  casts  its  mountains  into  groups  or  ranges,  sometimes  high 
and  sometimes  low,  most  carelessly  thrown  from  its  hand ;  its 
valleys  sweep  along  as  if  accident  had  placed  her  foot  in  them; 
the  rivers  wind  as  if  bewildered  in  their  courses;  and  the  ocean 
has  not  a  regular  border  on  any  part  of  all  the  regions  which  it 
visits.  Yes,  no  part  of  the  system  of  God's  works,  when  viewed 
on  a  great  scale,  appears  at  first  sight  perfect.  The  sun  is  irre- 
gular in  his  motion* ;  the  planets  seem  to  move,  to  stand  still,  to 
return  upon  their  path ;  the  comets  are  wandering  bodies  which 
visit  the  blackness  of  darkness;  the  constellations  sometimes 
gather  the  stars  into  clusters,  leaving  empty  spaces,  as  it  would 
seem  to  us,  to  the  very  borders  of  creation ;  but  these  things,  to 
reflecting  and  scientific    minds,  only   proclaim  the  absolute 


god's  blessing  to  his  people.  345 

perfection  of  the  works  of  God.  It  was  once  supposed  tliat  in 
our  solar  system  there  are  evidences  of  decay;  but  it  has  been 
demonstrated,  that  all  the  apparent  imperfections  which  were 
observed  are  real  excellencies,  which  proclaim  the  permanency 
and  perpetuity,  till  their  Maker  shall  alter  them,  of  these 
works  of  his  hand;  and  so  revelation,  my  brethren,  1  wish  to 
leave  with  you,  in  its  adaptation  to  so  many  ends,  ages,  and 
purposes,  under  its  broad  but  divine  exterior;  and  as  recon>. 
mended  by  that  principle  of  absolute  suitableness  to  all  intend- 
ed ends  which  pervades  this  universe,  and  is  seen  by  the  mind 
which  assiduously  inquires  after  it. 

As  a  steward  of  the  mysteries  of  God,  I  wish  to  manage  in 
relation  to  you  and  myself,  that  benediction  which  is  amonast 
our  hands.  In  eternity  God  existed,  and  space  had  no  births 
nor  changes  among  children;  but  the  Almighty  created  the 
heavens  and  the  earth;  and  since  they  were  created  all  things 
have  been  changing;  there  is  nothing  great  or  small  whidi 
alters  not.  But  whilst  the  Creator  has  placed  us  in  a  universe 
that  changes,  yet  every  thing  returns  into  the  habitation  from 
whrch  at  set  out.  The  history  of  the  heavens  is  kept  in  periods 
and  that  of  our  world  in  successive  generations.  But  the  indi' 
vrduals  of  the  human  family  are  each  on  a  journey  which 
admt  s  of  no  returning,  but  keeps  forward,  like  the  vista  among 
the  stars,  to  the  very  borders  of  infinity.  Each  of  us,  then 
my  brethren,  needs  a  blessing,_a  blessing  from  the  Creator  of 
the  universe,  that  he  may  be  fitted  for  his  high  destiny 

That  we  should  be  separated  for  a  little,  that  I  should  leave 
you  here,  and  that  you  should  see  me  take  a  step  in  the  duties 
of  the  journey  of  life  which  bids  adieu  to  kindred  and  acquaint 
ances,  is  a  matter  in  the  instances  of  many  to  be  calcula  ed  on, 
and  can  be  of  little  serious  moment-because  the  time  is  12 
and  because  in  the  providence  of  God  this  is  the  place  of  vo5 
duty  and  pilgrimage,  but  mine  is  far  hence 

TviSlTv'T'""'  ""^  "'^°"  '""  ''^"  'oolittle impressed 
wtth  that  vast  prospect «  the  heavens,  where  many  shall  ahine 


346  god's  blessing  to  his  people. 

as  the  stars  in  the  firmament  for  ever  and  ever.— But  my  parting 
voice  is  not  to  complain. — I  am  going  where  God  has  a  vine- 
yard for  me.  My  God,  on  me  and  on  those  to  whom  you  send 
me,  may  the  grace  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  descend.  My 
brethren,  you  will  bear  me  on  the  wings  of  your  supplication 
to  the  throne  of  the  Eternal,  and  pray  that  the  word  of  God 
may  have  free  course  and  be  glorified  in  the  ministrations  of 
him  who  is  separate  from  his  brethren. 

I  have  no  energy.  I  have  no  efficacy ;  but  I  have  a  form  of 
office;  a  form  which  sprung  from  the  mind  of  the  Creator  of 
this  universe;  a  form  which  the  Son  of  God,  the  Saviour  of 
the  world,  the  faithful  and  true  witness,  upholds  upon  his  ser- 
vants; a  form  which  the  Eternal  Spirit  fills  with  all  the  energies 
of  new  life;  and  from  this  form,  in  the  name  of  the  Father,  and 
of  the  Son,  and  of  the  Holy  Ghost,  I  communicate,  on  each 
and  all  of  you,  the  grace  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ.— Holy 
Three,  water  what  is  planted.     Amen. 


ERRATUM. 

The  reader  will  please  to  correct  the  following  error,  in  page  162, 
fifth  line  from  the  foot:  for  "  in  the  sense,"  read  "  in  this  sense." 


.:#^^- 


i 


i 


:iT^_.